__________________________________________________________________
Title: NPNF1-03. On the Holy Trinity; Doctrinal Treatises; Moral
Treatises
Creator(s): Schaff, Philip (1819-1893)
Print Basis: New York: The Christian Literature Publishing Co., 1890
Rights: Public Domain
CCEL Subjects: All; Proofed; Early Church
LC Call no: BR60
LC Subjects:
Christianity
Early Christian Literature. Fathers of the Church, etc.
__________________________________________________________________
A SELECT LIBRARY
OF THE
NICENE AND
POST-NICENE FATHERS
OF
THE CHRISTIAN CHURCH.
EDITED BY
PHILIP SCHAFF, D.D., LL.D.,
PROFESSOR IN THE UNION THEOLOGICAL SEMINARY, NEW YORK,
IN CONNECTION WITH A NUMBER OF PATRISTIC SCHOLARS OF EUROPE AND
AMERICA.
VOLUME III
ON THE HOLY TRINITY
DOCTRINAL TREATISES
MORAL TREATISES
T&T CLARK
EDINBURGH
__________________________________________________
WM. B. EERDMANS PUBLISHING COMPANY
GRAND RAPIDS, MICHIGAN
__________________________________________________________________
Preface.
------------------------
This third volume contains the most important doctrinal and moral
treatises of St. Augustin, and presents a pretty complete view of his
dogmatics and ethics.
The most weighty of the doctrinal treatises is that on the Holy
Trinity. The Latin original (De Trinitate contra Arianos libri
quindecim) is contained in the 8th volume of the Benedictine edition.
It is the most elaborate, and probably also the ablest and profoundest
patristic discussion of this central doctrine of the Christian
religion, unless we except the Orations against the Arians, by
Athanasius, "the Father of Orthodoxy," who devoted his life to the
defense of the Divinity of Christ. Augustin, owing to his defective
knowledge of Greek, wrote his work independently of the previous
treatises of the Eastern Church on that subject. He bestowed more time
and care upon it than on any other book, except the City of God.
The value of the present translation, which first appeared in Mr.
Clark's edition, 1873, has been much increased by the revision, the
introductory essay, and the critical notes of a distinguished American
divine, who is in full sympathy with St. Augustin, and thoroughly at
home in the history of this dogma. I could not have intrusted it to
abler hands than those of my friend and colleague, Dr. Shedd.
The moral treatises (contained in the 6th volume of the Benedictine
edition) were first translated for the Oxford Library of the Fathers
(1847). They contain much that will instruct and interest the reader;
while some views will appear strange to those who fail to distinguish
between different ages and different types of virtue and piety.
Augustin shared with the Greek and Latin fathers the ascetic preference
for voluntary celibacy and poverty. He accepted the distinction which
dates from the second century, between two kinds of morality: a lower
morality of the common people, which consists in keeping the ten
commandments; and a higher sanctity of the elect few, which observes,
in addition, the evangelical counsels, so called, or the monastic
virtues. He practiced this doctrine after his conversion. He ought to
have married the mother of his son; but in devoting himself to the
priesthood, he felt it his duty to remain unmarried, according to the
prevailing spirit of the church in his age. His teacher, Ambrose, and
his older contemporary, Jerome, went still further in the enthusiastic
praise of single life. We must admire their power of self-denial and
undivided consecration, though we may dissent from their theory. [1]
The asceticism of the early church was a reaction against the awful
sexual corruption of surrounding heathenism, and with all its excesses
it accomplished a great deal of good. It prepared the way for Christian
family life. The fathers appealed to the example of Christ, who in this
respect, as the Son of God, stood above ordinary human relations, and
the advice of St. Paul, which was given in view of "the present
distress," in times of persecution. They deemed single life better
adapted to the undivided service of Christ and his church than the
married state with its unavoidable secular cares (1 Cor. vii. 25 sqq.).
Augustin expresses this view when he says, on Virginity, S: 27:
"Therefore go on, Saints of God, boys and girls, males and females,
unmarried men and women; go on and persevere unto the end. Praise more
sweetly the Lord, whom ye think on more richly; hope more happily in
Him, whom ye serve more earnestly; love more ardently Him, whom ye
please more attentively. With loins girded, and lamps burning, wait for
the Lord, when He returns from the marriage. Ye shall bring unto the
marriage of the Lamb a new song, which ye shall sing on your harps."
The Reformation has abolished the system of monasticism and clerical
celibacy, and substituted for it, as the normal condition for the
clergy as well as the laity, the purity, chastity and beauty of family
life, instituted by God in Paradise and sanctioned by our Saviour's
presence at the wedding at Cana.
New York, March, 1887.
__________________________________________________________________
[1] On the ascetic tendencies of the second and third centuries, and
the gradual introduction of clerical celibacy (which began with a
decree of Bishop Siricius of Rome, 385), see Schaff, Church Hist., vol.
ii. 367-414, and vol. iii. 242-250.
__________________________________________________________________
Contents.
__________
Preface.
I. Doctrinal Treatises of St. Augustin.
On the Holy Trinity
Translated by the Rev. Arthur West Haddan, B.D.
Revised and annotate, together with an introductory essay, by
the Rev. Professor W. G. T. Shedd, D.D.
The Enchiridion
Translated by Professor J. F. Shaw.
On the Catechising of the Uninstructed.
Translated by the Rev. Professor S. D. F. Salmond, D.D.
Concerning Faith of Things not Seen.
Translated by the Rev. C. L. Cornish, M.A.
On the Profit of Believing.
Translated by the Rev. C. L. Cornish, M.A.
On the Creed: A Sermon to Catechumens.
Translated by the Rev. H. Brown, M.A.
II. Moral Treatises of St. Augustin.
Of Continence.
Translated by the Rev. C. L. Cornish, M.A.
On the Good of Marriage.
Translated by the Rev. C. L. Cornish, M.A.
Of Holy Virginity.
Translated by the Rev. C. L. Cornish, M.A.
On the Good of Widowhood.
Translated by the Rev. C. L. Cornish, M.A.
On Lying.
Translated by the Rev. H. Browne, M.A.
To Consentius: Against Lying.
Translated by the Rev. H. Browne, M.A.
Of the Work of Monks.
Translated by the Rev. H. Browne, M.A.
On Patience.
Translated by the Rev. H. Browne, M.A.
On Care to be Had for the Dead.
Translated by the Rev. H. Browne, M.A.
Index to On the Holy Trinity.
Index to Fifteen Doctrinal and Moral Treatises.
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
St. augustin:
on the Trinity
[De trinitate, libri xv.]
Translated by the
Rev. Arthur West Haddan, B.D.,
Hon. Canon of Worchester, and Rector of Barton-on-the-Heath,
Warwickshire.
Revised and Annotated, with an Introductory Essay,
by
William G. T. Shedd, D.D.,
Roosevelt Professor of Systematic Theology in Union Theological
Seminary, New York.
__________________________________________________________________
Introductory Essay.
By William G. T. Shedd, D.D.
The doctrine of the Divine Unity is a truth of natural religion; the
doctrine of the Trinity is a truth of revealed religion. The various
systems of natural theism present arguments for the Divine existence,
unity, and attributes, but proceed no further. They do not assert and
endeavor to demonstrate that the Supreme Being is three persons in one
essence. It is because this doctrine is not discoverable by human
reason, that the Christian church has been somewhat shy of attempts to
construct it analytically; or even to defend it upon grounds of reason.
The keen Dr. South expresses the common sentiment, when he remarks that
"as he that denies this fundamental article of the Christian religion
may lose his soul, so he that much strives to understand it may lose
his wits." Yet all the truths of revelation, like those of natural
religion, have in them the element of reason, and are capable of a
rational defense. At the very least their self-consistence can be
shown, and objections to them can be answered. And this is a rational
process. For one of the surest characteristics of reason is, freedom
from self contradiction, and consonance with acknowledged truths in
other provinces of human inquiry and belief.
It is a remarkable fact, that the earlier forms of Trinitarianism are
among the most metaphysical and speculative of any in dogmatic history.
The controversy with the Arian and the Semi-Arian, brought out a
statement and defense of the truth, not only upon scriptural but
ontological grounds. Such a powerful dialectician as Athanasius, while
thoroughly and intensely scriptural--while starting from the text of
scripture, and subjecting it to a rigorous exegesis--did not hesitate
to pursue the Arian and Semi-Arian dialectics to its most recondite
fallacy in its subtlest recesses. If any one doubts this, let him read
the four Orations of Athanasius, and his defence of the Nicene Decrees.
In some sections of Christendom, it has been contended that the
doctrine of the Trinity should be received without any attempt at all
to establish its rationality and intrinsic necessity. In this case, the
tenets of eternal generation and procession have been regarded as going
beyond the Scripture data, and if not positively rejected, have been
thought to hinder rather than assist faith in three divine persons and
one God. But the history of opinions shows that such sections of the
church have not proved to be the strongest defenders of the Scripture
statement, nor the most successful in keeping clear of the Sabellian,
Arian, or even Socinian departure from it.
Those churches which have followed Scripture most implicitly, and have
most feared human speculation, are the very churches which have
inserted into their creeds the most highly analytic statement that has
yet been made of the doctrine of the Trinity. The Nicene Trinitarianism
is incorporated into nearly all the symbols of modern Christendom; and
this specifies, particularly, the tenets of eternal generation and
procession with their corollaries. The English Church, to whose great
divines, Hooker, Bull, Waterland, and Pearson, scientific
Trinitarianism owes a very lucid and careful statement, has added the
Athanasian creed to the Nicene. The Presbyterian churches,
distinguished for the closeness of their adherence to the simple
Scripture, yet call upon their membership to confess, that "in the
unity of the Godhead there be three persons, of one substance, power,
and eternity; God the Father, God the Son, and God the Holy Ghost. The
Father is of none, neither begotten nor proceeding; the Son is
eternally begotten of the Father; the Holy Ghost eternally proceeding
from the Father and the Son." [2]
The treatise of Augustin upon the Trinity, which is here made
accessible to the English reader, is one of the ablest produced in the
patristic age. The author devoted nearly thirty years of his matured
life to its composition (A.D. 400 to 428). He was continually touching
and retouching it, and would have delayed its publication longer than
he did, had a copy not been obtained surreptitiously and published. He
seems to have derived little assistance from others; for although the
great Greek Trinitarians--Athanasius, the two Gregories, and Basil--had
published their treatises, yet he informs us that his knowledge of
Greek, though sufficient for understanding the exegetical and practical
writings of his brethren of the Greek Church, was not adequate to the
best use of their dialectical and metaphysical compositions. [3]
Accordingly, there is no trace in this work of the writings of the
Greek Trinitarians, though a substantial agreement with them. The only
Trinitarian author to whom he alludes is Hilary--a highly acute and
abstruse Trinitarian.
In his general position, Augustin agrees with the Nicene creed; but
laying more emphasis upon the consubstantiality of the persons, and
definitely asserting the procession of the Spirit from the Father and
Son. Some dogmatic historians seem to imply that he differed materially
from the Nicene doctrine on the point of subordination. Hagenbach
(Smith's Ed. S: 95) asserts that "Augustin completely purified the
dogma of the Trinity from the older vestiges of subordination;" and
adds that "such vestiges are unquestionably to be found in the most
orthodox Fathers, not only in the East but also in the West." He cites
Hilary and Athanasius as examples, and quotes the remark of Gieseler,
that "the idea of a subordination lies at the basis of such
declarations." Neander (II. 470, Note 2) says that Augustin "kept at a
distance everything that bordered on subordinationism." These
statements are certainly too sweeping and unqualified. There are three
kinds of subordination: the filial or trinitarian; the theanthropic;
and the Arian. The first is taught, and the second implied, in the
Nicene creed. The last is denied and excluded. Accordingly, dogmatic
historians like Petavius, Bull, Waterland, and Pearson, contend that
the Nicene creed, in affirming the filial, but denying the Arian
subordination; in teaching subordination as to person and relationship,
but denying it as to essence; enunciates a revealed truth, and that
this is endorsed by all the Trinitarian fathers, Eastern and Western.
And there certainly can be no doubt that Augustin held this view. He
maintains, over and over again, that Sonship as a relationship is
second and subordinate to Fatherhood; that while a Divine Father and a
Divine Son must necessarily be of the very same nature and grade of
being, like a human father and a human son, yet the latter issues from
the former, not the former from the latter. Augustin's phraseology on
this point is as positive as that of Athanasius, and in some respects
even more bold and capable of misinterpretation. He denominates the
Father the "beginning" (principium) of the Son, and the Father and Son
the "beginning" (principium) of the Holy Spirit. "The Father is the
beginning of the whole divinity, or if it is better so expressed,
deity." IV. xx. 29. "In their mutual relation to one another in the
Trinity itself, if the begetter is a beginning (principium) in relation
to that which he begets, the Father is a beginning in relation to the
Son, because he begets Him." V. xiv. 15. Since the Holy Spirit proceeds
from both Father and Son, "the Father and Son are a beginning
(principium) of the Holy Spirit, not two beginnings." V. xiv. 15.
Compare also V. xiii.; X. iv.; and annotations pp. Augustin employs
this term "beginning" only in relation to the person, not to the
essence. There is no "beginning," or source, when the essence itself is
spoken of. Consequently, the "subordination" (implied in a "beginning"
by generation and spiration) is not the Arian subordination, as to
essence, but the trinitarian subordination, as to person and relation.
[4]
Augustin starts with the assumption that man was made in the image of
the triune God, the God of revelation; not in the image of the God of
natural religion, or the untriune deity of the nations. Consequently,
it is to be expected that a trinitarian analogue can be found in his
mental constitution. If man is God's image, he will show traces of it
in every respect. All acknowledge that the Divine unity, and all the
communicable attributes, have their finite correspondents in the unity
and attributes of the human mind. But the Latin father goes further
than this. This, in his view, is not the whole of the Divine image.
When God says, "Let us make man in our image, after our likeness" (Gen.
i. 26), Augustin understands these words to be spoken by the Trinity,
and of the Trinity--by and of the true God, the God of revelation: the
Father, Son, and Holy Spirit, one God. He denies that this is merely
the pluralis excellentiae, and that the meaning of these words would be
expressed by a change of the plural to the singular, and to the
reading, "Let me make man in my image, after my likeness." "For if the
Father alone had made man without the Son, it would not have been
written, `Let us make man in our image, after our likeness.'" City of
God XVI. vi.; Trinity I. vii. 14. In Augustin's opinion, the Old
Testament declaration that God is a unity, does not exclude the New
Testament declaration that he is a trinity. "For" says he, "that which
is written, `Hear O Israel: the Lord our God is one Lord' ought
certainly not to be understood as if the Son were excepted, or the Holy
Spirit were excepted; which one Lord our God we rightly call our
Father, as regenerating us by his grace." Trinity V. xi. 12. How far
Moses understood the full meaning of the Divine communication and
instruction, is one thing. Who it really and actually was that made the
communication to him, is another. Even if we assume, though with
insufficient reason for so doing, that Moses himself had no intimation
of the Trinity, it does not follow that it was not the Trinity that
inspired him, and all the Hebrew prophets. The apostle Peter teaches
that the Old Testament inspiration was a Trinitarian inspiration, when
he says that "the prophets who prophesied of the grace that should
come, searched what the Spirit of Christ which was in them did signify,
when it testified beforehand of the sufferings of Christ, and the glory
that should follow." (1 Pet. i. 10, 11).
In asserting, however, that an image of the Trinity exists in man's
nature, Augustin is careful to observe that it is utterly imperfect and
inadequate. He has no thought or expectation of clearing up the mystery
by any analogy whatever. He often gives expression to his sense of the
inscrutability and incomprehensibility of the Supreme Being, in
language of the most lowly and awe-struck adoration. "I pray to our
Lord God himself, of whom we ought always to think, and yet of whom we
are not able to think worthily, and whom no speech is sufficient to
declare, that He will grant me both help for understanding and
explaining that which I design, and pardon if in anything I offend." V.
i. 1. "O Lord the one God, God the Trinity, whatever I have said in
these books that is of Thine, may they acknowledge who are Thine; if
anything of my own, may it be pardoned both by Thee and by those who
are Thine. Amen." XV. xxviii.
Augustin's method in this work is (1.) The exegetical; (2.) The
rational. He first deduces the doctrine of the Trinity from Scripture,
by a careful collation and combination of the texts, and then defends
it against objections, and illustrates it by the analogies which he
finds in nature generally, and in the human mind particularly. The
Scripture argument is contained in the first seven books; the rational
in the last eight. The first part is, of course, the most valuable of
the two. Though the reader may not be able to agree with Augustin in
his interpretation of some Scripture passages, particularly some which
he cites from the Old Testament, he will certainly be impressed by the
depth, acumen, and accuracy with which the Latin father reaches and
exhausts the meaning of the acknowledged trinitarian texts. Augustin
lived in an age when the Scriptures and the Greek and Roman classics
were nearly all that the student had, upon which to expend his
intellectual force. There was considerable metaphysics, it is true, but
no physics, and little mathematics. There was consequently a more
undivided and exclusive attention bestowed upon revealed religion as
embodied in the Scriptures, and upon ethics and natural religion as
contained in the classics, than has ever been bestowed by any
subsequent period in Christendom. One result was that scripture was
expounded by scripture; things spiritual by things spiritual. This
appears in the exegetical part of this treatise. Augustin reasons out
of the Scriptures; not out of metaphysics or physics.
The second, or speculative division of the work, is that which will be
most foreign to the thinking of some trinitarians. In it they will find
what seems to them to be a philosophy, rather than an interpretation of
the word of God. We shall, therefore, in this introductory essay,
specify some of the advantages, as it seems to us, of the general
method of defending and illustrating the doctrine of the Trinity
employed by Augustin and the patristic Trinitarians.
1. Fuller justice is done to Scripture by this method. Revelation
denominates the first trinitarian person the Father, the second the
Son, the third the Spirit. These terms are literal, not metaphorical;
because the relations denoted by them are eternally in the essence.
Scripture clearly teaches that the Father is such from eternity.
Consequently, "paternity" (implied in the name Father) can no more be
ascribed to the first person of the Godhead in a figurative sense, than
eternity can be. For a person that is a father must be so in relation
to a son. No son, no father. Consequently, an eternal Father implies an
eternal Son. And the same reasoning holds true of the relation of the
Father and Son to the Spirit. The terms Father, Son, and Spirit, in the
baptismal formula and the apostolic benediction, must designate primary
and eternal distinctions. The rite that initiates into the kingdom of
God, certainly would not be administered in three names that denote
only assumed and temporal relations of God; nor would blessings for
time and eternity be invoked from God under such secondary names.
Hence, these trinal names given to God in the baptismal formula and the
apostolic benediction, actually force upon the trinitarian theologian,
the ideas of paternity, generation, filiation, spiration, and
procession. He cannot reflect upon the implication of these names
without forming these ideas, and finding himself necessitated to
concede their literal validity and objective reality. He cannot say
that the first person is the Father, and then deny that he "begets." He
cannot say that the second person is the Son, and then deny that he is
"begotten." He cannot say that the third person is the Spirit, and then
deny that he "proceeds" by "spiration" (spiritus quia spiratus) from
the Father and Son. When therefore Augustin, like the primitive fathers
generally, endeavors to illustrate this eternal, necessary, and
constitutional energizing and activity (opera ad intra) in the Divine
Essence, whereby the Son issues from the Father and the Spirit from
Father and Son, by the emanation of sunbeam from sun, light from light,
river from fountain, thought from mind, word from thought--when the
ternaries from nature and the human mind are introduced to elucidate
the Trinity--nothing more is done than when by other well-known and
commonly adopted analogies the Divine unity, or omniscence, or
omnipresence, is sought to be illustrated. There is no analogy taken
from the finite that will clear up the mystery of the infinite--whether
it be the mystery of the eternity of God, or that of his trinity. But,
at the same time, by the use of these analogies the mind is kept close
up to the Biblical term or statement, and is not allowed to content
itself with only a half-way understanding of it. Such a method brings
thoroughness and clearness into the interpretation of the Word of God.
2. A second advantage in this method is, that it shows the doctrine of
the Trinity to be inseparable from that of the Unity of God. The
Deistical conception of the Divine unity is wholly different from the
Christian. The former is that of natural religion, formed by the
unassisted human mind in its reflection upon the Supreme Being. The
latter is that of revealed religion, given to the human mind by
inspiration. The Deistical unity is mere singleness. The Christian
unity is a trinality. The former is a unit. The latter a true unity,
and union. The former is meagre, having few contents. The latter is a
plenitude--what St. Paul denominates "the fullness of the Godhead"
(pleroma tes theotetos). Coloss. i. 9.
It follows, consequently, that the Divine unity cannot be discussed by
itself without reference to trinality, as the Deist and the Socinian
endeavor to do. [5] Trinality belongs as necessarily and intrinsically
to the Divine unity as eternity does to the Divine essence. "If," says
Athanasius (Oration I. 17) "there was not a Blessed Trinity from
eternity, but only a unity existed first, which at length became a
Trinity, it follows that the Holy Trinity must have been at one time
imperfect, and at another time entire: imperfect until the Son came to
be created, as the Arians maintain, and then entire afterwards." If we
follow the teachings of Revelation, and adopt the revealed idea of God,
we may not discuss mere and simple unity, nor mere and simple
trinality; but we must discuss unity in trinality, and trinality in
unity. We may not think of a monad which originally, and in the order
either of nature or of time, is not trinal, but becomes so. The instant
there is a monad, there is a triad; the instant there is a unity, there
are Father, Son, and Holy Spirit. The Christian Trinity is not that of
Sabellius: namely, an original untrinal monad that subsequently, in the
order of nature if not of time, becomes a triad; whereby four factors
are introduced into the problem. God is not one and three, but one in
three. There is no primary monad, as such, and without trinality, to
which the three distinctions are secondary adjuncts. The monad, or
essence, never exists in and by itself as untrinalized, as in the
Sabellian scheme. It exists only as in the three Persons; only as
trinalized. The Essence, consequently, is not prior to the Persons,
either in the order of nature or of time, nor subsequent to them, but
simultaneously and eternally in and with them.
The Primitive church took this ground with confidence. Unity and
trinality were inseparable in their view. The term God meant for them
the Trinity. A "theologian," in their nomenclature, was a trinitarian.
They called the Apostle John ho theologos, because he was enlightened
by the Holy Spirit to make fuller disclosures, in the preface to his
Gospel, concerning the deity of the Logos and the doctrine of the
Trinity, than were the other evangelists. And they gave the same
epithet to Gregory Nazianzum, because of the acumen and insight of his
trinitarian treatises. This work of Augustin adopts the same position,
and defends it with an ability second to none.
3. A third advantage of this method of illustrating the doctrine of the
Trinity is, that it goes to show that the personality of God depends
upon the trinality of the Divine Essence--that if there are no interior
distinctions in the Infinite Being, he cannot be self-contemplative,
self-cognitive, or self-communing.
This is an important and valuable feature of the method in question,
when viewed in its bearing upon the modern assertion that an Infinite
Being cannot be personal. This treatise of Augustin does not develope
the problem upon this point, but it leads to it. In illustrating the
Trinity by the ternaries in nature, and especially in the human mind,
he aims only to show that trinality of a certain kind does not conflict
with unity of a certain kind. Memory, understanding, and will are three
faculties, yet one soul. Augustin is content with elucidating the
Divine unity by such illustrations. The elucidation of the Divine
personality by them, was not attempted in his day nor in the Mediaeval
and Reformation churches. The conflict with pantheism forced this point
upon the attention of the Modern church.
At the same time, these Christian fathers who took the problem of the
Trinity into the centre of the Divine essence, and endeavored to show
its necessary grounds there, prepared the way for showing, by the same
method, that trinality is not only consistent with personality, but is
actually indispensable to it. In a brief essay like this, only the
briefest hints can be indicated.
If God is personal, he is self-conscious. Self-consciousness is, (1),
the power which a rational spirit, or mind, has of making itself its
own object; and, (2), of knowing that it has done so. If the first step
is taken, and not the second, there is no self-consciousness. For the
subject would not know that the object is the self. And the second step
cannot be taken, if the first has not been. These two acts of a
rational spirit, or mind, involve three distinctions in it, or three
modes of it. The whole mind as a subject contemplates the very same
whole mind as an object. Here are two distinctions, or modes of one
mind. And the very same whole mind perceives that the contemplating
subject and the contemplated object are one and the same essence or
being. Here are three modes of one mind, each distinct from the others,
yet all three going to make up the one self-conscious spirit. Unless
there were these three distinctions, there would be no self-knowledge.
Mere singleness, a mere subject without an object, is incompatible with
self-consciousness.
In denying distinctions in the Divine Essence, while asserting its
personality, Deism, with Socinianism and Mohammedanism, contends that
God can be self-knowing and self-communing as a single subject without
an object. The controversy, consequently, is as much between the deist
and the psychologist, as it is between him and the trinitarian. It is
as much a question whether his view of personality and
self-consciousness is correct, as whether his interpretation of
Scripture is. For the dispute involves the necessary conditions of
personality. If a true psychology does not require trinality in a
spiritual essence in order to its own self-contemplation, and
self-knowledge, and self-communion, then the deist is correct; but if
it does, then he is in error. That the study of self-consciousness in
modern metaphysics has favored trinitarianism, is unquestionable. Even
the spurious trinitarianism which has grown up in the schools of the
later pantheism goes to show, that a trinal constitution is requisite
in an essence, in order to explain self-consciousness, and that
absolute singleness, or the absence of all interior distinctions,
renders the problem insoluble. [6]
But the authority of Scripture is higher than that of psychology, and
settles the matter. Revelation unquestionably discloses a deity who is
"blessed forever;" whose blessedness is independent of the universe
which he has made from nonentity, and who must therefore find all the
conditions of blessedness within himself alone. He is blessed from
eternity, in his own self-contemplation and self-communion. He does not
need the universe in order that he may have an object which he can
know, which he can love, and over which he can rejoice. "The Father
knoweth the Son," from all eternity (Matt. xi. 27); and "loveth the
Son," from all eternity (John iii. 35); and "glorifieth the Son," from
all eternity (John xvii. 5). Prior to creation, the Eternal Wisdom "was
by Him as one brought up with Him, and was daily His delight, rejoicing
always before Him" (Prov. viii. 30); and the Eternal Word "was in the
beginning with God" (John i. 2); and "the Only Begotten Son (or God
Only Begotten, as the uncials read) was eternally in the bosom of the
Father" (John i. 18).
Here is society within the Essence, and wholly independent of the
universe; and communion and blessedness resulting therefrom. But this
is impossible to an essence without personal distinctions. Not the
singular Unit of the deist, but the plural Unity of the trinitarian,
explains this. A subject without an object could not know. What is
there to be known? Could not love. What is there to be loved? Could not
rejoice. What is there to rejoice over? And the object cannot be the
universe. The infinite and eternal object of God's infinite and eternal
knowledge, love, and joy, cannot be his creation: because this is
neither eternal, nor infinite. There was a time when the universe was
not; and if God's self-consciousness and blessedness depends upon the
universe, there was a time when God was neither self-conscious nor
blessed. The objective God for the subjective God must, therefore, be
very God of very God, begotten not made, the eternal Son of the eternal
Father.
The same line of reasoning applies to the third trinitarian person, but
there is no need of going through with it. The history of opinion
shows, that if the first two eternal distinctions are conceded, there
is no denial of the reality and eternity of the third. [7]
The analogue derived from the nature of finite personality and
self-consciousness has one great advantage--namely, that it illustrates
the independence of the Divine personality and self-consciousness. The
later pantheism (not the earlier of Spinoza) constructs a kind of
trinity, but it is dependent upon the universe. God distinguishes
Himself from the world, and thereby finds the object required for the
subject. But this implies either that the world is eternal, or else,
that God is not eternally self-conscious. The Christian trinitarianism,
on the contrary, finds all the media and conditions of
self-consciousness within the Divine Essence. God distinguishes himself
from himself, not from the universe. The eternal Father beholds himself
in the eternal Son, his alter ego, the "express image of his own
person" (Heb. i. 3). God does not struggle gradually into
self-consciousness, as in the Hegelian scheme, by the help of the
universe. Before that universe was in existence, and in the solitude of
his own eternity and self-sufficiency, he had within his own essence
all the media and conditions of self-consciousness. And after the
worlds were called into being, the Divine personality remained the same
immutable and infinite self-knowledge, unaffected by anything in his
handiwork.
"O Light Eterne, sole in thyself that dwellest,
Sole knowest thyself, and known unto thyself,
And knowing, lovest and smilest on thyself!"--Dante: Paradise xxxiii.
125.
While, however, this analogue from the conditions of finite personality
approaches nearer to the eternal distinctions in the Godhead than does
that ternary which Augustin employs--namely, memory, understanding, and
will--yet like all finite analogies to the Infinite it is inadequate.
For the subject-ego, object-ego, and ego-percipient, are not so
essentially distinct and completely objective to each other, as are the
Father, Son, and Holy Spirit. They cannot employ the personal pronouns
in reference to each other. They cannot reciprocally perform acts and
discharge functions towards each other, like the Divine Three.
Revelation is explicit upon this point. It specifies at least the
following twelve actions and relations, that incontestably prove the
conscious distinctness and mutual objectivity of the persons of the
Trinity. One divine person loves another (John iii. 35); dwells in
another (John xiv. 10, 11); knows another (Matt. xi. 27); sends another
(Gen. xvi. 7); suffers from another (Zech. xiii. 7-13); addresses
another (Heb. i. 8); is the way to another (John xiv. 6); speaks of
another (Luke iii. 22); glorifies another (John xvii. 5); confers with
another (Gen. i. 26; xi. 7); plans with another (Is. ix. 6); rewards
another (Phil. ii. 5-11; Heb. ii. 9).
Such are some of the salient features of this important treatise upon
the Trinity. It has its defects; but they pertain to the form more than
to the matter; to arrangement and style more than to dogma. Literary
excellence is not the forte of the patristic writers. Hardly any of
them are literary artists. Lactantius among the Latins, and Chrysostom
among the Greeks, are almost the only fathers that have rhetorical
grace. And none of them approach the beauty of the classic writers, as
seen in the harmonious flow and diction of Plato, and the exquisite
finish of Horace and Catullus.
Augustin is prolix, repetitious, and sometimes leaves his theme to
discuss cognate but distantly related subjects. This appears more in
the last eight chapters, which are speculative, than in the first
seven, which are scriptural. The material in this second division is
capable of considerable compression. The author frequently employs two
illustrations when one would suffice, and three or more when two are
enough. He discusses many themes which are not strictly trinitarian.
Yet the patient student will derive some benefit from this
discursiveness. He will find, for example, in this treatise on the
Trinity, an able examination of the subject of miracles (Book III); of
creation ex nihilo (III. ix); of vicarious atonement (IV. vii-xiv); of
the faculty of memory (XI. x); and, incidentally, many other high
themes are touched upon. Before such a contemplative intellect as that
of Augustin, all truth lay spread out like the ocean, with no limits
and no separating chasms. Everything is connected and fluid.
Consequently, one doctrine inevitably leads to and merges in another,
and the eager and intense inquirer rushes forward, and outward, and
upward, and downward, in every direction. The only aim is to see all
that can be seen, and state all that can be stated. The neglect of the
form, and the anxiety after the substance, contribute to the
discursiveness. Caring little for proportion in method, and nothing for
elegance in diction, the writer, though bringing forth a vast amount of
truth, does it at the expense of clearness, conciseness, and grace.
Such is the case with the North African father--one of the most
voluminous and prolix of authors, yet one of the most original,
suggestive, and fertilizing of any.
And this particular treatise is perhaps as pregnant and suggestive as
any that Augustin, or any other theologian, ever composed. The doctrine
of the Trinity is the most immense of all the doctrines of religion. It
is the foundation of theology. Christianity, in the last analysis, is
Trinitarianism. Take out of the New Testament the persons of the
Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit, and there is no God left. Take
out of the Christian consciousness the thoughts and affections that
relate to the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit, and there is no
Christian consciousness left. The Trinity is the constitutive idea of
the evangelical theology, and the formative idea of the evangelical
experience. The immensity of the doctrine makes it of necessity a
mystery; but a mystery which like night enfolds in its unfathomed
depths the bright stars--points of light, compared with which there is
no light so keen and so glittering. Mysterious as it is, the Trinity of
Divine Revelation is the doctrine that holds in it all the hope of man;
for it holds within it the infinite pity of the Incarnation and the
infinite mercy of the Redemption.
And it shares its mysteriousness with the doctrine of the Divine
Eternity. It is difficult to say which is most baffling to human
comprehension, the all-comprehending, simultaneous, successionless
consciousness of the Infinite One, or his trinal personality. Yet no
theist rejects the doctrine of the Divine eternity because of its
mystery. The two doctrines are antithetic and correlative. On one of
the Northern rivers that flows through a narrow chasm whose depth no
plummet has sounded, there stand two cliffs fronting each other,
shooting their pinnacles into the blue ether, and sending their roots
down to the foundations of the earth. They have named them Trinity and
Eternity. So stand, antithetic and confronting, in the Christian
scheme, the trinity and eternity of God.
The translation of this treatise is the work of the Rev. Arthur West
Haddan, Hon. Canon of Worcester, who, according to a note of the
publisher, died while it was passing through the press. It has been
compared with the original, and a considerable number of alterations
made. The treatise is exceedingly difficult to render into
English--probably the most so of any in the author's writings. The
changes in some instances were necessary from a misconception of the
original; but more often for the purpose of making the meaning of the
translator himself more clear. It is believed that a comparison between
the original and revised translation will show that the latter is the
more intelligible. At the same time, the reviser would not be too
confident that in every instance the exact meaning of Augustin has been
expressed, by either the translator or reviser.
The annotations of the reviser upon important points in the treatise,
it is hoped, will assist the reader in understanding Augustin's
reasoning, and also throw some light upon the doctrine of the Trinity.
William G. T. Shedd.
New York, Feb. 1, 1887.
__________________________________________________________________
[2] Westminster Confession, II. iii.
[3] That Augustin had considerable acquaintance with Greek is proved by
his many references and citations throughout his writings. In this
work, see XII. vii. 11; XII. xiv. 22; XIII. x. 14; XIV. i. 1; XV. ix.
15. His statement in III. i. 1, is, that he was "not so familiar with
the Greek tongue (Graecae linguae non sit nobis tantus habitus), as to
be able to read and understand the books that treat of such
[metaphysical] topics." In V. viii. 10, he remarks that he does not
comprehend the distinction which the Greek Trinitarians make between
ousia and hupostasis; which shows that he had not read the work of
Gregory of Nyssa, in which it is defined with great clearness. One may
have a good knowledge of a language for general purposes, and yet be
unfamiliar with its philosophical nomenclature.
[4] For an analysis of Augustin's Trinitarianism, see Bauv:
Dreieinigkeitslehre I. 828-885; Gangauf: Des Augustinus speculative
Lehre von Gott dem Dreieinigen; Schaff: History, iii. 684 sq.
[5] The Mohammedan conception of the Divine Unity, also, is deistic. In
energetically rejecting the doctrine of the Trinity, the Mohammedan is
the Oriental Unitarian.
[6] "That view of the divine nature which makes it inconsistent with
the Incarnation and Trinity is philosophically imperfect, as well as
scripturally incorrect." H. B. Smith: Faith and Philosophy, p. 191.
[7] Upon the necessary conditions of self consciousness in God, see
Mueller: On Sin, II. 136 sq. (Urwick's Trans ); Dorner: Christian
Doctrine, I. 412-465; Christlieb: Modern Doubt, Lecture III.; Kurtz:
Sacred History, S: 2; Billroth: Religions Philosophie, S: 89, 90;
Wilberforce: Incarnation, Chapter III; Kidd: On the Trinity, with
Candlish's Introduction; Shedd: History of Doctrine, I. 365-368.
__________________________________________________________________
Translator's Preface.
------------------------
The history of St. Augustin's treatise on the Trinity, as gathered by
Tillemont and others from his own allusions to it, may be briefly
given. It is placed by him in his Retractations among the works written
(which in the present case, it appears, must mean begun) in A.D. 400.
In letters of A.D. 410, 414, and at the end of A.D. 415 (Ad Consentium,
Ep. 120, and two Ad Evodium, Epp. 162, 169), it is referred to as still
unfinished and unpublished. But a letter of A.D. 412 (Ad Marcellinum,
Ep. 143) intimates that friends were at that time importuning him,
although without success, to complete and publish it. And the letter to
Aurelius, which was sent to that bishop with the treatise itself when
actually completed, informs us that a portion of it, while it was still
unrevised and incomplete, was in fact surreptitiously made public,--a
proceeding which the letters above cited postpone apparently until at
least after A.D. 415. It was certainly still in hand in A.D. 416,
inasmuch as in Book XIII. a quotation occurs from the 12th Book of the
De Civitate Dei; and another quotation in Book XV., from the 90th
lecture on St. John, indicates most probably a date of at least a year
later, viz. A.D. 417. The Retractations, which refer to it, are usually
dated not later than A.D. 428. The letter to Bishop Aurelius also
informs us that the work was many years in progress, and was begun in
St. Augustin's early manhood, and finished in his old age. We may infer
from this evidence that it was written by him between A.D. 400, when he
was forty-six years old, and had been Bishop of Hippo about four years,
and A.D. 428 at the latest; but probably it was published ten or twelve
years before this date. He writes of it, indeed, himself, as if the
"nonum prematur in annum" very inadequately represented the amount of
deliberate and patient thought which a subject so profound and so
sacred demanded, and which he had striven to give to it; and as if,
even at the very last, he shrank from publishing his work, and was only
driven to do so in order to remedy the mischief of its partial and
unauthorized publication.
His motive for writing on the subject may be learned from the treatise
itself. It was not directed against any individual antagonist, or
occasioned by any particular controversial emergency. In fact, his
labors upon it were, he says, continually interrupted by the
distraction of such controversies. Certain ingenious and subtle
theories respecting types or resemblances of the Holy Trinity,
traceable in human nature as being the image of God, seemed to him to
supply, not indeed a logical proof, but a strong rational presumption,
of the truth of the doctrine itself; and thus to make it incumbent upon
him to expound and unfold them in order to meet rationalizing objectors
upon (so to say) their own ground. He is careful not to deal with these
analogies or images as if they either constituted a purely
argumentative proof or exhausted the full meaning of the doctrine, upon
both which assumptions such speculations have at all times been the
fruitful parent both of presumptious theorizing and of grievous heresy.
But he nevertheless employs them more affirmatively than would perhaps
have been the case. While modern theologians would argue negatively,
from the triplicity of independent faculties,--united, nevertheless, in
the unity of a single human person,--that any presumption of reason
against the Trinity of persons in the Godhead is thereby, if not
removed, at least materially and enormously lessened, St. Augustin
seems to argue positively from analogous grounds, as though they
constituted a direct intimation of the doctrine itself. But he takes
especial pains, at the same time, to dwell upon the incapacity of human
thought to fathom the depths of the nature of God; and he carefully
prefaces his reasonings by a statement of the Scripture evidence of the
catholic doctrine as a matter of faith and not of reason, and by an
explanation of difficult texts upon the subject. One of the most
valuable portions, indeed, of the treatise is the eloquent and profound
exposition given in this part of it of the rule of interpretation to be
applied to Scripture language respecting the person of our Lord. It
should be noticed, however, that a large proportion of St. Augustin's
scriptural exegesis is founded upon a close verbal exposition of the
old Latin version, and is frequently not borne out by the original
text. And the rule followed in rendering Scripture texts in the present
translation has been, accordingly, wherever the argument in the context
rests upon the variations of the old Latin, there to translate the
words as St. Augustin gives them, while adhering otherwise to the
language of the authorized English version. The reader's attention may
allowably be drawn to the language of Book V. c.x., and to its close
resemblance to some of the most remarkable phrases of the Athanasian
Creed, and again to the striking passage respecting miracles in Book
III. c.v., and to that upon the nature of God at the beginning of Book
V.; the last named of which seems to have suggested one of the
profoundest passages in the profoundest of Dr. Newman's University
Sermons (p. 353, ed. 1843). It may be added, that the writings of the
Greek Fathers on the subject were, if not wholly unknown, yet
unfamiliar to Augustin, who quotes directly only the Latin work of
Hilary of Poictiers.
It remains to say, that the translation here printed was made about
four years since by a friend of the writer of this preface, and that
the latter's share in the work has been that of thoroughly revising and
correcting it, and of seeing it through the press. He is therefore
answerable for the work as now published.
A. W. Haddan.
Nov. 5, 1872.
------------------------
In the Retractations (ii. 15) Augustin speaks of this work in the
following terms:--
"I spent some years in writing fifteen books concerning the Trinity,
which is God. When, however, I had not yet finished the thirteenth
Book, and some who were exceedingly anxious to have the work were kept
waiting longer than they could bear, it was stolen from me in a less
correct state than it either could or would have been had it appeared
when I intended. And as soon as I discovered this, having other copies
of it, I had determined at first not to publish it myself, but to
mention what had happened in the matter in some other work; but at the
urgent request of brethren, whom I could not refuse, I corrected it as
much as I thought fit, and finished and published it, with the
addition, at the beginning, of a letter that I had written to the
venerable Aurelius, Bishop of Carthage, in which I set forth, in the
way of prologue, what had happened, what I had intended to do of
myself, and what love of my brethren had forced me to do."
The letter to which he here alludes is the following:--
"To the most blessed Lord, whom he reveres with most sincere love, to
his holy brother and fellow-priest, Pope Aurelius, Augustin sends
health in the Lord.
"I began as a very young man, and have published in my old age, some
books concerning the Trinity, who is the supreme and true God. I had in
truth laid the work aside, upon discovering that it had been
prematurely, or rather surreptitiously, stolen from me before I had
completed it, and before I had revised and put the finishing touches to
it, as had been my intention. For I had not designed to publish the
Books one by one, but all together, inasmuch as the progress of the
inquiry led me to add the later ones to those which precede them. When,
therefore, these people had hindered the fulfillment of my purpose (in
that some of them had obtained access to the work before I intended), I
had given over dictating it, with the idea of making my complaint
public in some other work that I might write, in order that whoso could
might know that the Books had not been published by myself, but had
been taken away from my possession before they were in my own judgment
fit for publication. Compelled, however, by the eager demands of many
of my brethren, and above all by your command, I have taken the pains,
by God's help, to complete the work, laborious as it is; and as now
corrected (not as I wished, but as I could, lest the Books should
differ very widely from those which had surreptitiously got into
people's hands), I have sent them to your Reverence by my very dear son
and fellow-deacon, and have allowed them to be heard, copied, and read
by every one that pleases. Doubtless, if I could have fulfilled my
original intention, although they would have contained the same
sentiments, they would have been worked out much more thoroughly and
clearly, so far as the difficulty of unfolding so profound a subject,
and so far, too, as my own powers, might have allowed. There are some
persons, however, who have the first four, or rather five, Books
without the prefaces, and the twelfth with no small part of its later
chapters omitted. But these, if they please and can, will amend the
whole, if they become acquainted with the present edition. At any rate,
I have to request that you will order this letter to be prefixed
separately, but at the beginning of the Books. Farewell. Pray for me."
__________________________________________________________________
The
fifteen books of aurelius augustinus,
Bishop of Hippo,
on the Trinity
_________
Book I.
------------------------
In which the unity and equality of the supreme Trinity is established
from the sacred Scriptures, and some texts alleged against the equality
of the Son are explained.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--This Work is Written Against Those Who Sophistically Assail
the Faith of the Trinity, Through Misuse of Reason. They Who Dispute
Concerning God Err from a Threefold Cause. Holy Scripture, Removing
What is False, Leads Us on by Degrees to Things Divine. What True
Immortality is. We are Nourished by Faith, that We May Be Enabled to
Apprehend Things Divine.
1. The following dissertation concerning the Trinity, as the reader
ought to be informed, has been written in order to guard against the
sophistries of those who disdain to begin with faith, and are deceived
by a crude and perverse love of reason. Now one class of such men
endeavor to transfer to things incorporeal and spiritual the ideas they
have formed, whether through experience of the bodily senses, or by
natural human wit and diligent quickness, or by the aid of art, from
things corporeal; so as to seek to measure and conceive of the former
by the latter. Others, again, frame whatever sentiments they may have
concerning God according to the nature or affections of the human mind;
and through this error they govern their discourse, in disputing
concerning God, by distorted and fallacious rules. While yet a third
class strive indeed to transcend the whole creation, which doubtless is
changeable, in order to raise their thought to the unchangeable
substance, which is God; but being weighed down by the burden of
mortality, whilst they both would seem to know what they do not, and
cannot know what they would, preclude themselves from entering the very
path of understanding, by an over-bold affirmation of their own
presumptuous judgments; choosing rather not to correct their own
opinion when it is perverse, than to change that which they have once
defended. And, indeed, this is the common disease of all the three
classes which I have mentioned,--viz., both of those who frame their
thoughts of God according to things corporeal, and of those who do so
according to the spiritual creature, such as is the soul; and of those
who neither regard the body nor the spiritual creature, and yet think
falsely about God; and are indeed so much the further from the truth,
that nothing can be found answering to their conceptions, either in the
body, or in the made or created spirit, or in the Creator Himself. For
he who thinks, for instance, that God is white or red, is in error; and
yet these things are found in the body. Again, he who thinks of God as
now forgetting and now remembering, or anything of the same kind, is
none the less in error; and yet these things are found in the mind. But
he who thinks that God is of such power as to have generated Himself,
is so much the more in error, because not only does God not so exist,
but neither does the spiritual nor the bodily creature; for there is
nothing whatever that generates its own existence. [8]
2. In order, therefore, that the human mind might be purged from
falsities of this kind, Holy Scripture, which suits itself to babes has
not avoided words drawn from any class of things really existing,
through which, as by nourishment, our understanding might rise
gradually to things divine and transcendent. For, in speaking of God,
it has both used words taken from things corporeal, as when it says,
"Hide me under the shadow of Thy wings;" [9] and it has borrowed many
things from the spiritual creature, whereby to signify that which
indeed is not so, but must needs so be said: as, for instance, "I the
Lord thy God am a jealous God;" [10] and, "It repenteth me that I have
made man." [11] But it has drawn no words whatever, whereby to frame
either figures of speech or enigmatic sayings, from things which do not
exist at all. And hence it is that they who are shut out from the truth
by that third kind of error are more mischievously and emptily vain
than their fellows; in that they surmise respecting God, what can
neither be found in Himself nor in any creature. For divine Scripture
is wont to frame, as it were, allurements for children from the things
which are found in the creature; whereby, according to their measure,
and as it were by steps, the affections of the weak may be moved to
seek those things that are above, and to leave those things that are
below. But the same Scripture rarely employs those things which are
spoken properly of God, and are not found in any creature; as, for
instance, that which was said to Moses, "I am that I am;" and, "I Am
hath sent me to you." [12] For since both body and soul also are said
in some sense to be, Holy Scripture certainly would not so express
itself unless it meant to be understood in some special sense of the
term. So, too, that which the Apostle says, "Who only hath
immortality." [13] Since the soul also both is said to be, and is, in a
certain manner immortal, Scripture would not say "only hath," unless
because true immortality is unchangeableness; which no creature can
possess, since it belongs to the creator alone. [14] So also James
says, "Every good gift and every perfect gift is from above, and cometh
down from the Father of Lights, with whom is no variableness, neither
shadow of turning." [15] So also David, "Thou shall change them, and
they shall be changed; but Thou art the same." [16]
3. Further, it is difficult to contemplate and fully know the substance
of God; who fashions things changeable, yet without any change in
Himself, and creates things temporal, yet without any temporal movement
in Himself. And it is necessary, therefore, to purge our minds, in
order to be able to see ineffably that which is ineffable; whereto not
having yet attained, we are to be nourished by faith, and led by such
ways as are more suited to our capacity, that we may be rendered apt
and able to comprehend it. And hence the Apostle says, that "in Christ
indeed are hid all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge;" [17] and yet
has commended Him to us, as to babes in Christ, who, although already
born again by His grace, yet are still carnal and psychical, not by
that divine virtue wherein He is equal to the Father, but by that human
infirmity whereby He was crucified. For he says, "I determined not to
know anything among you, save Jesus Christ and Him crucified;" [18] and
then he continues, "And I was with you in weakness, and in fear, and in
much trembling." And a little after he says to them, "And I, brethren,
could not speak unto you as unto spiritual, but as unto carnal, [19]
even as unto babes in Christ. I have fed you with milk, and not with
meat: for hitherto ye were not able to bear it, neither yet now are ye
able." [20] There are some who are angry at language of this kind, and
think it is used in slight to themselves, and for the most part prefer
rather to believe that they who so speak to them have nothing to say,
than that they themselves cannot understand what they have said. And
sometimes, indeed, we do allege to them, not certainly that account of
the case which they seek in their inquiries about God,--because neither
can they themselves receive it, nor can we perhaps either apprehend or
express it,--but such an account of it as to demonstrate to them how
incapable and utterly unfit they are to understand that which they
require of us. But they, on their parts, because they do not hear what
they desire, think that we are either playing them false in order to
conceal our own ignorance, or speaking in malice because we grudge them
knowledge; and so go away indignant and perturbed.
__________________________________________________________________
[8] [Augustin here puts generare for creare--which is rarely the case
with him, since the distinction between generation and creation is of
the highest importance in discussing the doctrine of the Trinity. His
thought here is, that God does not bring himself into being, because he
always is. Some have defined God as the Self-caused: causa sui. But the
category of cause and effect is inapplicable to the Infinite
Being.--W.G.T.S.]
[9] Ps. xvii. 8
[10] Ex. xx. 5
[11] Gen. vi. 7
[12] Ex. iii. 14
[13] 1 Tim. vi. 16
[14] [God's being is necessary; that of the creature is contingent.
Hence the name I Am, or Jehovah,--which denotes this difference. God
alone has immortality a parte ante, as well as a parte post.--W.G.T.S.]
[15] Jas. i. 17
[16] Ps. cii. 26, 27
[17] Col. ii. 3
[18] 1 Cor. ii. 2, 3
[19] [St. Paul, in this place, denominates imperfect but true believers
"carnal," in a relative sense, only. They are comparatively carnal,
when contrasted with the law of God, which is absolutely and perfectly
spiritual. (Rom. vii. 14.) They do not, however, belong to the class of
carnal or natural men, in distinction from spiritual. The persons whom
the Apostle here denominates "carnal," are "babes in
Christ."--W.G.T.S.]
[20] 1 Cor. iii. 1, 2
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--In What Manner This Work Proposes to Discourse Concerning
the Trinity.
4. Wherefore, our Lord God helping, we will undertake to render, as far
as we are able, that very account which they so importunately demand:
viz., that the Trinity is the one and only and true God, and also how
the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit are rightly said, believed,
understood, to be of one and the same substance or essence; in such
wise that they may not fancy themselves mocked by excuses on our part,
but may find by actual trial, both that the highest good is that which
is discerned by the most purified minds, and that for this reason it
cannot be discerned or understood by themselves, because the eye of the
human mind, being weak, is dazzled in that so transcendent light,
unless it be invigorated by the nourishment of the righteousness of
faith. First, however, we must demonstrate, according to the authority
of the Holy Scriptures, whether the faith be so. Then, if God be
willing and aid us, we may perhaps at least so far serve these
talkative arguers--more puffed up than capable, and therefore laboring
under the more dangerous disease--as to enable them to find something
which they are not able to doubt, that so, in that case where they
cannot find the like, they may be led to lay the fault to their own
minds, rather than to the truth itself or to our reasonings; and thus,
if there be anything in them of either love or fear towards God, they
may return and begin from faith in due order: perceiving at length how
healthful a medicine has been provided for the faithful in the holy
Church, whereby a heedful piety, healing the feebleness of the mind,
may render it able to perceive the unchangeable truth, and hinder it
from falling headlong, through disorderly rashness, into pestilent and
false opinion. Neither will I myself shrink from inquiry, if I am
anywhere in doubt; nor be ashamed to learn, if I am anywhere in error.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--What Augustin Requests from His Readers. The Errors of
Readers Dull of Comprehension Not to Be Ascribed to the Author.
5. Further let me ask of my reader, wherever, alike with myself, he is
certain, there to go on with me; wherever, alike with myself, he
hesitates, there to join with me in inquiring; wherever he recognizes
himself to be in error, there to return to me; wherever he recognizes
me to be so, there to call me back: so that we may enter together upon
the path of charity, and advance towards Him of whom it is said, "Seek
His face evermore." [21] And I would make this pious and safe
agreement, in the presence of our Lord God, with all who read my
writings, as well in all other cases as, above all, in the case of
those which inquire into the unity of the Trinity, of the Father and
the Son and the Holy Spirit; because in no other subject is error more
dangerous, or inquiry more laborious, or the discovery of truth more
profitable. If, then, any reader shall say, This is not well said,
because I do not understand it; such an one finds fault with my
language, not with my faith: and it might perhaps in very truth have
been put more clearly; yet no man ever so spoke as to be understood in
all things by all men. Let him, therefore, who finds this fault with my
discourse, see whether he can understand other men who have handled
similar subjects and questions, when he does not understand me: and if
he can, let him put down my book, or even, if he pleases, throw it
away; and let him spend labor and time rather on those whom he
understands. [22] Yet let him not think on that account that I ought to
have been silent, because I have not been able to express myself so
smoothly and clearly to him as those do whom he understands. For
neither do all things, which all men have written, come into the hands
of all. And possibly some, who are capable of understanding even these
our writings, may not find those more lucid works, and may meet with
ours only. And therefore it is useful that many persons should write
many books, differing in style but not in faith, concerning even the
same questions, that the matter itself may reach the greatest
number--some in one way, some in another. But if he who complains that
he has not understood these things has never been able to comprehend
any careful and exact reasonings at all upon such subjects, let him in
that case deal with himself by resolution and study, that he may know
better; not with me by quarrellings and wranglings, that I may hold my
peace. Let him, again, who says, when he reads my book, Certainly I
understand what is said, but it is not true, assert, if he pleases, his
own opinion, and refute mine if he is able. And if he do this with
charity and truth, and take the pains to make it known to me (if I am
still alive), I shall then receive the most abundant fruit of this my
labor. And if he cannot inform myself, most willing and glad should I
be that he should inform those whom he can. Yet, for my part, "I
meditate in the law of the Lord," [23] if not "day and night," at least
such short times as I can; and I commit my meditations to writing, lest
they should escape me through forgetfulness; hoping by the mercy of God
that He will make me hold steadfastly all truths of which I feel
certain; "but if in anything I be otherwise minded, that He will
himself reveal even this to me," [24] whether through secret
inspiration and admonition, or through His own plain utterances, or
through the reasonings of my brethren. This I pray for, and this my
trust and desire I commit to Him, who is sufficiently able to keep
those things which He has given me, and to render those which He has
promised.
6. I expect, indeed, that some, who are more dull of understanding,
will imagine that in some parts of my books I have held sentiments
which I have not held, or have not held those which I have. But their
error, as none can be ignorant, ought not to be attributed to me, if
they have deviated into false doctrine through following my steps
without apprehending me, whilst I am compelled to pick my way through a
hard and obscure subject: seeing that neither can any one, in any way,
rightly ascribe the numerous and various errors of heretics to the holy
testimonies themselves of the divine books; although all of them
endeavor to defend out of those same Scriptures their own false and
erroneous opinions. The law of Christ, that is, charity, admonishes me
clearly, and commands me with a sweet constraint, that when men think
that I have held in my books something false which I have not held, and
that same falsehood displeases one and pleases another, I should prefer
to be blamed by him who reprehends the falsehood, rather than praised
by him who praises it. For although I, who never held the error, am not
rightly blamed by the former, yet the error itself is rightly censured;
whilst by the latter neither am I rightly praised, who am thought to
have held that which the truth censures, nor the sentiment itself,
which the truth also censures. Let us therefore essay the work which we
have undertaken in the name of the Lord.
__________________________________________________________________
[21] Ps. cv. 4
[22] [This request of Augustin to his reader, involves an admirable
rule for authorship generally--the desire, namely, that truth be
attained, be it through himself or through others. Milton teaches the
same, when he says that the author must "study and love learning for
itself, not for lucre, or any other end, but the service of God and of
truth, and perhaps that lasting fame and perpetuity of praise, which
God and good men have consented shall be the reward of those whose
published labors advance the good of mankind."--W.G.T.S.]
[23] Ps. i. 2
[24] Phil. iii. 15
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--What the Doctrine of the Catholic Faith is Concerning the
Trinity.
7. All those Catholic expounders of the divine Scriptures, both Old and
New, whom I have been able to read, who have written before me
concerning the Trinity, Who is God, have purposed to teach, according
to the Scriptures, this doctrine, that the Father, and the Son, and the
Holy Spirit intimate a divine unity of one and the same substance in an
indivisible equality; [25] and therefore that they are not three Gods,
but one God: although the Father hath begotten the Son, and so He who
is the Father is not the Son; and the Son is begotten by the Father,
and so He who is the Son is not the Father; and the Holy Spirit is
neither the Father nor the Son, but only the Spirit of the Father and
of the Son, Himself also co-equal with the Father and the Son, and
pertaining to the unity of the Trinity. Yet not that this Trinity was
born of the Virgin Mary, and crucified under Pontius Pilate, and
buried, and rose again the third day, and ascended into heaven, but
only the Son. Nor, again, that this Trinity descended in the form of a
dove upon Jesus when He was baptized; [26] nor that, on the day of
Pentecost, after the ascension of the Lord, when "there came a sound
from heaven, as of a rushing mighty wind," [27] the same Trinity "sat
upon each of them with cloven tongues like as of fire," but only the
Holy Spirit. Nor yet that this Trinity said from heaven, "Thou art my
Son," [28] whether when He was baptized by John, or when the three
disciples were with Him in the mount, [29] or when the voice sounded,
saying, "I have both glorified it, and will glorify it again;" [30] but
that it was a word of the Father only, spoken to the Son; although the
Father, and the Son, and the Holy Spirit, as they are indivisible, so
work indivisibly. [31] This is also my faith, since it is the Catholic
faith.
__________________________________________________________________
[25] [Augustin teaches the Nicene doctrine of a numerical unity of
essence in distinction from a specific unity. The latter is that of
mankind. In this case there is division of substance--part after part
of the specific nature being separated and formed, by propagation, into
individuals. No human individual contains the whole specific nature.
But in the case of the numerical unity of the Trinity, there is no
division of essence. The whole divine nature is in each divine person.
The three divine persons do not constitute a species--that is, three
divine individuals made by the division and distribution of one common
divine nature--but are three modes or "forms" (Phil. ii. 6) of one
undivided substance, numerically and identically the same in
each.--W.G.T.S.]
[26] Matt. iii. 16
[27] Acts ii. 2, 4
[28] Mark i. 11
[29] Matt. xvii. 5
[30] John xii. 28
[31] [The term Trinity denotes the Divine essence in all three modes.
The term Father (or Son, or Spirit) denotes the essence in only one
mode. Consequently, there is something in the Trinity that cannot be
attributed to any one of the Persons, as such; and something in a
Person that cannot be attributed to the Trinity, as such. Trinality
cannot be ascribed to the first Person; paternity cannot be ascribed to
the Trinity.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--Of Difficulties Concerning the Trinity: in What Manner
Three are One God, and How, Working Indivisibly, They Yet Perform Some
Things Severally.
8. Some persons, however, find a difficulty in this faith; when they
hear that the Father is God, and the Son God, and the Holy Spirit God,
and yet that this Trinity is not three Gods, but one God; and they ask
how they are to understand this: especially when it is said that the
Trinity works indivisibly in everything that God works, and yet that a
certain voice of the Father spoke, which is not the voice of the Son;
and that none except the Son was born in the flesh, and suffered, and
rose again, and ascended into heaven; and that none except the Holy
Spirit came in the form of a dove. They wish to understand how the
Trinity uttered that voice which was only of the Father; and how the
same Trinity created that flesh in which the Son only was born of the
Virgin; and how the very same Trinity itself wrought that form of a
dove, in which the Holy Spirit only appeared. Yet, otherwise, the
Trinity does not work indivisibly, but the Father does some things, the
Son other things, and the Holy Spirit yet others: or else, if they do
some things together, some severally, then the Trinity is not
indivisible. It is a difficulty, too, to them, in what manner the Holy
Spirit is in the Trinity, whom neither the Father nor the Son, nor
both, have begotten, although He is the Spirit both of the Father and
of the Son. Since, then, men weary us with asking such questions, let
us unfold to them, as we are able, whatever wisdom God's gift has
bestowed upon our weakness on this subject; neither "let us go on our
way with consuming envy." [32] Should we say that we are not accustomed
to think about such things, it would not be true; yet if we acknowledge
that such subjects commonly dwell in our thoughts, carried away as we
are by the love of investigating the truth, then they require of us, by
the law of charity, to make known to them what we have herein been able
to find out. "Not as though I had already attained, either were already
perfect" (for, if the Apostle Paul, how much more must I, who lie far
beneath his feet, count myself not to have apprehended!); but,
according to my measure, "if I forget those things that are behind, and
reach forth unto those things which are before, and press towards the
mark for the prize of the high calling," [33] I am requested to
disclose so much of the road as I have already passed, and the point to
which I have reached, whence the course yet remains to bring me to the
end. And those make the request, whom a generous charity compels me to
serve. Needs must too, and God will grant that, in supplying them with
matter to read, I shall profit myself also; and that, in seeking to
reply to their inquiries, I shall myself likewise find that for which I
was inquiring. Accordingly I have undertaken the task, by the bidding
and help of the Lord my God, not so much of discoursing with authority
respecting things I know already, as of learning those things by
piously discoursing of them.
__________________________________________________________________
[32] Wisd. vi. 23
[33] Phil. iii. 12-14
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--That the Son is Very God, of the Same Substance with the
Father. Not Only the Father, But the Trinity, is Affirmed to Be
Immortal. All Things are Not from the Father Alone, But Also from the
Son. That the Holy Spirit is Very God, Equal with the Father and the
Son.
9. They who have said that our Lord Jesus Christ is not God, or not
very God, or not with the Father the One and only God, or not truly
immortal because changeable, are proved wrong by the most plain and
unanimous voice of divine testimonies; as, for instance, "In the
beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was
God." For it is plain that we are to take the Word of God to be the
only Son of God, of whom it is afterwards said, "And the Word was made
flesh, and dwelt among us," on account of that birth of His
incarnation, which was wrought in time of the Virgin. But herein is
declared, not only that He is God, but also that He is of the same
substance with the Father; because, after saying, "And the Word was
God," it is said also, "The same was in the beginning with God: all
things were made by Him, and without Him was not anything made." [34]
Not simply "all things;" but only all things that were made, that is;
the whole creature. From which it appears clearly, that He Himself was
not made, by whom all things were made. And if He was not made, then He
is not a creature; but if He is not a creature, then He is of the same
substance with the Father. For all substance that is not God is
creature; and all that is not creature is God. [35] And if the Son is
not of the same substance with the Father, then He is a substance that
was made: and if He is a substance that was made, then all things were
not made by Him; but "all things were made by Him," therefore He is of
one and the same substance with the Father. And so He is not only God,
but also very God. And the same John most expressly affirms this in his
epistle: "For we know that the Son of God is come, and hath given us an
understanding, that we may know the true God, and that we may be in His
true Son Jesus Christ. This is the true God, and eternal life." [36]
10. Hence also it follows by consequence, that the Apostle Paul did not
say, "Who alone has immortality," of the Father merely; but of the One
and only God, which is the Trinity itself. For that which is itself
eternal life is not mortal according to any changeableness; and hence
the Son of God, because "He is Eternal Life," is also Himself
understood with the Father, where it is said, "Who only hath
immortality." For we, too, are made partakers of this eternal life, and
become, in our own measure, immortal. But the eternal life itself, of
which we are made partakers, is one thing; we ourselves, who, by
partaking of it, shall live eternally, are another. For if He had said,
"Whom in His own time the Father will show, who is the blessed and only
Potentate, the King of kings, and Lord of lords; who only hath
immortality;" not even so would it be necessarily understood that the
Son is excluded. For neither has the Son separated the Father from
Himself, because He Himself, speaking elsewhere with the voice of
wisdom (for He Himself is the Wisdom of God), [37] says, "I alone
compassed the circuit of heaven." [38] And therefore so much the more
is it not necessary that the words, "Who hath immortality," should be
understood of the Father alone, omitting the Son; when they are said
thus: "That thou keep this commandment without spot, unrebukeable,
until the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ: whom in His own time He
will show, who is the blessed and only Potentate, the King of kings,
and Lord of lords; who only hath immortality, dwelling in the light
which no man can approach unto; whom no man hath seen, nor can see: to
whom be honor and power everlasting. Amen." [39] In which words neither
is the Father specially named, nor the Son, nor the Holy Spirit; but
the blessed and only Potentate, the King of kings, and Lord of lords;
that is, the One and only and true God, the Trinity itself.
11. But perhaps what follows may interfere with this meaning; because
it is said, "Whom no man hath seen, nor can see:" although this may
also be taken as belonging to Christ according to His divinity, which
the Jews did not see, who yet saw and crucified Him in the flesh;
whereas His divinity can in no wise be seen by human sight, but is seen
with that sight with which they who see are no longer men, but beyond
men. Rightly, therefore, is God Himself, the Trinity, understood to be
the "blessed and only Potentate," who "shows the coming of our Lord
Jesus Christ in His own time." For the words, "Who only hath
immortality," are said in the same way as it is said, "Who only doeth
wondrous things." [40] And I should be glad to know of whom they take
these words to be said. If only of the Father, how then is that true
which the Son Himself says, "For what things soever the Father doeth,
these also doeth the Son likewise?" Is there any, among wonderful
works, more wonderful than to raise up and quicken the dead? Yet the
same Son saith, "As the Father raiseth up the dead, and quickeneth
them, even so the Son quickeneth whom He will." [41] How, then, does
the Father alone "do wondrous things," when these words allow us to
understand neither the Father only, nor the Son only, but assuredly the
one only true God, that is, the Father, and the Son, and the Holy
Spirit? [42]
12. Also, when the same apostle says, "But to us there is but one God,
the Father, of whom are all things, and we in Him; and one Lord Jesus
Christ, by whom are all things, and we by Him," [43] who can doubt that
he speaks of all things which are created; as does John, when he says,
"All things were made by Him"? I ask, therefore, of whom he speaks in
another place: "For of Him, and through Him, and in Him, are all
things: to whom be glory for ever. Amen." [44] For if of the Father,
and the Son, and the Holy Spirit, so as to assign each clause severally
to each person: of Him, that is to say, of the Father; through Him,
that is to say, through the Son; in Him, that is to say, in the Holy
Spirit,--it is manifest that the Father, and the Son, and the Holy
Spirit is one God, inasmuch as the words continue in the singular
number, "To whom [45] be glory for ever." For at the beginning of the
passage he does not say, "O the depth of the riches both of the wisdom
and knowledge" of the Father, or of the Son, or of the Holy Spirit, but
"of the wisdom and knowledge of God!" "How unsearchable are His
judgments, and His ways past finding out! For who hath known the mind
of the Lord? or who hath been His counsellor? Or who hath first given
to Him and it shall be recompensed unto him again? For of Him, and
through Him, and in Him, are all things: to whom be glory for ever.
Amen." [46] But if they will have this to be understood only of the
Father, then in what way are all things by the Father, as is said here;
and all things by the Son, as where it is said to the Corinthians, "And
one Lord Jesus Christ, by whom are all things," [47] and as in the
Gospel of John, "All things were made by Him?" For if some things were
made by the Father, and some by the Son, then all things were not made
by the Father, nor all things by the Son; but if all things were made
by the Father, and all things by the Son, then the same things were
made by the Father and by the Son. The Son, therefore, is equal with
the Father, and the working of the Father and the Son is indivisible.
Because if the Father made even the Son, whom certainly the Son Himself
did not make, then all things were not made by the Son; but all things
were made by the Son: therefore He Himself was not made, that with the
Father He might make all things that were made. And the apostle has not
refrained from using the very word itself, but has said most expressly,
"Who, being in the form of God, thought it not robbery to be equal with
God;" [48] using here the name of God specially of the Father; [49] as
elsewhere, "But the head of Christ is God." [50]
13. Similar evidence has been collected also concerning the Holy
Spirit, of which those who have discussed the subject before ourselves
have most fully availed themselves, that He too is God, and not a
creature. But if not a creature, then not only God (for men likewise
are called gods [51] ), but also very God; and therefore absolutely
equal with the Father and the Son, and in the unity of the Trinity
consubstantial and co-eternal. But that the Holy Spirit is not a
creature is made quite plain by that passage above all others, where we
are commanded not to serve the creature, but the Creator; [52] not in
the sense in which we are commanded to "serve" one another by love,
[53] which is in Greek douleuein, but in that in which God alone is
served, which is in Greek latreuein. From whence they are called
idolaters who tender that service to images which is due to God. For it
is this service concerning which it is said, "Thou shalt worship the
Lord thy God, and Him only shalt thou serve." [54] For this is found
also more distinctly in the Greek Scriptures, which have latreuseis.
Now if we are forbidden to serve the creature with such a service,
seeing that it is written, "Thou shalt worship the Lord thy God, and
Him only shalt thou serve" (and hence, too, the apostle repudiates
those who worship and serve the creature more than the Creator), then
assuredly the Holy Spirit is not a creature, to whom such a service is
paid by all the saints; as says the apostle, "For we are the
circumcision, which serve the Spirit of God," [55] which is in the
Greek latreuontes. For even most Latin copies also have it thus, "We
who serve the Spirit of God;" but all Greek ones, or almost all, have
it so. Although in some Latin copies we find, not "We worship the
Spirit of God," but, "We worship God in the Spirit." But let those who
err in this case, and refuse to give up to the more weighty authority,
tell us whether they find this text also varied in the mss.: "Know ye
not that your body is the temple of the Holy Ghost, which is in you,
which ye have of God?" Yet what can be more senseless or more profane,
than that any one should dare to say that the members of Christ are the
temple of one who, in their opinion, is a creature inferior to Christ?
For the apostle says in another place, "Your bodies are members of
Christ." But if the members of Christ are also the temple of the Holy
Spirit, then the Holy Spirit is not a creature; because we must needs
owe to Him, of whom our body is the temple, that service wherewith God
only is to be served, which in Greek is called latreia. And accordingly
the apostle says, "Therefore glorify God in your body." [56]
__________________________________________________________________
[34] John i. 1, 14, 2, 3
[35] [Augustin here postulates the theistic doctrines of two
substances--infinite and finite; in contradiction to the postulate of
pantheism, that there is only one substance--the infinite.--W.G.T.S.]
[36] 1 John v. 20
[37] 1 Cor. i. 24
[38] Ecclus. xxiv. 5
[39] 1 Tim. vi. 14-16
[40] Ps. lxxii. 18
[41] John v. 19, 21
[42] [Nothing is more important, in order to a correct interpretation
of the New Testament, than a correct explanation of the term God.
Sometimes it denotes the Trinity, and sometimes a person of the
Trinity. The context always shows which it is. The examples given here
by Augustin are only a few out of many.--W.G.T.S.]
[43] 1 Cor. viii. 6
[44] Rom. xi. 36
[45] Ipsi.
[46] Rom. xi. 33-36
[47] 1 Cor. viii. 6
[48] Phil. ii. 6
[49] [It is not generally safe to differ from Augustin in trinitarian
exegesis. But in Phil. ii. 6 "God" must surely denote the Divine
Essence, not the first Person of the Essence. St. Paul describes
"Christ Jesus" as "subsisting" (huparchon) originally, that is prior to
incarnation, "in a form of God"(en morphe theou), and because he so
subsisted, as being "equal with God." The word morphe is anarthrous in
the text: a form, not the form, as the A.V and R.V. render. St. Paul
refers to one of three "forms" of God--namely, that particular form of
Sonship, which is peculiar to the second person of the Godhead. Had the
apostle employed the article with morphe, the implication would be that
there is only one "form of God"--that is, only one person in the Divine
Essence. If then theou, in this place, denotes the Father, as Augustin
says, St. Paul would teach that the Logos subsisted "in a form of the
Father," which would imply that the Father had more than one "form," or
else (if morphe be rendered with the article) that the Logos subsisted
in the "form" of the Father, neither of which is true. But if "God," in
this place, denotes the Divine Essence, then St. Paul teaches that the
unincarnate Logos subsisted in a particular "form" of the Essence--the
Father and Spirit subsisting in other "forms" of it. The student will
observe that Augustin is careful to teach that the Logos, when he took
on him "a form of a servant," did not lay aside "a form of God." He
understands the kenosis (ekenose) to be, the humbling of the divinity
by its union with the humanity, not the exinanition of it in the
extremest sense of entirely divesting himself of the divinity, nor the
less extreme sense of a total non-use of it during the
humiliation.--W.G.T.S.]
[50] 1 Cor. xi. 3
[51] Ps. lxxxii. 6
[52] Rom. i. 25
[53] Gal. v. 13
[54] Deut. vi. 13
[55] Phil. iii. 3 (Vulgate, etc.).
[56] 1 Cor. vi. 19, 15, 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--In What Manner the Son is Less Than the Father, and Than
Himself.
14. In these and like testimonies of the divine Scriptures, by free use
of which, as I have said, our predecessors exploded such sophistries or
errors of the heretics, the unity and equality of the Trinity are
intimated to our faith. But because, on account of the incarnation of
the Word of God for the working out of our salvation, that the man
Christ Jesus might be the Mediator between God and men, [57] many
things are so said in the sacred books as to signify, or even most
expressly declare, the Father to be greater than the Son; men have
erred through a want of careful examination or consideration of the
whole tenor of the Scriptures, and have endeavored to transfer those
things which are said of Jesus Christ according to the flesh, to that
substance of His which was eternal before the incarnation, and is
eternal. They say, for instance, that the Son is less than the Father,
because it is written that the Lord Himself said, "My Father is greater
than I." [58] But the truth shows that after the same sense the Son is
less also than Himself; for how was He not made less also than Himself,
who "emptied [59] Himself, and took upon Him the form of a servant?"
For He did not so take the form of a servant as that He should lose the
form of God, in which He was equal to the Father. If, then, the form of
a servant was so taken that the form of God was not lost, since both in
the form of a servant and in the form of God He Himself is the same
only-begotten Son of God the Father, in the form of God equal to the
Father, in the form of a servant the Mediator between God and men, the
man Christ Jesus; is there any one who cannot perceive that He Himself
in the form of God is also greater than Himself, but yet likewise in
the form of a servant less than Himself? And not, therefore, without
cause the Scripture says both the one and the other, both that the Son
is equal to the Father, and that the Father is greater than the Son.
For there is no confusion when the former is understood as on account
of the form of God, and the latter as on account of the form of a
servant. And, in truth, this rule for clearing the question through all
the sacred Scriptures is set forth in one chapter of an epistle of the
Apostle Paul, where this distinction is commended to us plainly enough.
For he says, "Who, being in the form of God, thought it not robbery to
be equal with God; but emptied Himself, and took upon Him the form of a
servant, and was made in the likeness of men: and was found in fashion
[60] as a man." [61] The Son of God, then, is equal to God the Father
in nature, but less in "fashion." [62] For in the form of a servant
which He took He is less than the Father; but in the form of God, in
which also He was before He took the form of a servant, He is equal to
the Father. In the form of God He is the Word, "by whom all things are
made;" [63] but in the form of a servant He was "made of a woman, made
under the law, to redeem them that were under the law." [64] In like
manner, in the form of God He made man; in the form of a servant He was
made man. For if the Father alone had made man without the Son, it
would not have been written, "Let us make man in our image, after our
likeness." [65] Therefore, because the form of God took the form of a
servant, both is God and both is man; but both God, on account of God
who takes; and both man, on account of man who is taken. For neither by
that taking is the one of them turned and changed into the other: the
Divinity is not changed into the creature, so as to cease to be
Divinity; nor the creature into Divinity, so as to cease to be
creature.
__________________________________________________________________
[57] 1 Tim. ii. 5
[58] John xiv. 28
[59] Exinanivit
[60] Habitu
[61] Phil. ii. 6, 7
[62] Habitu
[63] John i. 3
[64] Gal. iv. 4, 5
[65] Gen. i. 26
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--The Texts of Scripture Explained Respecting the Subjection
of the Son to the Father, Which Have Been Misunderstood. Christ Will
Not So Give Up the Kingdom to the Father, as to Take It Away from
Himself. The Beholding Him is the Promised End of All Actions. The Holy
Spirit is Sufficient to Our Blessedness Equally with the Father.
15. As for that which the apostle says, "And when all things shall be
subdued unto Him, then shall the Son also Himself be subject unto Him
that put all things under Him:" either the text has been so turned,
lest any one should think that the "fashion" [66] of Christ, which He
took according to the human creature, was to be transformed hereafter
into the Divinity, or (to express it more precisely) the Godhead
itself, who is not a creature, but is the unity of the Trinity,--a
nature incorporeal, and unchangeable, and consubstantial, and
co-eternal with itself; or if any one contends, as some have thought,
that the text, "Then shall the Son also Himself be subject unto Him
that put all things under Him," is so turned in order that one may
believe that very "subjection" to be a change and conversion hereafter
of the creature into the substance or essence itself of the Creator,
that is, that that which had been the substance of a creature shall
become the substance of the Creator;--such an one at any rate admits
this, of which in truth there is no possible doubt, that this had not
yet taken place, when the Lord said, "My Father is greater than I." For
He said this not only before He ascended into heaven, but also before
He had suffered, and had risen from the dead. But they who think that
the human nature in Him is to be changed and converted into the
substance of the Godhead, and that it was so said, "Then shall the Son
also Himself be subject unto Him that put all things under Him,"--as if
to say, Then also the Son of man Himself, and the human nature taken by
the Word of God, shall be changed into the nature of Him who put all
things under Him,--must also think that this will then take place,
when, after the day of judgment, "He shall have delivered up the
kingdom to God, even the Father." And hence even still, according to
this opinion, the Father is greater than that form of a servant which
was taken of the Virgin. But if some affirm even further, that the man
Christ Jesus has already been changed into the substance of God, at
least they cannot deny that the human nature still remained, when He
said before His passion, "For my Father is greater than I;" whence
there is no question that it was said in this sense, that the Father is
greater than the form of a servant, to whom in the form of God the Son
is equal. Nor let any one, hearing what the apostle says, "But when He
saith all things are put under Him, it is manifest that He is excepted
which did put all things under Him," [67] think the words, that He hath
put all things under the Son, to be so understood of the Father, as
that He should not think that the Son Himself put all things under
Himself. For this the apostle plainly declares, when he says to the
Philippians, "For our conversation is in heaven; from whence also we
look for the Saviour, the Lord Jesus Christ: who shall change our vile
body, that it may be fashioned like unto His glorious body, according
to the working whereby He is able even to subdue [68] all things unto
Himself." [69] For the working of the Father and of the Son is
indivisible. Otherwise, neither hath the Father Himself put all things
under Himself, but the Son hath put all things under Him, who delivers
the kingdom to Him, and puts down all rule and all authority and power.
For these words are spoken of the Son: "When He shall have delivered
up," says the apostle, "the kingdom to God, even the Father; when He
shall have put down [70] all rule, and all authority, and all power."
For the same that puts down, also makes subject.
16. Neither may we think that Christ shall so give up the kingdom to
God, even the Father, as that He shall take it away from Himself. For
some vain talkers have thought even this. For when it is said, "He
shall have delivered up the kingdom to God, even the Father," He
Himself is not excluded; because He is one God together with the
Father. But that word "until" deceives those who are careless readers
of the divine Scriptures, but eager for controversies. For the text
continues, "For He must reign, until He hath put all enemies under His
feet;" [71] as though, when He had so put them, He would no more reign.
Neither do they perceive that this is said in the same way as that
other text, "His heart is established: He shall not be afraid, until He
see His desire upon His enemies." [72] For He will not then be afraid
when He has seen it. What then means, "When He shall have delivered up
the kingdom to God, even the Father," as though God and the Father has
not the kingdom now? But because He is hereafter to bring all the just,
over whom now, living by faith, the Mediator between God and men, the
man Christ Jesus, reigns, to that sight which the same apostle calls
"face to face;" [73] therefore the words, "When He shall have delivered
up the kingdom to God, even the Father," are as much as to say, When He
shall have brought believers to the contemplation of God, even the
Father. For He says, "All things are delivered unto me of my Father:
and no man knoweth the Son, but the Father; neither knoweth any man the
Father, save the Son, and he to whomsoever the Son will reveal Him."
[74] The Father will then be revealed by the Son, "when He shall have
put down all rule, and all authority, and all power;" that is, in such
wise that there shall be no more need of any economy of similitudes, by
means of angelic rulers, and authorities, and powers. Of whom that is
not unfitly understood, which is said in the Song of Songs to the
bride, "We will make thee borders [75] of gold, with studs of silver,
while the King sitteth at His table;" [76] that is, as long as Christ
is in His secret place: since "your life is hid with Christ in God;
when Christ, who is our [77] life, shall appear, then shall ye also
appear with Him in glory." [78] Before which time, "we see now through
a glass, in an enigma," that is, in similitudes, "but then face to
face." [79]
17. For this contemplation is held forth to us as the end of all
actions, and the everlasting fullness of joy. For "we are the sons of
God; and it doth not yet appear what we shall be: but we know that,
when He shall appear, we shall be like Him; for we shall see Him as He
is." [80] For that which He said to His servant Moses, "I am that I am;
thus shalt thou say to the children of Israel, I Am hath sent me to
you;" [81] this it is which we shall contemplate when we shall live in
eternity. For so it is said, "And this is life eternal, that they might
know Thee, the only true God, and Jesus Christ, whom Thou hast sent."
[82] This shall be when the Lord shall have come, and "shall have
brought to light the hidden things of darkness;" [83] when the darkness
of this present mortality and corruption shall have passed away. Then
will be our morning, which is spoken of in the Psalm, "In the morning
will I direct my prayer unto Thee, and will contemplate Thee." [84] Of
this contemplation I understand it to be said, "When He shall have
delivered up the kingdom to God, even the Father;" that is, when He
shall have brought the just, over whom now, living by faith, the
Mediator between God and man, the man Christ Jesus, reigns, to the
contemplation of God, even the Father. If herein I am foolish, let him
who knows better correct me; to me at least the case seems as I have
said. [85] For we shall not seek anything else, when we shall have come
to the contemplation of Him. But that contemplation is not yet, so long
as our joy is in hope. For "hope that is seen is not hope: for what a
man seeth, why doth he yet hope for? But if we hope for that we see
not, then do we with patience wait for it," [86] viz. "as long as the
King sitteth at His table." [87] Then will take place that which is
written, "In Thy presence is fullness of joy." [88] Nothing more than
that joy will be required; because there will be nothing more than can
be required. For the Father will be manifested to us, and that will
suffice for us. And this much Philip had well understood, so that he
said to the Lord, "Show us the Father, and it sufficeth us." But he had
not yet understood that he himself was able to say this very same thing
in this way also: Lord, show Thyself to us, and it sufficeth us. For,
that he might understand this, the Lord replied to him, "Have I been so
long time with you, and yet hast thou not known me, Philip? he that
hath seen me hath seen the Father." But because He intended him, before
he could see this, to live by faith, He went on to say, "Believest thou
not that I am in the Father, and the Father in me?" [89] For "while we
are at home in the body, we are absent from the Lord: for we walk by
faith, not by sight." [90] For contemplation is the recompense of
faith, for which recompense our hearts are purified by faith; as it is
written, "Purifying their hearts by faith." [91] And that our hearts
are to be purified for this contemplation, is proved above all by this
text, "Blessed are the pure in heart, for they shall see God." [92] And
that this is life eternal, God says in the Psalm, "With long life will
I satisfy him, and show him my salvation." [93] Whether, therefore, we
hear, Show us the Son; or whether we hear, Show us the Father; it is
even all one, since neither can be manifested without the other. For
they are one, as He also Himself says, "My Father and I are one." [94]
Finally, on account of this very indivisibility, it suffices that
sometimes the Father alone, or the Son alone, should be named, as
hereafter to fill us with the joy of His countenance.
18. Neither is the Spirit of either thence excluded, that is, the
Spirit of the Father and of the Son; which Holy Spirit is specially
called "the Spirit of truth, whom the world cannot receive." [95] For
to have the fruition of God the Trinity, after whose image we are made,
is indeed the fullness of our joy, than which there is no greater. On
this account the Holy Spirit is sometimes spoken of as if He alone
sufficed to our blessedness: and He does alone so suffice, because He
cannot be divided from the Father and the Son; as the Father alone is
sufficient, because He cannot be divided from the Son and the Holy
Spirit; and the Son alone is sufficient because He cannot be divided
from the Father and the Holy Spirit. For what does He mean by saying,
"If ye love me, keep my commandments; and I will pray the Father, and
He shall give you another Comforter, that He may abide with you for
ever; even the Spirit of truth, whom the world cannot receive," [96]
that is, the lovers of the world? For "the natural man receiveth not
the things of the Spirit of God." [97] But it may perhaps seem,
further, as if the words, "And I will pray the Father, and He shall
give you another Comforter," were so said as if the Son alone were not
sufficient. And that place so speaks of the Spirit, as if He alone were
altogether sufficient: "When He, the Spirit of truth, is come, He will
guide you into all truth." [98] Pray, therefore, is the Son here
excluded, as if He did not teach all truth, or as if the Holy Spirit
were to fill up that which the Son could not fully teach? Let them say
then, if it pleases them, that the Holy Spirit is greater than the Son,
whom they are wont to call less. Or is it, forsooth, because it is not
said, He alone,--or, No one else except Himself--will guide you into
all truth, that they allow that the Son also may be believed to teach
together with Him? In that case the apostle has excluded the Son from
knowing those things which are of God, where he says, "Even so the
things of God knoweth no one, but the Spirit of God:" [99] so that
these perverse men might, upon this ground, go on to say that none but
the Holy Spirit teaches even the Son the things of God, as the greater
teaches the less; to whom the Son Himself ascribes so much as to say,
"But because I have said these things unto you, sorrow hath filled your
heart. Nevertheless I tell you the truth; it is expedient for you that
I go away: for if I go not away, the Comforter will not come unto you."
[100]
__________________________________________________________________
[66] Habitum
[67] 1 Cor. xv. 28, 24, 27
[68] Subjicere
[69] Phil. iii. 20, 21
[70] Evacuaverit
[71] 1 Cor. xv. 24, 25
[72] Ps. cxii. 8
[73] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[74] Matt. xi. 27
[75] Similitudines
[76] In recubitu Cant. i. 11; see LXX.
[77] Vestra
[78] Col. iii. 3, 4
[79] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[80] 1 John iii. 2
[81] Ex. iii 14
[82] John xvii. 3
[83] 1 Cor. iv. 5
[84] Ps. v. 5
[85] [The common explanation is better, which regards the "kingdom"
that is to be delivered up, to be the mediatorial commission. When
Christ shall have finished his work of redeeming men, he no longer
discharges the office of a mediator. It seems incongruous to denominate
the beatific vision of God by the redeemed, a surrender of a kingdom.
In I. x. 21, Augustin says that when the Redeemer brings the redeemed
from faith to sight, "He is said to `deliver up the kingdom to God,
even the Father.' "--W.G.T.S.]
[86] Rom. viii. 24, 25
[87] Cant. i. 12
[88] Ps. xvi. 11
[89] John xiv. 8, 10
[90] 2 Cor. v. 6, 7
[91] Acts xv. 9
[92] Matt. v. 8
[93] Ps. xci. 16
[94] John x. 30
[95] John xiv. 17
[96] John xiv. 15-17
[97] 1 Cor. ii. 14
[98] John xvi. 13
[99] 1 Cor. ii. 11
[100] John xvi. 6, 7
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--All are Sometimes Understood in One Person.
But this is said, not on account of any inequality of the Word of God
and of the Holy Spirit, but as though the presence of the Son of man
with them would be a hindrance to the coming of Him, who was not less,
because He did not "empty Himself, taking upon Him the form of a
servant," [101] as the Son did. It was necessary, then, that the form
of a servant should be taken away from their eyes, because, through
gazing upon it, they thought that alone which they saw to be Christ.
Hence also is that which is said, "If ye loved me, ye would rejoice
because I said, `I go unto the Father; for my Father is greater than
I:'" [102] that is, on that account it is necessary for me to go to the
Father, because, whilst you see me thus, you hold me to be less than
the Father through that which you see; and so, being taken up with the
creature and the "fashion" which I have taken upon me, you do not
perceive the equality which I have with the Father. Hence, too, is
this: "Touch me not; for I am not yet ascended to my Father." [103] For
touch, as it were, puts a limit to their conception, and He therefore
would not have the thought of the heart, directed towards Himself, to
be so limited as that He should be held to be only that which He seemed
to be. But the "ascension to the Father" meant, so to appear as He is
equal to the Father, that the limit of the sight which sufficeth us
might be attained there. Sometimes also it is said of the Son alone,
that He himself sufficeth, and the whole reward of our love and longing
is held forth as in the sight of Him. For so it is said, "He that hath
my commandments, and keepeth them, he it is that loveth me; and he that
loveth me shall be loved of my Father; and I will love him, and will
manifest myself to him." [104] Pray, because He has not here said, And
I will show the Father also to him, has He therefore excluded the
Father? On the contrary, because it is true, "I and my Father are one,"
when the Father is manifested, the Son also, who is in Him, is
manifested; and when the Son is manifested, the Father also, who is in
Him, is manifested. As, therefore, when it is said, "And I will
manifest myself to him," it is understood that He manifests also the
Father; so likewise in that which is said, "When He shall have
delivered up the kingdom to God, even the Father," it is understood
that He does not take it away from Himself; since, when He shall bring
believers to the contemplation of God, even the Father, doubtless He
will bring them to the contemplation of Himself, who has said, "And I
will manifest myself to him." And so, consequently, when Judas had said
to Him, "Lord, how is it that Thou wilt manifest Thyself unto us, and
not unto the world?" Jesus answered and said to him, "If a man love me,
he will keep my words: and my Father will love him, and we will come
unto him, and make our abode with him." [105] Behold, that He manifests
not only Himself to him by whom He is loved, because He comes to him
together with the Father, and abides with him.
19. Will it perhaps be thought, that when the Father and the Son make
their abode with him who loves them, the Holy Spirit is excluded from
that abode? What, then, is that which is said above of the Holy Spirit:
"Whom the world cannot receive, because it seeth Him not: but ye know
Him; for He abideth with you, and is in you"? He, therefore, is not
excluded from that abode, of whom it is said, "He abideth with you, and
is in you;" unless, perhaps, any one be so senseless as to think, that
when the Father and the Son have come that they may make their abode
with him who loves them, the Holy Spirit will depart thence, and (as it
were) give place to those who are greater. But the Scripture itself
meets this carnal idea; for it says a little above: "I will pray the
Father, and He shall give you another Comforter, that He may abide with
you for ever." [106] He will not therefore depart when the Father and
the Son come, but will be in the same abode with them eternally;
because neither will He come without them, nor they without Him. But in
order to intimate the Trinity, some things are separately affirmed, the
Persons being also each severally named; and yet are not to be
understood as though the other Persons were excluded, on account of the
unity of the same Trinity and the One substance and Godhead of the
Father and of the Son and of the Holy Spirit. [107]
__________________________________________________________________
[101] Phil. ii. 7
[102] John xiv. 28
[103] John xx. 17
[104] John xiv. 21
[105] John xiv. 22, 23
[106] John xiv. 16-23
[107] [An act belonging eminently and officially to a particular
trinitarian person is not performed to the total exclusion of the other
persons, because of the numerical unity of essence. The whole undivided
essence is in each person; consequently, what the essence in one of its
personal modes, or forms, does officially and eminently, is
participated in by the essence in its other modes or forms. Hence the
interchange of persons in Scripture. Though creation is officially the
Father's work, yet the Son creates (Col. i. 16; Heb. i. 3). The name
Saviour is given to the Father (1 Tim. i. 1). Judgment belongs
officially to the Son (John v. 22; Matt xxv. 31); yet the Father
judgeth (1 Pet. i. 17). The Father raises Christ (Acts xiii. 30); yet
Christ raises himself (John x. 18; Acts x. 41; Rom. xiv. 9).--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--In What Manner Christ Shall Deliver Up the Kingdom to God,
Even the Father. The Kingdom Having Been Delivered to God, Even the
Father, Christ Will Not Then Make Intercession for Us.
20. Our Lord Jesus Christ, therefore, will so deliver up the kingdom to
God, even the Father, Himself not being thence excluded, nor the Holy
Spirit, when He shall bring believers to the contemplation of God,
wherein is the end of all good actions, and everlasting rest, and joy
which never will be taken from us. For He signifies this in that which
He says: "I will see you again, and your heart shall rejoice; and your
joy no man taketh from you." [108] Mary, sitting at the feet of the
Lord, and earnestly listening to His word, foreshowed a similitude of
this joy; resting as she did from all business, and intent upon the
truth, according to that manner of which this life is capable, by
which, however, to prefigure that which shall be for eternity. For
while Martha, her sister, was cumbered about necessary business, which,
although good and useful, yet, when rest shall have succeeded, is to
pass away, she herself was resting in the word of the Lord. And so the
Lord replied to Martha, when she complained that her sister did not
help her: "Mary hath chosen the best part, which shall not be taken
away from her." [109] He did not say that Martha was acting a bad part;
but that "best part that shall not be taken away." For that part which
is occupied in the ministering to a need shall be "taken away" when the
need itself has passed away. Since the reward of a good work that will
pass away is rest that will not pass away. In that contemplation,
therefore, God will be all in all; because nothing else but Himself
will be required, but it will be sufficient to be enlightened by and to
enjoy Him alone. And so he in whom "the Spirit maketh intercession with
groanings which cannot be uttered," [110] says, "One thing have I
desired of the Lord, that I will seek after; that I may dwell in the
house of the Lord all the days of my life, to contemplate the beauty of
the Lord." [111] For we shall then contemplate God, the Father and the
Son and the Holy Spirit, when the Mediator between God and men, the man
Christ Jesus, shall have delivered up the kingdom to God, even the
Father, so as no longer to make intercession for us, as our Mediator
and Priest, Son of God and Son of man; [112] but that He Himself too,
in so far as He is a Priest that has taken the form of a servant for
us, shall be put under Him who has put all things under Him, and under
whom He has put all things: so that, in so far as He is God, He with
Him will have put us under Himself; in so far as He is a Priest, He
with us will be put under Him. [113] And therefore as the [incarnate]
Son is both God and man, it is rather to be said that the manhood in
the Son is another substance [from the Son], than that the Son in the
Father [is another substance from the Father]; just as the carnal
nature of my soul is more another substance in relation to my soul
itself, although in one and the same man, than the soul of another man
is in relation to my soul. [114]
21. When, therefore, He "shall have delivered up the kingdom to God,
even the Father,"--that is, when He shall have brought those who
believe and live by faith, for whom now as Mediator He maketh
intercession, to that contemplation, for the obtaining of which we sigh
and groan, and when labor and groaning shall have passed away,--then,
since the kingdom will have been delivered up to God, even the Father,
He will no more make intercession for us. And this He signifies, when
He says: "These things have I spoken unto you in similitudes; [115] but
the time cometh when I shall no more speak unto you in similitudes,
[116] but I shall declare [117] to you plainly of the Father:" that is,
they will not then be "similitudes," when the sight shall be "face to
face." For this it is which He says, "But I will declare to you plainly
of the Father;" as if He said I will plainly show you the Father. For
He says, I will "declare" to you, because He is His word. For He goes
on to say, "At that day ye shall ask in my name; and I say not unto
you, that I will pray the Father for you: for the Father Himself loveth
you, because ye have loved me, and have believed that I came out from
God. I came forth from the Father, and am come into the world: again, I
leave the world, and go to the Father." [118] What is meant by "I came
forth from the Father," unless this, that I have not appeared in that
form in which I am equal to the Father, but otherwise, that is, as less
than the Father, in the creature which I have taken upon me? And what
is meant by "I am come into the world," unless this, that I have
manifested to the eyes even of sinners who love this world, the form of
a servant which I took, making myself of no reputation? And what is
meant by "Again, I leave the world," unless this, that I take away from
the sight of the lovers of this world that which they have seen? And
what is meant by "I go to the Father," unless this, that I teach those
who are my faithful ones to understand me in that being in which I am
equal to the Father? Those who believe this will be thought worthy of
being brought by faith to sight, that is, to that very sight, in
bringing them to which He is said to "deliver up the kingdom to God,
even the Father." For His faithful ones, whom He has redeemed with His
blood, are called His kingdom, for whom He now intercedes; but then,
making them to abide in Himself there, where He is equal to the Father,
He will no longer pray the Father for them. "For," He says, "the Father
Himself loveth you." For indeed He "prays," in so far as He is less
than the Father; but as He is equal with the Father, He with the Father
grants. Wherefore He certainly does not exclude Himself from that which
He says, "The Father Himself loveth you;" but He means it to be
understood after that manner which I have above spoken of, and
sufficiently intimated,--namely, that for the most part each Person of
the Trinity is so named, that the other Persons also may be understood.
Accordingly, "For the Father Himself loveth you," is so said that by
consequence both the Son and the Holy Spirit also may be understood:
not that He does not now love us, who spared not His own Son, but
delivered Him up for us all; [119] but God loves us, such as we shall
be, not such as we are, for such as they are whom He loves, such are
they whom He keeps eternally; which shall then be, when He who now
maketh intercession for us shall have "delivered up the kingdom to God,
even the Father," so as no longer to ask the Father, because the Father
Himself loveth us. But for what deserving, except of faith, by which we
believe before we see that which is promised? For by this faith we
shall arrive at sight; so that He may love us, being such, as He loves
us in order that we may become; and not such, as He hates us because we
are, and exhorts and enables us to wish not to be always.
__________________________________________________________________
[108] John xvi. 22
[109] Luke x. 30-42
[110] Rom. viii. 26
[111] Ps. xxvii. 4
[112] [The redeemed must forever stand in the relation of redeemed
sinners to their Redeemer. Thus standing, they will forever need
Christ's sacrifice and intercession in respect to their past sins in
this earthly state. But as in the heavenly state they are sinless, and
are incurring no new guilt, it is true that they do not require the
fresh application of atoning blood for new sins, nor Christ's
intercession for such. This is probably what Augustin means by saying
that Christ "no longer makes intercession for us," when he has
delivered up the kingdom to God. When the Mediator has surrendered his
commission, he ceases to redeem sinners from death, while yet he
continues forever to be the Head of those whom he has redeemed, and
their High Priest forever, after the order of Melchizedek (Heb. vii.
17.)--W.G.T.S.]
[113] 1 Cor. xv. 24-28
[114] [The animal soul is different in kind from the rational soul
though both constitute one person; while the rational soul of a man is
the same in kind with that of another man. Similarly, says Augustin,
there is a difference in kind between the human nature and the divine
nature of Christ, though constituting one theanthropic person, while
the divine nature of the Son is the same in substance with that of the
Father, though constituting two different persons, the Father and
Son.--W.G.T.S.]
[115] Proverbs--A.V.
[116] Proverbs--A.V.
[117] Show--A.V.
[118] John xvi. 25-28
[119] Rom. viii. 32
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 11.--By What Rule in the Scriptures It is Understood that the
Son is Now Equal and Now Less.
22. Wherefore, having mastered this rule for interpreting the
Scriptures concerning the Son of God, that we are to distinguish in
them what relates to the form of God, in which He is equal to the
Father, and what to the form of a servant which He took, in which He is
less than the Father; we shall not be disquieted by apparently contrary
and mutually repugnant sayings of the sacred books. For both the Son
and the Holy Spirit, according to the form of God, are equal to the
Father, because neither of them is a creature, as we have already
shown: but according to the form of a servant He is less than the
Father, because He Himself has said, "My Father is greater than I;"
[120] and He is less than Himself, because it is said of Him, He
emptied Himself;" [121] and He is less than the Holy Spirit, because He
Himself says, "Whosoever speaketh a word against the Son of man, it
shall be forgiven him; but whosoever speaketh against the Holy Ghost,
it shall not be forgiven Him." [122] And in the Spirit too He wrought
miracles, saying: "But if I with the Spirit of God cast out devils, no
doubt the kingdom of God is come upon you." [123] And in Isaiah He
says,--in the lesson which He Himself read in the synagogue, and showed
without a scruple of doubt to be fulfilled concerning Himself,--"The
Spirit of the Lord God," He says, "is upon me: because He hath anointed
me to preach good tidings unto the meek He hath sent me to proclaim
liberty to the captives," [124] etc.: for the doing of which things He
therefore declares Himself to be "sent," because the Spirit of God is
upon Him. According to the form of God, all things were made by Him;
[125] according to the form of a servant, He was Himself made of a
woman, made under the law. [126] According to the form of God, He and
the Father are one; [127] according to the form of a servant, He came
not to do His own will, but the will of Him that sent Him. [128]
According to the form of God, "As the Father hath life in Himself, so
hath He given to the Son to have life in Himself;" [129] according to
the form of a servant, His "soul is sorrowful even unto death;" and, "O
my Father," He says, "if it be possible, let this cup pass from me."
[130] According to the form of God, "He is the True God, and eternal
life;" [131] according to the form of a servant, "He became obedient
unto death, even the death of the cross." [132] --23. According to the
form of God, all things that the Father hath are His, [133] and "All
mine," He says, "are Thine, and Thine are mine;" [134] according to the
form of a servant, the doctrine is not His own, but His that sent Him.
[135]
__________________________________________________________________
[120] John xiv. 28
[121] Phil. ii. 7
[122] Matt. xii. 32
[123] Matt. xii. 28
[124] Isa. lxi. 1; Luke iv. 18, 19
[125] John i. 3
[126] Gal. iv. 4
[127] John x. 30
[128] John vi. 38
[129] John v. 26. [In communicating the Divine Essence to the Son, in
eternal generation, the essence is communicated with all its
attributes. Self existence is one of these attributes. In this way, the
Father "gives to the Son to have life in himself," when he makes common
(koinonein), between Himself and the Son, the one Divine
Essence.--W.G.T.S.]
[130] Matt. xxvi. 38, 39
[131] 1 John v. 20
[132] Phil. ii. 8
[133] John xvii. 15
[134] John xvii. 10
[135] John vii. 16
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 12.--In What Manner the Son is Said Not to Know the Day and the
Hour Which the Father Knows. Some Things Said of Christ According to
the Form of God, Other Things According to the Form of a Servant. In
What Way It is of Christ to Give the Kingdom, in What Not of Christ.
Christ Will Both Judge and Not Judge.
Again, "Of that day and that hour knoweth no man, no, not the angels
which are in heaven; neither the Son, but the Father." [136] For He is
ignorant of this, as making others ignorant; that is, in that He did
not so know as at that time to show His disciples: [137] as it was said
to Abraham, "Now I know that thou fearest God," [138] that is, now I
have caused thee to know it; because he himself, being tried in that
temptation, became known to himself. For He was certainly going to tell
this same thing to His disciples at the fitting time; speaking of which
yet future as if past, He says, "Henceforth I call you not servants,
but friends; for the servant knoweth not what his Lord doeth: but I
have called you friends; for all things that I have heard of my Father
I have made known unto you;" [139] which He had not yet done, but spoke
as though He had already done it, because He certainly would do it. For
He says to the disciples themselves, "I have yet many things to say
unto you; but ye cannot bear them now." [140] Among which is to be
understood also, "Of the day and hour." For the apostle also says, "I
determined not to know anything among you, save Jesus Christ, and Him
crucified;" [141] because he was speaking to those who were not able to
receive higher things concerning the Godhead of Christ. To whom also a
little while after he says, "I could not speak unto you as unto
spiritual, but as unto carnal." [142] He was "ignorant," therefore,
among them of that which they were not able to know from him. And that
only he said that he knew, which it was fitting that they should know
from him. In short, he knew among the perfect what he knew not among
babes; for he there says: "We speak wisdom among them that are
perfect." [143] For a man is said not to know what he hides, after that
kind of speech, after which a ditch is called blind which is hidden.
For the Scriptures do not use any other kind of speech than may be
found in use among men, because they speak to men.
24. According to the form of God, it is said "Before all the hills He
begat me," [144] that is, before all the loftinesses of things created
and, "Before the dawn I begat Thee," [145] that is, before all times
and temporal things: but according to the form of a servant, it is
said, "The Lord created me in the beginning of His ways." [146]
Because, according to the form of God, He said, "I am the truth;" and
according to the form of a servant, "I am the way." [147] For, because
He Himself, being the first-begotten of the dead, [148] made a passage
to the kingdom of God to life eternal for His Church, to which He is so
the Head as to make the body also immortal, therefore He was "created
in the beginning of the ways" of God in His work. For, according to the
form of God, He is the beginning, [149] that also speaketh unto us, in
which "beginning" God created the heaven and the earth; [150] but
according to the form of a servant, "He is a bridegroom coming out of
His chamber." [151] According to the form of God, "He is the first-born
of every creature, and He is before all things and by him all things
consist;" according to the form of a servant, "He is the head of the
body, the Church." [152] According to the form of God, "He is the Lord
of glory." [153] From which it is evident that He Himself glorifies His
saints: for, "Whom He did predestinate, them He also called; and whom
He called, them He also justified; and whom He justified, them He also
glorified." [154] Of Him accordingly it is said, that He justifieth the
ungodly; [155] of Him it is said, that He is just and a justifier.
[156] If, therefore, He has also glorified those whom He has justified,
He who justifies, Himself also glorifies; who is, as I have said, the
Lord of glory. Yet, according to the form of a servant, He replied to
His disciples, when inquiring about their own glorification: "To sit on
my right hand and on my left is not mine to give, but [it shall be
given to them] for whom it is prepared by my Father." [157]
25. But that which is prepared by His Father is prepared also by the
Son Himself, because He and the Father are one. [158] For we have
already shown, by many modes of speech in the divine Scriptures, that,
in this Trinity, what is said of each is also said of all, on account
of the indivisible working of the one and same substance. As He also
says of the Holy Spirit, "If I depart, I will send Him unto you." [159]
He did not say, We will send; but in such way as if the Son only should
send Him, and not the Father; while yet He says in another place,
"These things have I spoken unto you, being yet present with you; but
the Comforter, which is the Holy Ghost, whom the Father will send in my
name, He shall teach you all things." [160] Here again it is so said as
if the Son also would not send Him, but the Father only. As therefore
in these texts, so also where He says, "But for them for whom it is
prepared by my Father," He meant it to be understood that He Himself,
with the Father, prepares seats of glory for those for whom He will.
But some one may say: There, when He spoke of the Holy Spirit, He so
says that He Himself will send Him, as not to deny that the Father will
send Him; and in the other place, He so says that the Father will send
Him, as not to deny that He will do so Himself; but here He expressly
says, "It is not mine to give," and so goes on to say that these things
are prepared by the Father. But this is the very thing which we have
already laid down to be said according to the form of a servant: viz.,
that we are so to understand "It is not mine to give," as if it were
said, This is not in the power of man to give; that so He may be
understood to give it through that wherein He is God equal to the
Father. "It is not mine," He says, "to give;" that is, I do not give
these things by human power, but "to those for whom it is prepared by
my Father;" but then take care you understand also, that if "all things
which the Father hath are mine," [161] then this certainly is mine
also, and I with the Father have prepared these things.
26. For I ask again, in what manner this is said, "If any man hear not
my words, I will not judge him?" [162] For perhaps He has said here, "I
will not judge him," in the same sense as there, "It is not mine to
give." But what follows here? "I came not," He says, "to judge the
world, but to save the world;" and then He adds, "He that rejecteth me,
and receiveth not my words, hath one that judgeth him." Now here we
should understand the Father, unless He had added, "The word that I
have spoken, the same shall judge him in the last day." Well, then,
will neither the Son judge, because He says, "I will not judge him,"
nor the Father, but the word which the Son hath spoken? Nay, but hear
what yet follows: "For I," He says, "have not spoken of myself; but the
Father which sent me, He gave me a commandment, what I should say, and
what I should speak; and I know that His commandment is life
everlasting: whatsoever I speak therefore, even as the Father said unto
me, so I speak." If therefore the Son judges not, but "the word which
the Son hath spoken;" and the word which the Son hath spoken therefore
judges, because the Son "hath not spoken of Himself, but the Father who
sent Him gave Him a commandment what He should say, and what He should
speak:" then the Father assuredly judges, whose word it is which the
Son hath spoken; and the same Son Himself is the very Word of the
Father. For the commandment of the Father is not one thing, and the
word of the Father another; for He hath called it both a word and a
commandment. Let us see, therefore, whether perchance, when He says, "I
have not spoken of myself," He meant to be understood thus,--I am not
born of myself. For if He speaks the word of the Father, then He speaks
Himself, [163] because He is Himself the Word of the Father. For
ordinarily He says, "The Father gave to me;" by which He means it to be
understood that the Father begat Him: not that He gave anything to Him,
already existing and not possessing it; but that the very meaning of,
To have given that He might have, is, To have begotten that He might
be. For it is not, as with the creature so with the Son of God before
the incarnation and before He took upon Him our flesh, the
Only-begotten by whom all things were made; that He is one thing, and
has another: but He is in such way as to be what He has. And this is
said more plainly, if any one is fit to receive it, in that place where
He says: "For as the Father hath life in Himself, so hath He given to
the Son to have life in Himself." [164] For He did not give to Him,
already existing and not having life, that He should have life in
Himself; inasmuch as, in that He is, He is life. Therefore "He gave to
the Son to have life in Himself" means, He begat the Son to be
unchangeable life, which is life eternal. Since, therefore, the Word of
God is the Son of God, and the Son of God is "the true God and eternal
life," [165] as John says in his Epistle; so here, what else are we to
acknowledge when the Lord says, "The word which I have spoken, the same
shall judge him at the last day," [166] and calls that very word the
word of the Father and the commandment of the Father, and that very
commandment everlasting life?" "And I know," He says, "that His
commandment is life everlasting."
27. I ask, therefore, how we are to understand, "I will not judge him;
but the Word which I have spoken shall judge him:" which appears from
what follows to be so said, as if He would say, I will not judge; but
the Word of the Father will judge. But the Word of the Father is the
Son of God Himself. Is it to be so understood: I will not judge, but I
will judge? How can this be true, unless in this way: viz., I will not
judge by human power, because I am the Son of man; but I will judge by
the power of the Word, because I am the Son of God? Or if it still
seems contradictory and inconsistent to say, I will not judge, but I
will judge; what shall we say of that place where He says, "My doctrine
is not mine?" How "mine," when "not mine?" For He did not say, This
doctrine is not mine, but "My doctrine is not mine:" that which He
called His own, the same He called not His own. How can this be true,
unless He has called it His own in one relation; not His own, in
another? According to the form of God, His own; according to the form
of a servant, not His own. For when He says, "It is not mine, but His
that sent me," [167] He makes us recur to the Word itself. For the
doctrine of the Father is the Word of the Father, which is the Only
Son. And what, too, does that mean, "He that believeth on me, believeth
not on me?" [168] How believe on Him, yet not believe on Him? How can
so opposite and inconsistent a thing be understood--"Whoso believeth on
me," He says, "believeth not on me, but on Him that sent me;"--unless
you so understand it, Whoso believeth on me believeth not on that which
he sees, lest our hope should be in the creature; but on Him who took
the creature, whereby He might appear to human eyes, and so might
cleanse our hearts by faith, to contemplate Himself as equal to the
Father? So that in turning the attention of believers to the Father,
and saying, "Believeth not on me, but on Him that sent me," He
certainly did not mean Himself to be separated from the Father, that
is, from Him that sent Him; but that men might so believe on Himself,
as they believe on the Father, to whom He is equal. And this He says in
express terms in another place, "Ye believe in God, believe also in
me:" [169] that is, in the same way as you believe in God, so also
believe in me; because I and the Father are One God. As therefore,
here, He has as it were withdrawn the faith of men from Himself, and
transferred it to the Father, by saying, "Believeth not on me, but on
Him that sent me," from whom nevertheless He certainly did not separate
Himself; so also, when He says, "It is not mine to give, but [it shall
be given to them] for whom it is prepared by my Father," it is I think
plain in what relation both are to be taken. For that other also is of
the same kind, "I will not judge;" whereas He Himself shall judge the
quick and dead. [170] But because He will not do so by human power,
therefore, reverting to the Godhead, He raises the hearts of men
upwards; which to lift up, He Himself came down.
__________________________________________________________________
[136] Mark xiii. 32
[137] [The more common explanation of this text in modern exegesis
makes the ignorance to be literal, and referable solely to the human
nature of our Lord, not to his person as a whole. Augustin's
explanation, which Bengel, on Mark xiii. 32, is inclined to favor,
escapes the difficulty that arises from a seeming division of the one
theanthopic person into two portions, one of which knows, and the other
does not. Yet this same difficulty besets the fact of a growth in
knowledge, which is plainly taught in Luke i. 80. In this case, the
increase in wisdom must relate to the humanity alone.--W.G.T.S.]
[138] Gen. xxii. 12
[139] John xv. 15
[140] John xvi. 12
[141] 1 Cor. ii. 2
[142] 1 Cor. iii. 1
[143] 1 Cor. ii. 6
[144] Prov. viii. 25
[145] Ps. cx. 3. Vulgate.
[146] Prov. viii. 22
[147] John xiv. 6
[148] Apoc. i. 5
[149] John viii. 25
[150] Gen. i. 1
[151] Ps. xix. 5
[152] Col. i. 15, 17, 18
[153] 1 Cor. ii. 8
[154] Rom. viii. 30
[155] Rom. iv. 5
[156] Rom. iii. 26
[157] Matt. xx. 23
[158] John x. 30
[159] John xvi. 7
[160] John xiv. 25, 26
[161] John xvi. 15
[162] John xii. 47-50
[163] Seipsum loquitur
[164] John v. 26
[165] 1 John v. 20
[166] John xii. 48
[167] John vii. 16
[168] John xii. 44
[169] John xiv. 1
[170] 2 Tim. iv. 1
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 13.--Diverse Things are Spoken Concerning the Same Christ, on
Account of the Diverse Natures of the One Hypostasis [Theanthropic
Person]. Why It is Said that the Father Will Not Judge, But Has Given
Judgment to the Son.
28. Yet unless the very same were the Son of man on account of the form
of a servant which He took, who is the Son of God on account of the
form of God in which He is; Paul the apostle would not say of the
princes of this world, "For had they known it, they would not have
crucified the Lord of glory." [171] For He was crucified after the form
of a servant, and yet "the Lord of glory" was crucified. For that
"taking" was such as to make God man, and man God. Yet what is said on
account of what, and what according to what, the thoughtful, diligent,
and pious reader discerns for himself, the Lord being his helper. For
instance, we have said that He glorifies His own, as being God, and
certainly then as being the Lord of glory; and yet the Lord of glory
was crucified, because even God is rightly said to have been crucified,
not after the power of the divinity, but after the weakness of the
flesh: [172] just as we say, that He judges as God, that is, by divine
power, not by human; and yet the man Himself will judge, just as the
Lord of glory was crucified: for so He expressly says, "When the Son of
man shall come in His glory, and all the holy angels with Him, and
before Him shall be gathered all nations;" [173] and the rest that is
foretold of the future judgment in that place even to the last
sentence. And the Jews, inasmuch as they will be punished in that
judgment for persisting in their wickedness, as it is elsewhere
written, "shall look upon Him whom they have pierced." [174] For
whereas both good and bad shall see the Judge of the quick and dead,
without doubt the bad will not be able to see Him, except after the
form in which He is the Son of man; but yet in the glory wherein He
will judge, not in the lowliness wherein He was judged. But the ungodly
without doubt will not see that form of God in which He is equal to the
Father. For they are not pure in heart; and "Blessed are the pure in
heart: for they shall see God." [175] And that sight is face to face,
[176] the very sight that is promised as the highest reward to the
just, and which will then take place when He "shall have delivered up
the kingdom to God, even the Father;" and in this "kingdom" He means
the sight of His own form also to be understood, the whole creature
being made subject to God, including that wherein the Son of God was
made the Son of man. Because, according to this creature, "The Son also
Himself shall be subject unto Him, that put all things under Him, that
God may be all in all." [177] Otherwise if the Son of God, judging in
the form in which He is equal to the Father, shall appear when He
judges to the ungodly also; what becomes of that which He promises, as
some great thing, to him who loves Him, saying, "And I will love him,
and will manifest myself to him?" [178] Wherefore He will judge as the
Son of man, yet not by human power, but by that whereby He is the Son
of God; and on the other hand, He will judge as the Son of God, yet not
appearing in that [unincarnate] form in which He is God equal to the
Father, but in that [incarnate form] in which He is the Son of man.
[179]
29. Therefore both ways of speaking may be used; the Son of man will
judge, and, the Son of man will not judge: since the Son of man will
judge, that the text may be true which says, "When the Son of man shall
come, then before Him shall be gathered all nations;" and the Son of
man will not judge, that the text may be true which says, "I will not
judge him;" [180] and, "I seek not mine own glory: there is One that
seeketh and judgeth." [181] For in respect to this, that in the
judgment, not the form of God, but the form of the Son of man will
appear, the Father Himself will not judge; for according to this it is
said, "For the Father judgeth no man, but hath committed all judgment
unto the Son." Whether this is said after that mode of speech which we
have mentioned above, where it is said, "So hath He given to the Son to
have life in Himself," [182] that it should signify that so He begat
the Son; or, whether after that of which the apostle speaks, saying,
"Wherefore God also hath highly exalted Him, and given Him a name which
is above every name:"--(For this is said of the Son of man, in respect
to whom the Son of God was raised from the dead; since He, being in the
form of God equal to the Father, wherefrom He "emptied" Himself by
taking the form of a servant, both acts and suffers, and receives, in
that same form of a servant, what the apostle goes on to mention: "He
humbled Himself, and became obedient unto death, even the death of the
cross; wherefore God also hath highly exalted Him, and given Him a name
which is above every name; that at the name of Jesus every knee should
bow, of things in heaven, and things in earth, and things under the
earth; and that every tongue should confess that Jesus Christ is Lord,
in the Glory of God the Father:" [183] --whether then the words, "He
hath committed all judgment unto the Son," are said according to this
or that mode of speech; it sufficiently appears from this place, that
if they were said according to that sense in which it is said, "He hath
given to the Son to have life in Himself," it certainly would not be
said, "The Father judgeth no man." For in respect to this, that the
Father hath begotten the Son equal to Himself, He judges with Him.
Therefore it is in respect to this that it is said, that in the
judgment, not the form of God, but the form of the Son of man will
appear. Not that He will not judge, who hath committed all judgment
unto the Son, since the Son saith of Him, "There is One that seeketh
and judgeth:" but it is so said, "The Father judgeth no man, but hath
committed all judgment unto the Son;" as if it were said, No one will
see the Father in the judgment of the quick and the dead, but all will
see the Son: because He is also the Son of man, so that He can be seen
even by the ungodly, since they too shall see Him whom they have
pierced.
30. Lest, however, we may seem to conjecture this rather than to prove
it clearly, let us produce a certain and plain sentence of the Lord
Himself, by which we may show that this was the cause why He said, "The
Father judgeth no man, but hath committed all judgment unto the Son,"
viz. because He will appear as Judge in the form of the Son of man,
which is not the form of the Father, but of the Son; nor yet that form
of the Son in which He is equal to the Father, but that in which He is
less than the Father; in order that, in the judgment, He may be visible
both to the good and to the bad. For a little while after He says,
"Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that heareth my word, and believeth
on Him that sent me, hath everlasting life, and shall not come into
condemnation; but shall pass [184] from death unto life." Now this life
eternal is that sight which does not belong to the bad. Then follows,
"Verily, verily, I say unto you, The hour is coming, and now is, when
the dead shall hear the voice of the Son of God, and they that hear
shall live." [185] And this is proper to the godly, who so hear of His
incarnation, as to believe that He is the Son of God, that is, who so
receive Him, as made for their sakes less than the Father, in the form
of a servant, that they believe Him equal to the Father, in the form of
God. And thereupon He continues, enforcing this very point, "For as the
Father hath life in Himself, so hath He given to the Son to have life
in Himself." And then He comes to the sight of His own glory, in which
He shall come to judgment; which sight will be common to the ungodly
and to the just. For He goes on to say, "And hath given Him authority
to execute judgment also, because He is the Son of man." [186] I think
nothing can be more clear. For inasmuch as the Son of God is equal to
the Father, He does not receive this power of executing judgment, but
He has it with the Father in secret; but He receives it, so that the
good and the bad may see Him judging, inasmuch as He is the Son of man.
Since the sight of the Son of man will be shown to the bad also: for
the sight of the form of God will not be shown except to the pure in
heart, for they shall see God; that is, to the godly only, to whose
love He promises this very thing, that He will show Himself to them.
And see, accordingly, what follows: "Marvel not at this," He says. Why
does He forbid us to marvel, unless it be that, in truth, every one
marvels who does not understand, that therefore He said the Father gave
Him power also to execute judgment, because He is the Son of man;
whereas, it might rather have been anticipated that He would say, since
He is the Son of God? But because the wicked are not able to see the
Son of God as He is in the form of God equal to the Father, but yet it
is necessary that both the just and the wicked should see the Judge of
the quick and dead, when they will be judged in His presence; "Marvel
not at this," He says, "for the hour is coming, in the which all that
are in the graves shall hear His voice, and shall come forth; they that
have done good, unto the resurrection of life; and they that have done
evil, unto the resurrection of damnation." [187] For this purpose,
then, it was necessary that He should therefore receive that power,
because He is the Son of man, in order that all in rising again might
see Him in the form in which He can be seen by all, but by some to
damnation, by others to life eternal. And what is life eternal, unless
that sight which is not granted to the ungodly? "That they might know
Thee," He says, "the One true God, and Jesus Christ, whom Thou hast
sent." [188] And how are they to know Jesus Christ Himself also, unless
as the One true God, who will show Himself to them; not as He will show
Himself, in the form of the Son of man, to those also that shall be
punished? [189]
31. He is "good," according to that sight, according to which God
appears to the pure in heart; for "truly God is good unto Israel even
to such as are of a clean heart." [190] But when the wicked shall see
the Judge, He will not seem good to them; because they will not rejoice
in their heart to see Him, but all "kindreds of the earth shall then
wail because of Him," [191] namely, as being reckoned in the number of
all the wicked and unbelievers. On this account also He replied to him,
who had called Him Good Master, when seeking advice of Him how he might
attain eternal life, "Why askest thou me about good? [192] there is
none good but One, that is, God." [193] And yet the Lord Himself, in
another place, calls man good: "A good man," He says, "out of the good
treasure of his heart, bringeth forth good things: and an evil man, out
of the evil treasure of his heart, bringeth forth evil things." [194]
But because that man was seeking eternal life, and eternal life
consists in that contemplation in which God is seen, not for
punishment, but for everlasting joy; and because he did not understand
with whom he was speaking, and thought Him to be only the Son of man:
[195] Why, He says, askest thou me about good? that is, with respect to
that form which thou seest, why askest thou about good, and callest me,
according to what thou seest, Good Master? This is the form of the Son
of man, the form which has been taken, the form that will appear in
judgment, not only to the righteous, but also to the ungodly; and the
sight of this form will not be for good to those who are wicked. But
there is a sight of that form of mine, in which when I was, I thought
it not robbery to be equal with God: but in order to take this form I
emptied myself. [196] That one God, therefore, the Father and the Son
and the Holy Spirit, who will not appear, except for joy which cannot
be taken away from the just; for which future joy he sighs, who says,
"One thing have I desired of the Lord, that will I seek after; that I
may dwell in the house of the Lord all the days of my life, to behold
the beauty of the Lord:" [197] that one God, therefore, Himself, I say,
is alone good, for this reason, that no one sees Him for sorrow and
wailing, but only for salvation and true joy. If you understand me
after this latter form, then I am good; but if according to that former
only, then why askest thou me about good? If thou art among those who
"shall look upon Him whom they have pierced," [198] that very sight
itself will be evil to them, because it will be penal. That after this
meaning, then, the Lord said, "Why askest thou me about good? there is
none good but One, that is, God," is probable upon those proofs which I
have alleged, because that sight of God, whereby we shall contemplate
the substance of God unchangeable and invisible to human eyes (which is
promised to the saints alone; which the Apostle Paul speaks of, as
"face to face;" [199] and of which the Apostle John says, "We shall be
like Him, for we shall see Him as He is;" [200] and of which it is
said, "One thing have I desired of the Lord, that I may behold the
beauty of the Lord," and of which the Lord Himself says, "I will both
love him, and will manifest myself to him;" [201] and on account of
which alone we cleanse our hearts by faith, that we may be those "pure
in heart who are blessed for they shall see God:" [202] and whatever
else is spoken of that sight: which whosoever turns the eye of love to
seek it, may find most copiously scattered through all the
Scriptures),--that sight alone, I say, is our chief good, for the
attaining of which we are directed to do whatever we do aright. But
that sight of the Son of man which is foretold, when all nations shall
be gathered before Him, and shall say to Him, "Lord, when saw we Thee
an hungered, or thirsty, etc.?" will neither be a good to the ungodly,
who shall be sent into everlasting fire, nor the chief good to the
righteous. For He still goes on to call these to the kingdom which has
been prepared for them from the foundation of the world. For, as He
will say to those, "Depart into everlasting fire;" so to these, "Come,
ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you." And as
those will go into everlasting burning; so the righteous will go into
life eternal. But what is life eternal, except "that they may know
Thee," He says, "the One true God, and Jesus Christ, whom Thou hast
sent?" [203] but know Him now in that glory of which He says to the
Father, "Which I had with Thee before the world was." [204] For then He
will deliver up the kingdom to God, even the Father, [205] that the
good servant may enter into the joy of his Lord, [206] and that He may
hide those whom God keeps in the hiding of His countenance from the
confusion of men, namely, of those men who shall then be confounded by
hearing this sentence; of which evil hearing "the righteous man shall
not be afraid" [207] if only he be kept in "the tabernacle," that is,
in the true faith of the Catholic Church, from "the strife of tongues,"
[208] that is, from the sophistries of heretics. But if there is any
other explanation of the words of the Lord, where He says, "Why asketh
thou me about good? there is none good, but One, that is, God;"
provided only that the substance of the Father be not therefore
believed to be of greater goodness than that of the Son, according to
which He is the Word by whom all things were made; and if there is
nothing in it abhorrent from sound doctrine; let us securely use it,
and not one explanation only, but as many as we are able to find. For
so much the more powerfully are the heretics proved wrong, the more
outlets are open for avoiding their snares. But let us now start
afresh, and address ourselves to the consideration of that which still
remains.
__________________________________________________________________
[171] 1 Cor. ii. 8
[172] 2 Cor. xiii. 4
[173] Matt. xxv. 31, 32
[174] Zech. xii. 10
[175] Matt. v. 8
[176] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[177] 1 Cor. xv. 24-28
[178] John xiv. 21
[179] [Augustin in this discussion, sometimes employs the phrase "Son
of man" to denote the human nature of Christ, in distinction from the
divine. But in Scripture and in trinitarian theology generally, this
phrase properly denotes the whole theanthropic person under a human
title--just as "man", (1 Tim. ii. 5), "last Adam" (1 Cor. xv. 45), and
"second man" (1 Cor. xv. 47), denote not the human nature, but the
whole divine-human person under a human title. Strictly used, the
phrase "Son of man" does not designate the difference between the
divine and human natures in the theanthropos, but between the person of
the un-incarnate and that of the incarnate Logos. Augustin's meaning
is, that the Son of God will judge men at the last day, not in his
original "form of God," but as this is united with human nature--as the
Son of man.--W.G.T.S.]
[180] John xii. 47
[181] John viii. 50
[182] John v. 22, 26
[183] Phil. ii. 8-11
[184] Transiit in Vulg.; and so in the Greek.
[185] John v. 24, 25
[186] John v. 25, 26
[187] John v. 22-29
[188] John xvii. 3
[189] [Augustin here seems to teach that the phenomenal appearance of
Christ to the redeemed in heaven will be different from that to all men
in the day of judgment. He says that he will show himself to the former
"in the form of God;" to the latter, "in the form of the Son of man."
But, surely, it is one and the same God-man who sits on the judgment
throne, and the heavenly throne. His appearance must be the same in
both instances: namely, that of God incarnate. The effect of his
phenomenal appearance upon the believer will, indeed, be very different
from that upon the unbeliever. For the wicked, this vision of God
incarnate will be one of terror; for the redeemed one of
joy.--W.G.T.S.]
[190] Ps. lxxiii. 1
[191] Apoc. i. 7
[192] [Augustin's reading of this text is that of the uncials; and in
that form which omits the article with agathou.--W.G.T.S.]
[193] Matt. xix. 17
[194] Matt. xii. 35
[195] [That is, a mere man. Augustin here, as in some other places,
employs the phrase "Son of man" to denote the human nature by
itself--not the divine and human natures united in one person, and
designated by this human title. The latter is the Scripture usage. As
"Immanuel" does not properly denote the divine nature, but the union of
divinity and humanity, so "Son of man" does not properly denote the
human nature, but the union of divinity and humanity.--W.G.T.S.]
[196] Phil. ii. 6, 7
[197] Ps. xxvii. 4
[198] Zech. xii. 10
[199] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[200] 1 John iii. 2
[201] John xiv. 21
[202] Matt. v. 8
[203] Matt. xxv. 37, 41, 34
[204] John xvii. 3-5
[205] 1 Cor. xv. 24
[206] Matt. xxv. 21, 23
[207] Ps. cxii. 7
[208] Ps. xxxi. 21
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
Book II.
------------------------
Augustin pursues his defense of the equality of the Trinity; and in
treating of the sending of the Son and of the Holy Spirit, and of the
various appearances of God, demonstrates that He who is sent is not
therefore less than He who sends, because the one has sent, the other
has been sent; but that the Trinity, being in all things equal, and
alike in its own nature unchangeable and invisible and omnipresent,
works indivisibly in each sending or appearance.
__________________________________________________________________
Preface.
When men seek to know God, and bend their minds according to the
capacity of human weakness to the understanding of the Trinity;
learning, as they must, by experience, the wearisome difficulties of
the task, whether from the sight itself of the mind striving to gaze
upon light unapproachable, or, indeed, from the manifold and various
modes of speech employed in the sacred writings (wherein, as it seems
to me, the mind is nothing else but roughly exercised, in order that it
may find sweetness when glorified by the grace of Christ);--such men, I
say, when they have dispelled every ambiguity, and arrived at something
certain, ought of all others most easily to make allowance for those
who err in the investigation of so deep a secret. But there are two
things most hard to bear with, in the case of those who are in error:
hasty assumption before the truth is made plain; and, when it has been
made plain, defence of the falsehood thus hastily assumed. From which
two faults, inimical as they are to the finding out of the truth, and
to the handling of the divine and sacred books, should God, as I pray
and hope, defend and protect me with the shield of His good will, [209]
and with the grace of His mercy, I will not be slow to search out the
substance of God, whether through His Scripture or through the
creature. For both of these are set forth for our contemplation to this
end, that He may Himself be sought, and Himself be loved, who inspired
the one, and created the other. Nor shall I be afraid of giving my
opinion, in which I shall more desire to be examined by the upright,
than fear to be carped at by the perverse. For charity, most excellent
and unassuming, gratefully accepts the dovelike eye; but for the dog's
tooth nothing remains, save either to shun it by the most cautious
humility, or to blunt it by the most solid truth; and far rather would
I be censured by any one whatsoever, than be praised by either the
erring or the flatterer. For the lover of truth need fear no one's
censure. For he that censures, must needs be either enemy or friend.
And if an enemy reviles, he must be borne with: but a friend, if he
errs, must be taught; if he teaches, listened to. But if one who errs
praises you, he confirms your error; if one who flatters, he seduces
you into error. "Let the righteous," therefore, "smite me, it shall be
a kindness; and let him reprove me; but the oil of the sinner shall not
anoint my head." [210]
__________________________________________________________________
[209] Ps. v. 12
[210] Ps. cxli. 5
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--There is a Double Rule for Understanding the Scriptural
Modes of Speech Concerning the Son of God. These Modes of Speech are of
a Threefold Kind.
2. Wherefore, although we hold most firmly, concerning our Lord Jesus
Christ, what may be called the canonical rule, as it is both
disseminated through the Scriptures, and has been demonstrated by
learned and Catholic handlers of the same Scriptures, namely, that the
Son of God is both understood to be equal to the Father according to
the form of God in which He is, and less than the Father according to
the form of a servant which He took; [211] in which form He was found
to be not only less than the Father, but also less than the Holy
Spirit; and not only so, but less even than Himself,--not than Himself
who was, but than Himself who is; because, by taking the form of a
servant, He did not lose the form of God, as the testimonies of the
Scriptures taught us, to which we have referred in the former book: yet
there are some things in the sacred text so put as to leave it
ambiguous to which rule they are rather to be referred; whether to that
by which we understand the Son as less, in that He has taken upon Him
the creature, or to that by which we understand that the Son is not
indeed less than, but equal to the Father, but yet that He is from Him,
God of God, Light of light. For we call the Son God of God; but the
Father, God only; not of God. Whence it is plain that the Son has
another of whom He is, and to whom He is Son; but that the Father has
not a Son of whom He is, but only to whom He is father. For every son
is what he is, of his father, and is son to his father; but no father
is what he is, of his son, but is father to his son. [212]
3. Some things, then, are so put in the Scriptures concerning the
Father and the Son, as to intimate the unity and equality of their
substance; as, for instance, "I and the Father are one;" [213] and,
"Who, being in the form of God, thought it not robbery to be equal with
God;" [214] and whatever other texts there are of the kind. And some,
again, are so put that they show the Son as less on account of the form
of a servant, that is, of His having taken upon Him the creature of a
changeable and human substance; as, for instance, that which says, "For
my Father is greater than I;" [215] and, "The Father judgeth no man,
but hath committed all judgment unto the Son." For a little after he
goes on to say, "And hath given Him authority to execute judgment also,
because He is the Son of man." And further, some are so put, as to show
Him at that time neither as less nor as equal, but only to intimate
that He is of the Father; as, for instance, that which says, "For as
the Father hath life in Himself, so hath He given to the Son to have
life in Himself;" and that other: "The Son can do nothing of Himself,
but what He seeth the Father do." [216] For if we shall take this to be
therefore so said, because the Son is less in the form taken from the
creature, it will follow that the Father must have walked on the water,
or opened the eyes with clay and spittle of some other one born blind,
and have done the other things which the Son appearing in the flesh did
among men, before the Son did them; [217] in order that He might be
able to do those things, who said that the Son was not able to do
anything of Himself, except what He hath seen the Father do. Yet who,
even though he were mad, would think this? It remains, therefore, that
these texts are so expressed, because the life of the Son is
unchangeable as that of the Father is, and yet He is of the Father; and
the working of the Father and of the Son is indivisible, and yet so to
work is given to the Son from Him of whom He Himself is, that is, from
the Father; and the Son so sees the Father, as that He is the Son in
the very seeing Him. For to be of the Father, that is, to be born of
the Father, is to Him nothing else than to see the Father; and to see
Him working, is nothing else than to work with Him: but therefore not
from Himself, because He is not from Himself. And, therefore, those
things which "He sees the Father do, these also doeth the Son
likewise," because He is of the Father. For He neither does other
things in like manner, as a painter paints other pictures, in the same
way as he sees others to have been painted by another man; nor the same
things in a different manner, as the body expresses the same letters,
which the mind has thought; but "whatsoever things," saith He, "the
Father doeth, these same things also doeth the Son likewise." [218] He
has said both "these same things," and "likewise;" and hence the
working of both the Father and the Son is indivisible and equal, but it
is from the Father to the Son. Therefore the Son cannot do anything of
Himself, except what He seeth the Father do. From this rule, then,
whereby the Scriptures so speak as to mean, not to set forth one as
less than another, but only to show which is of which, some have drawn
this meaning, as if the Son were said to be less. And some among
ourselves who are more unlearned and least instructed in these things,
endeavoring to take these texts according to the form of a servant, and
so misinterpreting them, are troubled. And to prevent this, the rule in
question is to be observed whereby the Son is not less, but it is
simply intimated that He is of the Father, in which words not His
inequality but His birth is declared.
__________________________________________________________________
[211] Phil. ii. 6, 7
[212] [Augustin here brings to view both the trinitarian and the
theanthropic or mediatorial subordination. The former is the status of
Sonship. God the Son is God of God. Sonship as a relation is
subordinate to paternity. But a son must be of the same grade of being,
and of the same nature with his father. A human son and a human father
are alike and equally human. And a Divine Son and a Divine father are
alike and equally divine. The theanthropic or mediatorial subordination
is the status of humiliation, by reason of the incarnation. In the
words of Augustin, it is "that by which we understand the Son as less,
in that he has taken upon Him the creature." The subordination in this
case is that of voluntary condescension, for the purpose of redeeming
sinful man.--W.G.T.S.]
[213] John x. 30
[214] Phil. ii. 6
[215] John xiv. 28
[216] John v. 22, 27, 26, 19
[217] Matt. xiv. 26, and John ix. 6, 7
[218] John v. 19
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--That Some Ways of Speaking Concerning the Son are to Be
Understood According to Either Rule.
4. There are, then, some things in the sacred books, as I began by
saying, so put, that it is doubtful to which they are to be referred:
whether to that rule whereby the Son is less on account of His having
taken the creature; or whether to that whereby it is intimated that
although equal, yet He is of the Father. And in my opinion, if this is
in such way doubtful, that which it really is can neither be explained
nor discerned, then such passages may without danger be understood
according to either rule, as that, for instance, "My doctrine is not
mine, but His that sent me." [219] For this may both be taken according
to the form of a servant, as we have already treated it in the former
book; [220] or according to the form of God, in which He is in such way
equal to the Father, that He is yet of the Father. For according to the
form of God, as the Son is not one and His life another, but the life
itself is the Son; so the Son is not one and His doctrine another, but
the doctrine itself is the Son. And hence, as the text, "He hath given
life to the Son," is no otherwise to be understood than, He hath
begotten the Son, who is life; so also when it is said, He hath given
doctrine to the Son, it may be rightly understood to mean, He hath
begotten the Son, who is doctrine so that, when it is said, "My
doctrine is not mine, but His who sent me," it is so to be understood
as if it were, I am not from myself, but from Him who sent me.
__________________________________________________________________
[219] John vii. 16
[220] See above, Book I. c. 12.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--Some Things Concerning the Holy Spirit are to Be Understood
According to the One Rule Only.
5. For even of the Holy Spirit, of whom it is not said, "He emptied
Himself, and took upon Him the form of a servant;" yet the Lord Himself
says, "Howbeit, when He the Spirit of Truth is come, He will guide you
into all truth. For He shall not speak of Himself, but whatsoever He
shall hear that shall He speak; and He will show you things to come. He
shall glorify me; for He shall receive of mine, and shall show it unto
you." And except He had immediately gone on to say after this, "All
things that the Father hath are mine; therefore said I, that He shall
take of mine, and shall show it unto you;" [221] it might, perhaps,
have been believed that the Holy Spirit was so born of Christ, as
Christ is of the Father. Since He had said of Himself, "My doctrine is
not mine, but His that sent me;" but of the Holy Spirit, "For He shall
not speak of Himself, but whatsoever he shall hear, that shall He
speak;" and, "For He shall receive of mine, and shall show it unto
you." But because He has rendered the reason why He said, "He shall
receive of mine" (for He says, "All things that the Father hath are
mine; therefore said I, that He shall take of mine"); it remains that
the Holy Spirit be understood to have of that which is the Father's, as
the Son also hath. And how can this be, unless according to that which
we have said above, "But when the Comforter is come, whom I will send
unto you from the Father, even the Spirit of truth which proceedeth
from the Father, He shall testify of me"? [222] He is said, therefore,
not to speak of Himself, in that He proceedeth from the Father; and as
it does not follow that the Son is less because He said, "The Son can
do nothing of Himself, but what He seeth the Father do" (for He has not
said this according to the form of a servant, but according to the form
of God, as we have already shown, and these words do not set Him forth
as less than, but as of the Father), so it is not brought to pass that
the Holy Spirit is less, because it is said of Him, "For He shall not
speak of Himself, but whatsoever He shall hear, that shall He speak;"
for the words belong to Him as proceeding from the Father. But whereas
both the Son is of the Father, and the Holy Spirit proceeds from the
Father, why both are not called sons, and both not said to be begotten,
but the former is called the one only-begotten Son, and the latter,
viz. the Holy Spirit, neither son nor begotten, because if begotten,
then certainly a son, we will discuss in another place, if God shall
grant, and so far as He shall grant. [223]
__________________________________________________________________
[221] John xvi. 13-15
[222] John xv. 26
[223] Below, Bk. XV. c. 25.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--The Glorification of the Son by the Father Does Not Prove
Inequality.
6. But here also let them wake up if they can, who have thought this,
too, to be a testimony on their side, to show that the Father is
greater than the Son, because the Son hath said, "Father, glorify me."
Why, the Holy Spirit also glorifies Him. Pray, is the Spirit, too,
greater than He? Moreover, if on that account the Holy Spirit glorifies
the Son, because He shall receive of that which is the Son's, and shall
therefore receive of that which is the Son's because all things that
the Father has are the Son's also; it is evident that when the Holy
Spirit glorifies the Son, the Father glorifies the Son. Whence it may
be perceived that all things that the Father hath are not only of the
Son, but also of the Holy Spirit, because the Holy Spirit is able to
glorify the Son, whom the Father glorifies. But if he who glorifies is
greater than he whom he glorifies, let them allow that those are equal
who mutually glorify each other. But it is written, also, that the Son
glorifies the Father; for He says, "I have glorified Thee on the
earth." [224] Truly let them beware lest the Holy Spirit be thought
greater than both, because He glorifies the Son whom the Father
glorifies, while it is not written that He Himself is glorified either
by the Father or by the Son.
__________________________________________________________________
[224] John xvii. 1, 4
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--The Son and Holy Spirit are Not Therefore Less Because
Sent. The Son is Sent Also by Himself. Of the Sending of the Holy
Spirit.
7. But being proved wrong so far, men betake themselves to saying, that
he who sends is greater than he who is sent: therefore the Father is
greater than the Son, because the Son continually speaks of Himself as
being sent by the Father; and the Father is also greater than the Holy
Spirit, because Jesus has said of the Spirit, "Whom the Father will
send in my name;" [225] and the Holy Spirit is less than both, because
both the Father sends Him, as we have said, and the Son, when He says,
"But if I depart, I will send Him unto you." I first ask, then, in this
inquiry, whence and whither the Son was sent. "I," He says, "came forth
from the Father, and am come into the world." [226] Therefore, to be
sent, is to come forth forth from the Father, and to come into the
world. What, then, is that which the same evangelist says concerning
Him, "He was in the world, and the world was made by Him, and the world
knew Him not;" and then he adds, "He came unto His own?" [227]
Certainly He was sent thither, whither He came; but if He was sent into
the world, because He came forth from the Father, then He both came
into the world and was in the world. He was sent therefore thither,
where He already was. For consider that, too, which is written in the
prophet, that God said, "Do not I fill heaven and earth?" [228] If this
is said of the Son (for some will have it understood that the Son
Himself spoke either by the prophets or in the prophets), whither was
He sent except to the place where He already was? For He who says, "I
fill heaven and earth," was everywhere. But if it is said of the
Father, where could He be without His own word and without His own
wisdom, which "reacheth from one end to another mightily, and sweetly
ordereth all things?" [229] But He cannot be anywhere without His own
Spirit. Therefore, if God is everywhere, His Spirit also is everywhere.
Therefore, the Holy Spirit, too, was sent thither, where He already
was. For he, too, who finds no place to which he might go from the
presence of God, and who says, "If I ascend up into heaven, Thou art
there; if I shall go down into hell, behold, Thou art there;" wishing
it to be understood that God is present everywhere, named in the
previous verse His Spirit; for He says," Whither shall I go from Thy
Spirit? or whither shall I flee from Thy presence?" [230]
8. For this reason, then, if both the Son and the Holy Spirit are sent
thither where they were, we must inquire, how that sending, whether of
the Son or of the Holy Spirit, is to be understood; for of the Father
alone, we nowhere read that He is sent. Now, of the Son, the apostle
writes thus: "But when the fullness of the time was come, God sent
forth His Son, made of a woman, made under the law, to redeem them that
were under the law." [231] "He sent," he says, "His Son, made of a
woman." And by this term, woman, [232] what Catholic does not know that
he did not wish to signify the privation of virginity; but, according
to a Hebraism, the difference of sex? When, therefore, he says, "God
sent His Son, made of a woman," he sufficiently shows that the Son was
"sent" in this very way, in that He was "made of a woman." Therefore,
in that He was born of God, He was in the world; but in that He was
born of Mary, He was sent and came into the world. Moreover, He could
not be sent by the Father without the Holy Spirit, not only because the
Father, when He sent Him, that is, when He made Him of a woman, is
certainly understood not to have so made Him without His own Spirit;
but also because it is most plainly and expressly said in the Gospel in
answer to the Virgin Mary, when she asked of the angel, "How shall this
be?" "The Holy Ghost shall come upon thee, and the power of the Highest
shall overshadow thee." [233] And Matthew says, "She was found with
child of the Holy Ghost." [234] Although, too, in the prophet Isaiah,
Christ Himself is understood to say of His own future advent, "And now
the Lord God and His Spirit hath sent me." [235]
9. Perhaps some one may wish to drive us to say, that the Son is sent
also by Himself, because the conception and childbirth of Mary is the
working of the Trinity, by whose act of creating all things are
created. And how, he will go on to say, has the Father sent Him, if He
sent Himself? To whom I answer first, by asking him to tell me, if he
can, in what manner the Father hath sanctified Him, if He hath
sanctified Himself? For the same Lord says both; "Say ye of Him," He
says, "whom the Father hath sanctified and sent into the world, Thou
blasphemest, because I said, I am the Son of God;" [236] while in
another place He says, "And for their sake I sanctify myself." [237] I
ask, also, in what manner the Father delivered Him, if He delivered
Himself? For the Apostle Paul says both: "Who," he says, "spared not
His own Son, but delivered Him up for us all;" [238] while elsewhere he
says of the Saviour Himself, "Who loved me, and delivered Himself for
me." [239] He will reply, I suppose, if he has a right sense in these
things, Because the will of the Father and the Son is one, and their
working indivisible. In like manner, then, let him understand the
incarnation and nativity of the Virgin, wherein the Son is understood
as sent, to have been wrought by one and the same operation of the
Father and of the Son indivisibly; the Holy Spirit certainly not being
thence excluded, of whom it is expressly said, "She was found with
child by the Holy Ghost." For perhaps our meaning will be more plainly
unfolded, if we ask in what manner God sent His Son. He commanded that
He should come, and He, complying with the commandment, came. Did He
then request, or did He only suggest? But whichever of these it was,
certainly it was done by a word, and the Word of God is the Son of God
Himself. Wherefore, since the Father sent Him by a word, His being sent
was the work of both the Father and His Word; therefore the same Son
was sent by the Father and the Son, because the Son Himself is the Word
of the Father. For who would embrace so impious an opinion as to think
the Father to have uttered a word in time, in order that the eternal
Son might thereby be sent and might appear in the flesh in the fullness
of time? But assuredly it was in that Word of God itself which was in
the beginning with God and was God, namely, in the wisdom itself of
God, apart from time, at what time that wisdom must needs appear in the
flesh. Therefore, since without any commencement of time, the Word was
in the beginning, and the Word was with God, and the Word was God, it
was in the Word itself without any time, at what time the Word was to
be made flesh and dwell among us. [240] And when this fullness of time
had come, "God sent His Son, made of a woman," [241] that is, made in
time, that the Incarnate Word might appear to men; while it was in that
Word Himself, apart from time, at what time this was to be done; for
the order of times is in the eternal wisdom of God without time. Since,
then, that the Son should appear in the flesh was wrought by both the
Father and the Son, it is fitly said that He who appeared in that flesh
was sent, and that He who did not appear in it, sent Him; because those
things which are transacted outwardly before the bodily eyes have their
existence from the inward structure (apparatu) of the spiritual nature,
and on that account are fitly said to be sent. Further, that form of
man which He took is the person of the Son, not also of the Father; on
which account the invisible Father, together with the Son, who with the
Father is invisible, is said to have sent the same Son by making Him
visible. But if He became visible in such way as to cease to be
invisible with the Father, that is, if the substance of the invisible
Word were turned by a change and transition into a visible creature,
then the Son would be so understood to be sent by the Father, that He
would be found to be only sent; not also, with the Father, sending. But
since He so took the form of a servant, as that the unchangeable form
of God remained, it is clear that that which became apparent in the Son
was done by the Father and the Son not being apparent; that is, that by
the invisible Father, with the invisible Son, the same Son Himself was
sent so as to be visible. Why, therefore, does He say, "Neither came I
of myself?" This, we may now say, is said according to the form of a
servant, in the same way as it is said, "I judge no man." [242]
10. If, therefore, He is said to be sent, in so far as He appeared
outwardly in the bodily creature, who inwardly in His spiritual nature
is always hidden from the eyes of mortals, it is now easy to understand
also of the Holy Spirit why He too is said to be sent. For in due time
a certain outward appearance of the creature was wrought, wherein the
Holy Spirit might be visibly shown; whether when He descended upon the
Lord Himself in a bodily shape as a dove, [243] or when, ten days
having past since His ascension, on the day of Pentecost a sound came
suddenly from heaven as of a rushing mighty wind, and cloven tongues
like as of fire were seen upon them, and it sat upon each of them.
[244] This operation, visibly exhibited, and presented to mortal eyes,
is called the sending of the Holy Spirit; not that His very substance
appeared, in which He himself also is invisible and unchangeable, like
the Father and the Son, but that the hearts of men, touched by things
seen outwardly, might be turned from the manifestation in time of Him
as coming to His hidden eternity as ever present.
__________________________________________________________________
[225] John xiv. 26
[226] John xvi. 7, 28
[227] John i. 10, 11
[228] Jer. xxiii. 24
[229] Wisd. viii. 1
[230] Ps. cxxxix. 8, 7
[231] Gal. iv. 4, 5
[232] Mulier
[233] Luke i. 34, 35
[234] Matt. i. 18
[235] Isa. xlviii. 16
[236] John x. 36
[237] John xvii. 19
[238] Rom. viii. 32
[239] Gal. ii. 20
[240] John i. 1, 2, 14
[241] Gal. iv. 4
[242] John viii. 42, 15
[243] Matt. iii. 16
[244] Acts ii. 2-4
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--The Creature is Not So Taken by the Holy Spirit as Flesh is
by the Word.
11. It is, then, for this reason nowhere written, that the Father is
greater than the Holy Spirit, or that the Holy Spirit is less than God
the Father, because the creature in which the Holy Spirit was to appear
was not taken in the same way as the Son of man was taken, as the form
in which the person of the Word of God Himself should be set forth not
that He might possess the word of God, as other holy and wise men have
possessed it, but "above His fellows;" [245] not certainly that He
possessed the word more than they, so as to be of more surpassing
wisdom than the rest were, but that He was the very Word Himself. For
the word in the flesh is one thing, and the Word made flesh is another;
i.e. the word in man is one thing, the Word that is man is another. For
flesh is put for man, where it is said, "The Word was made flesh;"
[246] and again, "And all flesh shall see the salvation of God." [247]
For it does not mean flesh without soul and without mind; but "all
flesh," is the same as if it were said, every man. The creature, then,
in which the Holy Spirit should appear, was not so taken, as that flesh
and human form were taken, of the Virgin Mary. For the Spirit did not
beatify the dove, or the wind, or the fire, and join them for ever to
Himself and to His person in unity and "fashion." [248] Nor, again, is
the nature of the Holy Spirit mutable and changeable; so that these
things were not made of the creature, but He himself was turned and
changed first into one and then into another, as water is changed into
ice. But these things appeared at the seasons at which they ought to
have appeared, the creature serving the Creator, and being changed and
converted at the command of Him who remains immutably in Himself, in
order to signify and manifest Him in such way as it was fit He should
be signified and manifested to mortal men. Accordingly, although that
dove is called the Spirit; [249] and in speaking of that fire, "There
appeared unto them," he says, "cloven tongues, like as of fire, and it
sat upon each of them; and they began to speak with other tongues, as
the Spirit gave them utterance; [250] in order to show that the Spirit
was manifested by that fire, as by the dove; yet we cannot call the
Holy Spirit both God and a dove, or both God and fire, in the same way
as we call the Son both God and man; nor as we call the Son the Lamb of
God; which not only John the Baptist says, "Behold the Lamb of God,"
[251] but also John the Evangelist sees the Lamb slain in the
Apocalypse. [252] For that prophetic vision was not shown to bodily
eyes through bodily forms, but in the spirit through spiritual images
of bodily things. But whosoever saw that dove and that fire, saw them
with their eyes. Although it may perhaps be disputed concerning the
fire, whether it was seen by the eyes or in the spirit, on account of
the form of the sentence. For the text does not say, They saw cloven
tongues like fire, but, "There appeared to them." But we are not wont
to say with the same meaning, It appeared to me; as we say, I saw. And
in those spiritual visions of corporeal images the usual expressions
are, both, It appeared to me; and, I saw: but in those things which are
shown to the eyes through express corporeal forms, the common
expression is not, It appeared to me; but, I saw. There may, therefore,
be a question raised respecting that fire, how it was seen; whether
within in the spirit as it were outwardly, or really outwardly before
the eyes of the flesh. But of that dove, which is said to have
descended in a bodily form, no one ever doubted that it was seen by the
eyes. Nor, again, as we call the Son a Rock (for it is written, "And
that Rock was Christ" [253] ), can we so call the Spirit a dove or
fire. For that rock was a thing already created, and after the mode of
its action was called by the name of Christ, whom it signified; like
the stone placed under Jacob's head, and also anointed, which he took
in order to signify the Lord; [254] or as Isaac was Christ, when he
carried the wood for the sacrifice of himself. [255] A particular
significative action was added to those already existing things; they
did not, as that dove and fire, suddenly come into being in order
simply so to signify. The dove and the fire, indeed, seem to me more
like that flame which appeared to Moses in the bush, [256] or that
pillar which the people followed in the wilderness, [257] or the
thunders and lightnings which came when the Law was given in the mount.
[258] For the corporeal form of these things came into being for the
very purpose, that it might signify something, and then pass away.
[259]
__________________________________________________________________
[245] Heb. i. 9
[246] John i. 14
[247] Luke iii. 6
[248] [The reference is to schema, in Phil. ii. 8--the term chosen by
St. Paul to describe the "likeness of men," which the second
trinitarian person assumed. The variety in the terms by which St. Paul
describes the incarnation is very striking. The person incarnated
subsists first in a "form of God;" he then takes along with this (still
retaining this) a "form of a servant;" which form of a servant is a
"likeness of men;" which likeness of men is a "scheme" (A.V. "fashion")
or external form of a man.--W.G.T.S.]
[249] Matt. iii. 16
[250] Acts ii. 3, 4
[251] John i. 29
[252] Apoc. v. 6
[253] 1 Cor. x. 4
[254] Gen. xxviii. 18
[255] Gen. xxii. 6
[256] Ex. iii. 2
[257] Ex. xiii. 21, 22
[258] Ex. xix. 16
[259] [A theophany, though a harbinger of the incarnation, differs from
it, by not effecting a hypostatical or personal union between God and
the creature. When the Holy Spirit appeared in the form of a dove, he
did not unite himself with it. The dove did not constitute an integral
part of the divine person who employed it. Nor did the illuminated
vapor in the theophany of the Shekinah. But when the Logos appeared in
the form of a man, he united himself with it, so that it became a
constituent part of his person. A theophany, as Augustin notices, is
temporary and transient. The incarnation is perpetual.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--A Doubt Raised About Divine Appearances.
12. The Holy Spirit, then, is also said to be sent, on account of these
corporeal forms which came into existence in time, in order to signify
and manifest Him, as He must needs be manifested, to human senses; yet
He is not said to be less than the Father, as the Son, because He was
in the form of a servant, is said to be; because that form of a servant
inhered in the unity of the person of the Son, but those corporeal
forms appeared for a time, in order to show what was necessary to be
shown, and then ceased to be. Why, then, is not the Father also said to
be sent, through those corporeal forms, the fire of the bush, and the
pillar of cloud or of fire, and the lightnings in the mount, and
whatever other things of the kind appeared at that time, when (as we
have learned from Scripture testimony) He spake face to face with the
fathers, if He Himself was manifested by those modes and forms of the
creature, as exhibited and presented corporeally to human sight? But if
the Son was manifested by them, why is He said to be sent so long
after, when He was made of a woman, as the apostle says, "But when the
fullness of time was come, God sent forth His Son, made of a woman,"
[260] seeing that He was sent also before, when He appeared to the
fathers by those changeable forms of the creature? Or if He cannot
rightly be said to be sent, unless when the Word was made flesh, why is
the Holy Spirit said to be sent, of whom no such incarnation was ever
wrought? But if by those visible things, which are put before us in the
Law and in the prophets, neither the Father nor the Son but the Holy
Spirit was manifested, why also is He said to be sent now, when He was
sent also before after these modes?
13. In the perplexity of this inquiry, the Lord helping us, we must
ask, first, whether the Father, or the Son, or the Holy Spirit; or
whether, sometimes the Father, sometimes the Son, sometimes the Holy
Spirit; or whether it was without any distinction of persons, in such
way as the one and only God is spoken of, that is, that the Trinity
itself appeared to the Fathers by those forms of the creature. Next,
whichever of these alternatives shall have been found or thought true,
whether for this purpose only the creature was fashioned, wherein God,
as He judged it suitable at that time, should be shown to human sight;
or whether angels, who already existed, were so sent, as to speak in
the person of God, taking a corporeal form from the corporeal creature,
for the purpose of their ministry, as each had need; or else, according
to the power the Creator has given them, changing and converting their
own body itself, to which they are not subject, but govern it as
subject to themselves, into whatever appearances they would that were
suited and apt to their several actions. Lastly, we shall discern that
which it was our purpose to ask, viz. whether the Son and the Holy
Spirit were also sent before; and, if they were so sent, what
difference there is between that sending, and the one which we read of
in the Gospel; or whether in truth neither of them were sent, except
when either the Son was made of the Virgin Mary, or the Holy Spirit
appeared in a visible form, whether in the dove or in tongues of fire.
__________________________________________________________________
[260] Gal. iv. 4
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--The Entire Trinity Invisible.
14. Let us therefore say nothing of those who, with an over carnal
mind, have thought the nature of the Word of God, and the Wisdom,
which, "remaining in herself, maketh all things new," [261] whom we
call the only Son of God, not only to be changeable, but also to be
visible. For these, with more audacity than religion, bring a very dull
heart to the inquiry into divine things. For whereas the soul is a
spiritual substance, and whereas itself also was made, yet could not be
made by any other than by Him by whom all things were made, and without
whom nothing is made, [262] it, although changeable, is yet not
visible; and this they have believed to be the case with the Word
Himself and with the Wisdom of God itself, by which the soul was made;
whereas this Wisdom is not only invisible, as the soul also is, but
likewise unchangeable, which the soul is not. It is in truth the same
unchangeableness in it, which is referred to when it was said,
"Remaining in herself she maketh all things new." Yet these people,
endeavoring, as it were, to prop up their error in its fall by
testimonies of the divine Scriptures, adduce the words of the Apostle
Paul; and take that, which is said of the one only God, in whom the
Trinity itself is understood, to be said only of the Father, and
neither of the Son nor of the Holy Spirit: "Now unto the King eternal,
immortal, invisible, the only wise God, be honor and glory for ever and
ever;" [263] and that other passage, "The blessed and only Potentate,
the King of kings, and Lord of lords; who only hath immortality,
dwelling in the light which no man can approach unto; whom no man hath
seen, nor can see." [264] How these passages are to be understood, I
think we have already discoursed sufficiently. [265]
__________________________________________________________________
[261] Wisd. vii. 27
[262] John i. 3
[263] 1 Tim. i. 17
[264] 1 Tim. vi. 15, 16
[265] [For an example of the manner in which the patristic writers
present the doctrine of the divine invisibility, see Irenaeus, Adv.
Haereses, IV. xx.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--Against Those Who Believed the Father Only to Be Immortal
and Invisible. The Truth to Be Sought by Peaceful Study.
15. But they who will have these texts understood only of the Father,
and not of the Son or the Holy Spirit, declare the Son to be visible,
not by having taken flesh of the Virgin, but aforetime also in Himself.
For He Himself, they say, appeared to the eyes of the Fathers. And if
you say to them, In whatever manner, then, the Son is visible in
Himself, in that manner also He is mortal in Himself; so that it
plainly follows that you would have this saying also understood only of
the Father, viz., "Who only hath immortality;" for if the Son is mortal
from having taken upon Him our flesh, then allow that it is on account
of this flesh that He is also visible: they reply, that it is not on
account of this flesh that they say that the Son is mortal; but that,
just as He was also before visible, so He was also before mortal. For
if they say the Son is mortal from having taken our flesh, then it is
not the Father alone without the Son who hath immortality; because His
Word also has immortality, by which all things were made. For He did
not therefore lose His immortality, because He took mortal flesh;
seeing that it could not happen even to the human soul, that it should
die with the body, when the Lord Himself says, "Fear not them which
kill the body, but are not able to kill the soul." [266] Or, forsooth,
also the Holy Spirit took flesh: concerning whom certainly they will,
without doubt, be troubled to say--if the Son is mortal on account of
taking our flesh--in what manner they understand that the Father only
has immortality without the Son and the Holy Spirit, since, indeed, the
Holy Spirit did not take our flesh; and if He has not immortality, then
the Son is not mortal on account of taking our flesh; but if the Holy
Spirit has immortality, then it is not said only of the Father, "Who
only hath immortality." And therefore they think they are able to prove
that the Son in Himself was mortal also before the incarnation, because
changeableness itself is not unfitly called mortality, according to
which the soul also is said to die; not because it is changed and
turned into body, or into some substance other than itself, but
because, whatever in its own selfsame substance is now after another
mode than it once was, is discovered to be mortal, in so far as it has
ceased to be what it was. Because then, say they, before the Son of God
was born of the Virgin Mary, He Himself appeared to our fathers, not in
one and the same form only, but in many forms; first in one form, then
in another; He is both visible in Himself, because His substance was
visible to mortal eyes, when He had not yet taken our flesh, and
mortal, inasmuch as He is changeable. And so also the Holy Spirit, who
appeared at one time as a dove, and another time as fire. Whence, they
say, the following texts do not belong to the Trinity, but singularly
and properly to the Father only: "Now unto the King eternal, immortal,
and invisible, the only wise God;" and, "Who only hath immortality,
dwelling in the light which no man can approach unto; whom no man hath
seen, nor can see."
16. Passing by, then, these reasoners, who are unable to know the
substance even of the soul, which is invisible, and therefore are very
far indeed from knowing that the substance of the one and only God,
that is, the Father and the Son and the Holy Spirit, remains ever not
only invisible, but also unchangeable, and that hence it possesses true
and real immortality; let us, who deny that God, whether the Father, or
the Son, or the Holy Spirit, ever appeared to bodily eyes, unless
through the corporeal creature made subject to His own power; let us, I
say--ready to be corrected, if we are reproved in a fraternal and
upright spirit, ready to be so, even if carped at by an enemy, so that
he speak the truth--in catholic peace and with peaceful study inquire,
whether God indiscriminately appeared to our fathers before Christ came
in the flesh, or whether it was any one person of the Trinity, or
whether severally, as it were by turns.
__________________________________________________________________
[266] Matt. x. 28
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10--Whether God the Trinity Indiscriminately Appeared to the
Fathers, or Any One Person of the Trinity. The Appearing of God to
Adam. Of the Same Appearance. The Vision to Abraham.
17. And first, in that which is written in Genesis, viz., that God
spake with man whom He had formed out of the dust; if we set apart the
figurative meaning, and treat it so as to place faith in the narrative
even in the letter, it should appear that God then spake with man in
the appearance of a man. This is not indeed expressly laid down in the
book, but the general tenor of its reading sounds in this sense,
especially in that which is written, that Adam heard the voice of the
Lord God, walking in the garden in the cool of the evening, and hid
himself among the trees of the garden; and when God said, "Adam, where
art thou?" [267] replied, "I heard Thy voice, and I was afraid because
I was naked, and I hid myself from Thy face." For I do not see how such
a walking and conversation of God can be understood literally, except
He appeared as a man. For it can neither be said that a voice only of
God was framed, when God is said to have walked, or that He who was
walking in a place was not visible; while Adam, too, says that he hid
himself from the face of God. Who then was He? Whether the Father, or
the Son, or the Holy Spirit? Whether altogether indiscriminately did
God the Trinity Himself speak to man in the form of man? The context,
indeed, itself of the Scripture nowhere, it should seem, indicates a
change from person to person; but He seems still to speak to the first
man, who said, "Let there be light," and, "Let there be a firmament,"
and so on through each of those days; whom we usually take to be God
the Father, making by a word whatever He willed to make. For He made
all things by His word, which Word we know, by the right rule of faith,
to be His only Son. If, therefore, God the Father spake to the first
man, and Himself was walking in the garden in the cool of the evening,
and if it was from His face that the sinner hid himself amongst the
trees of the garden, why are we not to go on to understand that it was
He also who appeared to Abraham and to Moses, and to whom He would, and
how He would, through the changeable and visible creature, subjected to
Himself, while He Himself remains in Himself and in His own substance,
in which He is unchangeable and invisible? But, possibly, it might be
that the Scripture passed over in a hidden way from person to person,
and while it had related that the Father said "Let there be light," and
the rest which it mentioned Him to have done by the Word, went on to
indicate the Son as speaking to the first man; not unfolding this
openly, but intimating it to be understood by those who could
understand it.
18. Let him, then, who has the strength whereby he can penetrate this
secret with his mind's eye, so that to him it appears clearly, either
that the Father also is able, or that only the Son and Holy Spirit are
able, to appear to human eyes through a visible creature; let him, I
say, proceed to examine these things if he can, or even to express and
handle them in words; but the thing itself, so far as concerns this
testimony of Scripture, where God spake with man, is, in my judgment,
not discoverable, because it does not evidently appear even whether
Adam usually saw God with the eyes of his body; especially as it is a
great question what manner of eyes it was that were opened when they
tasted the forbidden fruit; [268] for before they had tasted, these
eyes were closed. Yet I would not rashly assert, even if that scripture
implies Paradise to have been a material place, that God could not have
walked there in any way except in some bodily form. For it might be
said, that only words were framed for the man to hear, without seeing
any form. Neither, because it is written, "Adam hid himself from the
face of God," does it follow forthwith that he usually saw His face.
For what if he himself indeed could not see, but feared to be himself
seen by Him whose voice he had heard, and had felt His presence as he
walked? For Cain, too, said to God, "From Thy face I will hide myself;"
[269] yet we are not therefore compelled to admit that he was wont to
behold the face of God with his bodily eyes in any visible form,
although he had heard the voice of God questioning and speaking with
him of his sin. But what manner of speech it was that God then uttered
to the outward ears of men, especially in speaking to the first man, it
is both difficult to discover, and we have not undertaken to say in
this discourse. But if words alone and sounds were wrought, by which to
bring about some sensible presence of God to those first men, I do not
know why I should not there understand the person of God the Father,
seeing that His person is manifested also in that voice, when Jesus
appeared in glory on the mount before the three disciples; [270] and in
that when the dove descended upon Him at His baptism; [271] and in that
where He cried to the Father concerning His own glorification and it
was answered Him, "I have both glorified, and will glorify again."
[272] Not that the voice could be wrought without the work of the Son
and of the Holy Spirit (since the Trinity works indivisibly), but that
such a voice was wrought as to manifest the person of the Father only;
just as the Trinity wrought that human form from the Virgin Mary, yet
it is the person of the Son alone; for the invisible Trinity wrought
the visible person of the Son alone. Neither does anything forbid us,
not only to understand those words spoken to Adam as spoken by the
Trinity, but also to take them as manifesting the person of that
Trinity. For we are compelled to understand of the Father only, that
which is said, "This is my beloved Son." [273] For Jesus can neither be
believed nor understood to be the Son of the Holy Spirit, or even His
own Son. And where the voice uttered, "I have both glorified, and will
glorify again," we confess it was only the person of the Father; since
it is the answer to that word of the Lord, in which He had said,
"Father, glorify thy Son," which He could not say except to God the
Father only, and not also to the Holy Spirit, whose Son He was not. But
here, where it is written, "And the Lord God said to Adam," no reason
can be given why the Trinity itself should not be understood.
19. Likewise, also, in that which is written, "Now the Lord had said
unto Abraham, Get thee out of thy country, and from thy kindred, and
thy father's house," it is not clear whether a voice alone came to the
ears of Abraham, or whether anything also appeared to his eyes. But a
little while after, it is somewhat more clearly said, "And the Lord
appeared unto Abraham, and said, Unto thy seed will I give this land."
[274] But neither there is it expressly said in what form God appeared
to him, or whether the Father, or the Son, or the Holy Spirit appeared
to him. Unless, perhaps, they think that it was the Son who appeared to
Abraham, because it is not written, God appeared to him, but "the Lord
appeared to him." For the Son seems to be called the Lord as though the
name was appropriated to Him; as e.g. the apostle says, "For though
there be that are called gods, whether in heaven or in earth, (as there
be gods many and lords many,) but to us there is but one God, the
Father, of whom are all things, and we in Him; and one Lord Jesus
Christ, by whom are all things, and we by Him." [275] But since it is
found that God the Father also is called Lord in many places,--for
instance, "The Lord hath said unto me, Thou art my Son; this day have I
begotten Thee;" [276] and again, "The Lord said unto my Lord, Sit Thou
at my right hand;" [277] since also the Holy Spirit is found to be
called Lord, as where the apostle says, "Now the Lord is that Spirit;"
and then, lest any one should think the Son to be signified, and to be
called the Spirit on account of His incorporeal substance, has gone on
to say, "And where the Spirit of the Lord is, there is liberty;" [278]
and no one ever doubted the Spirit of the Lord to be the Holy Spirit:
therefore, neither here does it appear plainly whether it was any
person of the Trinity that appeared to Abraham, or God Himself the
Trinity, of which one God it is said, "Thou shalt fear the Lord thy
God, and Him only shall thou serve." [279] But under the oak at Mamre
he saw three men, whom he invited, and hospitably received, and
ministered to them as they feasted. Yet Scripture at the beginning of
that narrative does not say, three men appeared to him, but, "The Lord
appeared to him." And then, setting forth in due order after what
manner the Lord appeared to him, it has added the account of the three
men, whom Abraham invites to his hospitality in the plural number, and
afterwards speaks to them in the singular number as one; and as one He
promises him a son by Sara, viz. the one whom the Scripture calls Lord,
as in the beginning of the same narrative, "The Lord," it says,
"appeared to Abraham." He invites them then, and washes their feet, and
leads them forth at their departure, as though they were men; but he
speaks as with the Lord God, whether when a son is promised to him, or
when the destruction is shown to him that was impending over Sodom.
[280]
__________________________________________________________________
[267] Gen. iii. 8-10
[268] Gen. iii. 7
[269] Gen. iv. 14
[270] Matt. xvii. 5
[271] Matt. iii. 17
[272] John xii. 28
[273] Matt. iii. 17
[274] Gen. xii. 1, 7
[275] 1 Cor viii. 5, 6
[276] Ps. ii. 7
[277] Ps. cx. 1
[278] 2 Cor. iii. 17
[279] Deut. vi. 13
[280] Gen. xviii
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 11.--Of the Same Appearance.
20. That place of Scripture demands neither a slight nor a passing
consideration. For if one man had appeared, what else would those at
once cry out, who say that the Son was visible also in His own
substance before He was born of the Virgin, but that it was Himself?
since it is said, they say, of the Father, "To the only invisible God."
[281] And yet, I could still go on to demand, in what manner "He was
found in fashion as a man," before He had taken our flesh, seeing that
his feet were washed, and that He fed upon earthly food? How could that
be, when He was still "in the form of God, and thought it not robbery
to be equal with God?" [282] For, pray, had He already "emptied
Himself, taking upon Him the form of a servant, and made in the
likeness of men, and found in fashion as a man?" when we know when it
was that He did this through His birth of the Virgin. How, then, before
He had done this, did He appear as one man to Abraham? or, was not that
form a reality? I could put these questions, if it had been one man
that appeared to Abraham, and if that one were believed to be the Son
of God. But since three men appeared, and no one of them is said to be
greater than the rest either in form, or age, or power, why should we
not here understand, as visibly intimated by the visible creature, the
equality of the Trinity, and one and the same substance in three
persons? [283]
21. For, lest any one should think that one among the three is in this
way intimated to have been the greater, and that this one is to be
understood to have been the Lord, the Son of God, while the other two
were His angels; because, whereas three appeared, Abraham there speaks
to one as the Lord: Holy Scripture has not forgotten to anticipate, by
a contradiction, such future cogitations and opinions, when a little
while after it says that two angels came to Lot, among whom that just
man also, who deserved to be freed from the burning of Sodom, speaks to
one as to the Lord. For so Scripture goes on to say, "And the Lord went
His way, as soon as He left communing with Abraham; and Abraham
returned to his place." [284]
__________________________________________________________________
[281] 1 Tim. i. 17
[282] Phil. ii. 6, 7
[283] [The theophanies of the Pentateuch are trinitarian in their
implication. They involve distinctions in God--God sending, and God
sent; God speaking of God, and God speaking to God. The trinitarianism
of the Old Testament has been lost sight of to some extent in the
modern construction of the doctrine. The patristic, mediaeval, and
reformation theologies worked this vein with thoroughness, and the
analysis of Augustin in this reference is worthy of careful
study.--W.G.T.S.]
[284] Gen. xviii. 33
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 12.--The Appearance to Lot is Examined.
"But there came two angels to Sodom at even." Here, what I have begun
to set forth must be considered more attentively. Certainly Abraham was
speaking with three, and called that one, in the singular number, the
Lord. Perhaps, some one may say, he recognized one of the three to be
the Lord, but the other two His angels. What, then, does that mean
which Scripture goes on to say, "And the Lord went His way, as soon as
He had left communing with Abraham; and Abraham returned to his place:
and there came two angels to Sodom at even?" Are we to suppose that the
one who, among the three, was recognized as the Lord, had departed, and
had sent the two angels that were with Him to destroy Sodom? Let us
see, then, what follows. "There came," it is said, "two angels to Sodom
at even; and Lot sat in the gate of Sodom: and Lot seeing them, rose up
to meet them; and he bowed himself with his face toward the ground; and
he said, Behold now, my lords, turn in, I pray you, into your servant's
house." Here it is clear, both that there were two angels, and that in
the plural number they were invited to partake of hospitality, and that
they were honorably designated lords, when they perchance were thought
to be men.
22. Yet, again, it is objected that except they were known to be angels
of God, Lot would not have bowed himself with his face to the ground.
Why, then, is both hospitality and food offered to them, as though they
wanted such human succor? But whatever may here lie hid, let us now
pursue that which we have undertaken. Two appear; both are called
angels; they are invited plurally; he speaks as with two plurally,
until the departure from Sodom. And then Scripture goes on to say, "And
it came to pass, when they had brought them forth abroad, that they
said, Escape for thy life; look not behind thee, neither stay thou in
all the plain; escape to the mountain, and there thou shalt be saved,
[285] lest thou be consumed. And Lot said unto them, Oh! not so, my
lord: behold now, thy servant hath found grace in thy sight," [286]
etc. What is meant by his saying to them, "Oh! not so, my lord," if He
who was the Lord had already departed, and had sent the angels? Why is
it said, "Oh! not so, my lord," and not, "Oh! not so, my lords?" Or if
he wished to speak to one of them, why does Scripture say, "But Lot
said to them, Oh! not so, my lord: behold now, thy servant hath found
grace in thy sight," etc.? Are we here, too, to understand two persons
in the plural number, but when the two are addressed as one, then the
one Lord God of one substance? But which two persons do we here
understand?--of the Father and of the Son, or of the Father and of the
Holy Spirit, or of the Son and of the Holy Spirit? The last, perhaps,
is the more suitable; for they said of themselves that they were sent,
which is that which we say of the Son and of the Holy Spirit. For we
find nowhere in the Scriptures that the Father was sent. [287]
__________________________________________________________________
[285] This clause is not in the Hebrew.
[286] Gen. xix. 1-19
[287] [It is difficult to determine the details of this theophany,
beyond all doubt: namely, whether the "Jehovah" who "went his way as
soon as he had left communing with Abraham." (Gen. xviii. 33) joins the
"two angels" that "came to Sodom at even" (Gen xix. 1); or whether one
of these "two angels" is Jehovah himself. One or the other supposition
must be made; because a person is addressed by Lot as God (Gen. xix.
18-20), and speaks to Lot as God (Gen. xix. 21, 22), and acts as God
(Gen. xix. 24). The Masorite marking of the word "lords" in Gen. xix.
2, as "profane," i.e., to be taken in the human sense, would favor the
first supposition. The interchange of the singular and plural, in the
whole narrative is very striking. "It came to pass, when they had
brought them forth abroad, that he said, escape for thy life. And Lot
said unto them. Oh not so, my Lord: behold now, thy servant hath found
grace in thy sight. And he said unto him, see I have accepted thee; I
will not overthrow the city of which thou hast spoken." (Gen. xix.
17-21.)--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 13.--The Appearance in the Bush.
23. But when Moses was sent to lead the children of Israel out of
Egypt, it is written that the Lord appeared to him thus: "Now Moses
kept the flock of Jethro his father-in-law, the priest of Midian: and
he led the flock to the back side of the desert, and came to the
mountain of God, even to Horeb. And the Angel of the Lord appeared unto
him in a flame of fire, out of the midst of a bush; and he looked, and,
behold, the bush burned with fire, and the bush was not consumed. And
Moses said, I will now turn aside, and see this great sight, why the
bush is not burnt. And when the Lord saw that he turned aside to see,
God called unto him out of the midst of the bush, and said, I am the
God of thy father, the God of Abraham, the God of Isaac, and the God of
Jacob." [288] He is here also first called the Angel of the Lord, and
then God. Was an angel, then, the God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac,
and the God of Jacob? Therefore He may be rightly understood to be the
Saviour Himself, of whom the apostle says, "Whose are the fathers, and
of whom as concerning the flesh Christ came, who is over all, God
blessed for ever." [289] He, therefore, "who is over all, God blessed
for ever," is not unreasonably here understood also to be Himself the
God of Abraham, the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob. But why is He
previously called the Angel of the Lord, when He appeared in a flame of
fire out of the bush? Was it because it was one of many angels, who by
an economy [or arrangement] bare the person of his Lord? or was
something of the creature assumed by Him in order to bring about a
visible appearance for the business in hand, and that words might
thence be audibly uttered, whereby the presence of the Lord might be
shown, in such way as was fitting, to the corporeal senses of man, by
means of the creature made subject? For if he was one of the angels,
who could easily affirm whether it was the person of the Son which was
imposed upon him to announce, or that of the Holy Spirit, or that of
God the Father, or altogether of the Trinity itself, who is the one and
only God, in order that he might say, "I am the God of Abraham, and the
God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob?" For we cannot say that the Son of
God is the God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob,
and that the Father is not; nor will any one dare to deny that either
the Holy Spirit, or the Trinity itself, whom we believe and understand
to be the one God, is the God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac, and the
God of Jacob. For he who is not God, is not the God of those fathers.
Furthermore, if not only the Father is God, as all, even heretics,
admit; but also the Son, which, whether they will or not, they are
compelled to acknowledge, since the apostle says, "Who is over all, God
blessed for ever;" and the Holy Spirit, since the same apostle says,
"Therefore glorify God in your body;" when he had said above, "Know ye
not that your body is the temple of the Holy Ghost, which is in you,
which ye have of God?" [290] and these three are one God, as catholic
soundness believes: it is not sufficiently apparent which person of the
Trinity that angel bare, if he was one of the rest of the angels, and
whether any person, and not rather that of the Trinity itself. But if
the creature was assumed for the purpose of the business in hand,
whereby both to appear to human eyes, and to sound in human ears, and
to be called the Angel of the Lord, and the Lord, and God; then cannot
God here be understood to be the Father, but either the Son or the Holy
Spirit. Although I cannot call to mind that the Holy Spirit is anywhere
else called an angel, which yet may be understood from His work; for it
is said of Him, "And He will show you [291] things to come;" [292] and
"angel" in Greek is certainly equivalent to "messenger" [293] in Latin:
but we read most evidently of the Lord Jesus Christ in the prophet,
that He is called "the Angel of Great Counsel," [294] while both the
Holy Spirit and the Son of God is God and Lord of the angels.
__________________________________________________________________
[288] Ex. iii. 1-6
[289] Rom. ix. 5
[290] 1 Cor. vi. 20, 19
[291] Annuntiabit
[292] John xvi. 13
[293] Nuntius
[294] Isa. ix. 6
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 14.--Of the Appearance in the Pillar of Cloud and of Fire.
24. Also in the going forth of the children of Israel from Egypt it is
written, "And the Lord went before them, by day in a pillar of cloud to
lead them the way, and by night in a pillar of fire. He took not away
the pillar of the cloud by day, nor the pillar of fire by night, from
before the people." [295] Who here, too, would doubt that God appeared
to the eyes of mortal men by the corporeal creature made subject to
Him, and not by His own substance? But it is not similarly apparent
whether the Father, or the Son, or the Holy Spirit, or the Trinity
itself, the one God. Nor is this distinguished there either, in my
judgment, where it is written, "The glory of the Lord appeared in the
cloud, and the Lord spake unto Moses, saying, I have heard the
murmurings of the children of Israel," [296] etc.
__________________________________________________________________
[295] Ex. iii. 21, 22
[296] Ex. xvi. 10-12
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 15.--Of the Appearance on Sinai. Whether the Trinity Spake in
that Appearance or Some One Person Specially.
25. But now of the clouds, and voices, and lightnings, and the trumpet,
and the smoke on Mount Sinai, when it was said, "And Mount Sinai was
altogether on a smoke, because the Lord descended upon it in fire, and
the smoke thereof ascended as the smoke of a furnace; and all the
people that was in the camp trembled; and when the voice of the trumpet
sounded long and waxed louder and louder, Moses spake, and God answered
him by a voice." [297] And a little after, when the Law had been given
in the ten commandments, it follows in the text, "And all the people
saw the thunderings, and the lightnings, and the noise of the trumpet,
and the mountain smoking." And a little after, "And [when the people
saw it,] they removed and stood afar off, and Moses drew near unto the
thick darkness [298] where God was, and the Lord said unto Moses,"
[299] etc. What shall I say about this, save that no one can be so
insane as to believe the smoke, and the fire, and the cloud, and the
darkness, and whatever there was of the kind, to be the substance of
the word and wisdom of God which is Christ, or of the Holy Spirit? For
not even the Arians ever dared to say that they were the substance of
God the Father. All these things, then, were wrought through the
creature serving the Creator, and were presented in a suitable economy
(dispensatio) to human senses; unless, perhaps, because it is said,
"And Moses drew near to the cloud where God was," carnal thoughts must
needs suppose that the cloud was indeed seen by the people, but that
within the cloud Moses with the eyes of the flesh saw the Son of God,
whom doting heretics will have to be seen in His own substance.
Forsooth, Moses may have seen Him with the eyes of the flesh, if not
only the wisdom of God which is Christ, but even that of any man you
please and howsoever wise, can be seen with the eyes of the flesh; or
if, because it is written of the elders of Israel, that "they saw the
place where the God of Israel had stood," and that "there was under His
feet as it were a paved work of a sapphire stone, and as it were the
body of heaven in his clearness," [300] therefore we are to believe
that the word and wisdom of God in His own substance stood within the
space of an earthly place, who indeed "reacheth firmly from end to end,
and sweetly ordereth all things;" [301] and that the Word of God, by
whom all things were made, [302] is in such wise changeable, as now to
contract, now to expand Himself; (may the Lord cleanse the hearts of
His faithful ones from such thoughts!) But indeed all these visible and
sensible things are, as we have often said, exhibited through the
creature made subject in order to signify the invisible and
intelligible God, not only the Father, but also the Son and the Holy
Spirit, "of whom are all things, and through whom are all things, and
in whom are all things;" [303] although "the invisible things of God,
from the creation of the world, are clearly seen, being understood by
the things that are made, even His eternal power and Godhead." [304]
26. But as far as concerns our present undertaking, neither on Mount
Sinai do I see how it appears, by all those things which were fearfully
displayed to the senses of mortal men, whether God the Trinity spake,
or the Father, or the Son, or the Holy Spirit severally. But if it is
allowable, without rash assertion, to venture upon a modest and
hesitating conjecture from this passage, if it is possible to
understand it of one person of the Trinity, why do we not rather
understand the Holy Spirit to be spoken of, since the Law itself also,
which was given there, is said to have been written upon tables of
stone with the finger of God, [305] by which name we know the Holy
Spirit to be signified in the Gospel. [306] And fifty days are numbered
from the slaying of the lamb and the celebration of the Passover until
the day in which these things began to be done in Mount Sinai; just as
after the passion of our Lord fifty days are numbered from His
resurrection, and then came the Holy Spirit which the Son of God had
promised. And in that very coming of His, which we read of in the Acts
of the Apostles, there appeared cloven tongues like as of fire, and it
sat upon each of them: [307] which agrees with Exodus, where it is
written, "And Mount Sinai was altogether on a smoke, because the Lord
descended upon it in fire;" and a little after, "And the sight of the
glory of the Lord," he says, "was like devouring fire on the top of the
mount in the eyes of the children of Israel." [308] Or if these things
were therefore wrought because neither the Father nor the Son could be
there presented in that mode without the Holy Spirit, by whom the Law
itself must needs be written; then we know doubtless that God appeared
there, not by His own substance, which remains invisible and
unchangeable, but by the appearance above mentioned of the creature;
but that some special person of the Trinity appeared, distinguished by
a proper mark, as far as my capacity of understanding reaches, we do
not see.
__________________________________________________________________
[297] Ex. xix. 18, 19
[298] Nebulam
[299] Ex. xx. 18, 21
[300] Ex. xxiv. 10
[301] Wisd. viii. 1
[302] John i. 3
[303] Rom. xi. 36
[304] Rom. i. 20
[305] Ex. xxi. 18
[306] Luke xi. 20
[307] Acts. ii. 1-4
[308] Ex. xxiv. 17
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 16.--In What Manner Moses Saw God.
26. There is yet another difficulty which troubles most people, viz.
that it is written, "And the Lord spake unto Moses face to face, as a
man speaketh unto his friend;" whereas a little after, the same Moses
says, "Now therefore, I pray Thee, if I have found grace in Thy sight,
show me now Thyself plainly, that I may see Thee, that I may find grace
in Thy sight, and that I may consider that this nation is Thy people;"
and a little after Moses again said to the Lord, "Show me Thy glory."
What means this then, that in everything which was done, as above said,
God was thought to have appeared by His own substance; whence the Son
of God has been believed by these miserable people to be visible not by
the creature, but by Himself; and that Moses, entering into the cloud,
appeared to have had this very object in entering, that a cloudy
darkness indeed might be shown to the eyes of the people, but that
Moses within might hear the words of God, as though he beheld His face;
and, as it is said, "And the Lord spake unto Moses face to face, as a
man speaketh unto his friend;" and yet, behold, the same Moses says,
"If I have found grace in Thy sight, show me Thyself plainly?"
Assuredly he knew that he saw corporeally, and he sought the true sight
of God spiritually. And that mode of speech accordingly which was
wrought in words, was so modified, as if it were of a friend speaking
to a friend. Yet who sees God the Father with the eyes of the body? And
that Word, which was in the beginning, the Word which was with God, the
Word which was God, by which all things were made, [309] --who sees Him
with the eyes of the body? And the spirit of wisdom, again, who sees
with the eyes of the body? Yet what is, "Show me now Thyself plainly,
that I may see Thee," unless, Show me Thy substance? But if Moses had
not said this, we must indeed have borne with those foolish people as
we could, who think that the substance of God was made visible to his
eyes through those things which, as above mentioned, were said or done.
But when it is here demonstrated most evidently that this was not
granted to him, even though he desired it; who will dare to say, that
by the like forms which had appeared visibly to him also, not the
creature serving God, but that itself which is God, appeared to the
eyes of a mortal man?
28. Add, too, that which the Lord afterward said to Moses, "Thou canst
not see my face: for there shall no man see my face, and live. And the
Lord said, Behold, there is a place by me, and thou shall stand upon a
rock: and it shall come to pass, while my glory passeth by, that I will
put thee into a watch-tower [310] of the rock, and will cover thee with
my hand while I pass by: and I will take away my hand, and thou shalt
see my back parts; but my face shall not be seen." [311]
__________________________________________________________________
[309] John i. 1, 3
[310] Clift--A.V. Spelunca is one reading in S. Aug., but the
Benedictines read specula = watch-tower, which the context proves to be
certainly right.
[311] Ex. xxxiii. 11-23
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 17.--How the Back Parts of God Were Seen. The Faith of the
Resurrection of Christ. The Catholic Church Only is the Place from
Whence the Back Parts of God are Seen. The Back Parts of God Were Seen
by the Israelites. It is a Rash Opinion to Think that God the Father
Only Was Never Seen by the Fathers.
Not unfitly is it commonly understood to be prefigured from the person
of our Lord Jesus Christ, that His "back parts" are to be taken to be
His flesh, in which He was born of the Virgin, and died, and rose
again; whether they are called back parts [312] on account of the
posteriority of mortality, or because it was almost in the end of the
world, that is, at a late period, [313] that He deigned to take it: but
that His "face" was that form of God, in which He "thought it not
robbery to be equal with God," [314] which no one certainly can see and
live; whether because after this life, in which we are absent from the
Lord, [315] and where the corruptible body presseth down the soul,
[316] we shall see "face to face," [317] as the apostle says--(for it
is said in the Psalms, of this life, "Verily every man living is
altogether vanity;" [318] and again, "For in Thy sight shall no man
living be justified;" [319] and in this life also, according to John,
"It doth not yet appear what we shall be, but we know," he says, "that
when He shall appear, we shall be like Him, for we shall see Him as He
is," [320] which he certainly intended to be understood as after this
life, when we shall have paid the debt of death, and shall have
received the promise of the resurrection);--or whether that even now,
in whatever degree we spiritually understand the wisdom of God, by
which all things were made, in that same degree we die to carnal
affections, so that, considering this world dead to us, we also
ourselves die to this world, and say what the apostle says, "The world
is crucified unto me, and I unto the world." [321] For it was of this
death that he also says, "Wherefore, if ye be dead with Christ, why as
though living in the world are ye subject to ordinances?" [322] Not
therefore without cause will no one be able to see the "face," that is,
the manifestation itself of the wisdom of God, and live. For it is this
very appearance, for the contemplation of which every one sighs who
strives to love God with all his heart, and with all his soul, and with
all his mind; to the contemplation of which, he who loves his neighbor,
too, as himself builds up his neighbor also as far as he may; on which
two commandments hang all the law and the prophets. [323] And this is
signified also in Moses himself. For when he had said, on account of
the love of God with which he was specially inflamed, "If I have found
grace in thy sight, show me now Thyself plainly, that I may find grace
in Thy sight;" he immediately subjoined, on account of the love also of
his neighbor, "And that I may know that this nation is Thy people." It
is therefore that "appearance" which hurries away every rational soul
with the desire of it, and the more ardently the more pure that soul
is; and it is the more pure the more it rises to spiritual things; and
it rises the more to spiritual things the more it dies to carnal
things. But whilst we are absent from the Lord, and walk by faith, not
by sight, [324] we ought to see the "back parts" of Christ, that is His
flesh, by that very faith, that is, standing on the solid foundation of
faith, which the rock signifies, [325] and beholding it from such a
safe watch-tower, namely in the Catholic Church, of which it is said,
"And upon this rock I will build my Church." [326] For so much the more
certainly we love that face of Christ, which we earnestly desire to
see, as we recognize in His back parts how much first Christ loved us.
29. But in the flesh itself, the faith in His resurrection saves and
justifies us. For, "If thou shalt believe," he says, "in thine heart,
that God hath raised Him from the dead, thou shalt be saved;" [327] and
again, "Who was delivered," he says, "for our offenses, and was raised
again for our justification." [328] So that the reward of our faith is
the resurrection of the body of our Lord. [329] For even His enemies
believe that that flesh died on the cross of His passion, but they do
not believe it to have risen again. Which we believing most firmly,
gaze upon it as from the solidity of a rock: whence we wait with
certain hope for the adoption, to wit, the redemption of our body;
[330] because we hope for that in the members of Christ, that is, in
ourselves, which by a sound faith we acknowledge to be perfect in Him
as in our Head. Thence it is that He would not have His back parts
seen, unless as He passed by, that His resurrection may be believed.
For that which is Pascha in Hebrew, is translated Passover. [331]
Whence John the Evangelist also says, "Before the feast of the
Passover, when Jesus knew that His hour was come, that He should pass
out of this world unto the Father." [332]
30. But they who believe this, but believe it not in the Catholic
Church, but in some schism or in heresy, do not see the back parts of
the Lord from "the place that is by Him." For what does that mean which
the Lord says, "Behold, there is a place by me, and thou shalt stand
upon a rock?" What earthly place is "by" the Lord, unless that is "by
Him" which touches Him spiritually? For what place is not "by" the
Lord, who "reacheth from one end to another mightily, and sweetly doth
order all things," [333] and of whom it is said, "Heaven is His throne,
and earth is His footstool;" and who said, "Where is the house that ye
build unto me, and where is the place of my rest? For has not my hand
made all those things?" [334] But manifestly the Catholic Church itself
is understood to be "the place by Him," wherein one stands upon a rock,
where he healthfully sees the "Pascha Domini," that is, the "Passing
by" [335] of the Lord, and His back parts, that is, His body, who
believes in His resurrection. "And thou shalt stand," He says, "upon a
rock while my glory passeth by." For in reality, immediately after the
majesty of the Lord had passed by in the glorification of the Lord, in
which He rose again and ascended to the Father, we stood firm upon the
rock. And Peter himself then stood firm, so that he preached Him with
confidence, whom, before he stood firm, he had thrice from fear denied;
[336] although, indeed, already before placed in predestination upon
the watch-tower of the rock, but with the hand of the Lord still held
over him that he might not see. For he was to see His back parts, and
the Lord had not yet "passed by," namely, from death to life; He had
not yet been glorified by the resurrection.
31. For as to that, too, which follows in Exodus, "I will cover thee
with mine hand while I pass by, and I will take away my hand and thou
shalt see my back parts;" many Israelites, of whom Moses was then a
figure, believed in the Lord after His resurrection, as if His hand had
been taken off from their eyes, and they now saw His back parts. And
hence the evangelist also mentions that prophesy of Isaiah, "Make the
heart of this people fat, and make their ears heavy, and shut their
eyes." [337] Lastly, in the Psalm, that is not unreasonably understood
to be said in their person, "For day and night Thy hand was heavy upon
me." "By day," perhaps, when He performed manifest miracles, yet was
not acknowledged by them; but "by night," when He died in suffering,
when they thought still more certainly that, like any one among men, He
was cut off and brought to an end. But since, when He had already
passed by, so that His back parts were seen, upon the preaching to them
by the Apostle Peter that it behoved Christ to suffer and rise again,
they were pricked in their hearts with the grief of repentance, [338]
that that might come to pass among the baptized which is said in the
beginning of that Psalm, "Blessed are they whose transgressions are
forgiven, and whose sins are covered;" therefore, after it had been
said, "Thy hand is heavy upon me," the Lord, as it were, passing by, so
that now He removed His hand, and His back parts were seen, there
follows the voice of one who grieves and confesses and receives
remission of sins by faith in the resurrection of the Lord: "My
moisture," he says, "is turned into the drought of summer. I
acknowledged my sin unto Thee, and mine iniquity have I not hid. I
said, I will confess my transgressions unto the Lord, and Thou
forgavest the iniquity of my sin." [339] For we ought not to be so
wrapped up in the darkness of the flesh, as to think the face indeed of
God to be invisible, but His back visible, since both appeared visibly
in the form of a servant; but far be it from us to think anything of
the kind in the form of God; far be it from us to think that the Word
of God and the Wisdom of God has a face on one side, and on the other a
back, as a human body has, or is at all changed either in place or time
by any appearance or motion. [340]
32. Wherefore, if in those words which were spoken in Exodus, and in
all those corporeal appearances, the Lord Jesus Christ was manifested;
or if in some cases Christ was manifested, as the consideration of this
passage persuades us, in others the Holy Spirit, as that which we have
said above admonishes us; at any rate no such result follows, as that
God the Father never appeared in any such form to the Fathers. For many
such appearances happened in those times, without either the Father, or
the Son, or the Holy Spirit being expressly named and designated in
them; but yet with some intimations given through certain very probable
interpretations, so that it would be too rash to say that God the
Father never appeared by any visible forms to the fathers or the
prophets. For they gave birth to this opinion who were not able to
understand in respect to the unity of the Trinity such texts as, "Now
unto the King eternal, immortal, invisible, the only wise God;" [341]
and, "Whom no man hath seen, nor can see." [342] Which texts are
understood by a sound faith in that substance itself, the highest, and
in the highest degree divine and unchangeable, whereby both the Father
and the Son and the Holy Spirit is the one and only God. But those
visions were wrought through the changeable creature, made subject to
the unchangeable God, and did not manifest God properly as He is, but
by intimations such as suited the causes and times of the several
circumstances.
__________________________________________________________________
[312] Posteriora
[313] Posterius
[314] Phil. ii. 6
[315] 2 Cor. v. 6
[316] Wisd. ix. 15
[317] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[318] Ps. xxxix. 5
[319] Ps. cxliii. 2
[320] 1 John iii. 2
[321] Gal. vi. 14
[322] Col. ii. 20. Viventes de hoc mundo decernitis.
[323] Matt. xxii. 37-40
[324] 2 Cor. v. 6, 7
[325] [Augustin here gives the Protestant interpretation of the word
"rock," in the passage, "on this rock I will build my
church."--W.G.T.S.]
[326] Matt. xvi. 18
[327] Rom. x. 9
[328] Rom. iv. 25
[329] [The meaning seems to be, that the vivid realization that
Christ's body rose from the dead is the reward of a Christian's faith.
The unbeliever has no such reward.--W.G.T.S.]
[330] Rom. viii. 23
[331] Transitus = passing by.
[332] John xiii. 1
[333] Wisd. viii. 1
[334] Isa. lxvi. 1, 2
[335] Transitus
[336] Matt. xxvi. 70-74
[337] Isa. vi. 10; Matt. xiii. 15
[338] Acts ii. 37, 41
[339] Ps. xxxii. 4, 5
[340] [This explanation of the "back parts" of Christ to mean his
resurrection, and of "the place that is by him," to mean the church, is
an example of the fanciful exegesis into which Augustin, with the
fathers generally, sometimes falls. The reasoning, here, unlike that in
the preceding chapter, is not from the immediate context, and hence
extraneous matter is read into the text.--W.G.T.S.]
[341] 1 Tim. i. 17
[342] 1 Tim. vi. 16
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 18.--The Vision of Daniel.
33. [343] I do not know in what manner these men understand that the
Ancient of Days appeared to Daniel, from whom the Son of man, which He
deigned to be for our sakes, is understood to have received the
kingdom; namely, from Him who says to Him in the Psalms, "Thou art my
Son; this day have I begotten Thee; ask of me, and I shall give Thee
the heathen for Thine inheritance;" [344] and who has "put all things
under His feet." [345] If, however, both the Father giving the kingdom,
and the Son receiving it, appeared to Daniel in bodily form, how can
those men say that the Father never appeared to the prophets, and,
therefore, that He only ought to be understood to be invisible whom no
man has seen, nor can see? For Daniel has told us thus: "I beheld," he
says, "till the thrones were set, [346] and the Ancient of Days did
sit, whose garment was white as snow, and the hair of His head like the
pure wool: His throne was like the fiery flame, and His wheels as
burning fire; a fiery stream issued and came forth from before Him:
thousand thousands ministered unto Him, and ten thousand times ten
thousand stood before Him: the judgment was set, and the books were
opened," etc. And a little after, "I saw," he says, "in the night
visions, and behold, one like the Son of man came with the clouds of
heaven, and came to the Ancient of Days, and they brought Him near
before Him. And there was given Him dominion, and glory, and a kingdom,
that all peoples, nations, and languages should serve Him: His dominion
is an everlasting dominion, which shall not pass away, and His kingdom
that which shall not be destroyed." [347] Behold the Father giving, and
the Son receiving, an eternal kingdom; and both are in the sight of him
who prophesies, in a visible form. It is not, therefore, unsuitably
believed that God the Father also was wont to appear in that manner to
mortals.
34. Unless, perhaps, some one shall say, that the Father is therefore
not visible, because He appeared within the sight of one who was
dreaming; but that therefore the Son and the Holy Spirit are visible,
because Moses saw all those things being awake; as if, forsooth, Moses
saw the Word and the Wisdom of God with fleshly eyes, or that even the
human spirit which quickens that flesh can be seen, or even that
corporeal thing which is called wind;--how much less can that Spirit of
God be seen, who transcends the minds of all men, and of angels, by the
ineffable excellence of the divine substance? Or can any one fall
headlong into such an error as to dare to say, that the Son and the
Holy Spirit are visible also to men who are awake, but that the Father
is not visible except to those who dream? How, then, do they understand
that of the Father alone, "Whom no man hath seen, nor can see."? When
men sleep, are they then not men? Or cannot He, who can fashion the
likeness of a body to signify Himself through the visions of dreamers,
also fashion that same bodily creature to signify Himself to the eyes
of those who are awake? Whereas His own very substance, whereby He
Himself is that which He is, cannot be shown by any bodily likeness to
one who sleeps, or by any bodily appearance to one who is awake; but
this not of the Father only, but also of the Son and of the Holy
Spirit. And certainly, as to those who are moved by the visions of
waking men to believe that not the Father, but only the Son, or the
Holy Spirit, appeared to the corporeal sight of men,--to omit the great
extent of the sacred pages, and their manifold interpretation, such
that no one of sound reason ought to affirm that the person of the
Father was nowhere shown to the eyes of waking men by any corporeal
appearance;--but, as I said, to omit this, what do they say of our
father Abraham, who was certainly awake and ministering, when, after
Scripture had premised, "The Lord appeared unto Abraham," not one, or
two, but three men appeared to him; no one of whom is said to have
stood prominently above the others, no one more than the others to have
shone with greater glory, or to have acted more authoritatively? [348]
35. Wherefore, since in that our threefold division we determined to
inquire, [349] first, whether the Father, or the Son, or the Holy
Spirit; or whether sometimes the Father, sometimes the Son, sometimes
the Holy Spirit; or whether, without any distinction of persons, as it
is said, the one and only God, that is, the Trinity itself, appeared to
the fathers through those forms of the creature: now that we have
examined, so far as appeared to be sufficient what places of the Holy
Scriptures we could, a modest and cautious consideration of divine
mysteries leads, as far as I can judge, to no other conclusion, unless
that we may not rashly affirm which person of the Trinity appeared to
this or that of the fathers or the prophets in some body or likeness of
body, unless when the context attaches to the narrative some probable
intimations on the subject. For the nature itself, or substance, or
essence, or by whatever other name that very thing, which is God,
whatever it be, is to be called, cannot be seen corporeally: but we
must believe that by means of the creature made subject to Him, not
only the Son, or the Holy Spirit, but also the Father, may have given
intimations of Himself to mortal senses by a corporeal form or
likeness. And since the case stands thus, that this second book may not
extend to an immoderate length, let us consider what remains in those
which follow.
__________________________________________________________________
[343] [The original has an awkward anacoluthon in the opening sentence
of this chapter, which has been removed by omitting "quamquam," and
substituting "autem" for "ergo."--W.G.T.S.]
[344] Ps. ii. 7, 8
[345] Ps. viii. 8
[346] Cast down--A.V.
[347] Dan. vii. 9-14
[348] Gen. xviii. 1
[349] See above, chap. vii.
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
Book III.
------------------------
The question is discussed with respect to the appearances of God spoken
of in the previous book, which were made under bodily forms, whether
only a creature was formed, for the purpose of manifesting God to human
sight in such way as He at each time judged fitting; or whether angels,
already existing, were so sent as to speak in the person of God; and
this, either by assuming a bodily appearance from the bodily creature,
or by changing their own bodies into whatever forms they would,
suitable to the particular action, according to the power given to them
by the Creator; while the essence itself of God was never seen in
itself.
__________________________________________________________________
Preface.--Why Augustin Writes of the Trinity. What He Claims from
Readers. What Has Been Said in the Previous Book.
1. I Would have them believe, who are willing to do so, that I had
rather bestow labor in reading, than in dictating what others may read.
But let those who will not believe this, but are both able and willing
to make the trial, grant me whatever answers may be gathered from
reading, either to my own inquiries, or to those interrogations of
others, which for the character I bear in the service of Christ, and
for the zeal with which I burn that our faith may be fortified against
the error of carnal and natural men, [350] I must needs bear with; and
then let them see how easily I would refrain from this labor, and with
how much even of joy I would give my pen a holiday. But if what we have
read upon these subjects is either not sufficiently set forth, or is
not to be found at all, or at any rate cannot easily be found by us, in
the Latin tongue, while we are not so familiar with the Greek tongue as
to be found in any way competent to read and understand therein the
books that treat of such topics, in which class of writings, to judge
by the little which has been translated for us, I do not doubt that
everything is contained that we can profitably seek; [351] while yet I
cannot resist my brethren when they exact of me, by that law by which I
am made their servant, that I should minister above all to their
praiseworthy studies in Christ by my tongue and by my pen, of which two
yoked together in me, Love is the charioteer; and while I myself
confess that I have by writing learned many things which I did not
know: if this be so, then this my labor ought not to seem superfluous
to any idle, or to any very learned reader; while it is needful in no
small part, to many who are busy, and to many who are unlearned,and
among these last to myself. Supported, then, very greatly, and aided by
the writings we have already read of others on this subject, I have
undertaken to inquire into and to discuss, whatever it seems to my
judgment can be reverently inquired into and discussed, concerning the
Trinity, the one supreme and supremely good God; He himself exhorting
me to the inquiry, and helping me in the discussion of it; in order
that, if there are no other writings of the kind, there may be
something for those to have and read who are willing and capable; but
if any exist already, then it may be so much the easier to find some
such writings, the more there are of the kind in existence.
2. Assuredly, as in all my writings I desire not only a pious reader,
but also a free corrector, so I especially desire this in the present
inquiry, which is so important that I would there were as many
inquirers as there are objectors. But as I do not wish my reader to be
bound down to me, so I do not wish my corrector to be bound down to
himself. Let not the former love me more than the catholic faith, let
not the latter love himself more than the catholic verity. As I say to
the former, Do not be willing to yield to my writings as to the
canonical Scriptures; but in these, when thou hast discovered even what
thou didst not previously believe, believe it unhesitatingly; while in
those, unless thou hast understood with certainty what thou didst not
before hold as certain, be unwilling to hold it fast: so I say to the
latter, Do not be willing to amend my writings by thine own opinion or
disputation, but from the divine text, or by unanswerable reason. If
thou apprehendest anything of truth in them, its being there does not
make it mine, but by understanding and loving it, let it be both thine
and mine; but if thou convictest anything of falsehood, though it have
once been mine, in that I was guilty of the error, yet now by avoiding
it let it be neither thine nor mine.
3. Let this third book, then, take its beginning at the point to which
the second had reached. For after we had arrived at this, that we
desired to show that the Son was not therefore less than the Father,
because the Father sent and the Son was sent; nor the Holy Spirit
therefore less than both, because we read in the Gospel that He was
sent both by the one and by the other; we undertook then to inquire,
since the Son was sent thither, where He already was, for He came into
the world, and "was in the world;" [352] since also the Holy Spirit was
sent thither, where He already was, for "the Spirit of the Lord filleth
the world, and that which containeth all things hath knowledge of the
voice;" [353] whether the Lord was therefore "sent" because He was born
in the flesh so as to be no longer hidden, and, as it were, came forth
from the bosom of the Father, and appeared to the eyes of men in the
form of a servant; and the Holy Spirit also was therefore "sent,"
because He too was seen as a dove in a corporeal form, [354] and in
cloven tongues, like as of fire; [355] so that, to be sent, when spoken
of them, means to go forth to the sight of mortals in some corporeal
form from a spiritual hiding-place; which, because the Father did not,
He is said only to have sent, not also to be sent. Our next inquiry
was, Why the Father also is not sometimes said to be sent, if He
Himself was manifested through those corporeal forms which appeared to
the eyes of the ancients. But if the Son was manifested at these times,
why should He be said to be "sent" so long after, when the fullness of
time was come that He should be born of a woman; [356] since, indeed,
He was sent before also, viz., when He appeared corporeally in those
forms? Or if He were not rightly said to be "sent," except when the
Word was made flesh; [357] why should the Holy Spirit be read of as
"sent," of whom such an incarnation never took place? But if neither
the Father, nor the Son, but the Holy Spirit was manifested through
these ancient appearances; why should He too be said to be "sent" now,
when He was also sent before in these various manners? Next we
subdivided the subject, that it might be handled most carefully, and we
made the question threefold, of which one part was explained in the
second book, and two remain, which I shall next proceed to discuss. For
we have already inquired and determined, that not only the Father, nor
only the Son, nor only the Holy Spirit appeared in those ancient
corporeal forms and visions, but either indifferently the Lord God, who
is understood to be the Trinity itself, or some one person of the
Trinity, whichever the text of the narrative might signify, through
intimations supplied by the context.
__________________________________________________________________
[350] [The English translator renders "animalium" by "psychical," to
agree with psuchikos in 1 Cor. ii. 14. The rendering "natural" of the
A.V. is more familiar.--W.G.T.S.]
[351] [This is an important passage with reference to Augustin's
learning. From it, it would appear that he had not read the Greek
Trinitarians in the original, and that only "a little" of these had
been translated, at the time when he was composing this treatise. As
this was from A.D. 400 to A.D. 416--, the treatises of Athanasius (d.
373), Basil (d. 379), Gregory of Nyssa (d. 400?), and Gregory of
Nazianzum (d. 390?) had been composed and were current in the Eastern
church. That Augustin thought out this profound scheme of the doctrine
of the Trinity by the close study of Scripture alone, and unassisted by
the equally profound trinitarianism of the Greek church, is an evidence
of the depth and strength of his remarkable intellect.--W.G.T.S.]
[352] John i. 10
[353] Wisd. i. 7
[354] Matt. iii. 16
[355] Acts ii. 3
[356] Gal. iv. 4
[357] John i. 14
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--What is to Be Said Thereupon.
4. Let us, then, continue our inquiry now in order. For under the
second head in that division the question occurred, whether the
creature was formed for that work only, wherein God, in such way as He
then judged it to be fitting, might be manifested to human sight; or
whether angels, who already existed, were so sent as to speak in the
person of God, assuming a corporeal appearance from the corporeal
creature for the purpose of their ministry; or else changing and
turning their own body itself, to which they are not subject, but
govern it as subject to themselves, into whatever forms they would,
that were appropriate and fit for their actions, according to the power
given to them by the Creator. And when this part of the question shall
have been investigated, so far as God permit, then, lastly, we shall
have to see to that question with which we started, viz., whether the
Son and the Holy Spirit were also "sent" before; and if it be so, then
what difference there is between that sending and the one of which we
read in the Gospel; or whether neither of them were sent, except when
either the Son was made of the Virgin Mary, or when the Holy Spirit
appeared in a visible form, whether as a dove or in tongues of fire.
[358]
5. I confess, however, that it reaches further than my purpose can
carry me to inquire whether the angels, secretly working by the
spiritual quality of their body abiding still in them, assume somewhat
from the inferior and more bodily elements, which, being fitted to
themselves, they may change and turn like a garment into any corporeal
appearances they will, and those appearances themselves also real, as
real water was changed by our Lord into real wine; [359] or whether
they transform their own bodies themselves into that which they would,
suitably to the particular act. But it does not signify to the present
question which of these it is. And although I be not able to understand
these things by actual experience, seeing that I am a man, as the
angels do who do these things, and know them better than I know them,
viz., how far my body is changeable by the operation of my will;
whether it be by my own experience of myself, or by that which I have
gathered from others; yet it is not necessary here to say which of
these alternatives I am to believe upon the authority of the divine
Scriptures, lest I be compelled to prove it, and so my discourse become
too long upon a subject which does not concern the present question.
6. Our present inquiry then is, whether the angels were then the agents
both in showing those bodily appearances to the eyes of men and in
sounding those words in their ears when the sensible creature itself,
serving the Creator at His beck, was turned for the time into whatever
was needful; as it is written in the book of Wisdom, "For the creature
serveth Thee, who art the Maker, increaseth his strength against the
unrighteous for their punishment, and abateth his strength for the
benefit of such as put their trust in Thee. Therefore, even then was it
altered into all fashions, and was obedient to Thy grace, that
nourisheth all things according to the desire of them that longed for
Thee." [360] For the power of the will of God reaches through the
spiritual creature even to visible and sensible effects of the
corporeal creature. For where does not the wisdom of the omnipotent God
work that which He wills, which "reacheth from one end to another
mightily, and sweetly doth order all things"? [361]
__________________________________________________________________
[358] See above, Book ii. chap. vii. n. 13.
[359] John ii. 9
[360] Wisd. xvi. 24, 25
[361] Wisd. viii. 1
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--The Will of God is the Higher Cause of All Corporeal
Change. This is Shown by an Example.
7. But there is one kind of natural order in the conversion and
changeableness of bodies, which, although itself also serves the
bidding of God, yet by reason of its unbroken continuity has ceased to
cause wonder; as is the case, for instance, with those things which are
changed either in very short, or at any rate not long, intervals of
time, in heaven, or earth, or sea; whether it be in rising, or in
setting, or in change of appearance from time to time; while there are
other things, which, although arising from that same order, yet are
less familiar on account of longer intervals of time. And these things,
although the many stupidly wonder at them, yet are understood by those
who inquire into this present world, and in the progress of generations
become so much the less wonderful, as they are the more often repeated
and known by more people. Such are the eclipses of the sun and moon,
and some kinds of stars, appearing seldom, and earthquakes, and
unnatural births of living creatures, and other similar things; of
which not one takes place without the will of God; yet, that it is so,
is to most people not apparent. And so the vanity of philosophers has
found license to assign these things also to other causes, true causes
perhaps, but proximate ones, while they are not able to see at all the
cause that is higher than all others, that is, the will of God; or
again to false causes, and to such as are not even put forward out of
any diligent investigation of corporeal things and motions, but from
their own guess and error.
8. I will bring forward an example, if I can, that this may be plainer.
There is, we know, in the human body, a certain bulk of flesh and an
outward form, and an arrangement and distraction of limbs, and a
temperament of health; and a soul breathed into it governs this body,
and that soul a rational one; which, therefore, although changeable,
yet can be partaker of that unchangeable wisdom, so that "it may
partake of that which is in and of itself;" [362] as it is written in
the Psalm concerning all saints, of whom as of living stones is built
that Jerusalem which is the mother of us all, eternal in the heavens.
For so it is sung, "Jerusalem is builded as a city, that is partaker of
that which is in and of itself." [363] For "in and of itself," in that
place, is understood of that chiefest and unchangeable good, which is
God, and of His own wisdom and will. To whom is sung in another place,
"Thou shalt change them, and they shall be changed; but Thou art the
same." [364]
__________________________________________________________________
[362] [The original is: "ut sit participatio ejus in idipsum." The
English translator renders: "So that it may partake thereof in itself."
The thought of Augustin is, that the believing soul though mutable
partakes of the immutable; and he designates the immutable as the in
idipsum: the self-existent. In that striking passage in the
Confessions, in which he describes the spiritual and extatic
meditations of himself and his mother, as they looked out upon the
Mediterranean from the windows at Ostia--a scene well known from Ary
Schefer's painting--he denominates God the idipsum: the "self same"
(Confessions IX. x). Augustin refers to the same absolute immutability
of God, in this place. By faith, man is "a partaker of a divine
nature," (2 Pet. i. 4.)--W.G.T.S.]
[363] Ps. cxxii. 3. Vulg.
[364] Ps. cii. 26, 27
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--Of the Same Argument.
Let us take, then, the case of a wise man, such that his rational soul
is already partaker of the unchangeable and eternal truth, so that he
consults it about all his actions, nor does anything at all, which he
does not by it know ought to be done, in order that by being subject to
it and obeying it he may do rightly. Suppose now that this man, upon
counsel with the highest reason of the divine righteousness, which he
hears with the ear of his heart in secret, and by its bidding, should
weary his body by toil in some office of mercy, and should contract an
illness; and upon consulting the physicians, were to be told by one
that the cause of the disease was overmuch dryness of the body, but by
another that it was overmuch moisture; one of the two no doubt would
allege the true cause and the other would err, but both would pronounce
concerning proximate causes only, that is, corporeal ones. But if the
cause of that dryness were to be inquired into, and found to be the
self-imposed toil, then we should have come to a yet higher cause,
which proceeds from the soul so as to affect the body which the soul
governs. Yet neither would this be the first cause, for that doubtless
was a higher cause still, and lay in the unchangeable wisdom itself, by
serving which in love, and by obeying its ineffable commands, the soul
of the wise man had undertaken that self-imposed toil; and so nothing
else but the will of God would be found most truly to be the first
cause of that illness. But suppose now in that office of pious toil
this wise man had employed the help of others to co-operate in the good
work, who did not serve God with the same will as himself, but either
desired to attain the reward of their own carnal desires, or shunned
merely carnal unpleasantnesses;--suppose, too, he had employed beasts
of burden, if the completion of the work required such a provision,
which beasts of burden would be certainly irrational animals, and would
not therefore move their limbs under their burdens because they at all
thought of that good work, but from the natural appetite of their own
liking, and for the avoiding of annoyance;--suppose, lastly, he had
employed bodily things themselves that lack all sense, but were
necessary for that work, as e.g. corn, and wine, and oils, clothes, or
money, or a book, or anything of the kind;--certainly, in all these
bodily things thus employed in this work, whether animate or inanimate,
whatever took place of movement, of wear and tear, of reparation, of
destruction, of renewal or of change in one way or another, as places
and times affected them; pray, could there be, I say, any other cause
of all these visible and changeable facts, except the invisible and
unchangeable will of God, using all these, both bad and irrational
souls, and lastly bodies, whether such as were inspired and animated by
those souls, or such as lacked all sense, by means of that upright soul
as the seat of His wisdom, since primarily that good and holy soul
itself employed them, which His wisdom had subjected to itself in a
pious and religious obedience?
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--God Uses All Creatures as He Will, and Makes Visible Things
for the Manifestation of Himself.
9. What, then, we have alleged by way of example of a single wise man,
although of one still bearing a mortal body and still seeing only in
part, may be allowably extended also to a family, where there is a
society of such men, or to a city, or even to the whole world, if the
chief rule and government of human affairs were in the hands of the
wise, and of those who were piously and perfectly subject to God; but
because this is not the case as yet (for it behoves us first to be
exercised in this our pilgrimage after mortal fashion, and to be taught
with stripes by force of gentleness and patience), let us turn our
thoughts to that country itself that is above and heavenly, from which
we here are pilgrims. For there the will of God, "who maketh His angels
spirits, and His ministers a flaming fire," [365] presiding among
spirits which are joined in perfect peace and friendship, and combined
in one will by a kind of spiritual fire of charity, as it were in an
elevated and holy and secret seat, as in its own house and in its own
temple, thence diffuses itself through all things by certain most
perfectly ordered movements of the creature; first spiritual, then
corporeal; and uses all according to the unchangeable pleasure of its
own purpose, whether incorporeal things or things corporeal, whether
rational or irrational spirits, whether good by His grace or evil
through their own will. But as the more gross and inferior bodies are
governed in due order by the more subtle and powerful ones, so all
bodies are governed by the living spirit; and the living spirit devoid
of reason, by the reasonable living spirit; and the reasonable living
spirit that makes default and sins, by the living and reasonable spirit
that is pious and just; and that by God Himself, and so the universal
creature by its Creator, from whom and through whom and in whom it is
also created and established. [366] And so it comes to pass that the
will of God is the first and the highest cause of all corporeal
appearances and motions. For nothing is done visibly or sensibly,
unless either by command or permission from the interior palace,
invisible and intelligible, of the supreme Governor, according to the
unspeakable justice of rewards and punishments, of favor and
retribution, in that far-reaching and boundless commonwealth of the
whole creature.
10. If, therefore, the Apostle Paul, although he still bare the burden
of the body, which is subject to corruption and presseth down the soul,
[367] and although he still saw only in part and in an enigma, [368]
wishing to depart and be with Christ, [369] and groaning within
himself, waiting for the adoption, to wit, the redemption of his body,
[370] yet was able to preach the Lord Jesus Christ significantly, in
one way by his tongue, in another by epistle, in another by the
sacrament of His body and blood (since, certainly, we do not call
either the tongue of the apostle, or the parchments, or the ink, or the
significant sounds which his tongue uttered, or the alphabetical signs
written on skins, the body and blood of Christ; but that only which we
take of the fruits of the earth and consecrate by mystic prayer, and
then receive duly to our spiritual health in memory of the passion of
our Lord for us: and this, although it is brought by the hands of men
to that visible form, yet is not sanctified to become so great a
sacrament, except by the spirit of God working invisibly; since God
works everything that is done in that work through corporeal movements,
by setting in motion primarily the invisible things of His servants,
whether the souls of men, or the services of hidden spirits subject to
Himself): what wonder if also in the creature of heaven and earth, of
sea and air, God works the sensible and visible things which He wills,
in order to signify and manifest Himself in them, as He Himself knows
it to be fitting, without any appearing of His very substance itself,
whereby He is, which is altogether unchangeable, and more inwardly and
secretly exalted than all spirits whom He has created?
__________________________________________________________________
[365] Ps. civ. 4
[366] Col. i. 16
[367] Wisd. ix. 15
[368] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[369] Phil. i. 23
[370] Rom. viii. 23
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--Why Miracles are Not Usual Works.
11. For since the divine power administers the whole spiritual and
corporeal creature, the waters of the sea are summoned and poured out
upon the face of the earth on certain days of every year. But when this
was done at the prayer of the holy Elijah; because so continued and
long a course of fair weather had gone before, that men were famished;
and because at that very hour, in which the servant of God prayed, the
air itself had not, by any moist aspect, put forth signs of the coming
rain; the divine power was apparent in the great and rapid showers that
followed, and by which that miracle was granted and dispensed. [371] In
like manner, God works ordinarily through thunders and lightnings: but
because these were wrought in an unusual manner on Mount Sinai, and
those sounds were not uttered with a confused noise, but so that it
appeared by most sure proofs that certain intimations were given by
them, they were miracles. [372] Who draws up the sap through the root
of the vine to the bunch of grapes, and makes the wine, except God;
who, while man plants and waters, Himself giveth the increase? [373]
But when, at the command of the Lord, the water was turned into wine
with an extraordinary quickness, the divine power was made manifest, by
the confession even of the foolish. [374] Who ordinarily clothes the
trees with leaves and flowers except God? Yet, when the rod of Aaron
the priest blossomed, the Godhead in some way conversed with doubting
humanity. [375] Again, the earthy matter certainly serves in common to
the production and formation both of all kinds of wood and of the flesh
of all animals: and who makes these things, but He who said, Let the
earth bring them forth; [376] and who governs and guides by the same
word of His, those things which He has created? Yet, when He changed
the same matter out of the rod of Moses into the flesh of a serpent,
immediately and quickly, that change, which was unusual, although of a
thing which was changeable, was a miracle. [377] But who is it that
gives life to every living thing at its birth, unless He who gave life
to that serpent also for the moment, as there was need. [378]
__________________________________________________________________
[371] 1 Kings xviii. 45
[372] Ex. xix. 6
[373] 1 Cor. iii. 7
[374] John ii. 9
[375] Num. xvii. 8
[376] Gen. i. 24
[377] Ex. iv. 3
[378] [One chief reason why a miracle is incredible for the skeptic, is
the difficulty of working it. If the miracle were easy of execution for
man--who for the skeptic is the measure of power--his disbelief of it
would disappear. In reference to this objection, Augustin calls
attention to the fact, that so far as difficulty of performance is
concerned, the products of nature are as impossible to man as
supernatural products. Aaron could no more have made an almond rod
blossom and fructuate on an almond tree, than off it. That a miracle is
difficult to be wrought is, consequently, no good reason for
disbelieving its reality.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--Diversity Alone Makes a Miracle.
And who is it that restored to the corpses their proper souls when the
dead rose again, [379] unless He who gives life to the flesh in the
mother's womb, in order that they may come into being who yet are to
die? But when such things happen in a continuous kind of river of
ever-flowing succession, passing from the hidden to the visible, and
from the visible to the hidden, by a regular and beaten track, then
they are called natural; when, for the admonition of men, they are
thrust in by an unusual changeableness, then they are called miracles.
__________________________________________________________________
[379] Ezek. xxxvii. 1-10
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--Great Miracles Wrought by Magic Arts.
12. I see here what may occur to a weak judgment, namely, why such
miracles are wrought also by magic arts; for the wise men of Pharaoh
likewise made serpents, and did other like things. Yet it is still more
a matter of wonder, how it was that the power of those magicians, which
was able to make serpents, when it came to very small flies, failed
altogether. For the lice, by which third plague the proud people of
Egypt were smitten, are very short-lived little flies; yet there
certainly the magicians failed, saying, "This is the finger of God."
[380] And hence it is given us to understand that not even those angels
and powers of the air that transgressed, who have been thrust down into
that lowest darkness, as into a peculiar prison, from their habitation
in that lofty ethereal purity, through whom magic arts have whatever
power they have, can do anything except by power given from above. Now
that power is given either to deceive the deceitful, as it was given
against the Egyptians, and against the magicians also themselves, in
order that in the seducing of those spirits they might seem admirable
by whom they were wrought, but to be condemned by the truth of God; or
for the admonishing of the faithful, lest they should desire to do
anything of the kind as though it were a great thing, for which reason
they have been handed down to us also by the authority of Scripture; or
lastly, for the exercising, proving, and manifesting of the patience of
the righteous. For it was not by any small power of visible miracles
that Job lost all that he had, and both his children and his bodily
health itself. [381]
__________________________________________________________________
[380] Ex. vii. and viii
[381] Job i. and ii
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--God Alone Creates Those Things Which are Changed by Magic
Art.
13. Yet it is not on this account to be thought that the matter of
visible things is subservient to the bidding of those wicked angels;
but rather to that of God, by whom this power is given, just so far as
He, who is unchangeable, determines in His lofty and spiritual abode to
give it. For water and fire and earth are subservient even to wicked
men, who are condemned to the mines, in order that they may do
therewith what they will, but only so far as is permitted. Nor, in
truth, are those evil angels to be called creators, because by their
means the magicians, withstanding the servant of God, made frogs and
serpents; for it was not they who created them. But, in truth, some
hidden seeds of all things that are born corporeally and visibly, are
concealed in the corporeal elements of this world. For those seeds that
are visible now to our eyes from fruits and living things, are quite
distinct from the hidden seeds of those former seeds; from which, at
the bidding of the Creator, the water produced the first swimming
creatures and fowl, and the earth the first buds after their kind, and
the first living creatures after their kind. [382] For neither at that
time were those seeds so drawn forth into products of their several
kinds, as that the power of production was exhausted in those products;
but oftentimes, suitable combinations of circumstances are wanting,
whereby they may be enabled to burst forth and complete their species.
For, consider, the very least shoot is a seed; for, if fitly consigned
to the earth, it produces a tree. But of this shoot there is a yet more
subtle seed in some grain of the same species, and this is visible even
to us. But of this grain also there is further still a seed, which,
although we are unable to see it with our eyes, yet we can conjecture
its existence from our reason; because, except there were some such
power in those elements, there would not so frequently be produced from
the earth things which had not been sown there; nor yet so many
animals, without any previous commixture of male and female; whether on
the land, or in the water, which yet grow, and by commingling bring
forth others, while themselves sprang up without any union of parents.
And certainly bees do not conceive the seeds of their young by
commixture, but gather them as they lie scattered over the earth with
their mouth. [383] For the Creator of these invisible seeds is the
Creator of all things Himself; since whatever comes forth to our sight
by being born, receives the first beginnings of its course from hidden
seeds, and takes the successive increments of its proper size and its
distinctive forms from these as it were original rules. As therefore we
do not call parents the creators of men, nor farmers the creators of
corn,--although it is by the outward application of their actions that
the power [384] of God operates within for the creating these
things;--so it is not right to think not only the bad but even the good
angels to be creators, if, through the subtilty of their perception and
body, they know the seeds of things which to us are more hidden, and
scatter them secretly through fit temperings of the elements, and so
furnish opportunities of producing things, and of accelerating their
increase. But neither do the good angels do these things, except as far
as God commands, nor do the evil ones do them wrongfully, except as far
as He righteously permits. For the malignity of the wicked one makes
his own will wrongful; but the power to do so, he receives rightfully,
whether for his own punishment, or, in the case of others, for the
punishment of the wicked, or for the praise of the good.
14. Accordingly, the Apostle Paul, distinguishing God's creating and
forming within, from the operations of the creature which are applied
from without, and drawing a similitude from agriculture, says, "I
planted, Apollos watered; but God gave the increase." [385] As,
therefore, in the case of spiritual life itself, no one except God can
work righteousness in our minds, yet men also are able to preach the
gospel as an outward means, not only the good in sincerity, but also
the evil in pretence; [386] so in the creation of visible things it is
God that works from within; but the exterior operations, whether of
good or bad, of angels or men, or even of any kind of animal, according
to His own absolute power, and to the distribution of faculties, and
the several appetites for things pleasant, which He Himself has
imparted, are applied by Him to that nature of things wherein He
creates all things, in like manner as agriculture is to the soil.
Wherefore I can no more call the bad angels, evoked by magic arts, the
creators of the frogs and serpents, than I can say that bad men were
creators of the corn crop, which I see to have sprung up through their
labor.
15. Just as Jacob, again, was not the creator of the colors in the
flocks, because he placed the various colored rods for the several
mothers, as they drank, to look at in conceiving. [387] Yet neither
were the cattle themselves creators of the variety of their own
offspring, because the variegated image, impressed through their eyes
by the sight of the varied rods, clave to their soul, but could affect
the body that was animated by the spirit thus affected only through
sympathy with this commingling, so far as to stain with color the
tender beginnings of their offspring. For that they are so affected
from themselves, whether the soul from the body, or the body from the
soul, arises in truth from suitable reasons, which immutably exist in
that highest wisdom of God Himself, which no extent of place contains;
and which, while it is itself unchangeable, yet quits not one even of
those things which are changeable, because there is not one of them
that is not created by itself. For it was the unchangeable and
invisible reason of the wisdom of God, by which all things are created,
which caused not rods, but cattle, to be born from cattle; but that the
color of the cattle conceived should be in any degree influenced by the
variety of the rods, came to pass through the soul of the pregnant
cattle being affected through their eyes from without, and so according
to its own measure drawing inwardly within itself the rule of
formation, which it received from the innermost power of its own
Creator. How great, however, may be the power of the soul in affecting
and changing corporeal substance (although certainly it cannot be
called the creator of the body, because every cause of changeable and
sensible substance, and all its measure and number and weight, by which
are brought to pass both its being at all and its being of such and
such a nature, arise from the intelligible and unchangeable life, which
is above all things, and which reaches even to the most distant and
earthly things), is a very copious subject, and one not now necessary.
But I thought the act of Jacob about the cattle should be noticed, for
this reason, viz. in order that it might be perceived that, if the man
who thus placed those rods cannot be called the creator of the colors
in the lambs and kids; nor yet even the souls themselves of the
mothers, which colored the seeds conceived in the flesh by the image of
variegated color, conceived through the eyes of the body, so far as
nature permitted it; much less can it be said that the creators of the
frogs and serpents were the bad angels, through whom the magicians of
Pharaoh then made them.
__________________________________________________________________
[382] Gen. i. 20-25
[383] [Augustin is not alone in his belief that the bee is an exception
to the dictum; omne animal ex ovo. As late as 1744, Thorley, an English
"scientist," said that "the manner in which bees propagate their
species is entirely hid from the eyes of all men; and the most strict,
diligent, and curious observers and inquisitors have not been able to
discover it. It is a secret, and will remain a mystery. Dr. Butler says
that they do not copulate as other living creatures do." (Thorley:
Melisselogia. Section viii.) The observations of Huber and others have
disproved this opinion. Some infer that ignorance of physics proves
ignorance of philosophy and theology. The difference between matter and
mind is so great, that erroneous opinions in one province are
compatible with correct ones in the other. It does not follow that
because Augustin had wrong notions about bees, and no knowledge at all
of the steam engine and telegraph, his knowledge of God and the soul
was inferior to that of a modern materialist.--W.G.T.S.]
[384] [The English translator renders "virtus" in its secondary sense
of "goodness." Augustin employs it here, in its primary sense of
"energy," "force."--W.G.T.S.]
[385] 1 Cor. iii. 6
[386] Phil. i. 18
[387] Gen. xxx. 41
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--The Original Cause of All Things is from God.
16. For it is one thing to make and administer the creature from the
innermost and highest turning-point of causation, which He alone does
who is God the Creator; but quite another thing to apply some operation
from without in proportion to the strength and faculties assigned to
each by Him, so that what is created may come forth into being at this
time or at that, and in this or that way. For all these things in the
way of original and beginning have already been created in a kind of
texture of the elements, but they come forth when they get the
opportunity. [388] For as mothers are pregnant with young, so the world
itself is pregnant with the causes of things that are born; which are
not created in it, except from that highest essence, where nothing
either springs up or dies, either begins to be or ceases. But the
applying from without of adventitious causes, which, although they are
not natural, yet are to be applied according to nature, in order that
those things which are contained and hidden in the secret bosom of
nature may break forth and be outwardly created in some way by the
unfolding of the proper measures and numbers and weights which they
have received in secret from Him "who has ordered all things in measure
and number and weight:" [389] this is not only in the power of bad
angels, but also of bad men, as I have shown above by the example of
agriculture.
17. But lest the somewhat different condition of animals should trouble
any one, in that they have the breath of life with the sense of
desiring those things that are according to nature, and of avoiding
those things that are contrary to it; we must consider also, how many
men there are who know from what herbs or flesh, or from what juices or
liquids you please, of whatever sort, whether so placed or so buried,
or so bruised or so mixed, this or that animal is commonly born; yet
who can be so foolish as to dare to call himself the creator of these
animals? Is it, therefore, to be wondered at, if just as any, the most
worthless of men, can know whence such or such worms and flies are
produced; so the evil angels in proportion to the subtlety of their
perceptions discern in the more hidden seeds of the elements whence
frogs and serpents are produced, and so through certain and known
opportune combinations applying these seeds by secret movements, cause
them to be created, but do not create them? Only men do not marvel at
those things that are usually done by men. But if any one chance to
wonder at the quickness of those growths, in that those living beings
were so quickly made, let him consider how even this may be brought
about by men in proportion to the measure of human capability. For
whence is it that the same bodies generate worms more quickly in summer
than in winter, or in hotter than in colder places? Only these things
are applied by men with so much the more difficulty, in proportion as
their earthly and sluggish members are wanting in subtlety of
perception, and in rapidity of bodily motion. And hence it arises that
in the case of any kind of angels, in proportion as it is easier for
them to draw out the proximate causes from the elements, so much the
more marvellous is their rapidity in works of this kind.
18. But He only is the creator who is the chief former of these things.
Neither can any one be this, unless He with whom primarily rests the
measure, number, and weight of all things existing; and He is God the
one Creator, by whose unspeakable power it comes to pass, also, that
what these angels were able to do if they were permitted, they are
therefore not able to do because they are not permitted. For there is
no other reason why they who made frogs and serpents were not able to
make the most minute flies, unless because the greater power of God was
present prohibiting them, through the Holy Spirit; which even the
magicians themselves confessed, saying, "This is the finger of God."
[390] But what they are able to do by nature, yet cannot do, because
they are prohibited; and what the very condition of their nature itself
does not suffer them to do; it is difficult, nay, impossible, for man
to search out, unless through that gift of God which the apostle
mentions when he says, "To another the discerning of spirits." [391]
For we know that a man can walk, yet that he cannot do so if he is not
permitted; but that he cannot fly, even if he be permitted. So those
angels, also, are able to do certain things if they are permitted by
more powerful angels, according to the supreme commandment of God; but
cannot do certain other things, not even if they are permitted by them;
because He does not permit from whom they have received such and such a
measure of natural powers: who, even by His angels, does not usually
permit what He has given them power to be able to do.
19. Excepting, therefore, those corporeal things which are done in the
order of nature in a perfectly usual series of times, as e.g., the
rising and setting of the stars, the generations and deaths of animals,
the innumerable diversities of seeds and buds, the vapors and the
clouds, the snow and the rain, the lightnings and the thunder, the
thunderbolts and the hail, the winds and the fire, cold and heat, and
all like things; excepting also those which in the same order of nature
occur rarely, such as eclipses, unusual appearances of stars, and
monsters, and earthquakes, and such like;--all these, I say, are to be
excepted, of which indeed the first and chief cause is only the will of
God; whence also in the Psalm, when some things of this kind had been
mentioned, "Fire and hail, snow and vapor, stormy wind," lest any one
should think those to be brought about either by chance or only from
corporeal causes, or even from such as are spiritual, but exist apart
from the will of God, it is added immediately, "fulfilling His word."
[392]
__________________________________________________________________
[388] [This is the same as the theological distinction between
substances and their modifications. "The former," says Howe, "are the
proper object of creation strictly taken; the modifications of things
are not properly created, in the strictest sense of creation, but are
educed and brought forth out of those substantial things that were
themselves created, or made out of nothing."--Germs are originated ex
nihilo, and fall under creation proper; their evolution and development
takes place according to the nature and inherent force of the germ, and
falls under providence, in distinction from creation. See the writer's
Theological Essays, 133-137.--W.G.T.S.]
[389] Wisd. xi. 20
[390] Ex. vii. 12, and viii. 7, 18, 19
[391] 1 Cor. xii. 10
[392] Ps. cxlviii. 8
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--In How Many Ways the Creature is to Be Taken by Way of
Sign. The Eucharist.
Excepting, therefore, all these things as I just now said, there are
some also of another kind; which, although from the same corporeal
substance, are yet brought within reach of our senses in order to
announce something from God, and these are properly called miracles and
signs; yet is not the person of God Himself assumed in all things which
are announced to us by the Lord God. When, however, that person is
assumed, it is sometimes made manifest as an angel; sometimes in that
form which is not an angel in his own proper being, although it is
ordered and ministered by an angel. Again, when it is assumed in that
form which is not an angel in his own proper being; sometimes in this
case it is a body itself already existing, assumed after some kind of
change, in order to make that message manifest; sometimes it is one
that comes into being for the purpose, and that being accomplished, is
discarded. Just as, also, when men are the messengers, sometimes they
speak the words of God in their own person, as when it is premised,
"The Lord said," or, "Thus saith the Lord," [393] or any other such
phrase, but sometimes without any such prefix, they take upon
themselves the very person of God, as e.g.: "I will instruct thee, and
teach thee in the way wherein thou shalt go:" [394] so, not only in
word, but also in act, the signifying of the person of God is imposed
upon the prophet, in order that he may bear that person in the
ministering of the prophecy; just as he, for instance, bore that person
who divided his garment into twelve parts, and gave ten of them to the
servant of King Solomon, to the future king of Israel. [395] Sometimes,
also, a thing which was not a prophet in his own proper self, and which
existed already among earthly things, was assumed in order to signify
this; as Jacob, when he had seen the dream, upon waking up did with the
stone, which when asleep he had under his head. [396] Sometimes a thing
is made in the same kind, for the mere purpose; so as either to
continue a little while in existence, as that brazen serpent was able
to do which was lifted up in the wilderness, [397] and as written
records are able to do likewise; or so as to pass away after having
accomplished its ministry, as the bread made for the purpose is
consumed in the receiving of the sacrament.
20. But because these things are known to men, in that they are done by
men, they may well meet with reverence as being holy things, but they
cannot cause wonder as being miracles. And therefore those things which
are done by angels are the more wonderful to us, in that they are more
difficult and more known; but they are known and easy to them as being
their own actions. An angel speaks in the person of God to man, saying,
"I am the God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob;"
the Scripture having said just before, "The angel of the Lord appeared
to him." [398] And a man also speaks in the person of God, saying,
"Hear, O my people, and I will testify unto thee, O Israel: I am the
Lord thy God." [399] A rod was taken to serve as a sign, and was
changed into a serpent by angelical power; [400] but although that
power is wanting to man, yet a stone was taken also by man for a
similar sign. [401] There is a wide difference between the deed of the
angel and the deed of the man. The former is both to be wondered at and
to be understood, the latter only to be understood. That which is
understood from both, is perhaps one and the same; but those things
from which it is understood, are different. Just as if the name of God
were written both in gold and in ink; the former would be the more
precious, the latter the more worthless; yet that which is signified in
both is one and the same. And although the serpent that came from
Moses' rod signified the same thing as Jacob's stone, yet Jacob's stone
signified something better than did the serpents of the magicians. For
as the anointing of the stone signified Christ in the flesh, in which
He was anointed with the oil of gladness above His fellows; [402] so
the rod of Moses, turned into a serpent, signified Christ Himself made
obedient unto death, even the death of the cross. [403] Whence it is
said, "And as Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilderness, even so
must the Son of man be lifted up, that whosoever believeth in Him
should not perish, but have everlasting life;" [404] just as by gazing
on that serpent which was lifted up in the wilderness, they did not
perish by the bites of the serpents. For "our old man is crucified with
Him, that the body of sin might be destroyed." [405] For by the serpent
death is understood, which was wrought by the serpent in paradise,
[406] the mode of speech expressing the effect by the efficient.
Therefore the rod passed into the serpent, Christ into death; and the
serpent again into the rod, whole Christ with His body into the
resurrection; which body is the Church; [407] and this shall be in the
end of time, signified by the tail, which Moses held, in order that it
might return into a rod. [408] But the serpents of the magicians, like
those who are dead in the world, unless by believing in Christ they
shall have been as it were swallowed up by, [409] and have entered
into, His body, will not be able to rise again in Him. Jacob's stone,
therefore, as I said, signified something better than did the serpents
of the magicians; yet the deed of the magicians was much more
wonderful. But these things in this way are no hindrance to the
understanding of the matter; just as if the name of a man were written
in gold, and that of God in ink.
21. What man, again, knows how the angels made or took those clouds and
fires in order to signify the message they were bearing, even if we
supposed that the Lord or the Holy Spirit was manifested in those
corporeal forms? Just as infants do not know of that which is placed
upon the altar and consumed after the performance of the holy
celebration, whence or in what manner it is made, or whence it is taken
for religious use. And if they were never to learn from their own
experience or that of others, and never to see that species of thing
except during the celebration of the sacrament, when it is being
offered and given; and if it were told them by the most weighty
authority whose body and blood it is; they will believe nothing else,
except that the Lord absolutely appeared in this form to the eyes of
mortals, and that that liquid actually flowed from the piercing of a
side [410] which resembled this. But it is certainly a useful caution
to myself, that I should remember what my own powers are, and admonish
my brethren that they also remember what theirs are, lest human
infirmity pass on beyond what is safe. For how the angels do these
things, or rather, how God does these things by His angels, and how far
He wills them to be done even by the bad angels, whether by permitting,
or commanding, or compelling, from the hidden seat of His own supreme
power; this I can neither penetrate by the sight of the eyes, nor make
clear by assurance of reason, nor be carried on to comprehend it by
reach of intellect, so as to speak thereupon to all questions that may
be asked respecting these matters, as certainly as if I were an angel,
or a prophet, or an apostle. "For the thoughts of mortal men are
miserable, and our devices are but uncertain. For the corruptible body
presseth down the soul, and the earthly tabernacle weigheth down the
mind, that museth upon many things. And hardly do we guess aright at
things that are upon earth, and with labor do we find the things that
are before us; but the things that are in heaven, who hath searched
out?" But because it goes on to say, "And Thy counsel who hath known,
except Thou give wisdom, and send Thy Holy Spirit from above;" [411]
therefore we refrain indeed from searching out the things which are in
heaven, under which kind are contained both angelical bodies according
to their proper dignity, and any corporeal action of those bodies; yet,
according to the Spirit of God sent to us from above, and to His grace
imparted to our minds, I dare to say confidently, that neither God the
Father, nor His Word, nor His Spirit, which is the one God, is in any
way changeable in regard to that which He is, and whereby He is that
which He is; and much less is in this regard visible. Since there are
no doubt some things changeable, yet not visible, as are our thoughts,
and memories, and wills, and the whole incorporeal creature; but there
is nothing that is visible that is not also changeable.
__________________________________________________________________
[393] Jer. xxxi. 1, 2
[394] Ps. xxxii. 8
[395] 1 Kings xi. 30, 31
[396] Gen. xxviii. 18
[397] Num. xxi. 9
[398] Ex. iii. 6, 2
[399] Ps. lxxxi. 8, 10
[400] Ex. vii. 10
[401] Gen. xxviii. 18
[402] Ps. xlv. 7
[403] Phil. ii. 9
[404] John iii. 14, 15
[405] Rom. vi. 6
[406] Gen. iii
[407] Col. i. 24
[408] Ex. iv. 4
[409] Ex. vii. 12
[410] John xix. 34
[411] Wisd. ix. 14-17
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 11.--The Essence of God Never Appeared in Itself. Divine
Appearances to the Fathers Wrought by the Ministry of Angels. An
Objection Drawn from the Mode of Speech Removed. That the Appearing of
God to Abraham Himself, Just as that to Moses, Was Wrought by Angels.
The Same Thing is Proved by the Law Being Given to Moses by Angels.
What Has Been Said in This Book, and What Remains to Be Said in the
Next.
Wherefore the substance, or, if it is better so to say, the essence of
God, [412] wherein we understand, in proportion to our measure, in
however small a degree, the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit, since
it is in no way changeable, can in no way in its proper self be
visible.
22. It is manifest, accordingly, that all those appearances to the
fathers, when God was presented to them according to His own
dispensation, suitable to the times, were wrought through the creature.
And if we cannot discern in what manner He wrought them by ministry of
angels, yet we say that they were wrought by angels; but not from our
own power of discernment, lest we should seem to any one to be wise
beyond our measure, whereas we are wise so as to think soberly, as God
hath dealt to us the measure of faith; [413] and we believe, and
therefore speak. [414] For the authority is extant of the divine
Scriptures, from which our reason ought not to turn aside; nor by
leaving the solid support of the divine utterance, to fall headlong
over the precipice of its own surmisings, in matters wherein neither
the perceptions of the body rule, nor the clear reason of the truth
shines forth. Now, certainly, it is written most clearly in the Epistle
to the Hebrews, when the dispensation of the New Testament was to be
distinguished from the dispensation of the Old, according to the
fitness of ages and of times, that not only those visible things, but
also the word itself, was wrought by angels. For it is said thus: "But
to which of the angels said He at any time, Sit on my right hand, until
I make thine enemies thy footstool? Are they not all ministering
spirits, sent forth to minister for them who shall be heirs of
salvation?" [415] Whence it appears that all those things were not only
wrought by angels, but wrought also on our account, that is, on account
of the people of God, to whom is promised the inheritance of eternal
life. As it is written also to the Corinthians, "Now all these things
happened unto them in a figure: and they are written for our
admonition, upon whom the ends of the world are come." [416] And then,
demonstrating by plain consequence that as at that time the word was
spoken by the angels, so now by the Son; "Therefore," he says, "we
ought to give the more earnest heed to the things which we have heard,
lest at any time we should let them slip. For if the word spoken by
angels was steadfast, and every transgression and disobedience received
a just recompense of reward; how shall we escape, if we neglect so
great salvation?" And then, as though you asked, What salvation?--in
order to show that he is now speaking of the New Testament, that is, of
the word which was spoken not by angels, but by the Lord, he says,
"Which at the first began to be spoken by the Lord, and was confirmed
unto us by them that heard Him; God also bearing them witness, both
with signs and wonders, and with divers miracles, and gifts of the Holy
Ghost, according to His own will." [417]
23. But some one may say, Why then is it written, "The Lord said to
Moses;" and not, rather, The angel said to Moses? Because, when the
crier proclaims the words of the judge, it is not usually written in
the record, so and so the crier said, but so and so the judge. In like
manner also, when the holy prophet speaks, although we say, The prophet
said, we mean nothing else to be understood than that the Lord said;
and if we were to say, The Lord said, we should not put the prophet
aside, but only intimate who spake by him. And, indeed, these
Scriptures often reveal the angel to be the Lord, of whose speaking it
is from time to time said, "the Lord said," as we have shown already.
But on account of those who, since the Scripture in that place
specifies an angel, will have the Son of God Himself and in Himself to
be understood, because He is called an angel by the prophet, as
announcing the will of His Father and of Himself; I have therefore
thought fit to produce a plainer testimony from this epistle, where it
is not said by an angel, but "by angels."
24. For Stephen, too, in the Acts of the Apostles, relates these things
in that manner in which they are also written in the Old Testament:
"Men, brethren, and fathers, hearken," he says; "The God of glory
appeared unto our father Abraham, when he was in Mesopotamia." [418]
But lest any one should think that the God of glory appeared then to
the eyes of any mortal in that which He is in Himself, he goes on to
say that an angel appeared to Moses. "Then fled Moses," he says, "at
that saying, and was a stranger in the land of Midian, where he begat
two sons. And when forty years were expired, there appeared to him in
the wilderness of mount Sinai an angel of the Lord in a flame of fire
in a bush. When Moses saw it, he wondered at the sight: and as he drew
near to behold it, the voice of the Lord came unto him, saying, I am
the God of thy fathers, the God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac, and
the God of Jacob. Then Moses trembled, and durst not behold. Then said
the Lord to him, Put off thy shoes from thy feet," [419] etc. Here,
certainly, he speaks both of angel and of Lord; and of the same as the
God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob; as is
written in Genesis.
25. Can there be any one who will say that the Lord appeared to Moses
by an angel, but to Abraham by Himself? Let us not answer this question
from Stephen, but from the book itself, whence Stephen took his
narrative. For, pray, because it is written, "And the Lord God said
unto Abraham;" [420] and a little after, "And the Lord God appeared
unto Abraham;" [421] were these things, for this reason, not done by
angels? Whereas it is said in like manner in another place, "And the
Lord appeared to him in the plains of Mamre, as he sat in the tent door
in the heat of the day;" and yet it is added immediately, "And he lift
up his eyes and looked, and, lo, three men stood by him:" [422] of whom
we have already spoken. For how will these people, who either will not
rise from the words to the meaning, or easily throw themselves down
from the meaning to the words,--how, I say, will they be able to
explain that God was seen in three men, except they confess that they
were angels, as that which follows also shows? Because it is not said
an angel spoke or appeared to him, will they therefore venture to say
that the vision and voice granted to Moses was wrought by an angel
because it is so written, but that God appeared and spake in His own
substance to Abraham because there is no mention made of an angel? What
of the fact, that even in respect to Abraham an angel is not left
unmentioned? For when his son was ordered to be offered up as a
sacrifice, we read thus: "And it came to pass after these things that
God did tempt Abraham, and said unto him, Abraham: and he said, Behold,
here I am. And He said, Take now thy son, thine only son Isaac, whom
thou lovest, and get thee into the land of Moriah; and offer him there
for a burnt-offering upon one of the mountains that I will tell thee
of." Certainly God is here mentioned, not an angel. But a little
afterwards Scripture hath it thus: "And Abraham stretched forth his
hand, and took the knife to slay his son. And the angel of the Lord
called unto him out of heaven, and said, Abraham, Abraham: and he said,
Here am I. And he said, Lay not thine hand upon the lad, neither do
thou anything unto him." What can be answered to this? Will they say
that God commanded that Isaac should be slain, and that an angel
forbade it? and further, that the father himself, in opposition to the
decree of God, who had commanded that he should be slain, obeyed the
angel, who had bidden him spare him? Such an interpretation is to be
rejected as absurd. Yet not even for it, gross and abject as it is,
does Scripture leave any room, for it immediately adds: "For now I know
that thou fearest God, seeing thou hast not withheld thy son, thine
only son, on account of me." [423] What is "on account of me," except
on account of Him who had commanded him to be slain? Was then the God
of Abraham the same as the angel, or was it not rather God by an angel?
Consider what follows. Here, certainly, already an angel has been most
clearly spoken of; yet notice the context: "And Abraham lifted up his
eyes, and looked, and behold behind him a ram caught in a thicket by
his horns: and Abraham went and took the ram, and offered him up for a
burnt-offering in the stead of his son. And Abraham called the name of
that place, The Lord saw: [424] as it is said to this day, In the mount
the Lord was seen." [425] Just as that which a little before God said
by an angel, "For now I know that thou fearest God;" not because it was
to be understood that God then came to know, but that He brought it to
pass that through God Abraham himself came to know what strength of
heart he had to obey God, even to the sacrificing of his only son:
after that mode of speech in which the effect is signified by the
efficient,--as cold is said to be sluggish, because it makes men
sluggish; so that He was therefore said to know, because He had made
Abraham himself to know, who might well have not discerned the firmness
of his own faith, had it not been proved by such a trial. So here, too,
Abraham called the name of the place "The Lord saw," that is, caused
Himself to be seen. For he goes on immediately to say, "As it is said
to this day, In the mount the Lord was seen." Here you see the same
angel is called Lord: wherefore, unless because the Lord spake by the
angel? But if we pass on to that which follows, the angel altogether
speaks as a prophet, and reveals expressly that God is speaking by the
angel. "And the angel of the Lord," he says, "called unto Abraham out
of heaven the second time, and said, By myself I have sworn, saith the
Lord; for because thou hast done this thing, and hast not withheld thy
son, thine only son, on account of me," [426] etc. Certainly these
words, viz. that he by whom the Lord speaks should say, "Thus saith the
Lord," are commonly used by the prophets also. Does the Son of God say
of the Father, "The Lord saith," while He Himself is that Angel of the
Father? What then? Do they not see how hard pressed they are about
these three men who appeared to Abraham, when it had been said before,
"The Lord appeared to him?" Were they not angels because they are
called men? Let them read Daniel, saying, "Behold the man Gabriel."
[427]
26. But why do we delay any longer to stop their mouths by another most
clear and most weighty proof, where not an angel in the singular nor
men in the plural are spoken of, but simply angels; by whom not any
particular word was wrought, but the Law itself is most distinctly
declared to be given; which certainly none of the faithful doubts that
God gave to Moses for the control of the children of Israel, or yet,
that it was given by angels. So Stephen speaks: "Ye stiff-necked," he
says, "and uncircumcised in heart and ears, ye do always resist the
Holy Ghost: as your fathers did, so do ye. Which of the prophets have
not your fathers persecuted? and they have slain them which showed
before of the coming of the Just One; of whom ye have been now the
betrayers and murderers: who have received the Law by the disposition
of angels, [428] and have not kept it." [429] What is more evident than
this? What more strong than such an authority? The Law, indeed, was
given to that people by the disposition of angels; but the advent of
our Lord Jesus Christ was by it prepared and pre-announced; and He
Himself, as the Word of God, was in some wonderful and unspeakable
manner in the angels, by whose disposition the Law itself was given.
And hence He said in the Gospel, "For had ye believed Moses, ye would
have believed me; for he wrote of me." [430] Therefore then the Lord
was speaking by the angels; and the son of God, who was to be the
Mediator of God and men, from the seed of Abraham, was preparing His
own advent by the angels, that He might find some by whom He would be
received, confessing themselves guilty, whom the Law unfulfilled had
made transgressors. And hence the apostle also says to the Galatians,
"Wherefore then serveth the Law? It was added because of
transgressions, till the seed should come to whom the promise was made,
which [seed] was ordered [431] through angels in the hand of a
mediator;" [432] that is, ordered through angels in His own hand. For
He was not born in limitation, but in power. But you learn in another
place that he does not mean any one of the angels as a mediator, but
the Lord Jesus Christ Himself, in so far as He deigned to be made man:
"For there is one God," he says, "and one Mediator between God and man,
the man Christ Jesus." [433] Hence that passover in the killing of the
lamb: [434] hence all those things which are figuratively spoken in the
Law, of Christ to come in the flesh, and to suffer, but also to rise
again, which Law was given by the disposition of angels; in which
angels, were certainly the Father, and the Son, and the Holy Spirit;
and in which, sometimes the Father, sometimes the Son, sometimes the
Holy Spirit, and sometimes God, without any distinction of person, was
figuratively signified by them, although appearing in visible and
sensible forms, yet by His own creature, not by His substance, in order
to the seeing of which, hearts are cleansed through all those things
which are seen by the eyes and heard by the ears.
27. But now, as I think, that which we had undertaken to show in this
book has been sufficiently discussed and demonstrated, according to our
capacity; and it has been established, both by probable reason, so far
as a man, or rather, so far as I am able, and by strength of authority,
so far as the divine declarations from the Holy Scriptures have been
made clear, that those words and bodily appearances which were given to
these ancient fathers of ours before the incarnation of the Saviour,
when God was said to appear, were wrought by angels: whether themselves
speaking or doing something in the person of God, as we have shown that
the prophets also were wont to do, or assuming from the creature that
which they themselves were not, wherein God might be shown in a figure
to men; which manner of showing also, Scripture teaches by many
examples, that the prophets, too, did not omit. It remains, therefore,
now for us to consider,--since both in the Lord as born of a virgin,
and in the Holy Spirit descending in a corporeal form like a dove,
[435] and in the tongues like as of fire, which appeared with a sound
from heaven on the day of Pentecost, after the ascension of the Lord,
[436] it was not the Word of God Himself by His own substance, in which
He is equal and eternal with the Father, nor the Spirit of the Father
and of the Son by His own substance, in which He Himself also is equal
and co-eternal with both, but assuredly a creature, such as could be
formed and exist in these fashions, which appeared to corporeal and
mortal senses,--it remains, I say, to consider what difference there is
between these manifestations and those which were proper to the Son of
God and to the Holy Spirit, although wrought by the visible creature;
[437] which subject we shall more conveniently begin in another book.
__________________________________________________________________
[412] ["Substance," from sub stans, is a passive term, denoting latent
and potential being. "Essence," from esse, is an active term, denoting
energetic being. The schoolmen, as Augustin does here, preferred the
latter term to the former, though employing both to designate the
divine nature.--W.G.T.S.]
[413] Rom. xii. 3
[414] 2 Cor. iv. 13
[415] Heb. i. 13, 14
[416] 1 Cor. x. 11
[417] Heb. ii. 1-4
[418] Acts vii. 2
[419] Ex. ii. 15 and iii. 7, and Acts vii. 29-33
[420] Gen. xii. 1
[421] Gen. xvii. 1
[422] Gen. xviii. 1, 2
[423] Propter me
[424] Dominus vidit
[425] Dominus visus est
[426] Gen. xxii
[427] Dan. ix. 21
[428] In edictis angelorum
[429] Acts vii. 51-53
[430] John v. 46
[431] Dispositum
[432] Gal. iii. 19
[433] 1 Tim. ii. 5
[434] Ex. xii
[435] Matt. iii. 16
[436] Acts ii. 1-4
[437] [The reference here is to the difference between a theophany, and
an incarnation; already alluded to, in the note on p. 149.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
Book IV.
------------------------
Explains for what the Son of God was sent, viz, that by Christ's dying
for sinners, we were to be convinced how great is God's love for us,
and also what manner of men we are whom He loved. That the Word came in
the flesh, to the purpose also of enabling us to be so cleansed as to
contemplate and cleave to God. That our double death was abolished by
His death, being one and single. And hereupon is discussed, how the
single of our Saviour harmonizes to salvation with our double; and the
perfection is treated at length of the senary number, to which the
ratio itself of single to double is reducible. That all are gathered
together from many into one by the one Mediator of life, viz. Christ,
through Whom alone is wrought the true cleansing of the soul. Further
it is demonstrated that the Son of God, although made less by being
sent, on account of the form of a servant which He took, is not
therefore less than the Father according to the form of God, because He
was sent by Himself: and that the same account is to be given of the
sending of the Holy Spirit.
__________________________________________________________________
Preface.--The Knowledge of God is to Be Sought from God.
1. Theknowledge of things terrestrial and celestial is commonly thought
much of by men. Yet those doubtless judge better who prefer to that
knowledge, the knowledge of themselves; and that mind is more
praiseworthy which knows even its own weakness, than that which,
without regard to this, searches out, and even comes to know, the ways
of the stars, or which holds fast such knowledge already acquired,
while ignorant of the way by which itself to enter into its own proper
health and strength. But if any one has already become awake towards
God, kindled by the warmth of the Holy Spirit, and in the love of God
has become vile in his own eyes; and through wishing, yet not having
strength to come in unto Him, and through the light He gives, has given
heed to himself, and has found himself, and has learned that his own
filthiness cannot mingle with His purity; and feels it sweet to weep
and to entreat Him, that again and again He will have compassion, until
he have put off all his wretchedness; and to pray confidently, as
having already received of free gift the pledge of salvation through
his only Saviour and Enlightener of man:--such an one, so acting, and
so lamenting, knowledge does not puff up, because charity edifieth;
[438] for he has preferred knowledge to knowledge, he has preferred to
know his own weakness, rather than to know the walls of the world, the
foundations of the earth, and the pinnacles of heaven. And by obtaining
this knowledge, he has obtained also sorrow; [439] but sorrow for
straying away from the desire of reaching his own proper country, and
the Creator of it, his own blessed God. And if among men such as these,
in the family of Thy Christ, O Lord my God, I groan among Thy poor,
give me out of Thy bread to answer men who do not hunger and thirst
after righteousness, but are sated and abound. [440] But it is the vain
image of those things that has sated them, not Thy truth, which they
have repelled and shrunk from, and so fall into their own vanity. I
certainly know how many figments the human heart gives birth to. And
what is my own heart but a human heart? But I pray the God of my heart,
that I may not vomit forth (eructuem) into these writings any of these
figments for solid truths, but that there may pass into them only what
the breath of His truth has breathed into me; cast out though I am from
the sight of His eyes, [441] and striving from afar to return by the
way which the divinity of His only-begotten Son has made by His
humanity. And this truth, changeable though I am, I so far drink in, as
far as in it I see nothing changeable: neither in place and time, as is
the case with bodies; nor in time alone, and in a certain sense place,
as with the thoughts of our own spirits; nor in time alone, and not
even in any semblance of place, as with some of the reasonings of our
own minds. For the essence of God, whereby He is, has altogether
nothing changeable, neither in eternity, nor in truth, nor in will;
since there truth is eternal, love eternal; and there love is true,
eternity true; and there eternity is loved, and truth is loved.
__________________________________________________________________
[438] 1 Cor. viii. 1
[439] Eccles. i. 18
[440] Matt. v. 6
[441] Ps. xxxi. 22
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--We are Made Perfect by Acknowledgement of Our Own Weakness.
The Incarnate Word Dispels Our Darkness.
2. But since we are exiled from the unchangeable joy, yet neither cut
off nor torn away from it so that we should not seek eternity, truth,
blessedness, even in those changeable and temporal things (for we wish
neither to die, nor to be deceived, nor to be troubled); visions have
been sent to us from heaven suitable to our state of pilgrimage, in
order to remind us that what we seek is not here, but that from this
pilgrimage we must return thither, whence unless we originated we
should not here seek these things. And first we have had to be
persuaded how much God loved us, lest from despair we should not dare
to look up to Him. And we needed to be shown also what manner of men we
are whom He loved, lest being proud, as if of our own merits, we should
recede the more from Him, and fail the more in our own strength. And
hence He so dealt with us, that we might the rather profit by His
strength, and that so in the weakness of humility the virtue of charity
might be perfected. And this is intimated in the Psalm, where it is
said, "Thou, O God, didst send a spontaneous rain, whereby Thou didst
make Thine inheritance perfect, when it was weary." [442] For by
"spontaneous rain" nothing else is meant than grace, not rendered to
merit, but given freely, [443] whence also it is called grace; for He
gave it, not because we were worthy, but because He willed. And knowing
this, we shall not trust in ourselves; and this is to be made "weak."
But He Himself makes us perfect, who says also to the Apostle Paul, "My
grace is sufficient for thee, for my strength is made perfect in
weakness." [444] Man, then, was to be persuaded how much God loved us,
and what manner of men we were whom He loved; the former, lest we
should despair; the latter, lest we should be proud. And this most
necessary topic the apostle thus explains: "But God commendeth," he
says, "His love towards us, in that, while we were yet sinners, Christ
died for us. Much more then, being now justified by His blood, we shall
be saved from wrath through Him. For if, when we were enemies, we were
reconciled to God by the death of His Son; much more, being reconciled,
we shall be saved by His life." [445] Also in another place: "What," he
says, "shall we then say to these things? If God be for us, who can be
against us? He that spared not His own Son, but delivered Him up for us
all, how has He not with Him also freely given us all things?" [446]
Now that which is declared to us as already done, was shown also to the
ancient righteous as about to be done; that through the same faith they
themselves also might be humbled, and so made weak; and might be made
weak, and so perfected.
3. Because therefore the Word of God is One, by which all things were
made, which is the unchangeable truth, all things are simultaneously
therein, potentially and unchangeably; not only those things which are
now in this whole creation, but also those which have been and those
which shall be. And therein they neither have been, nor shall be, but
only are; and all things are life, and all things are one; or rather it
is one being and one life. For all things were so made by Him, that
whatsoever was made in them was not made in Him, but was life in Him.
Since, "in the beginning," the Word was not made, but "the Word was
with God, and the Word was God, and all things were made by Him;"
neither had all things been made by Him, unless He had Himself been
before all things and not made. But in those things which were made by
Him, even body, which is not life, would not have been made by Him,
except it had been life in Him before it was made. For "that which was
made was already life in Him;" and not life of any kind soever: for the
soul also is the life of the body, but this too is made, for it is
changeable; and by what was it made, except by the unchangeable Word of
God? For "all things were made by Him; and without Him was not anything
made that was made." "What, therefore, was made was already life in
Him;" and not any kind of life, but "the life [which] was the light of
men;" the light certainly of rational minds, by which men differ from
beasts, and therefore are men. Therefore not corporeal light, which is
the light of the flesh, whether it shine from heaven, or whether it be
lighted by earthly fires; nor that of human flesh only, but also that
of beasts, and down even to the minutest of worms. For all these things
see that light: but that life was the light of men; nor is it far from
any one of us, for in it "we live, and move, and have our being." [447]
__________________________________________________________________
[442] Ps. lxviii. 9.--Pluviam voluntariam.
[443] Gratis.
[444] 2 Cor. xii. 9
[445] Rom. v. 8-10--Donavit.
[446] Rom. viii. 31, 32
[447] Acts xvii. 27, 28
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--How We are Rendered Apt for the Perception of Truth Through
the Incarnate Word.
4. But "the light shineth in darkness, and the darkness comprehended it
not." Now the "darkness" is the foolish minds of men, made blind by
vicious desires and unbelief. And that the Word, by whom all things
were made, might care for these and heal them, "The Word was made
flesh, and dwelt among us." For our enlightening is the partaking of
the Word, namely, of that life which is the light of men. But for this
partaking we were utterly unfit, and fell short of it, on account of
the uncleanness of sins. Therefore we were to be cleansed. And further,
the one cleansing of the unrighteous and of the proud is the blood of
the Righteous One, and the humbling of God Himself; [448] that we might
be cleansed through Him, made as He was what we are by nature, and what
we are not by sin, that we might contemplate God, which by nature we
are not. For by nature we are not God: by nature we are men, by sin we
are not righteous. Wherefore God, made a righteous man, interceded with
God for man the sinner. For the sinner is not congruous to the
righteous, but man is congruous to man. By joining therefore to us the
likeness of His humanity, He took away the unlikeness of our
unrighteousness; and by being made partaker of our mortality, He made
us partakers of His divinity. For the death of the sinner springing
from the necessity of comdemnation is deservedly abolished by the death
of the Righteous One springing from the free choice of His compassion,
while His single [death and resurrection] answers to our double [death
and resurrection]. [449] For this congruity, or suitableness, or
concord, or consonance, or whatever more appropriate word there may be,
whereby one is [united] to two, is of great weight in all compacting,
or better, perhaps, co-adaptation, of the creature. For (as it just
occurs to me) what I mean is precisely that co-adaptation which the
Greeks call harmonia. However this is not the place to set forth the
power of that consonance of single to double which is found especially
in us, and which is naturally so implanted in us (and by whom, except
by Him who created us?), that not even the ignorant can fail to
perceive it, whether when singing themselves or hearing others. For by
this it is that treble and bass voices are in harmony, so that any one
who in his note departs from it, offends extremely, not only trained
skill, of which the most part of men are devoid, but the very sense of
hearing. To demonstrate this, needs no doubt a long discourse; but any
one who knows it, may make it plain to the very ear in a rightly
ordered monochord.
__________________________________________________________________
[448] John i. 1, 14
[449] [This singleness and doubleness is explained in chapter
3.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--The One Death and Resurrection of The Body of Christ
Harmonizes with Our Double Death and Resurrection of Body and Soul, to
the Effect of Salvation. In What Way the Single Death of Christ is
Bestowed Upon Our Double Death.
5. But for our present need we must discuss, so far as God gives us
power, in what manner the single of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ
answers to, and is, so to say, in harmony with our double to the effect
of salvation. We certainly, as no Christian doubts, are dead both in
soul and body: in soul, because of sin; in body, because of the
punishment of sin, and through this also in body because of sin. And to
both these parts of ourselves, that is, both to soul and to body, there
was need both of a medicine and of resurrection, that what had been
changed for the worse might be renewed for the better. Now the death of
the soul is ungodliness, and the death of the body is corruptibility,
through which comes also a departure of the soul from the body. For as
the soul dies when God leaves it, so the body dies when the soul leaves
it; whereby the former becomes foolish, the latter lifeless. For the
soul is raised up again by repentance, and the renewing of life is
begun in the body still mortal by faith, by which men believe on Him
who justifies the ungodly; [450] and it is increased and strengthened
by good habits from day to day, as the inner man is renewed more and
more. [451] But the body, being as it were the outward man, the longer
this life lasts is so much the more corrupted, either by age or by
disease, or by various afflictions, until it come to that last
affliction which all call death. And its resurrection is delayed until
the end; when also our justification itself shall be perfected
ineffably. For then we shall be like Him, for we shall see Him as He
is. [452] But now, so long as the corruptible body presseth down the
soul, [453] and human life upon earth is all temptation, [454] in His
sight shall no man living be justified, [455] in comparison of the
righteousness in which we shall be made equal with the angels, and of
the glory which shall be revealed in us. But why mention more proofs
respecting the difference between the death of the soul and the death
of the body, when the Lord in one sentence of the Gospel has made
either death easily distinguishable by any one from the other, where He
says, "Let the dead bury their dead"? [456] For burial was the fitting
disposal of a dead body. But by those who were to bury it He meant
those who were dead in soul by the impiety of unbelief, such, namely,
as are awakened when it is said, "Awake thou that sleepest, and arise
from the dead, and Christ shall give thee light." [457] And there is a
death which the apostle denounces, saying of the widow, "But she that
liveth in pleasure is dead while she liveth." [458] Therefore the soul,
which was before ungodly and is now godly, is said to have come alive
again from the dead and to live, on account of the righteousness of
faith. But the body is not only said to be about to die, on account of
that departure of the soul which will be; but on account of the great
infirmity of flesh and blood it is even said to be now dead, in a
certain place in the Scriptures, namely, where the apostle says, that
"the body is dead because of sin, but the spirit is life because of
righteousness." [459] Now this life is wrought by faith, "since the
just shall live by faith." [460] But what follows? "But if the spirit
of Him that raised up Jesus from the dead dwell in you, He that raised
up Christ from the dead shall also quicken your mortal bodies by His
Spirit which dwelleth in you." [461]
6. Therefore on this double death of ours our Saviour bestowed His own
single death; and to cause both our resurrections, He appointed
beforehand and set forth in mystery and type His own one resurrection.
For He was not a sinner or ungodly, that, as though dead in spirit, He
should need to be renewed in the inner man, and to be recalled as it
were to the life of righteousness by repentance; but being clothed in
mortal flesh, and in that alone dying, in that alone rising again, in
that alone did He answer to both for us; since in it was wrought a
mystery as regards the inner man, and a type as regards the outer. For
it was in a mystery as regards our inner man, so as to signify the
death of our soul, that those words were uttered, not only in the
Psalm, but also on the cross: "My God, my God, why hast Thou forsaken
me?" [462] To which words the apostle agrees, saying, "Knowing this,
that our old man is crucified with Him, that the body of sin might be
destroyed, that henceforth we should not serve sin;" since by the
crucifixion of the inner man are understood the pains of repentance,
and a certain wholesome agony of self-control, by which death the death
of ungodliness is destroyed, and in which death God has left us. And so
the body of sin is destroyed through such a cross, that now we should
not yield our members as instruments of unrighteousness unto sin. [463]
Because, if even the inner man certainly is renewed day by day, [464]
yet undoubtedly it is old before it is renewed. For that is done
inwardly of which the same apostle speaks: "Put off the old man, and
put on the new;" which he goes on to explain by saying, "Wherefore,
putting away lying, speak every man truth." [465] But where is lying
put away, unless inwardly, that he who speaketh the truth from his
heart may inhabit the holy hill of God? [466] But the resurrection of
the body of the Lord is shown to belong to the mystery of our own inner
resurrection, where, after He had risen, He says to the woman, "Touch
me not, for I am not yet ascended to my Father;" [467] with which
mystery the apostle's words agree, where he says, "If ye then be risen
with Christ, seek those things which are above, where Christ sitteth on
the right hand of God; set your thoughts [468] on things above." [469]
For not to touch Christ, unless when He had ascended to the Father,
means not to have thoughts [470] of Christ after a fleshly manner.
Again, the death of the flesh of our Lord contains a type of the death
of our outer man, since it is by such suffering most of all that He
exhorts His servants that they should not fear those who kill the body,
but are not able to kill the soul. [471] Wherefore the apostle says,
"That I may fill up that which is behind of the afflictions of Christ
in my flesh." [472] And the resurrection of the body of the Lord is
found to contain a type of the resurrection of our outward man, because
He says to His disciples, "Handle me, and see; for a spirit hath not
flesh and bones, as ye see me have." [473] And one of the disciples
also, handling His scars, exclaimed, "My Lord and my God!" [474] And
whereas the entire integrity of that flesh was apparent, this was shown
in that which He had said when exhorting His disciples: "There shall
not a hair of your head perish." [475] For how comes it that first is
said, "Touch me not, for I am not yet ascended to my Father;" [476] and
how comes it that before He ascends to the Father, He actually is
touched by the disciples: unless because in the former the mystery of
the inner man was intimated, in the latter a type was given of the
outer man? Or can any one possibly be so without understanding, and so
turned away from the truth, as to dare to say that He was touched by
men before He ascended, but by women when He had ascended? It was on
account of this type, which went before in the Lord, of our future
resurrection in the body, that the apostle says, "Christ the
first-fruits; afterward they that are Christ's." [477] For it was the
resurrection of the body to which this place refers, on account of
which he also says, "Who has changed our vile body, that it may be
fashioned like unto His glorious body." [478] The one death therefore
of our Saviour brought salvation to our double death, and His one
resurrection wrought for us two resurrections; since His body in both
cases, that is, both in His death and in His resurrection, was
ministered to us by a kind of healing suitableness, both as a mystery
of the inner man, and as a type of the outer.
__________________________________________________________________
[450] Rom. iv. 5
[451] 2 Cor. iv. 16
[452] 1 John iii. 1
[453] Wisd. ix. 15
[454] Job. vii. 1
[455] Ps. cxliii. 2
[456] Matt. viii. 22
[457] Eph. v. 14
[458] 1 Tim. v. 6
[459] Rom. viii. 10
[460] Rom. i. 17
[461] Rom. viii. 10, 11
[462] Ps. xxii. 1, and Matt. xxvii. 46
[463] Rom. vi. 6, 13
[464] 2 Cor. iv. 16
[465] Eph. iv. 22-25
[466] Ps. xv. 1, 3
[467] John xx. 17
[468] Sapite
[469] Col. iii. 1, 2
[470] Sapere
[471] Matt. x. 28
[472] Col. i. 24
[473] Luke xxiv. 39
[474] John xx. 28
[475] Luke xxi. 18
[476] John xx. 17
[477] 1 Cor. xv. 23
[478] Phil. iii. 21
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--The Ratio of the Single to the Double Comes from the
Perfection of the Senary Number. The Perfection of The Senary Number is
Commended in the Scriptures. The Year Abounds in The Senary Number.
7. Now this ratio of the single to the double arises, no doubt, from
the ternary number, since one added to two makes three; but the whole
which these make reaches to the senary, for one and two and three make
six. And this number is on that account called perfect, because it is
completed in its own parts: for it has these three, sixth, third, and
half; nor is there any other part found in it, which we can call an
aliquot part. The sixth part of it, then, is one; the third part, two;
the half, three. But one and two and three complete the same six. And
Holy Scripture commends to us the perfection of this number, especially
in this, that God finished His works in six days, and on the sixth day
man was made in the image of God. [479] And the Son of God came and was
made the Son of man, that He might re-create us after the image of God,
in the sixth age of the human race. For that is now the present age,
whether a thousand years apiece are assigned to each age, or whether we
trace out memorable and remarkable epochs or turning-points of time in
the divine Scriptures, so that the first age is to be found from Adam
until Noah, and the second thence onwards to Abraham, and then next,
after the division of Matthew the evangelist, from Abraham to David,
from David to the carrying away to Babylon, and from thence to the
travail of the Virgin, [480] which three ages joined to those other two
make five. Accordingly, the nativity of the Lord began the sixth, which
is now going onwards until the hidden end of time. We recognize also in
this senary number a kind of figure of time, in that threefold mode of
division, by which we compute one portion of time before the Law; a
second, under the Law; a third, under grace. In which last time we have
received the sacrament of renewal, that we may be renewed also in the
end of time, in every part, by the resurrection of the flesh, and so
may be made whole from our entire infirmity, not only of soul, but also
of body. And thence that woman is understood to be a type of the
church, who was made whole and upright by the Lord, after she had been
bowed by infirmity through the binding of Satan. For those words of the
Psalm lament such hidden enemies: "They bowed down my soul." [481] And
this woman had her infirmity eighteen years, which is thrice six. And
the months of eighteen years are found in number to be the cube of six,
viz. six times six times six. Nearly, too, in the same place in the
Gospel is that fig tree, which was convicted also by the third year of
its miserable barrenness. But intercession was made for it, that it
might be let alone that year, that year, that if it bore fruit, well;
if otherwise, it should be cut down. [482] For both three years belong
to the same threefold division, and the months of three years make the
square of six, which is six times six.
8. A single year also, if the whole twelve months are taken into
account, which are made up of thirty days each (for the month that has
been kept from of old is that which the revolution of the moon
determines), abounds in the number six. For that which six is, in the
first order of numbers, which consists of units up to ten, that sixty
is in the second order, which consists of tens up to a hundred. Sixty
days, then, are a sixth part of the year. Further, if that which stands
as the sixth of the second order is multiplied by the sixth of the
first order, then we make six times sixty, i.e. three hundred and sixty
days, which are the whole twelve months. But since, as the revolution
of the moon determines the month for men, so the year is marked by the
revolution of the sun; and five days and a quarter of a day remain,
that the sun may fulfill its course and end the year; for four quarters
make one day, which must be intercalated in every fourth year, which
they call bissextile, that the order of time may not be disturbed: if
we consider, also, these five days and a quarter themselves, the number
six prevails in them. First, because, as it is usual to compute the
whole from a part, we must not call it five days, but rather six,
taking the quarter days for one day. Next, because five days themselves
are the sixth part of a month; while the quarter of a day contains six
hours. For the entire day, i.e. including its night, is twenty-four
hours, of which the fourth part, which is a quarter of a day, is found
to be six hours. So much in the course of the year does the sixth
number prevail.
__________________________________________________________________
[479] Gen. i. 27
[480] Matt. i. 17
[481] Ps. lvii. 6
[482] Luke xiii. 6-17
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--The Number Six is Also Commended in the Building Up of the
Body of Christ and of the Temple at Jerusalem.
9. And not without reason is the number six understood to be put for a
year in the building up of the body of the Lord, as a figure of which
He said that He would raise up in three days the temple destroyed by
the Jews. For they said, "Forty and six years was this temple in
building." [483] And six times forty-six makes two hundred and
seventy-six. And this number of days completes nine months and six
days, which are reckoned, as it were, ten months for the travail of
women; not because all come to the sixth day after the ninth month, but
because the perfection itself of the body of the Lord is found to have
been brought in so many days to the birth, as the authority of the
church maintains upon the tradition of the elders. For He is believed
to have been conceived on the 25th of March, upon which day also He
suffered; so the womb of the Virgin, in which He was conceived, where
no one of mortals was begotten, corresponds to the new grave in which
He was buried, wherein was never man laid, [484] neither before nor
since. But He was born, according to tradition, upon December the 25th.
If, then you reckon from that day to this you find two hundred and
seventy-six days which is forty-six times six. And in this number of
years the temple was built, because in that number of sixes the body of
the Lord was perfected; which being destroyed by the suffering of
death, He raised again on the third day. For "He spake this of the
temple of His body," [485] as is declared by the most clear and solid
testimony of the Gospel; where He said, "For as Jonas was three days
and three nights in the whale's belly, so shall the Son of man be three
days and three nights in the heart of the earth." [486]
__________________________________________________________________
[483] John ii. 20
[484] John xix. 41, 42
[485] John ii. 19-21
[486] Matt. xii. 40
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--The Three Days of the Resurrection, in Which Also the Ratio
of Single to Double is Apparent.
10. Scripture again witnesses that the space of those three days
themselves was not whole and entire, but the first day is counted as a
whole from its last part, and the third day is itself also counted as a
whole from its first part; but the intervening day, i.e. the second
day, was absolutely a whole with its twenty-four hours, twelve of the
day and twelve of the night. For He was crucified first by the voices
of the Jews in the third hour, when it was the sixth day of the week.
Then He hung on the cross itself at the sixth hour, and yielded up His
spirit at the ninth hour. [487] But He was buried, "now when the even
was come," as the words of the evangelist express it; [488] which
means, at the end of the day. Wheresoever then you begin,--even if some
other explanation can be given, so as not to contradict the Gospel of
John, [489] but to understand that He was suspended on the cross at the
third hour,--still you cannot make the first day an entire day. It will
be reckoned then an entire day from its last part, as the third from
its first part. For the night up to the dawn, when the resurrection of
the Lord was made known, belongs to the third day; because God (who
commanded the light to shine out of darkness, [490] that through the
grace of the New Testament and the partaking of the resurrection of
Christ the words might be spoken to us "For ye were sometimes darkness,
but now are ye light in the Lord" [491] ) intimates to us in some way
that the day takes its beginning from the night. For as the first days
of all were reckoned from light to night, on account of the future fall
of man; [492] so these on account of the restoration of man, are
reckoned from darkness to light. From the hour, then, of His death to
the dawn of the resurrection are forty hours, counting in also the
ninth hour itself. And with this number agrees also His life upon earth
of forty days after His resurrection. And this number is most
frequently used in Scripture to express the mystery of perfection in
the fourfold world. For the number ten has a certain perfection, and
that multiplied by four makes forty. But from the evening of the burial
to the dawn of the resurrection are thirty-six hours which is six
squared. And this is referred to that ratio of the single to the double
wherein there is the greatest consonance of co-adaptation. For twelve
added to twenty-four suits the ratio of single added to double and
makes thirty-six: namely a whole night with a whole day and a whole
night, and this not without the mystery which I have noticed above. For
not unfitly do we liken the spirit to the day and the body to the
night. For the body of the Lord in His death and resurrection was a
figure of our spirit and a type of our body. In this way, then, also
that ratio of the single to the double is apparent in the thirty-six
hours, when twelve are added to twenty-four. As to the reasons, indeed,
why these numbers are so put in the Holy Scriptures, other people may
trace out other reasons, either such that those which I have given are
to be preferred to them, or such as are equally probable with mine, or
even more probable than they are; but there is no one surely so foolish
or so absurd as to contend that they are so put in the Scriptures for
no purpose at all, and that there are no mystical reasons why those
numbers are there mentioned. But those reasons which I have here given,
I have either gathered from the authority of the church, according to
the tradition of our forefathers, or from the testimony of the divine
Scriptures, or from the nature itself of numbers and of similitudes. No
sober person will decide against reason, no Christian against the
Scriptures, no peaceable person against the church.
__________________________________________________________________
[487] Matt. xxvii. 23-50
[488] Mark xv. 42-46
[489] John xix. 14
[490] 2 Cor. iv. 6
[491] Eph. v. 8
[492] Gen. i. 4, 5
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--In What Manner We are Gathered from Many into One Through
One Mediator.
11. This mystery, this sacrifice, this priest, this God, before He was
sent and came, being made of a woman--of Him, all those things which
appeared to our fathers in a sacred and mystical way by angelical
miracles, or which were done by the fathers themselves, were
similitudes; in order that every creature by its acts might speak in
some way of that One who was to be, in whom there was to be salvation
in the recovery of all from death. For because by the wickedness of
ungodliness we had recoiled and fallen away in discord from the one
true and supreme God, and had in many things become vain, being
distracted through many things and cleaving fast to many things; it was
needful, by the decree and command of God in His mercy, that those same
many things should join in proclaiming the One that should come, and
that One should come so proclaimed by these many things, and that these
many things should join in witnessing that this One had come; and that
so, freed from the burden of these many things, we should come to that
One, and dead as we were in our souls by many sins, and destined to die
in the flesh on account of sin, that we should love that One who,
without sin, died in the flesh for us; and by believing in Him now
raised again, and by rising again with Him in the spirit through faith,
that we should be justified by being made one in the one righteous One;
and that we should not despair of our own resurrection in the flesh
itself, when we consider that the one Head had gone before us the many
members; in whom, being now cleansed through faith, and then renewed by
sight, and through Him as mediator reconciled to God, we are to cleave
to the One, to feast upon the One, to continue one.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--In What Manner Christ Wills that All Shall Be One in
Himself.
12. So the Son of God Himself, the Word of God, Himself also the
Mediator between God and men, the Son of man, [493] equal to the Father
through the unity of the Godhead, and partaker with us by the taking
upon Him of humanity, interceding for us with the Father in that He was
man, [494] yet not concealing that He was God, one with the Father,
among other things speaks thus: "Neither pray I for these alone," He
says, "but for them also which shall believe on me through their word;
that they all may be one; as Thou, Father, art in me, and I in Thee,
that they also may be one in us: that the world may believe that Thou
hast sent me. And the glory which Thou gavest me I have given them;
that they may be one, even as we are one." [495]
__________________________________________________________________
[493] 1 Tim. ii. 5
[494] Rom. viii. 34
[495] John xvii. 20-22
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--The Same Argument Continued.
He did not say, I and they are one thing; [496] although, in that He is
the head of the church which is His body, [497] He might have said, and
they are, not one thing, [498] but one person, [499] because the head
and the body is one Christ; but in order to show His own Godhead
consubstantial with the Father (for which reason He says in another
place, "I and my Father are one" [500] ), in His own kind, that is, in
the consubstantial parity of the same nature, He wills His own to be
one, [501] but in Himself; since they could not be so in themselves,
separated as they are one from another by divers pleasures and desires
and uncleannesses of sin; whence they are cleansed through the
Mediator, that they may be one [502] in Him, not only through the same
nature in which all become from mortal men equal to the angels, but
also through the same will most harmoniously conspiring to the same
blessedness, and fused in some way by the fire of charity into one
spirit. For to this His words come, "That they may be one, even as we
are one;" namely, that as the Father and Son are one, not only in
equality of substance, but also in will, so those also may be one,
between whom and God the Son is mediator, not only in that they are of
the same nature, but also through the same union of love. And then He
goes on thus to intimate the truth itself, that He is the Mediator,
through whom we are reconciled to God, by saying, "I in them, and Thou
in me, that they may be made perfect in one." [503]
__________________________________________________________________
[496] Unum
[497] Eph. i. 22, 23
[498] Unum
[499] Unus
[500] John x. 30; unum.
[501] Unum
[502] Unum
[503] John xvii. 23
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--As Christ is the Mediator of Life, So the Devil is the
Mediator of Death.
13. Therein is our true peace and firm bond of union with our Creator,
that we should be purified and reconciled through the Mediator of life,
as we had been polluted and alienated, and so had departed from Him,
through the mediator of death. For as the devil through pride led man
through pride to death; so Christ through lowliness led back man
through obedience to life. Since, as the one fell through being lifted
up, and cast down [man] also who consented to him; so the other was
raised up through being abased, and lifted up [man] also who believed
in Him. For because the devil had not himself come thither whither he
had led the way (inasmuch as he bare indeed in his ungodliness the
death of the spirit, but had not undergone the death of the flesh,
because he had not assumed the covering of the flesh), he appeared to
man to be a mighty chief among the legions of devils, through whom he
exercises his reign of deceits; so puffing up man the more, who is
eager for power more than righteousness, through the pride of elation,
or through false philosophy; or else entangling him through
sacrilegious rites, in which, while casting down headlong by deceit and
illusion the minds of the more curious and prouder sort, he holds him
captive also to magical trickery; promising too the cleansing of the
soul, through those initiations which they call teletai, by
transforming himself into an angel of light, [504] through divers
machinations in signs and prodigies of lying.
__________________________________________________________________
[504] 2 Cor. xi. 14
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 11.--Miracles Which are Done by Demons are to Be Spurned.
14. For it is easy for the most worthless spirits to do many things by
means of aerial bodies, such as to cause wonder to souls which are
weighed down by earthly bodies, even though they be of the better
inclined. For if earthly bodies themselves, when trained by a certain
skill and practice, exhibit to men so great marvels in theatrical
spectacles, that they who never saw such things scarcely believe them
when told; why should it be hard for the devil and his angels to make
out of corporeal elements, through their own aerial bodies, things at
which the flesh marvels; or even by hidden inspirations to contrive
fantastic appearances to the deluding of men's senses, whereby to
deceive them, whether awake or asleep, or to drive them into frenzy?
But just as it may happen that one who is better than they in life and
character may gaze at the most worthless of men, either walking on a
rope, or doing by various motions of the body many things difficult of
belief, and yet he may not at all desire to do such things, nor think
those men on that account to be preferred to himself; so the faithful
and pious soul, not only if it sees, but even if on account of the
frailty of the flesh it shudders at, the miracles of demons; yet will
not for that either deplore its own want of power to do such things, or
judge them on this account to be better than itself; especially since
it is in the company of the holy, who, whether they are men or good
angels, accomplish, through the power of God, to whom all things are
subject, wonders which are far greater and the very reverse of
deceptive.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 12.--The Devil the Mediator of Death, Christ of Life.
15. In no wise therefore are souls cleansed and reconciled to God by
sacrilegious imitations, or curious arts that are impious, or magical
incantations; since the false mediator does not translate them to
higher things, but rather blocks and cuts off the way thither through
the affections, malignant in proportion as they are proud, which he
inspires into those of his own company; which are not able to nourish
the wings of virtues so as to fly upwards, but rather to heap up the
weight of vices so as to press downwards; since the soul will fall down
the more heavily, the more it seems to itself to have been carried
upwards. Accordingly, as the Magi did when warned of God, [505] whom
the star led to adore the low estate of the Lord; so we also ought to
return to our country, not by the way by which we came, but by another
way which the lowly King has taught, and which the proud king, the
adversary of that lowly King, cannot block up. For to us, too, that we
may adore the lowly Christ, the "heavens have declared the glory of
God, when their sound went into all the earth, and their words to the
ends of the world." [506] A way was made for us to death through sin in
Adam. For, "By one man sin entered into the world, and death by sin;
and so death passed upon all men, in whom all have sinned." [507] Of
this way the devil was the mediator, the persuader to sin, and the
caster down into death. For he, too, applied his one death to work out
our double death. Since he indeed died in the spirit through
ungodliness, but certainly did not die in the flesh: yet both persuaded
us to ungodliness, and thereby brought it to pass that we deserved to
come into the death of the flesh. We desired therefore the one through
wicked persuasion, the other followed us by a just condemnation; and
therefore it is written, "God made not death," [508] since He was not
Himself the cause of death; but yet death was inflicted on the sinner,
through His most just retribution. Just as the judge inflicts
punishment on the guilty; yet it is not the justice of the judge, but
the desert of the crime, which is the cause of the punishment. Whither,
then, the mediator of death caused us to pass, yet did not come
himself, that is, to the death of the flesh, there our Lord God
introduced for us the medicine of correction, which He deserved not, by
a hidden and exceeding mysterious decree of divine and profound
justice. In order, therefore, that as by one man came death, so by one
man might come also the resurrection of the dead; [509] because men
strove more to shun that which they could not shun, viz. the death of
the flesh, than the death of the spirit, i.e. punishment more than the
desert of punishment (for not to sin is a thing about which either men
are not solicitous or are too little solicitous; but not to die,
although it be not within reach of attainment, is yet eagerly sought
after); the Mediator of life, making it plain that death is not to be
feared, which by the condition of humanity cannot now be escaped, but
rather ungodliness, which can be guarded against through faith, meets
us at the end to which we have come, but not by the way by which we
came. For we, indeed, came to death through sin; He through
righteousness: and, therefore, as our death is the punishment of sin,
so His death was made a sacrifice for sin.
__________________________________________________________________
[505] Matt. ii. 12
[506] Ps. xix. 1, 4
[507] Rom. v. 12--in quo.
[508] Wisd. i. 13
[509] 1 Cor. xv. 21, 22
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 13.--The Death of Christ Voluntary. How the Mediator of Life
Subdued the Mediator of Death. How the Devil Leads His Own to Despise
the Death of Christ.
16. Wherefore, since the spirit is to be preferred to the body, and the
death of the spirit means that God has left it, but the death of the
body that the spirit has left it; and since herein lies the punishment
in the death of the body, that the spirit leaves the body against its
will, because it left God willingly; so that, whereas the spirit left
God because it would, it leaves the body although it would not; nor
leaves it when it would, unless it has offered violence to itself,
whereby the body itself is slain: the spirit of the Mediator showed how
it was through no punishment of sin that He came to the death of the
flesh, because He did not leave it against His will, but because He
willed, when He willed, as He willed. For because He is so commingled
[with the flesh] by the Word of God as to be one, He says: "I have
power to lay down my life, and I have power to take it again. No man
taketh it from me, but I lay down my life that I might take it again."
[510] And, as the Gospel tells us, they who were present were most
astonished at this, that after that [last] word, in which He set forth
the figure of our sin, He immediately gave up His spirit. For they who
are hung on the cross are commonly tortured by a prolonged death.
Whence it was that the legs of the thieves were broken, in order that
they might die directly, and be taken down from the cross before the
Sabbath. And that He was found to be dead already, caused wonder. And
it was this also, at which, as we read, Pilate marvelled, when the body
of the Lord was asked of him for burial. [511]
17. Because that deceiver then,--who was a mediator to death for man,
and feignedly puts himself forward as to life, under the name of
cleansing by sacrilegious rites and sacrifices, by which the proud are
led away,--can neither share in our death, nor rise again from his own:
he has indeed been able to apply his single death to our double one;
but he certainly has not been able to apply a single resurrection,
which should be at once a mystery of our renewal, and a type of that
waking up which is to be in the end. He then who being alive in the
spirit raised again His own flesh that was dead, the true Mediator of
life, has cast out him, who is dead in the spirit and the mediator of
death, from the spirits of those who believe in Himself, so that he
should not reign within, but should assault from without, and yet not
prevail. And to him, too, He offered Himself to be tempted, in order
that He might be also a mediator to overcome his temptations, not only
by succor, but also by example. But when the devil, from the first,
although striving through every entrance to creep into His inward
parts, was thrust out, having finished all his alluring temptation in
the wilderness after the baptism; [512] because, being dead in the
spirit, he forced no entrance into Him who was alive in the spirit, he
betook himself, through eagerness for the death of man in any way
whatsoever, to effecting that death which he could, and was permitted
to effect it upon that mortal element which the living Mediator had
received from us. And where he could do anything, there in every
respect he was conquered; and wherein he received outwardly the power
of slaying the Lord in the flesh, therein his inward power, by which he
held ourselves, was slain. For it was brought to pass that the bonds of
many sins in many deaths were loosed, through the one death of One
which no sin had preceded. Which death, though not due, the Lord
therefore rendered for us, that the death which was due might work us
no hurt. For He was not stripped of the flesh by obligation of any
authority, but He stripped Himself. For doubtless He who was able not
to die, if He would not, did die because He would: and so He made a
show of principalities and powers, openly triumphing over them in
Himself. [513] For whereas by His death the one and most real sacrifice
was offered up for us, whatever fault there was, whence principalities
and powers held us fast as of right to pay its penalty, He cleansed,
abolished, extinguished; and by His own resurrection He also called us
whom He predestinated to a new life; and whom He called, them He
justified; and whom He justified, them He glorified. [514] And so the
devil, in that very death of the flesh, lost man, whom he was
possessing as by an absolute right, seduced as he was by his own
consent, and over whom he ruled, himself impeded by no corruption of
flesh and blood, through that frailty of man's mortal body, whence he
was both too poor and too weak; he who was proud in proportion as he
was, as it were, both richer and stronger, ruling over him who was, as
it were, both clothed in rags and full of troubles. For whither he
drove the sinner to fall, himself not following, there by following he
compelled the Redeemer to descend. And so the Son of God deigned to
become our friend in the fellowship of death, to which because he came
not, the enemy thought himself to be better and greater than ourselves.
For our Redeemer says, "Greater love hath no man than this, that a man
lay down his life for his friends." [515] Wherefore also the devil
thought himself superior to the Lord Himself, inasmuch as the Lord in
His sufferings yielded to him; for of Him, too, is understood what is
read in the Psalm, "For Thou hast made Him a little lower than the
angels:" [516] so that He, being Himself put to death, although
innocent, by the unjust one acting against us as it were by just right,
might by a most just right overcome him, and so might lead captive the
captivity wrought through sin, [517] and free us from a captivity that
was just on account of sin, by blotting out the handwriting, and
redeeming us who were to be justified although sinners, through His own
righteous blood unrighteously poured out.
18. Hence also the devil mocks those who are his own until this very
day, to whom he presents himself as a false mediator, as though they
would be cleansed or rather entangled and drowned by his rites, in that
he very easily persuades the proud to ridicule and despise the death of
Christ, from which the more he himself is estranged, the more is he
believed by them to be the holier and more divine. Yet those who have
remained with him are very few, since the nations acknowledge and with
pious humility imbibe the price paid for themselves, and in trust upon
it abandon their enemy, and gather together to their Redeemer. For the
devil does not know how the most excellent wisdom of God makes use of
both his snares and his fury to bring about the salvation of His own
faithful ones, beginning from the former end, which is the beginning of
the spiritual creature, even to the latter end, which is the death of
the body, and so "reaching from the one end to the other, mightily and
sweetly ordering all things." [518] For wisdom "passeth and goeth
through all things by reason of her pureness, and no defiled thing can
fall into her." [519] And since the devil has nothing to do with the
death of the flesh, whence comes his exceeding pride, a death of
another kind is prepared in the eternal fire of hell, by which not only
the spirits that have earthly, but also those who have aerial bodies,
can be tormented. But proud men, by whom Christ is despised, because He
died, wherein He bought us with so great a price, [520] both bring back
the former death, and also men, to that miserable condition of nature,
which is derived from the first sin, and will be cast down into the
latter death with the devil. And they on this account preferred the
devil to Christ, because the former cast them into that former death,
whither he himself fell not through the difference of his nature, and
whither on account of them Christ descended through His great mercy:
and yet they do not hesitate to believe themselves better than the
devils, and do not cease to assail and denounce them with every sort of
malediction, while they know them at any rate to have nothing to do
with the suffering of this kind of death, on account of which they
despise Christ. Neither will they take into account that the case may
possibly be, that the Word of God, remaining in Himself, and in Himself
in no way changeable, may yet, through the taking upon Him of a lower
nature, be able to suffer somewhat of a lower kind, which the unclean
spirit cannot suffer, because he has not an earthly body. And so,
whereas they themselves are better than the devils, yet, because they
bear a body of flesh, they can so die, as the devils certainly cannot
die, who do not bear such a body. They presume much on the deaths of
their own sacrifices, which they do not perceive that they sacrifice to
deceitful and proud spirits; or if they have come to perceive it, think
their friendship to be of some good to themselves, treacherous and
envious although they are, whose purpose is bent upon nothing else
except to hinder our return.
__________________________________________________________________
[510] John x. 17, 18
[511] Mark xv. 37, 39, 43, 44, and John xix. 30-34
[512] Matt. iv. 1-11
[513] Col. ii. 15
[514] Rom. viii. 30
[515] John xv. 13
[516] Ps. viii. 5
[517] Eph. iv. 8
[518] Wisd. viii. 1
[519] Wisd. vii. 24, 25
[520] 1 Cor. vi. 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 14.--Christ the Most Perfect Victim for Cleansing Our Faults.
In Every Sacrifice Four Things are to Be Considered.
19. They do not understand, that not even the proudest of spirits
themselves could rejoice in the honor of sacrifices, unless a true
sacrifice was due to the one true God, in whose stead they desire to be
worshipped: and that this cannot be rightly offered except by a holy
and righteous priest; nor unless that which is offered be received from
those for whom it is offered; and unless also it be without fault, so
that it may be offered for cleansing the faulty. This at least all
desire who wish sacrifice to be offered for themselves to God. Who then
is so righteous and holy a priest as the only Son of God, who had no
need to purge His own sins by sacrifice, [521] neither original sins,
nor those which are added by human life? And what could be so fitly
chosen by men to be offered for them as human flesh? And what so fit
for this immolation as mortal flesh? And what so clean for cleansing
the faults of mortal men as the flesh born in and from the womb of a
virgin, without any infection of carnal concupiscence? And what could
be so acceptably offered and taken, as the flesh of our sacrifice, made
the body of our priest? In such wise that, whereas four things are to
be considered in every sacrifice,--to whom it is offered, by whom it is
offered, what is offered, for whom it is offered,--the same One and
true Mediator Himself, reconciling us to God by the sacrifice of peace,
might remain one with Him to whom He offered, might make those one in
Himself for whom He offered, Himself might be in one both the offerer
and the offering.
__________________________________________________________________
[521] Heb. vii
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 15.--They are Proud Who Think They are Able, by Their Own
Righteousness, to Be Cleansed So as to See God.
20. There are, however, some who think themselves capable of being
cleansed by their own righteousness, so as to contemplate God, and to
dwell in God; whom their very pride itself stains above all others. For
there is no sin to which the divine law is more opposed, and over which
that proudest of spirits, who is a mediator to things below, but a
barrier against things above, receives a greater right of mastery:
unless either his secret snares be avoided by going another way, or if
he rage openly by means of a sinful people (which Amalek, being
interpreted, means), and forbid by fighting the passage to the land of
promise, he be overcome by the cross of the Lord, which is prefigured
by the holding out of the hands of Moses. [522] For these persons
promise themselves cleansing by their own righteousness for this
reason, because some of them have been able to penetrate with the eye
of the mind beyond the whole creature, and to touch, though it be in
ever so small a part, the light of the unchangeable truth; a thing
which they deride many Christians for being not yet able to do, who, in
the meantime, live by faith alone. But of what use is it for the proud
man, who on that account is ashamed to embark upon the ship of wood,
[523] to behold from afar his country beyond the sea? Or how can it
hurt the humble man not to behold it from so great a distance, when he
is actually coming to it by that wood upon which the other disdains to
be borne?
__________________________________________________________________
[522] Ex. xvii. 8-16
[523] [The wood of the cross is meant. One of the ancient symbols of
the church was a ship.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 16.--The Old Philosophers are Not to Be Consulted Concerning
the Resurrection and Concerning Things to Come.
21. These people also blame us for believing the resurrection of the
flesh, and rather wish us to believe themselves concerning these
things. As though, because they have been able to understand the high
and unchangeable substance by the things which are made, [524] for this
reason they had a claim to be consulted concerning the revolutions of
mutable things, or concerning the connected order of the ages. For
pray, because they dispute most truly, and persuade us by most certain
proofs, that all things temporal are made after a science that is
eternal, are they therefore able to see clearly in the matter of this
science itself, or to collect from it, how many kinds of animals there
are, what are the seeds of each in their beginnings, what measure in
their increase, what numbers run through their conceptions, births,
ages, settings; what motions in desiring things according to their
nature, and in avoiding the contrary? Have they not sought out all
these things, not through that unchangeable wisdom, but through the
actual history of places and times, or have trusted the written
experience of others? Wherefore it is the less to be wondered at, that
they have utterly failed in searching out the succession of more
lengthened ages, and in finding any goal of that course, down which, as
though down a river, the human race is sailing, and the transition
thence of each to its own appropriate end. For these are subjects which
historians could not describe, inasmuch as they are far in the future,
and have been experienced and related by no one. Nor have those
philosophers, who have profiled better than others in that high and
eternal science, been able to grasp such subjects with the
understanding; otherwise they would not be inquiring as they could into
past things of the kind, such as are in the province of historians, but
rather would foreknow also things future; and those who are able to do
this are called by them soothsayers, but by us prophets:
__________________________________________________________________
[524] Rom. i. 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 17.--In How Many Ways Things Future are Foreknown. Neither
Philosophers, Nor Those Who Were Distinguished Among the Ancients, are
to Be Consulted Concerning the Resurrection of the Dead.
22.--although the name of prophets, too, is not altogether foreign to
their writings. But it makes the greatest possible difference, whether
things future are conjectured by experience of things past (as
physicians also have committed many things to writing in the way of
foresight, which they themselves have noted by experience; or as again
husbandmen, or sailors, too, foretell many things; for if such
predictions are made a long while before, they are thought to be
divinations), or whether such things have already started on their road
to come to us, and being seen coming far off, are announced in
proportion to the acuteness of the sense of those who see them, by
doing which the aerial powers are thought to divine (just as if a
person from the top of a mountain were to see far off some one coming,
and were to announce it beforehand to those who dwelt close by in the
plain); or whether they are either fore-announced to certain men, or
are heard by them and again transmitted to other men, by means of holy
angels, to whom God shows those things by His Word and His Wisdom,
wherein both things future and things past consist: or whether the
minds of certain men themselves are so far borne upwards by theHoly
Spirit, as to behold, not through the angels, but of themselves, the
immoveable causes of things future, in that very highest pinnacle of
the universe itself. [And I say, behold,] for the aerial powers, too,
hear these things, either by message through angels, or through men;
and hear only so much as He judges to be fitting, to whom all things
are subject. Many things, too, are foretold by a kind of instinct and
inward impulse of such as know them not: as Caiaphas did not know what
he said, but being the high priest, he prophesied. [525]
23. Therefore, neither concerning the successions of ages, nor
concerning the resurrection of the dead, ought we to consult those
philosophers, who have understood as much as they could the eternity of
the Creator, in whom "we live, and move, and have our being." [526]
Since, knowing God through those things which are made, they have not
glorified Him as God, neither were thankful but professing themselves
wise, they became fools. [527] And whereas they were not fit to fix the
eye of the mind so firmly upon the eternity of the spiritual and
unchangeable nature, as to be able to see, in the wisdom itself of the
Creator and Governor of the universe, those revolutions of the ages,
which in that wisdom were already and were always, but here were about
to be so that as yet they were not; or, again, to see therein those
changes for the better, not of the souls only, but also of the bodies
of men, even to the perfection of their proper measure; whereas then, I
say, they were in no way fit to see these things therein, they were not
even judged worthy of receiving any announcement of them by the holy
angels; whether externally through the senses of the body, or by
interior revelations exhibited in the spirit; as these things actually
were manifested to our fathers, who were gifted with true piety, and
who by foretelling them, obtaining credence either by present signs, or
by events close at hand, which turned out as they had foretold, earned
authority to be believed respecting things remotely future, even to the
end of the world. But the proud and deceitful powers of the air, even
if they are found to have said through their soothsayers some things of
the fellowship and citizenship of the saints, and of the true Mediator,
which they heard from the holy prophets or the angels, did so with the
purpose of seducing even the faithful ones of God, if they could, by
these alien truths, to revolt to their own proper falsehoods. But God
did this by those who knew not what they said, in order that the truth
might sound abroad from all sides, to aid the faithful, to be a witness
against the ungodly.
__________________________________________________________________
[525] John xi. 51
[526] Acts xvii. 28
[527] Rom. i. 21, 22
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 18.--The Son of God Became Incarnate in Order that We Being
Cleansed by Faith May Be Raised to the Unchangeable Truth.
24. Since, then, we were not fit to take hold of things eternal, and
since the foulness of sins weighed us down, which we had contracted by
the love of temporal things, and which were implanted in us as it were
naturally, from the root of mortality, it was needful that we should be
cleansed. But cleansed we could not be, so as to be tempered together
with things eternal, except it were through things temporal, wherewith
we were already tempered together and held fast. For health is at the
opposite extreme from disease; but the intermediate process of healing
does not lead us to perfect health, unless it has some congruity with
the disease. Things temporal that are useless merely deceive the sick;
things temporal that are useful take up those that need healing, and
pass them on healed, to things eternal. And the rational mind, as when
cleansed it owes contemplation to things eternal; so, when needing
cleansing, owes faith to things temporal. One even of those who were
formerly esteemed wise men among the Greeks has said, The truth stands
to faith in the same relation in which eternity stands to that which
has a beginning. And he is no doubt right in saying so. For what we
call temporal, he describes as having had a beginning. And we also
ourselves come under this kind, not only in respect to the body, but
also in respect to the changeableness of the soul. For that is not
properly called eternal which undergoes any degree of change.
Therefore, in so far as we are changeable, in so far we stand apart
from eternity. But life eternal is promised to us through the truth,
from the clear knowledge of which, again, our faith stands as far apart
as mortality does from eternity. We then now put faith in things done
in time on our account, and by that faith itself we are cleansed; in
order that when we have come to sight, as truth follows faith, so
eternity may follow upon mortality. And therefore, since our faith will
become truth, when we have attained to that which is promised to us who
believe: and that which is promised us is eternal life; and the Truth
(not that which shall come to be according as our faith shall be, but
that truth which is always, because in it is eternity,--the Truth then)
has said, "And this is life eternal, that they might know Thee the only
true God, and Jesus Christ, whom Thou hast sent:" [528] when our faith
by seeing shall come to be truth, then eternity shall possess our now
changed mortality. And until this shall take place, and in order that
it may take place,--because we adapt the faith of belief to things
which have a beginning, as in things eternal we hope for the truth of
contemplation, lest the faith of mortal life should be at discord with
the truth of eternal life,--the Truth itself, co-eternal with the
Father, took a beginning from earth, [529] when the Son of God so came
as to become the Son of man, and to take to Himself our faith, that He
might thereby lead us on to His own truth, who so undertook our
mortality, as not to lose His own eternity. For truth stands to faith
in the relation in which eternity stands to that which has a beginning.
Therefore, we must needs so be cleansed, that we may come to have such
a beginning as remains eternal, that we may not have one beginning in
faith, and another in truth. Neither could we pass to things eternal
from the condition of having a beginning, unless we were transferred,
by union of the eternal to ourselves through our own beginning, to His
own eternity. Therefore our faith has, in some measure, now followed
thither, whither He in whom we have believed has ascended; born, [530]
dead, risen again, taken up. Of these four things, we knew the first
two in ourselves. For we know that men both have a beginning and die.
But the remaining two, that is, to be raised, and to be taken up, we
rightly hope will be in us, because we have believed them done in Him.
Since, therefore, in Him that, too, which had a beginning has passed
over to eternity, in ourselves also it will so pass over, when faith
shall have arrived at truth. For to those who thus believe, in order
that they might remain in the word of faith, and being thence led on to
the truth, and through that to eternity, might be freed from death, He
speaks thus: "If ye continue in my word, then are ye my disciples
indeed." And as though they would ask, With what fruit? He proceeds to
say, "And ye shall know the truth." And again, as though they would
say, Of what good is truth to mortal men? "And the truth," He says,
"shall make you free." [531] From what, except from death, from
corruptions, from changeableness? Since truth remains immortal,
incorrupt, unchangeable. But true immortality, true incorruptibility,
true unchangeableness, is eternity itself.
__________________________________________________________________
[528] John xvii. 3
[529] Ps. lxxxv. 11
[530] Ortus.
[531] John viii. 31, 32
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 19.--In What Manner the Son Was Sent and Proclaimed Beforehand.
How in the Sending of His Birth in the Flesh He Was Made Less Without
Detriment to His Equality with the Father.
25. Behold, then, why the Son of God was sent; nay, rather behold what
it is for the Son of God to be sent. Whatever things they were which
were wrought in time, with a view to produce faith, whereby we might be
cleansed so as to contemplate truth, in things that have a beginning,
which have been put forth from eternity, and are referred back to
eternity: these were either testimonies of this mission, or they were
the mission itself of the Son of God. But some of these testimonies
announced Him beforehand as to come, some testified that He had come
already. For that He was made a creature by whom the whole creation was
made, must needs find a witness in the whole creation. For except one
were preached by the sending of many [witnesses] one would not be bound
to, the sending away of many. And unless there were such testimonies as
should seem to be great to those who are lowly, it would not be
believed, that He being great should make men great, who as lowly was
sent to the lowly. For the heaven and the earth and all things in them
are incomparably greater works of the Son of God, since all things were
made by Him, than the signs and the portents which broke forth in
testimony of Him. But yet men, in order that, being lowly, they might
believe these great things to have been wrought by Him, trembled at
those lowly things, as if they had been great.
26. "When, therefore, the fullness of time was come, God sent forth His
Son, made of a woman, made under the Law;" [532] to such a degree
lowly, that He was "made;" in this way therefore sent, in that He was
made. If, therefore, the greater sends the less, we too, acknowledge
Him to have been made less; and in so far less, in so far as made; and
in so far made, in so far as sent. For "He sent forth His Son made of a
woman." And yet, because all things were made by Him, not only before
He was made and sent, but before all things were at all, we confess the
same to be equal to the sender, whom we call less, as having been sent.
In what way, then, could He be seen by the fathers, when certain
angelical visions were shown to them, before that fullness of time at
which it was fitting He should be sent, and so before He was sent, at a
time when not yet sent He was seen as He is equal with the Father? For
how does He say to Philip, by whom He was certainly seen as by all the
rest, and even by those by whom He was crucified in the flesh, "Have I
been so long time with you, and yet hast thou not known me, Philip? he
that hath seen me, hath seen the Father also;" unless because He was
both seen and yet not seen? He was seen, as He had been made in being
sent; He was not seen, as by Him all things were made. Or how does He
say this too, "He that hath my commandments and keepeth them, he it is
that loveth me; and he that loveth me shall be loved of my Father, and
I will love him, and will manifest myself to him," [533] at a time when
He was manifest before the eyes of men; unless because He was offering
that flesh, which the Word was made in the fullness of time, to be
accepted by our faith; but was keeping back the Word itself, by whom
all things were made, to be contemplated in eternity by the mind when
cleansed by faith?
__________________________________________________________________
[532] Gal. iv. 4
[533] John xiv. 9, 21
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 20.--The Sender and the Sent Equal. Why the Son is Said to Be
Sent by the Father. Of the Mission of the Holy Spirit. How and by Whom
He Was Sent. The Father the Beginning of the Whole Godhead.
27. But if the Son is said to be sent by the Father on this account,
that the one is the Father, and the other the Son, this does not in any
manner hinder us from believing the Son to be equal, and
consubstantial, and co-eternal with the Father, and yet to have been
sent as Son by the Father. Not because the one is greater, the other
less; but because the one is Father, the other Son; the one begetter,
the other begotten; the one, He from whom He is who is sent; the other,
He who is from Him who sends. For the Son is from the Father, not the
Father from the Son. And according to this manner we can now understand
that the Son is not only said to have been sent because "the Word was
made flesh," [534] but therefore sent that the Word might be made
flesh, and that He might perform through His bodily presence those
things which were written; that is, that not only is He understood to
have been sent as man, which the Word was made but the Word, too, was
sent that it might be made man; because He was not sent in respect to
any inequality of power, or substance, or anything that in Him was not
equal to the Father; but in respect to this, that the Son is from the
Father, not the Father from the Son; for the Son is the Word of the
Father, which is also called His wisdom. What wonder, therefore, if He
is sent, not because He is unequal with the Father, but because He is
"a pure emanation (manatio) issuing from the glory of the Almighty
God?" For there, that which issues, and that from which it issues, is
of one and the same substance. For it does not issue as water issues
from an aperture of earth or of stone, but as light issues from light.
For the words, "For she is the brightness of the everlasting light,"
what else are they than, she is light of everlasting light? For what is
the brightness of light, except light itself? and so co-eternal, with
the light, from which the light is. But it is preferable to say, "the
brightness of light," rather than" the light of light;" lest that which
issues should be thought to be darker than that from which it issues.
For when one hears of the brightness of light as being light itself, it
is more easy to believe that the former shines by means of the latter,
than that the latter shines less. But because there was no need of
warning men not to think that light to be less, which begat the other
(for no heretic ever dared say this, neither is it to be believed that
any one will dare to do so), Scripture meets that other thought,
whereby that light which issues might seem darker than that from which
it issues; and it has removed this surmise by saying, "It is the
brightness of that light," namely, of eternal light, and so shows it to
be equal. For if it were less, then it would be its darkness, not its
brightness; but if it were greater, then it could not issue from it,
for it could not surpass that from which it is educed. Therefore,
because it issues from it, it is not greater than it is; and because it
is not its darkness, but its brightness, it is not less than it is:
therefore it is equal. Nor ought this to trouble us, that it is called
a pure emanation issuing from the glory of the Almighty God, as if
itself were not omnipotent, but an emanation from the Omnipotent; for
soon after it is said of it, "And being but one, she can do all
things." [535] But who is omnipotent, unless He who can do all things?
It is sent, therefore, by Him from whom it issues; for so she is sought
after by him who loved and desired her. "Send her," he says, "out of
Thy holy heavens, and from the throne of Thy glory, that, being
present, she may labor with me;" [536] that is, may teach me to labor
[heartily] in order that I may not labor [irksomely]. For her labors
are virtues. But she is sent in one way that she may be with man; she
has been sent in another way that she herself may be man. For,
"entering into holy souls, she maketh them friends of God and
prophets;" [537] so she also fills the holy angels, and works all
things fitting for such ministries by them. [538] But when the fullness
of time was come, she was sent, [539] not to fill angels, nor to be an
angel, except in so far as she announced the counsel of the Father,
which was her own also; nor, again, to be with men or in men, for this
too took place before, both in the fathers and in the prophets; but
that the Word itself should be made flesh, that is, should be made man.
In which future mystery, when revealed, was to be the salvation of
those wise and holy men also, who, before He was born of the Virgin,
were born of women; and in which, when done and made known, is the
salvation of all who believe, and hope, and love. For this is "the
great mystery of godliness, which [540] was manifest in the flesh,
justified in the Spirit, seen of angels, preached unto the Gentiles,
believed on in the world, received up into glory." [541]
28. Therefore the Word of God is sent by Him, of whom He is the Word;
He is sent by Him, from whom He was begotten (genitum); He sends who
begot, That is sent which is begotten. And He is then sent to each one,
when He is apprehended and perceived by each, in so far as He can be
apprehended and perceived, in proportion to the comprehension of the
rational soul, either advancing towards God, or already perfect in God.
The Son, therefore, is not properly said to have been sent in that He
is begotten of the Father; but either in that the Word made flesh
appeared to the world, whence He says, "I came forth from the Father,
and am come into the world;" [542] or in that from time to time, He is
perceived by the mind of each, according to the saying, "Send her,
that, being present with me, she may labor with me." [543] What then is
born (natum) from eternity is eternal, "for it is the brightness of the
everlasting light;" but what is sent from time to time, is that which
is apprehended by each. But when the Son of God was made manifest in
the flesh, He was sent into this world in the fullness of time, made of
a woman. "For after that, in the wisdom of God, the world by wisdom
knew not God" (since "the light shineth in darkness, and the darkness
comprehended it not"), it "pleased God by the foolishness of preaching
to save them that believe," [544] and that the Word should be made
flesh, and dwell among us. [545] But when from time to time He comes
forth and is perceived by the mind of each, He is said indeed to be
sent, but not into this world; for He does not appear sensibly, that
is, He does not present Himself to the corporeal senses. For we
ourselves, too, are not in this world, in respect to our grasping with
the mind as far as we can that which is eternal; and the spirits of all
the righteous are not in this world, even of those who are still living
in the flesh, in so far as they have discernment in things divine. But
the Father is not said to be sent, when from time to time He is
apprehended by any one, for He has no one of whom to be, or from whom
to proceed; since Wisdom says, "I came out of the mouth of the Most
High," [546] and it is said of the Holy Spirit, "He proceedeth from the
Father," [547] but the Father is from no one.
29. As, therefore, the Father begat, the Son is begotten; so the Father
sent, the Son was sent. But in like manner as He who begat and He who
was begotten, so both He who sent and He who was sent, are one, since
the Father and the Son are one. [548] So also the Holy Spirit is one
with them, since these three are one. For as to be born, in respect to
the Son, means to be from the Father; so to be sent, in respect to the
Son, means to be known to be from the Father. And as to be the gift of
God in respect to the Holy Spirit, means to proceed from the Father; so
to be sent, is to be known to proceed from the Father. Neither can we
say that the Holy Spirit does not also proceed from the Son, for the
same Spirit is not without reason said to be the Spirit both of the
Father and of the Son. [549] Nor do I see what else He intended to
signify, when He breathed on the face of the disciples, and said,
"Receive ye the Holy Ghost." [550] For that bodily breathing,
proceeding from the body with the feeling of bodily touching, was not
the substance of the Holy Spirit, but a declaration by a fitting sign,
that the Holy Spirit proceeds not only from the Father, but also from
the Son. For the veriest of madmen would not say, that it was one
Spirit which He gave when He breathed on them, and another which He
sent after His ascension. [551] For the Spirit of God is one, the
Spirit of the Father and of the Son, the Holy Spirit, who worketh all
in all. [552] But that He was given twice was certainly a significant
economy, which we will discuss in its place, as far as the Lord may
grant. That then which the Lord says,--"Whom I will send unto you from
the Father," [553] --shows the Spirit to be both of the Father and of
the Son; because, also, when He had said, "Whom the Father will send,"
He added also, "in my name." [554] Yet He did not say, Whom the Father
will send from me, as He said, "Whom I will send unto you from the
Father,"--showing, namely, that the Father is the beginning
(principium) of the whole divinity, or if it is better so expressed,
deity. [555] He, therefore, who proceeds from the Father and from the
Son, is referred back to Him from whom the Son was born (natus). And
that which the evangelist says, "For the Holy Ghost was not yet given,
because that Jesus was not yet glorified;" [556] how is this to be
understood, unless because the special giving or sending of the Holy
Spirit after the glorification of Christ was to be such as it had never
been before? For it was not previously none at all, but it had not been
such as this. For if the Holy Spirit was not given before, wherewith
were the prophets who spoke filled? Whereas the Scripture plainly says,
and shows in many places, that they spake by the Holy Spirit. Whereas,
also, it is said of John the Baptist, "And he shall be filled with the
Holy Ghost, even from his mother's womb." And his father Zacharias is
found to have been filled with the Holy Ghost, so as to say such things
of him. And Mary, too, was filled with the Holy Ghost, so as to
foretell such things of the Lord, whom she was bearing in her womb.
[557] And Simeon and Anna were filled with the Holy Spirit, so as to
acknowledge the greatness of the little child Christ. [558] How, then,
was "the Spirit not yet given, since Jesus was not yet glorified,"
unless because that giving, or granting, or mission of the Holy Spirit
was to have a certain speciality of its own in its very advent, such as
never was before? For we read nowhere that men spoke in tongues which
they did not know, through the Holy Spirit coming upon them; as
happened then, when it was needful that His coming should be made plain
by visible signs, in order to show that the whole world, and all
nations constituted with different tongues, should believe in Christ
through the gift of the Holy Spirit, to fulfill that which is sung in
the Psalm, "There is no speech nor language where their voice is not
heard; their sound is gone out through all the earth, and their words
to the end of the world." [559]
30. Therefore man was united, and in some sense commingled, with the
Word of God, so as to be One Person, when the fullness of time was
come, and the Son of God, made of a woman, was sent into this world,
that He might be also the Son of man for the sake of the sons of men.
And this person angelic nature could prefigure beforehand, so as to
pre-announce, but could not appropriate, so as to be that person
itself.
__________________________________________________________________
[534] John i. 3, 18, 14
[535] Wisd. vii. 25-27
[536] Wisd. ix. 10
[537] Wisd. vii. 27
[538] [The allusion is to the Wisdom of Proverbs, and of the Book of
Wisdom which Augustin regards as canonical, as his frequent citations
show.--W.G.T.S.]
[539] Gal. iv. 4
[540] Quod, scil. sacramentum
[541] 1 Tim. iii. 16
[542] John xvi. 28
[543] Wisd. ix. 10
[544] 1 Cor. i. 21
[545] John i. 5, 14
[546] Ecclus. xxiv. 3
[547] John xv. 26
[548] John x. 30
[549] [Augustin here, as in previous instances, affirms the procession
of the Spirit from the Father and Son.--W.G.T.S.]
[550] John xx. 22
[551] Acts ii. 1-4
[552] 1 Cor. xii. 6
[553] John xv. 26
[554] John xiv. 26
[555] [The term "beginning" is employed "relatively, and not according
to substance," as Augustin says. The Father is "the beginning of the
whole deity," with reference to the personal distinctions of Father,
Son, and Spirit--the Son being from the Father, and the Spirit from
Father and Son. The trinitarian relations or modes of the essence,
"begin" with the first person, not the second or the third. The phrase
"whole deity," in the above statement, is put for "trinity," not for
"essence." Augustin would not say that the Father is the "beginning"
(principium) of the divine essence considered abstractly, but only of
the essence as trinal. In this sense, Trinitarian writers denominate
the Father "fons trinitatis," and sometimes "fons deitatis." Turrettin
employs this latter phraseology (iii. xxx. i. 8); so does Owen
(Communion with Trinity, Ch. iii.); and Hooker (Polity, v. liv.). But
in this case, the guarding clause of Turretin is to be subjoined: "fons
deitatis, si modus subsistendi spectatur." The phrase "fons
trinitatis," or "principium trinitatis," is less liable to be
misconceived, and more accurate than "fons deitatis," or "principum
deitatis."--W.G.T.S.]
[556] John vii. 39
[557] Luke i. 15, 41-79
[558] Luke ii. 25-38
[559] Ps. xix. 3, 4
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 21.--Of the Sensible Showing of the Holy Spirit, and of the
Coeternity of the Trinity. What Has Been Said, and What Remains to Be
Said.
But with respect to the sensible showing of the Holy Spirit, whether by
the shape of a dove, [560] or by fiery tongues, [561] when the
subjected and subservient creature by temporal motions and forms
manifested His substance co-eternal with the Father and the Son, and
alike with them unchangeable, while it was not united so as to be one
person with Him, as the flesh was which the Word was made; [562] I do
not dare to say that nothing of the kind was done aforetime. But I
would boldly say, that the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit, of one and the
same substance, God the Creator, the Omnipotent Trinity, work
indivisibly; but that this cannot be indivisibly manifested by the
creature, which is far inferior, and least of all by the bodily
creature: just as the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit cannot be named by
our words, which certainly are bodily sounds, except in their own
proper intervals of time, divided by a distinct separation, which
intervals the proper syllables of each word occupy. Since in their
proper substance wherein they are, the three are one, the Father, and
the Son, and the Holy Spirit, the very same, by no temporal motion,
above the whole creature, without any interval of time and place, and
at once one and the same from eternity to eternity, as it were eternity
itself, which is not without truth and charity. But, in my words, the
Father, Son, and Holy Spirit are separated, and cannot be named at
once, and occupy their own proper places separately invisible letters.
And as, when I name my memory, and intellect, and will, each name
refers to each severally, but yet each is uttered by all three; for
there is no one of these three names that is not uttered by both my
memory and my intellect and my will together [by the soul as a whole];
so the Trinity together wrought both the voice of the Father, and the
flesh of the Son, and the dove of the Holy Spirit, while each of these
things is referred severally to each person. And by this similitude it
is in some degree discernible, that the Trinity, which is inseparable
in itself, is manifested separably by the appearance of the visible
creature; and that the operation of the Trinity is also inseparable in
each severally of those things which are said to pertain properly to
the manifesting of either the Father, or the Son, or the Holy Spirit.
31. If then I am asked, in what manner either words or sensible forms
and appearances were wrought before the incarnation of the Word of God,
which should prefigure it as about to come, I reply that God wrought
those things by the angels; and this I have also shown sufficiently, as
I think, by testimonies of the Holy Scriptures. And if I am asked how
the incarnation itself was brought to pass, I reply that the Word of
God itself was made flesh, that is, was made man, yet not turned and
changed into that which was made; but so made, that there should be
there not only the Word of God and the flesh of man, but also the
rational soul of man, and that this whole should both be called God on
account of God, and man on account of man. And if this is understood
with difficulty, the mind must be purged by faith, by more and more
abstaining from sins, and by doing good works, and by praying with the
groaning of holy desires; that by profiting through the divine help, it
may both understand and love. And if I am asked, how, after the
incarnation of the Word, either a voice of the Father was produced, or
a corporeal appearance by which the Holy Spirit was manifested: I do
not doubt indeed that this was done through the creature; but whether
only corporeal and sensible, or whether by the employment also of the
spirit rational or intellectual (for this is the term by which some
choose to call what the Greeks name noeron), not certainly so as to
form one person (for who could possibly say that whatever creature it
was by which the voice of the Father sounded, is in such sense God the
Father; or whatever creature it was by which the Holy Spirit was
manifested in the form of a dove, or in fiery tongues, is in such sense
the Holy Spirit, as the Son of God is that man who was made of a
virgin?), but only to the ministry of bringing about such intimations
as God judged needful; or whether anything else is to be understood: is
difficult to discover, and not expedient rashly to affirm. Yet I see
not how those things could have been brought to pass without the
rational or intellectual creature. But it is not yet the proper place
to explain, as the Lord may give me strength, why I so think; for the
arguments of heretics must first be discussed and refuted, which they
do not produce from the divine books, but from their own reasons, and
by which, as they think, they forcibly compel us so to understand the
testimonies of the Scriptures which treat of the Father, and the Son,
and the Holy Spirit, as they themselves will.
32. But now, as I think, it has been sufficiently shown, that the Son
is not therefore less because He is sent by the Father, nor the Holy
Spirit less because both the Father sent Him and the Son. For these
things are perceived to be laid down in the Scriptures, either on
account of the visible creature; or rather on account of commending to
our thoughts the emanation [within the Godhead]; [563] but not on
account of inequality, or imparity, or unlikeness of substance; since,
even if God the Father had willed to appear visibly through the subject
creature, yet it would be most absurd to say that He was sent either by
the Son, whom He begot, or by the Holy Spirit, who proceeds from Him.
Let this, therefore, be the limit of the present book. Henceforth in
the rest we shall see, the Lord helping, of what sort are those crafty
arguments of the heretics, and in what manner they may be confuted.
__________________________________________________________________
[560] Matt. iii. 16
[561] Acts ii. 3
[562] John i. 14
[563] [The original is: "propter principii commendationem," which the
English translator renders "On account of commending to our thoughts
the principle [of the Godhead]." The technical use of "principium" is
missed. Augustin says that the phrases, "sending the Son," and "sending
the Spirit," have reference to the "visible creature" through which in
the theophanies each was manifested; but still more, to the fact that
the Father is the "beginning" of the Son, and the Father and Son are
the "beginning" of the Spirit. This fact of a "beginning," or emanation
(manatio) of one from another, is what is commended to our
thoughts.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
Book V.
------------------------
Proceeds to treat of the arguments put forward by the heretics, not
from Scripture, but from their own reason. Those are refuted, who think
the substance of the Father and of the Son to be not the same, because
everything predicated of God is, in their opinion, predicated of Him
according to substance; and therefore it follows, that to beget and to
be begotten, or to be begotten and unbegotten, being diverse, are
diverse substances; whereas it is here demonstrated that not everything
predicated of God is predicated according to substance, in such manner
as He is called good and great according to substance, or anything else
that is predicated of Him in respect to Himself; but that some things
are also predicated of Him relatively, i.e. not in respect to Himself,
but to something not Himself, as He is called Father in respect to the
Son, and Lord in respect to the creature that serveth Him; in which
case, if anything thus predicated relatively, i.e. in respect to
something not Himself, is even predicated as happening in time, as e.g.
"Lord, thou hast become our refuge," yet nothing happens to God so as
to work a change in Him, but He Himself remains absolutely unchangeable
in His own nature or essence.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--What the Author Entreats from God, What from the Reader. In
God Nothing is to Be Thought Corporeal or Changeable.
1. Beginning, as I now do henceforward, to speak of subjects which
cannot altogether be spoken as they are thought, either by any man, or,
at any rate, not by myself; although even our very thought, when we
think of God the Trinity, falls (as we feel) very far short of Him of
whom we think, nor comprehends Him as He is; but He is seen, as it is
written, even by those who are so great as was the Apostle Paul,
"through a glass and in an enigma:" [564] first, I pray to our Lord God
Himself, of whom we ought always to think, and of whom we are not able
to think worthily, in praise of whom blessing is at all times to be
rendered, [565] and whom no speech is sufficient to declare, that He
will grant me both help for understanding and explaining that which I
design, and pardon if in anything I offend. For I bear in mind, not
only my desire, but also my infirmity. I ask also of my readers to
pardon me, where they may perceive me to have had the desire rather
than the power to speak, what they either understand better themselves,
or fail to understand through the obscurity of my language, just as I
myself pardon them what they cannot understand through their own
dullness.
2. And we shall mutually pardon one another the more easily, if we
know, or at any rate firmly believe and hold, that whatever is said of
a nature, unchangeable, invisible and having life absolutely and
sufficient to itself, must not be measured after the custom of things
visible, and changeable, and mortal, or not self-sufficient. But
although we labor, and yet fail, to grasp and know even those things
which are within the scope of our corporeal senses, or what we are
ourselves in the inner man; yet it is with no shamelessness that
faithful piety burns after those divine and unspeakable things which
are above: piety, I say, not inflated by the arrogance of its own
power, but inflamed by the grace of its Creator and Saviour Himself.
For with what understanding can man apprehend God, who does not yet
apprehend that very understanding itself of his own, by which he
desires to apprehend Him? And if he does already apprehend this, let
him carefully consider that there is nothing in his own nature better
than it; and let him see whether he can there see any outlines of
forms, or brightness of colors, or greatness of space, or distance of
parts, or extension of size, or any movements through intervals of
place, or any such thing at all. Certainly we find nothing of all this
in that, than which we find nothing better in our own nature, that is,
in our own intellect, by which we apprehend wisdom according to our
capacity. What, therefore, we do not find in that which is our own
best, we ought not to seek in Him who is far better than that best of
ours; that so we may understand God, if we are able, and as much as we
are able, as good without quality, great without quantity, a creator
though He lack nothing, ruling but from no position, sustaining all
things without "having" them, in His wholeness everywhere, yet without
place, eternal without time, making things that are changeable, without
change of Himself, and without passion. Whoso thus thinks of God,
although he cannot yet find out in all ways what He is, yet piously
takes heed, as much as he is able, to think nothing of Him that He is
not.
__________________________________________________________________
[564] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[565] Ps. xxxiv. 1
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--God the Only Unchangeable Essence.
3. He is, however, without doubt, a substance, or, if it be better so
to call it, an essence, which the Greeks call ousia. For as wisdom is
so called from the being wise, and knowledge from knowing; so from
being [566] comes that which we call essence. And who is there that is,
more than He who said to His servant Moses, "I am that I am;" and,
"Thus shall thou say unto the children of Israel, He who is hath sent
me unto you?" [567] But other things that are called essences or
substances admit of accidents, whereby a change, whether great or
small, is produced in them. But there can be no accident of this kind
in respect to God; and therefore He who is God is the only unchangeable
substance or essence, to whom certainly being itself, whence comes the
name of essence, most especially and most truly belongs. For that which
is changed does not retain its own being; and that which can be
changed, although it be not actually changed, is able not to be that
which it had been; and hence that which not only is not changed, but
also cannot at all be changed, alone falls most truly, without
difficulty or hesitation, under the category of being.
__________________________________________________________________
[566] Esse
[567] Ex. iii. 14
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--The Argument of the Arians is Refuted, Which is Drawn from
the Words Begotten and Unbegotten.
4. Wherefore,--to being now to answer the adversaries of our faith,
respecting those things also, which are neither said as they are
thought, nor thought as they really are:--among the many things which
the Arians are wont to dispute against the Catholic faith, they seem
chiefly to set forth this, as their most crafty device, namely, that
whatsoever is said or understood of God, is said not according to
accident, but according to substance, and therefore, to be unbegotten
belongs to the Father according to substance, and to be begotten
belongs to the Son according to substance; but to be unbegotten and to
be begotten are different; therefore the substance of the Father and
that of the Son are different. To whom we reply, If whatever is spoken
of God is spoken according to substance, then that which is said, "I
and the Father are one," [568] is spoken according to substance.
Therefore there is one substance of the Father and the Son. Or if this
is not said according to substance, then something is said of God not
according to substance, and therefore we are no longer compelled to
understand unbegotten and begotten according to substance. It is also
said of the Son, "He thought it not robbery to be equal with God."
[569] We ask, equal according to what? For if He is not said to be
equal according to substance, then they admit that something may be
said of God not according to substance. Let them admit, then, that
unbegotten and begotten are not spoken according to substance. And if
they do not admit this, on the ground that they will have all things to
be spoken of God according to substance, then the Son is equal to the
Father according to substance.
__________________________________________________________________
[568] John x. 30
[569] Phil. ii. 6
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--The Accidental Always Implies Some Change in the Thing.
5. That which is accidental commonly implies that it can be lost by
some change of the thing to which it is an accident. For although some
accidents are said to be inseparable, which in Greek are called
achorista, as the color black is to the feather of a raven; yet the
feather loses that color, not indeed so long as it is a feather, but
because the feather is not always. Wherefore the matter itself is
changeable; and whenever that animal or that feather ceases to be, and
the whole of that body is changed and turned into earth, it loses
certainly that color also. Although the kind of accident which is
called separable may likewise be lost, not by separation, but by
change; as, for instance, blackness is called a separable accident to
the hair of men, because hair continuing to be hair can grow white;
yet, if carefully considered, it is sufficiently apparent, that it is
not as if anything departed by separation away from the head when it
grows white, as though blackness departed thence and went somewhere and
whiteness came in its place, but that the quality of color there is
turned and changed. Therefore there is nothing accidental in God,
because there is nothing changeable or that may be lost. But if you
choose to call that also accidental, which, although it may not be
lost, yet can be decreased or increased,--as, for instance, the life of
the soul: for as long as it is a soul, so long it lives, and because
the soul is always, it always lives; but because it lives more when it
is wise, and less when it is foolish, here, too, some change comes to
pass, not such that life is absent, as wisdom is absent to the foolish,
but such that it is less;--nothing of this kind, either, happens to
God, because He remains altogether unchangeable.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--Nothing is Spoken of God According to Accident, But
According to Substance or According to Relation.
6. Wherefore nothing in Him is said in respect to accident, since
nothing is accidental to Him, and yet all that is said is not said
according to substance. For in created and changeable things, that
which is not said according to substance, must, by necessary
alternative, be said according to accident. For all things are
accidents to them, which can be either lost or diminished, whether
magnitudes or qualities; and so also is that which is said in relation
to something, as friendships, relationships, services, likenesses,
equalities, and anything else of the kind; so also positions and
conditions, [570] places and times, acts and passions. But in God
nothing is said to be according to accident, because in Him nothing is
changeable; and yet everything that is said, is not said, according to
substance. For it is said in relation to something, as the Father in
relation to the Son and the Son in relation to the Father, which is not
accident; because both the one is always Father, and the other is
always Son: yet not "always," meaning from the time when the Son was
born [natus], so that the Father ceases not to be the Father because
the Son never ceases to be the Son, but because the Son was always
born, and never began to be the Son. But if He had begun to be at any
time, or were at any time to cease to be, the Son, then He would be
called Son according to accident. But if the Father, in that He is
called the Father, were so called in relation to Himself, not to the
Son; and the Son, in that He is called the Son, were so called in
relation to Himself, not to the Father; then both the one would be
called Father, and the other Son, according to substance. But because
the Father is not called the Father except in that He has a Son, and
the Son is not called Son except in that He has a Father, these things
are not said according to substance; because each of them is not so
called in relation to Himself, but the terms are used reciprocally and
in relation each to the other; nor yet according to accident, because
both the being called the Father, and the being called the Son, is
eternal and unchangeable to them. Wherefore, although to be the Father
and to be the Son is different, yet their substance is not different;
because they are so called, not according to substance, but according
to relation, which relation, however, is not accident, because it is
not changeable.
__________________________________________________________________
[570] Habitus
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--Reply is Made to the Cavils of the Heretics in Respect to
the Same Words Begotten and Unbegotten.
7. But if they think they can answer this reasoning thus,--that the
Father indeed is so called in relation to the Son, and the Son in
relation to the Father, but that they are said to be unbegotten and
begotten in relation to themselves, not in relation each to the other;
for that it is not the same thing to call Him unbegotten as it is to
call Him the Father, because there would be nothing to hinder our
calling Him unbegotten even if He had not begotten the Son; and if any
one beget a son, he is not therefore himself unbegotten, for men, who
are begotten by other men, themselves also beget others; and therefore
they say the Father is called Father in relation to the Son, and the
Son is called Son in relation to the Father, but unbegotten is said in
relation to Himself, and begotten in relation to Himself; and
therefore, if whatever is said in relation to oneself is said according
to substance, while to be unbegotten and to be begotten are different,
then the substance is different:--if this is what they say, then they
do not understand that they do indeed say something that requires more
careful discussion in respect to the term unbegotten, because neither
is any one therefore a father because unbegotten, nor therefore
unbegotten because he is a father, and on that account he is supposed
to be called unbegotten, not in relation to anything else, but in
respect to himself; but, on the other hand, with a wonderful blindness,
they do not perceive that no one can be said to be begotten except in
relation to something. For he is therefore a son because begotten; and
because a son, therefore certainly begotten. And as is the relation of
son to father, so is the relation of the begotten to the begetter; and
as is the relation of father to son, so is the relation of the begetter
to the begotten. And therefore any one is understood to be a begetter
under one notion, but understood to be unbegotten under another. For
though both are said of God the Father, yet the former is said in
relation to the begotten, that is to the Son, which, indeed, they do
not deny; but that He is called unbegotten, they declare to be said in
respect to Himself. They say then, If anything is said to be a father
in respect to itself, which cannot be said to be a son in respect to
itself, and whatever is said in respect to self is said according to
substance; and He is said to be unbegotten in respect to Himself, which
the Son cannot be said to be; therefore He is said to be unbegotten
according to substance; and because the Son cannot be so said to be,
therefore He is not of the same substance. This subtlety is to be
answered by compelling them to say themselves according to what it is
that the Son is equal to the Father; whether according to that which is
said in relation to Himself, or according to that which is said in
relation to the Father. For it is not according to that which is said
in relation to the Father, since in relation to the Father He is said
to be Son, and the Father is not Son, but Father. Since Father and Son
are not so called in relation to each other in the same way as friends
and neighbors are; for a friend is so called relatively to his friend,
and if they love each other equally, then the same friendship is in
both; and a neighbor is so called relatively to a neighbor, and because
they are equally neighbors to each other (for each is neighbor to the
other, in the same degree as the other is neighbor to him), there is
the same neighborhood in both. But because the Son is not so called
relatively to the Son, but to the Father, it is not according to that
which is said in relation to the Father that the Son is equal to the
Father; and it remains that He is equal according to that which is said
in relation to Himself. But whatever is said in relation to self is
said according to substance: it remains therefore that He is equal
according to substance; therefore the substance of both is the same.
But when the Father is said to be unbegotten, it is not said what He
is, but what He is not; and when a relative term is denied, it is not
denied according to substance, since the relative itself is not
affirmed according to substance.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--The Addition of a Negative Does Not Change the Predicament.
8. This is to be made clear by examples. And first we must notice, that
by the word begotten is signified the same thing as is signified by the
word son. For therefore a son, because begotten, and because a son,
therefore certainly begotten. By the word unbegotten, therefore, it is
declared that he is not son. But begotten and unbegotten are both of
them terms suitably employed; whereas in Latin we can use the word
"filius," but the custom of the language does not allow us to speak of
"infilius." It makes no difference, however, in the meaning if he is
called "non filius;" just as it is precisely the same thing if he is
called "non genitus," instead of "ingenitus." For so the terms of both
neighbor and friend are used relatively, yet we cannot speak of
"invicinus" as we can of "inimicus." Wherefore, in speaking of this
thing or that, we must not consider what the usage of our own language
either allows or does not allow, but what clearly appears to be the
meaning of the things themselves. Let us not therefore any longer call
it unbegotten, although it can be so called in Latin; but instead of
this let us call it not begotten, which means the same. Is this then
anything else than saying that he is not a son? Now the prefixing of
that negative particle does not make that to be said according to
substance, which, without it, is said relatively; but that only is
denied, which, without it, was affirmed, as in the other predicaments.
When we say he is a man, we denote substance. He therefore who says he
is not a man, enunciates no other kind of predicament, but only denies
that. As therefore I affirm according to substance in saying he is a
man, so I deny according to substance in saying he is not a man. And
when the question is asked how large he is? and I say he is
quadrupedal, that is, four feet in measure, I affirm according to
quantity, and he who says he is not quadrupedal, denies according to
quantity. I say he is white, I affirm according to quality; if I say he
is not white, I deny according to quality. I say he is near, I affirm
according to relation; if I say he is not near, I deny according to
relation. I affirm according to position, when I say he lies down; I
deny according to position, when I say he does not lie down. I speak
according to condition, [571] when I say he is armed; I deny according
to condition, when I say he is not armed; and it comes to the same
thing as if I should say he is unarmed. I affirm according to time,
when I say he is of yesterday; I deny according to time, when I say he
is not of yesterday. And when I say he is at Rome, I affirm according
to place; and I deny according to place, when I say he is not at Rome.
I affirm according to the predicament of action, when I say he smites;
but if I say he does not smite, I deny according to action, so as to
declare that he does not so act. And when I say he is smitten, I affirm
according to the predicament of passion; and I deny according to the
same, when I say he is not smitten. And, in a word, there is no kind of
predicament according to which we may please to affirm anything,
without being proved to deny according to the same predicament, if we
prefix the negative particle. And since this is so, if I were to affirm
according to substance, in saying son, I should deny according to
substance, in saying not son. But because I affirm relatively when I
say he is a son, for I refer to the father; therefore I deny relatively
if I say he is not a son, for I refer the same negation to the father,
in that I wish to declare that he has not a parent. But if to be called
son is precisely equivalent to the being called begotten (as we said
before), then to be called not begotten is precisely equivalent to the
being called not son. But we deny relatively when we say he is not son,
therefore we deny relatively when we say he is not begotten. Further,
what is unbegotten, unless not begotten? We do not escape, therefore,
from the relative predicament, when he is called unbegotten. For as
begotten is not said in relation to self, but in that he is of a
begetter; so when one is called unbegotten, he is not so called in
relation to himself, but it is declared that he is not of a begetter.
Both meanings, however, turn upon the same predicament, which is called
that of relation. But that which is asserted relatively does not denote
substance, and accordingly, although begotten and unbegotten are
diverse, they do not denote a different substance; because, as son is
referred to father, and not son to not father, so it follows inevitably
that begotten must be referred to begetter, and not-begotten to
not-begetter. [572]
__________________________________________________________________
[571] Habitus
[572] The terms "unbegotten" and "begotten" are interchangeable with
the terms Father and Son. This follows from the relation of a
substantive to its adjective. In whatever sense a substantive is
employed, in the same sense must the adjective formed from it be
employed. Consequently, if the first person of the Trinity may be
called Father in a sense that implies deity, he may be called
Unbegotten in the same sense. And if the second person may be called
Son in a sense implying deity, he may be called Begotten in the same
sense. The Ancient church often employed the adjective, and spoke of
God the Unbegotten and God the Begotten (Justin Martyr, Apol. i. 25,
53; ii. 12, 13. Clem. Alex. Stromata v. xii.). This phraseology sounds
strange to the Modern church, yet the latter really says the same thing
when it speaks of God the Father, and God the Son.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--Whatever is Spoken of God According to Substance, is Spoken
of Each Person Severally, and Together of the Trinity Itself. One
Essence in God, and Three, in Greek, Hypostases, in Latin, Persons.
9. Wherefore let us hold this above all, that whatsoever is said of
that most eminent and divine loftiness in respect to itself, is said in
respect to substance, but that which is said in relation to anything,
is not said in respect to substance, but relatively; and that the
effect of the same substance in Father and Son and Holy Spirit is, that
whatsoever is said of each in respect to themselves, is to be taken of
them, not in the plural in sum, but in the singular. For as the Father
is God, and the Son is God, and the Holy Spirit is God, which no one
doubts to be said in respect to substance, yet we do not say that the
very Supreme Trinity itself is three Gods, but one God. So the Father
is great, the Son great, and the Holy Spirit great; yet not three
greats, but one great. For it is not written of the Father alone, as
they perversely suppose, but of the Father and the Son and the Holy
Spirit, "Thou art great: Thou art God alone." [573] And the Father is
good, the Son good, and the Holy Spirit good; yet not three goods, but
one good, of whom it is said, "None is good, save one, that is, God."
For the Lord Jesus, lest He should be understood as man only by him who
said, "Good Master," as addressing a man, does not therefore say, There
is none good, save the Father alone; but, "None is good, save one, that
is, God." [574] For the Father by Himself is declared by the name of
Father; but by the name of God, both Himself and the Son and the Holy
Spirit, because the Trinity is one God. But position, and condition,
and places, and times, are not said to be in God properly, but
metaphorically and through similitudes. For He is both said to dwell
between the cherubims, [575] which is spoken in respect to position;
and to be covered with the deep as with a garment, [576] which is said
in respect to condition; and "Thy years shall have no end," [577] which
is said in respect of time; and, "If I ascend up into heaven, Thou art
there," [578] which is said in respect to place. And as respects action
(or making), perhaps it may be said most truly of God alone, for God
alone makes and Himself is not made. Nor is He liable to passions as
far as belongs to that substance whereby He is God. So the Father is
omnipotent, the Son omnipotent, and the Holy Spirit is omnipotent; yet
not three omnipotents, but one omnipotent: [579] "For of Him are all
things, and through Him are all things, and in Him are all things; to
whom be glory." [580] Whatever, therefore, is spoken of God in respect
to Himself, is both spoken singly of each person, that is, of the
Father, and the Son, and the Holy Spirit; and together of the Trinity
itself, not plurally but in the singular. For inasmuch as to God it is
not one thing to be, and another thing to be great, but to Him it is
the same thing to be, as it is to be great; therefore, as we do not say
three essences, so we do not say three greatnesses, but one essence and
one greatness. I say essence, which in Greek is called ousia, and which
we call more usually substance.
10. They indeed use also the word hypostasis; but they intend to put a
difference, I know not what, between ousia and hypostasis: so that most
of ourselves who treat these things in the Greek language, are
accustomed to say, mian ousian, treis hupostaseis or in Latin, one
essence, three substances. [581]
__________________________________________________________________
[573] Ps. lxxxvi. 10
[574] Luke xviii. 18, 19
[575] Ps. lxxx. 1
[576] Ps. civ. 6
[577] Ps. cii. 27
[578] Ps. cxxxix. 8
[579] [This phraseology appears in the analytical statements of the
so-called Athanasian creed (cap. 11-16), and affords ground for the
opinion that this symbol is a Western one, originating in the school of
Augustin.--W.G.T.S.]
[580] Rom. xi. 36
[581] [It is remarkable that Augustin, understanding thoroughly the
distinction between essence and person, should not have known the
difference between ousia and hupostasis. It would seem as if his only
moderate acquaintance with the Greek language would have been more than
compensated by his profound trinitarian knowledge. In respect to the
term "substantia"--when it was discriminated from "essentia," as it is
here by Augustin--it corresponds to hupostasis, of which it is the
translation. In this case, God is one essence in three substances. But
when "substantia" was identified with "essentia," then to say that God
is one essence in three substances would be a self-contradiction. The
identification of the two terms led subsequently to the coinage, in the
mediaeval Latin, of the term "subsistantia," to denote
hupostasis.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--The Three Persons Not Properly So Called [in a Human
Sense].
But because with us the usage has already obtained, that by essence we
understand the same thing which is understood by substance; we do not
dare to say one essence, three substances, but one essence or substance
and three persons: as many writers in Latin, who treat of these things,
and are of authority, have said, in that they could not find any other
more suitable way by which to enunciate in words that which they
understood without words. For, in truth, as the Father is not the Son,
and the Son is not the Father, and that Holy Spirit who is also called
the gift of God is neither the Father nor the Son, certainly they are
three. And so it is said plurally, "I and my Father are one." [582] For
He has not said, "is one," as the Sabellians say; but, "are one." Yet,
when the question is asked, What three? human language labors
altogether under great poverty of speech. The answer, however, is
given, three "persons," not that it might be [completely] spoken, but
that it might not be left [wholly] unspoken.
__________________________________________________________________
[582] John x. 30
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--Those Things Which Belong Absolutely to God as an Essence,
are Spoken of the Trinity in the Singular, Not in the Plural.
11. As, therefore, we do not say three essences, so we do not say three
greatnesses, or three who are great. For in things which are great by
partaking of greatness, to which it is one thing to be, and another to
be great, as a great house, and a great mountain, and a great mind; in
these things, I say, greatness is one thing, and that which is great
because of greatness is another, and a great house, certainly, is not
absolute greatness itself. But that is absolute greatness by which not
only a great house is great, and any great mountain is great, but also
by which every other thing whatsoever is great, which is called great;
so that greatness itself is one thing, and those things are another
which are called great from it. And this greatness certainly is
primarily great, and in a much more excellent way than those things
which are great by partaking of it. But since God is not great with
that greatness which is not Himself, so that God, in being great, is,
as it were, partaker of that greatness;--otherwise that will be a
greatness greater than God, whereas there is nothing greater than God;
therefore, He is great with that greatness by which He Himself is that
same greatness. And, therefore, as we do not say three essences, so
neither do we say three greatnesses; for it is the same thing to God to
be, and to be great. For the same reason neither do we say three
greats, but one who is great; since God is not great by partaking of
greatness, but He is great by Himself being great, because He Himself
is His own greatness. Let the same be said also of the goodness, and of
the eternity, and of the omnipotence of God, and, in short, of all the
predicaments which can be predicated of God, as He is spoken of in
respect to Himself, not metaphorically and by similitude, but properly,
if indeed anything can be spoken of Him properly, by the mouth of man.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 11.--What is Said Relatively in the Trinity.
12. But whereas, in the same Trinity, some things severally are
specially predicated, these are in no way said in reference to
themselves in themselves, but either in mutual reference, or in respect
to the creature; and, therefore, it is manifest that such things are
spoken relatively, not in the way of substance. For the Trinity is
called one God, great, good, eternal, omnipotent; and the same God
Himself may be called His own deity, His own magnitude, His own
goodness, His own eternity, His own omnipotence: but the Trinity cannot
in the same way be called the Father, except perhaps metaphorically, in
respect to the creature, on account of the adoption of sons. For that
which is written, "Hear, O Israel: the Lord our God is one Lord," [583]
ought certainly not to be understood as if the Son were excepted, or
the Holy Spirit were excepted; which one Lord our God we rightly call
also our Father, as regenerating us by His grace. Neither can the
Trinity in any wise be called the Son, but it can be called, in its
entirety, the Holy Spirit, according to that which is written, "God is
a Spirit;" [584] because both the Father is a spirit and the Son is a
spirit, and the Father is holy and the Son is holy. Therefore, since
the Father, the Son and the Holy Spirit are one God, and certainly God
is holy, and God is a spirit, the Trinity can be called also the Holy
Spirit. But yet that Holy Spirit, who is not the Trinity, but is
understood as in the Trinity, is spoken of in His proper name of the
Holy Spirit relatively, since He is referred both to the Father and to
the Son, because the Holy Spirit is the Spirit both of the Father and
of the Son. But the relation is not itself apparent in that name, but
it is apparent when He is called the gift of God; [585] for He is the
gift of the Father and of the Son, because "He proceeds from the
Father," [586] as the Lord says; and because that which the apostle
says, "Now, if any man have not the Spirit of Christ, he is none of
His," [587] he says certainly of the Holy Spirit Himself. When we say,
therefore, the gift of the giver, and the giver of the gift, we speak
in both cases relatively in reciprocal reference. Therefore the Holy
Spirit is a certain unutterable communion of the Father and the Son;
and on that account, perhaps, He is so called, because the same name is
suitable to both the Father and the Son. For He Himself is called
specially that which they are called in common; because both the Father
is a spirit and the Son a spirit, both the Father is holy and the Son
holy. [588] In order, therefore, that the communion of both may be
signified from a name which is suitable to both, the Holy Spirit is
called the gift of both. And this Trinity is one God, alone, good,
great, eternal, omnipotent; itself its own unity, deity, greatness,
goodness, eternity, omnipotence.
__________________________________________________________________
[583] Deut. vi. 4
[584] John iv. 24
[585] Acts viii. 20
[586] John xv. 26
[587] Rom. viii. 9
[588] [The reason which Augustin here assigns, why the name Holy Spirit
is given to the third person--namely, because spirituality is a
characteristic of both the Father and Son, from both of whom he
proceeds--is not that assigned in the more developed trinitarianism.
The explanation in this latter is, that the third person is denominated
the Spirit because of the peculiar manner in which the divine essence
is communicated to him--namely, by spiration or out-breathing: spiritus
quia spiratus. This is supported by the etymological signification of
pneuma, which is breath; and by the symbolical action of Christ in John
xx. 22, which suggests the eternal spiration, or out-breathing of the
third person. The third trinitarian person is no more spiritual, in the
sense of immaterial, than the first and second persons, and if the term
"Spirit" is to be taken in this the ordinary signification, the
"trinitarian relation," or personal peculiarity, as Augustin remarks,
"is not itself apparent in this name;" because it would mention nothing
distinctive of the third person, and not belonging to the first and
second. But taken technically to denote the spiration or out-breathing
by the Father and Son, the trinitarian peculiarity is apparent in the
name. And the epithet "Holy" is similarly explained. The third person
is the Holy Spirit, not because he is any more holy than the first and
second, but because he is the source and author of holiness in all
created spirits. This is eminently and officially his work. In this way
also, the epithet "Holy"--which in its ordinary use would specify
nothing peculiar to the third person,--mentions a characteristic that
differentiates him from the Father and Son.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 12.--In Relative Things that are Reciprocal, Names are
Sometimes Wanting.
13. Neither ought it to influence us--since we have said that the Holy
Spirit is so called relatively, not the Trinity itself, but He who is
in the Trinity--that the designation of Him to whom He is referred,
does not seem to answer in turn to His designation. For we cannot, as
we say the servant of a master, and the master of a servant, the son of
a father and the father of a son, so also say here--because these
things are said relatively. For we speak of the Holy Spirit of the
Father; but, on the other hand, we do not speak of the Father of the
Holy Spirit, lest the Holy Spirit should be understood to be His Son.
So also we speak of the Holy Spirit of the Son; but we do not speak of
the Son of the Holy Spirit, lest the Holy Spirit be understood to be
His Father. For it is the case in many relatives, that no designation
is to be found by which those things which bear relation to each other
may [in name] mutually correspond to each other. For what is more
clearly spoken relatively than the word earnest? Since it is referred
to that of which it is an earnest, and an earnest is always an earnest
of something. Can we then, as we say, the earnest of the Father and of
the Son, [589] say in turn, the Father of the earnest or the Son of the
earnest? But, on the other hand, when we say the gift of the Father and
of the Son, we cannot indeed say the Father of the gift, or the Son of
the gift; but that these may correspond mutually to each other, we say
the gift of the giver and the giver of the gift; because here a word in
use may be found, there it cannot.
__________________________________________________________________
[589] 2 Cor. v. 5, and Eph. i. 14
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 13.--How the Word Beginning (Principium) is Spoken Relatively
in the Trinity.
14. The Father is called so, therefore, relatively, and He is also
relatively said to be the Beginning, and whatever else there may be of
the kind; but He is called the Father in relation to the Son, the
Beginning in relation to all things, which are from Him. So the Son is
relatively so called; He is called also relatively the Word and the
Image. And in all these appellations He is referred to the Father, but
the Father is called by none of them. And the Son is also called the
Beginning; for when it was said to Him, "Who art Thou?" He replied,
"Even the Beginning, who also speak to you." [590] But is He, pray, the
Beginning of the Father? For He intended to show Himself to be the
Creator when He said that He was the Beginning, as the Father also is
the beginning of the creature in that all things are from Him. For
creator, too, is spoken relatively to creature, as master to servant.
And so when we say, both that the Father is the Beginning, and that the
Son is the Beginning, we do not speak of two beginnings of the
creature; since both the Father and the Son together is one beginning
in respect to the creature, as one Creator, as one God. But if whatever
remains within itself and produces or works anything is a beginning to
that thing which it produces or works; then we cannot deny that the
Holy Spirit also is rightly called the Beginning, since we do not
separate Him from the appellation of Creator: and it is written of Him
that He works; and assuredly, in working, He remains within Himself;
for He Himself is not changed and turned into any of the things which
He works. And see what it is that He works: "But the manifestation of
the Spirit," he says, "is given to every man to profit withal. For to
one is given by the Spirit the word of wisdom; to another the word of
knowledge by the same Spirit; to another faith by the same Spirit; to
another the gifts of healing by the same Spirit; to another the working
of miracles; to another prophecy; to another the discerning of spirits;
to another divers kinds of tongues; to another the interpretation of
tongues: but all these worketh that one and the self-same Spirit,
dividing to every man severally as He will;" certainly as God--for who
can work such great things but God?--but "it is the same God which
worketh all in all." [591] For if we are asked point by point
concerning the Holy Spirit, we answer most truly that He is God; and
with the Father and the Son together He is one God. Therefore, God is
spoken of as one Beginning in respect to the creature, not as two or
three beginnings.
__________________________________________________________________
[590] John viii. 25
[591] 1 Cor. xii. 6-11
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 14.--The Father and the Son the Only Beginning (Principium) of
the Holy Spirit.
15. But in their mutual relation to one another in the Trinity itself,
if the begetter is a beginning in relation to that which he begets, the
Father is a beginning in relation to the Son, because He begets Him;
but whether the Father is also a beginning in relation to the Holy
Spirit, since it is said, "He proceeds from the Father," is no small
question. Because, if it is so, He will not only be a beginning to that
thing which He begets or makes, but also to that which He gives. And
here, too, that question comes to light, as it can, which is wont to
trouble many, Why the Holy Spirit is not also a son, since He, too,
comes forth from the Father, as it is read in the Gospel. [592] For the
Spirit came forth, not as born, but as given; and so He is not called a
son, because He was neither born, as the Only-begotten, nor made, so
that by the grace of God He might be born into adoption, as we are. For
that which is born of the Father, is referred to the Father only when
called Son, and so the Son is the Son of the Father, and not also our
Son; but that which is given is referred both to Him who gave, and to
those to whom He gave; and so the Holy Spirit is not only the Spirit of
the Father and of the Son who gave Him, but He is also called ours, who
have received Him: as "The salvation of the Lord," [593] who gives
salvation, is said also to be our salvation, who have received it.
Therefore, the Spirit is both the Spirit of God who gave Him, and ours
who have received Him. Not, indeed, that spirit of ours by which we
are, because that is the spirit of a man which is in him; but this
Spirit is ours in another mode, viz. that in which we also say, "Give
us this day our bread." [594] Although certainly we have received that
spirit also, which is called the spirit of a man. "For what hast thou,"
he says, "which thou didst not receive?" [595] But that is one thing,
which we have received that we might be; another, that which we have
received that we might be holy. Whence it is also written of John, that
he "came in the spirit and power of Elias;" [596] and by the spirit of
Elias is meant the Holy Spirit, whom Elias received. And the same thing
is to be understood of Moses, when the Lord says to him, "And I will
take of thy spirit, and will put it upon them;" [597] that is, I will
give to them of the Holy Spirit, which I have already given to thee.
If, therefore, that also which is given has him for a beginning by whom
it is given, since it has received from no other source that which
proceeds from him; it must be admitted that the Father and the Son are
a Beginning of the Holy Spirit, not two Beginnings; but as the Father
and Son are one God, and one Creator, and one Lord relatively to the
creature, so are they one Beginning relatively to the Holy Spirit. But
the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit is one Beginning in respect to
the creature, as also one Creator and one God. [598]
__________________________________________________________________
[592] John xv. 26
[593] Ps. iii. 8
[594] Matt. vi. 11
[595] 1 Cor. iv. 7
[596] Luke i. 17
[597] Num. xi. 17
[598] [The term "beginning" (principium), when referring to the
relation of the Trinity, or of any person of the Trinity, to the
creature, denotes creative energy, whereby a new substance is
originated from nothing. This is the reference in chapter 13. But when
the term refers to the relations of the persons of the Trinity to each
other, it denotes only a modifying energy, whereby an existing
uncreated substance is communicated by generation and spiration. This
is the reference in chapter 14. When it is said that the Father is the
"beginning" of the Son, and the Father and Son are the "beginning" of
the Spirit, it is not meant that the substance of the Son is created ex
nihilo by the Father, and the substance of the Spirit is created by the
Father and Son, but only that the Son by eternal generation receives
from the Father the one uncreated and undivided substance of the
Godhead, and the Spirit by eternal spiration receives the same
numerical substance from the Father and Son. The term "beginning"
relates not to the essence, but to the personal peculiarity. Sonship
originates in fatherhood; but deity is unoriginated. The Son as the
second person "begins" from the Father, because the Father communicates
the essence to him. His sonship, not his deity or godhood, "begins"
from the Father. And the same holds true of the term "beginning" as
applied to the Holy Spirit. The "procession" of the Holy Spirit
"begins" by spiration from the Father and Son, but not his deity or
godhood.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 15.--Whether the Holy Spirit Was a Gift Before as Well as After
He Was Given.
16. But it is asked further, whether, as the Son, by being born, has
not only this, that He is the Son, but that He is absolutely; and so
also the Holy Spirit, by being given, has not only this, that He is
given, but that He is absolutely--whether therefore He was, before He
was given, but was not yet a gift; or whether, for the very reason that
God was about to give Him, He was already a gift also before He was
given. But if He does not proceed unless when He is given, and
assuredly could not proceed before there was one to whom He might be
given; how, in that case, was He [absolutely] in His very substance, if
He is not unless because He is given? just as the Son, by being born,
not only has this, that He is a Son, which is said relatively, but His
very substance absolutely, so that He is. Does the Holy Spirit proceed
always, and proceed not in time, but from eternity, but because He so
proceeded that He was capable of being given, was already a gift even
before there was one to whom He might be given? For there is a
difference in meaning between a gift and a thing that has been given.
For a gift may exist even before it is given; but it cannot be called a
thing that has been given unless it has been given.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 16.--What is Said of God in Time, is Said Relatively, Not
Accidentally.
17. Nor let it trouble us that the Holy Spirit, although He is
co-eternal with the Father and the Son, yet is called something which
exists in time; as, for instance, this very thing which we have called
Him, a thing that has been given. For the Spirit is a gift eternally,
but a thing that has been given in time. For if a lord also is not so
called unless when he begins to have a slave, that appellation likewise
is relative and in time to God; for the creature is not from all
eternity, of which He is the Lord. How then shall we make it good that
relative terms themselves are not accidental, since nothing happens
accidentally to God in time, because He is incapable of change, as we
have argued in the beginning of this discussion? Behold! to be the
Lord, is not eternal to God; otherwise we should be compelled to say
that the creature also is from eternity, since He would not be a lord
from all eternity unless the creature also was a servant from all
eternity. But as he cannot be a slave who has not a lord, neither can
he be a lord who has not a slave. And if there be any one who says that
God, indeed, is alone eternal, and that times are not eternal on
account of their variety and changeableness, but that times
nevertheless did not begin to be in time (for there was no time before
times began, and therefore it did not happen to God in time that He
should be Lord, since He was Lord of the very times themselves, which
assuredly did not begin in time): what will he reply respecting man,
who was made in time, and of whom assuredly He was not the Lord before
he was of whom He was to be Lord? Certainly to be the Lord of man
happened to God in time. And that all dispute may seem to be taken
away, certainly to be your Lord, or mine, who have only lately begun to
be, happened to God in time. Or if this, too, seems uncertain on
account of the obscure question respecting the soul, what is to be said
of His being the Lord of the people of Israel? since, although the
nature of the soul already existed, which that people had (a matter
into which we do not now inquire), yet that people existed not as yet,
and the time is apparent when it began to exist. Lastly, that He should
be Lord of this or that tree, or of this or that corn crop, which only
lately began to be, happened in time; since, although the matter itself
already existed, yet it is one thing to be Lord of the matter
(materiae), another to be Lord of the already created nature (naturae).
[599] For man, too, is lord of the wood at one time, and at another he
is lord of the chest, although fabricated of that same wood; which he
certainly was not at the time when he was already the lord of the wood.
How then shall we make it good that nothing is said of God according to
accident, except because nothing happens to His nature by which He may
be changed, so that those things are relative accidents which happen in
connection with some change of the things of which they are spoken. As
a friend is so called relatively: for he does not begin to be one,
unless when he has begun to love; therefore some change of will takes
place, in order that he may be called a friend. And money, when it is
called a price, is spoken of relatively, and yet it was not changed
when it began to be a price; nor, again, when it is called a pledge, or
any other thing of the kind. If, therefore, money can so often be
spoken of relatively with no change of itself, so that neither when it
begins, nor when it ceases to be so spoken of, does any change take
place in that nature or form of it, whereby it is money; how much more
easily ought we to admit, concerning that unchangeable substance of
God, that something may be so predicated relatively in respect to the
creature, that although it begin to be so predicated in time, yet
nothing shall be understood to have happened to the substance itself of
God, but only to that creature in respect to which it is predicated?
"Lord," it is said, "Thou hast been made our refuge." [600] God,
therefore, is said to be our refuge relatively, for He is referred to
us, and He then becomes our refuge when we flee to Him; pray does
anything come to pass then in His nature, which, before we fled to Him,
was not? In us therefore some change does take place; for we were worse
before we fled to Him, and we become better by fleeing to Him: but in
Him there is no change. So also He begins to be our Father, when we are
regenerated through His grace, since He gave us power to become the
sons of God. [601] Our substance therefore is changed for the better,
when we become His sons; and He at the same time begins to be our
Father, but without any change of His own substance. Therefore that
which begins to be spoken of God in time, and which was not spoken of
Him before, is manifestly spoken of Him relatively; yet not according
to any accident of God, so that anything should have happened to Him,
but clearly according to some accident of that, in respect to which God
begins to be called something relatively. When a righteous man begins
to be a friend of God, he himself is changed; but far be it from us to
say, that God loves any one in time with as it were a new love, which
was not in Him before, with whom things gone by have not passed away
and things future have been already done. Therefore He loved all His
saints before the foundation of the world, as He predestinated them;
but when they are converted and find them; then they are said to begin
to be loved by Him, that what is said may be said in that way in which
it can be comprehended by human affections. So also, when He is said to
be wroth with the unrighteous, and gentle with the good, they are
changed, not He: just as the light is troublesome to weak eyes,
pleasant to those that are strong; namely, by their change, not its
own.
__________________________________________________________________
[599] ["Matter" denotes the material as created ex nihilo: "nature" the
material as formed into individuals. In this reference, Augustin speaks
of "the nature of the soul" of the people of Israel as existing while
"as yet that people existed not" individually-- having in mind their
race-existence in Adam.--W.G.T.S.]
[600] Ps. xc.1
[601] John i. 12
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
Book VI.
------------------------
The question is proposed, how the apostle calls Christ "the power of
God, and the wisdom of God." And an argument is raised, whether the
Father is not wisdom Himself, but only the Father of wisdom; or whether
Wisdom begat Wisdom. But the answer to this is deferred for a little,
while the unity and equality of the Father, and of the Son, and of the
Holy Ghost, are proved; and that we ought to believe in a Trinity, not
in a threefold (triplicem) god. Lastly, that saying of Hilary is
explained, eternity in the Father, appearance in the image, use in the
gift.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--The Son, According to the Apostle, is the Power and Wisdom
of the Father. Hence the Reasoning of the Catholics Against the Earlier
Arians. A Difficulty is Raised, Whether the Father is Not Wisdom
Himself, But Only the Father of Wisdom.
1. Somethink themselves hindered from admitting the equality of the
Father, Son, and Holy Spirit, because it is written, "Christ, the power
of God, and the wisdom of God;" in that, on this ground, there does not
appear to be equality; because the Father is not Himself power and
wisdom, but the begetter of power and wisdom. And, in truth, the
question is usually asked with no common earnestness, in what way God
can be called the Father of power and wisdom. For the apostle says,
"Christ the power of God, and the wisdom of God." [602] And hence some
on our side have reasoned in this way against the Arians, at least
against those who at first set themselves up against the Catholic
faith. For Arius himself is reported to have said, that if He is a Son,
then He was born; if He was born, there was a time when the Son was
not: not understanding that even to be born is, to God, from all
eternity; so that the Son is co-eternal with the Father, as the
brightness which is produced and is spread around by fire is co-eval
with it, and would be co-eternal, if fire were eternal. And therefore
some of the later Arians have abandoned that opinion, and have
confessed that the Son of God did not begin to be in time. But among
the arguments which those on our side used to hold against them who
said that there was a time when the Son was not, some were wont to
introduce such an argument as this: If the Son of God is the power and
wisdom of God, and God was never without power and wisdom, then the Son
is co-eternal with God the Father; but the apostle says, "Christ the
power of God, and the wisdom of God;" and a man must be senseless to
say that God at any time had not power or wisdom; therefore there was
no time when the Son was not.
2. Now this argument compels us to say that God the Father is not wise,
except by having the wisdom which He begat, not by the Father in
Himself being wisdom itself. Further, if it be so, just as the Son also
Himself is called God of God, Light of Light, we must consider whether
He can be called wisdom of wisdom, if God the Father is not wisdom
itself, but only the begetter of wisdom. And if we hold this, why is He
not the begetter also of His own greatness, and of His own goodness,
and of His own eternity, and of His own omnipotence; so that He is not
Himself His own greatness, and His own goodness, and His own eternity,
and His own omnipotence; but is great with that greatness which He
begat, and good with that goodness, and eternal with that eternity, and
omnipotent with that omnipotence, which was born of Him; just as He
Himself is not His own wisdom, but is wise with that wisdom which was
born of Him? For we need not be afraid of being compelled to say that
there are many sons of God, over and above the adoption of the
creature, co-eternal with the Father, if He be the begetter of His own
greatness, and goodness, and eternity, and omnipotence. Because it is
easy to reply to this cavil, that it does not at all follow, because
many things are named, that He should be the Father of many co-eternal
sons; just as it does not follow that He is the Father of two sons,
because Christ is said to be the power of God, and the wisdom of God.
For that certainly is the power which is the wisdom, and that is the
wisdom which is the power; and in like manner, therefore, of the rest
also; so that that is the greatness which is the power, or any other of
those things which either have been mentioned above, or may hereafter
be mentioned.
__________________________________________________________________
[602] 1 Cor. i. 24
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2 .--What is Said of the Father and Son Together, and What Not.
3. But if nothing is spoken of the Father as such, except that which is
spoken of Him in relation to the Son, that is, that He is His father,
or begetter, or beginning; and if also the begetter is by consequence a
beginning to that which he begets of himself; but whatever else is
spoken of Him is so spoken as with the Son, or rather in the Son;
whether that He is great with that greatness which He begat, or just
with that justice which He begat, or good with that goodness which He
begat, or powerful with that force or power which He begat, or wise
with that wisdom which He begat: yet the Father is not said to be
greatness itself, but the begetter of greatness; but the Son, as He is
called the Son as such, is not so called with the Father but in
relation to the Father, so is not great in and by himself, but with the
Father, of whom He is the greatness; and so also is called wise with
the Father, of whom He Himself is the wisdom; just as the Father is
called wise with the Son, because He is wise with that wisdom which He
begat; therefore the one is not called without the other, whatever they
are called in respect to themselves; that is, whatever they are called
that manifests their essential nature, both are so called together;--if
these things are so, then the Father is not God without the Son, nor
the Son God without the Father, but both together are God. And that
which is said, "In the beginning was the Word," means that the Word was
in the Father. Or if "In the beginning" is intended to mean, Before all
things; then in that which follows, "And the Word was with God," the
Son alone is understood to be the Word, not the Father and Son
together, as though both were one Word (for He is the Word in the same
way as He is the Image, but the Father and Son are not both together
the Image, but the Son alone is the Image of the Father: just as He is
also the Son of the Father, for both together are not the Son). But in
that which is added, "And the Word was with God," there is much reason
to understand thus: "The Word," which is the Son alone, "was with God,"
which is not the Father alone, but God the Father and the Son together.
[603] But what wonder is there, if this can be said in the case of some
twofold things widely different from each other? For what are so
different as soul and body? Yet we can say the soul was with a man,
that is, in a man; although the soul is not the body, and man is both
soul and body together. So that what follows in the Scripture, "And the
Word was God," [604] may be understood thus: The Word, which is not the
Father, was God together with the Father. Are we then to say thus, that
the Father is the begetter of His own greatness, that is, the begetter
of His own power, or the begetter of His own wisdom; and that the Son
is greatness, and power, and wisdom; but that the great, omnipotent,
and wise God, is both together? How then God of God, Light of Light?
For not both together are God of God, but only the Son is of God, that
is to say, of the Father; nor are both together Light of Light, but the
Son only is of Light, that is, of the Father. Unless, perhaps, it was
in order to intimate and inculcate briefly that the Son is co-eternal
with the Father, that it is said, God of God, and Light of Light, or
anything else of the like kind: as if to say, This which is not the Son
without the Father, of this which is not the Father without the Son;
that is, this Light which is not Light without the Father, of that
Light, viz. the Father, which is not Light without the Son; so that,
when it is said, God which is not the Son without the Father, and of
God which is not the Father without the Son, it may be perfectly
understood that the Begetter did not precede that which He begot. And
if this be so, then this alone cannot be said of them, namely, this or
that of this or that, which they are not both together. Just as the
Word cannot be said to be of the Word, because both are not the Word
together, but only the Son; nor image of image, since they are not both
together the image; nor Son of Son, since both together are not the
Son, according to that which is said, "I and my Father are one." [605]
For "we are one" means, what He is, that am I also; according to
essence, not according to relation.
__________________________________________________________________
[603] [The term "God," in the proposition, "the Word was with God,"
must refer to the Father, not to "the Father and Son together," because
the Son could not be said to be "with" himself. St. John says that "the
word was God" (theos). The absence of the article with theos denotes
the abstract deity, or the divine nature without reference to the
persons in it. He also says that "the Word was with God" (ton theon).
The presence of the article in this instance denotes one of the divine
persons in the essence: namely, the Father, with whom the Word was from
eternity, and upon whose "bosom" he was from eternity. (John i.
18).--W.G.T.S.]
[604] John i. 1
[605] John x. 30
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--That the Unity of the Essence of the Father and the Son is
to Be Gathered from the Words, "We are One." The Son is Equal to the
Father Both in Wisdom and in All Other Things.
4. And I know not whether the words, "They are one," are ever found in
Scripture as spoken of things of which the nature is different. But if
there are more things than one of the same nature, and they differ in
sentiment, they are not one, and that so far as they differ in
sentiment. For if the disciples were already one by the fact of being
men, He would not say, "That they may be one, as we are one," [606]
when commending them to the Father. But because Paul and Apollos were
both alike men, and also of like sentiments, "He that planteth," he
says, "and he that watereth are one." [607] When, therefore, anything
is so called one, that it is not added in what it is one, and yet more
things than one are called one, then the same essence and nature is
signified, not differing nor disagreeing. But when it is added in what
it is one, it may be meant that something is made one out of things
more than one, though they are different in nature. As soul and body
are assuredly not one; for, what are so different? unless there be
added, or understood in what they are one, that is, one man, or one
animal [person]. Thence the apostle says, "He who is joined to a
harlot, is one body;" he does not say, they are one or he is one; but
he has added "body," as though it were one body composed by being
joined together of two different bodies, masculine and feminine. [608]
And, "He that is joined unto the Lord," he says," is one spirit:" he
did not say, he that is joined unto the Lord is one, or they are one;
but he added, "spirit." For the spirit of man and the Spirit of God are
different in nature; but by being joined they become one spirit of two
different spirits, so that the Spirit of God is blessed and perfect
without the human spirit, but the spirit of man cannot be blessed
without God. Nor is it without cause, I think, that when the Lord said
so much in the Gospel according to John, and so often, of unity itself,
whether of His own with the Father, or of ours interchangeably with
ourselves; He has nowhere said, that we are also one with Himself, but,
"that they maybe one as we also are one." [609] Therefore the Father
and the Son are one, undoubtedly according to unity of substance; and
there is one God, and one great, and one wise, as we have argued.
5. Whence then is the Father greater? For if greater, He is greater by
greatness; but whereas the Son is His greatness, neither assuredly is
the Son greater than He who begat Him, nor is the Father greater than
that greatness, whereby He is great; therefore they are equal. For
whence is He equal, if not in that which He is, to whom it is not one
thing to be, and another to be great? Or if the Father is greater in
eternity, the Son is not equal in anything whatsoever. For whence
equal? If you say in greatness, that greatness is not equal which is
less eternal, and so of all things else. Or is He perhaps equal in
power, but not equal in wisdom? But how is that power which is less
wise, equal? Or is He equal in wisdom, but not equal in power? But how
is that wisdom equal which is less powerful? It remains, therefore,
that if He is not equal in anything, He is not equal in all. But
Scripture proclaims, that "He thought it not robbery to be equal with
God." [610] Therefore any adversary of the truth whatever, provided he
feels bound by apostolical authority, must needs confess that the Son
is equal with God in each one thing whatsoever. Let him choose that
which he will; from it he will be shown, that He is equal in all things
which are said of His substance.
__________________________________________________________________
[606] John xvii. 11
[607] 1 Cor. iii. 8
[608] 1 Cor. vi. 16, 17
[609] John xvii. 11
[610] Phil. ii. 6
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--The Same Argument Continued.
6. For in like manner the virtues which are in the human mind, although
each has its own several and different meaning, yet are in no way
mutually separable; so that, for instance, whosoever were equal in
courage, are equal also in prudence, and temperance, and justice. For
if you say that such and such men are equal in courage, but that one of
them is greater in prudence, it follows that the courage of the other
is less prudent, and so neither are they equal in courage, since the
courage of the former is more prudent. And so you will find it to be
the case with the other virtues, if you consider them one by one. For
the question is not of the strength of the body, but of the courage of
the mind. How much more therefore is this the case in that unchangeable
and eternal substance, which is incomparably more simple than the human
mind is? Since, in the human mind, to be is not the same as to be
strong, or prudent, or just, or temperate; for a mind can exist, and
yet have none of these virtues. But in God to be is the same as to be
strong, or to be just, or to be wise, or whatever is said of that
simple multiplicity, or multifold simplicity, whereby to signify His
substance. Wherefore, whether we say God of God in such way that this
name belongs to each, yet not so that both together are two Gods, but
one God; for they are in such way united with each other, as according
to the apostle's testimony may take place even in diverse and differing
substances; for both the Lord alone is a Spirit, and the spirit of a
man alone is assuredly a spirit; yet, if it cleave to the Lord, "it is
one spirit:" how much more there, where there is an absolutely
inseparable and eternal union, so that He may not seem absurdly to be
called as it were the Son of both, when He is called the Son of God, if
that which is called God is only said of both together. Or perhaps it
is, that whatever is said of God so as to indicate His substance, is
not said except of both together, nay of the Trinity itself together?
Whether therefore it be this or that (which needs a closer inquiry), it
is enough for the present to see from what has been said, that the Son
is in no respect equal with the Father, if He is found to be unequal in
anything which has to do with signifying His substance, as we have
already shown. But the apostle has said that He is equal. Therefore the
Son is equal with the Father in all things, and is of one and the same
substance.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--The Holy Spirit Also is Equal to the Father and the Son in
All Things.
7. Wherefore also the Holy Spirit consists in the same unity of
substance, and in the same equality. For whether He is the unity of
both, or the holiness, or the love, or therefore the unity because the
love, and therefore the love because the holiness, it is manifest that
He is not one of the two, through whom the two are joined, through whom
the Begotten is loved by the Begetter, and loves Him that begat Him,
and through whom, not by participation, but by their own essence,
neither by the gift of any superior, but by their own, they are
"keeping the unity of the Spirit in the bond of peace;" [611] which we
are commanded to imitate by grace, both towards God and towards
ourselves. "On which two commandments hang all the law and the
prophets." [612] So those three are God, one, alone, great, wise, holy,
blessed. But we are blessed from Him, and through Him, and in Him;
because we ourselves are one by His gift, and one spirit with Him,
because our soul cleaves to Him so as to follow Him. And it is good for
us to cleave to God, since He will destroy every man who is estranged
from Him. [613] Therefore the Holy Spirit, whatever it is, is something
common both to the Father and Son. But that communion itself is
consubstantial and co-eternal; and if it may fitly be called
friendship, let it be so called; but it is more aptly called love. And
this is also a substance, since God is a substance, and "God is love,"
as it is written. [614] But as He is a substance together with the
Father and the Son, so that substance is together with them great, and
together with them good, and together with them holy, and whatsoever
else is said in reference to substance; since it is not one thing to
God to be, and another to be great or to be good, and the rest, as we
have shown above. For if love is less great therein [i.e. in God] than
wisdom, then wisdom is loved in less degree than according to what it
is; love is therefore equal, in order that wisdom may be loved
according to its being; but wisdom is equal with the Father, as we have
proved above; therefore also the Holy Spirit is equal; and if equal,
equal in all things, on account of the absolute simplicity which is in
that substance. And therefore they are not more than three: One who
loves Him who is from Himself, and One who loves Him from whom He is,
and Love itself. And if this last is nothing, how is "God love"? If it
is not substance, how is God substance?
__________________________________________________________________
[611] Eph. iv. 3
[612] Matt. xxii. 37-40
[613] Ps. lxxvii. 28, 27
[614] 1 John iv. 16
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--How God is a Substance Both Simple and Manifold.
8. But if it is asked how that substance is both simple and manifold:
consider, first, why the creature is manifold, but in no way really
simple. And first, all that is body is composed certainly of parts; so
that therein one part is greater, another less, and the whole is
greater than any part whatever or how great soever. For the heaven and
the earth are parts of the whole bulk of the world; and the earth
alone, and the heaven alone, is composed of innumerable parts; and its
third part is less than the remainder, and the half of it is less than
the whole; and the whole body of the world, which is usually called by
its two parts, viz. the heaven and the earth, is certainly greater than
the heaven alone or the earth alone. And in each several body, size is
one thing, color another, shape another; for the same color and the
same shape may remain with diminished size; and the same shape and the
same size may remain with the color changed; and the same shape not
remaining, yet the thing may be just as great, and of the same color.
And whatever other things are predicated together of body can be
changed either all together, or the larger part of them without the
rest. And hence the nature of body is conclusively proved to be
manifold, and in no respect simple. The spiritual creature also, that
is, the soul, is indeed the more simple of the two if compared with the
body; but if we omit the comparison with the body, it is manifold, and
itself also not simple. For it is on this account more simple than the
body, because it is not diffused in bulk through extension of place,
but in each body, it is both whole in the whole, and whole in each
several part of it; and, therefore, when anything takes place in any
small particle whatever of the body, such as the soul can feel,
although it does not take place in the whole body, yet the whole soul
feels it, since the whole soul is not unconscious of it. But,
nevertheless, since in the soul also it is one thing to be skillful,
another to be indolent, another to be intelligent, another to be of
retentive memory; since cupidity is one thing, fear another, joy
another, sadness another; and since things innumerable, and in
innumerable ways, are to be found in the nature of the soul, some
without others, and some more, some less; it is manifest that its
nature is not simple, but manifold. For nothing simple is changeable,
but every creature is changeable.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--God is a Trinity, But Not Triple (Triplex).
But God is truly called in manifold ways, great, good, wise, blessed,
true, and whatsoever other thing seems to be said of Him not
unworthily: but His greatness is the same as His wisdom; for He is not
great by bulk, but by power; and His goodness is the same as His wisdom
and greatness, and His truth the same as all those things; and in Him
it is not one thing to be blessed, and another to be great, or wise, or
true, or good, or in a word to be Himself.
9. Neither, since He is a Trinity, is He therefore to be thought triple
(triplex) [615] otherwise the Father alone, or the Son alone, will be
less than the Father and Son together. Although, indeed, it is hard to
see how we can say, either the Father alone, or the Son alone; since
both the Father is with the Son, and the Son with the Father, always
and inseparably: not that both are the Father, or both are the Son; but
because they are always one in relation to the other, and neither the
one nor the other alone. But because we call even the Trinity itself
God alone, although He is always with holy spirits and souls, but say
that He only is God, because they are not also God with Him; so we call
the Father the Father alone, not because He is separate from the Son,
but because they are not both together the Father.
__________________________________________________________________
[615] [The Divine Unity is trinal, not triple. The triple is composed
of three different substances. It has parts, and is complex. The trinal
is without parts, and is incomplex. It denotes one simple substance in
three modes or forms. "We may speak of the trinal, but not of the
triple deity." Hollaz, in Hase's Hutterus, 172.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--No Addition Can Be Made to the Nature of God.
Since, therefore, the Father alone, or the Son alone, or the Holy
Spirit alone, is as great as is the Father and the Son and the Holy
Spirit together, [616] in no manner is He to be called threefold.
Forasmuch as bodies increase by union of themselves. For although he
who cleaves to his wife is one body; yet it is a greater body than if
it were that of the husband alone, or of the wife alone. But in
spiritual things, when the less adheres to the greater, as the creature
to the Creator, the former becomes greater than it was, not the latter.
[617] For in those things which are not great by bulk, to be greater is
to be better. And the spirit of any creature becomes better, when it
cleaves to the Creator, than if it did not so cleave; and therefore
also greater because better. "He," then, that is joined unto the Lord
is one spirit:" [618] but yet the Lord does not therefore become
greater, although he who is joined to the Lord does so. In God Himself,
therefore when the equal Son, or the Holy Spirit equal to the Father
and the Son, is joined to the equal Father, God does not become greater
than each of them severally; because that perfectness cannot increase.
But whether it be the Father, or the Son, or the Holy Spirit, He is
perfect, and God the Father the Son and the Holy Spirit is perfect; and
therefore He is a Trinity rather than triple.
__________________________________________________________________
[616] [Each trinitarian person is as great as the Trinity, if reference
be had to the essence, but not if reference be had to the persons. Each
person has the entire essence, and the Trinity has the entire essence.
But each person has the essence with only one personal characteristic;
while the Trinity has the essence with all three personal
characteristics. No trinitarian person is as comprehensive as the
triune Godhead, because he does not possess the two personal
characteristics belonging to the other two persons. The Father is God,
but he is not God the Son and God the Holy Spirit.--W.G.T.S.]
[617] [The addition of finite numbers, however great, to an infinite
number, does not increase the infinite. Similarly, any addition of
finite being to the Infinite Being is no increase. God plus the
universe is no larger an infinite than God minus the universe. The
creation of the universe adds nothing to the infinite being and
attributes of God. To add contingent being to necessary being, does not
make the latter any more necessary. To add imperfect being to perfect
being, does not make the latter more perfect. To add finite knowledge
to infinite knowledge, does not produce a greater amount of knowledge.
This truth has been overlooked by Hamilton, Mansell, and others, in the
argument against the personality of the Infinite, in which the Infinite
is confounded with the All, and which assumes that the All is greater
than the Infinite--in other words, that God plus the universe is
greater than God minus the universe.--W.G.T.S.]
[618] 1 Cor. vi. 17
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--Whether One or the Three Persons Together are Called the
Only God.
10. And since we are showing how we can say the Father alone, because
there is no Father in the Godhead except Himself, we must consider also
the opinion which holds that the only true God is not the Father alone,
but the Father and the Son and the Holy Spirit. For if any one should
ask whether the Father alone is God, how can it be replied that He is
not, unless perhaps we were to say that the Father indeed is God, but
that He is not God alone, but that the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit are
God alone? But then what shall we do with that testimony of the Lord?
For He was speaking to the Father, and had named the Father as Him to
whom He was speaking, when He says, "And this is life eternal, that
they may know Thee the one true God." [619] And this the Arians indeed
usually take, as if the Son were not true God. Passing them by,
however, we must see whether, when it is said to the Father, "That they
may know Thee the one true God," we are forced to understand it as if
He wished to intimate that the Father alone is the true God; lest we
should not understand any to be God, except the three together, the
Father, Son, and Holy Spirit. Are we therefore, from the testimony of
the Lord, both to call the Father the one true God, and the Son the one
true God, and the Holy Spirit the one true God, and the Father, the
Son, and the Holy Spirit together, that is, the Trinity itself
together, not three true Gods but one true God? Or because He added,
"And Jesus Christ whom Thou hast sent," are we to supply "the one true
God;" so that the order of the words is this, "That they may know Thee,
and Jesus Christ whom Thou hast sent, the one true God?" Why then did
He omit to mention the Holy Spirit? Is it because it follows, that
whenever we name One who cleaves to One by a harmony so great that
through this harmony both are one, this harmony itself must be
understood, although it is not mentioned? For in that place, too, the
apostle seems as it were to pass over the Holy Spirit; and yet there,
too, He is understood, where he says, "All are yours, and ye are
Christ's, and Christ is God's." [620] And again, "The head of the woman
is the man, the head of the man is Christ, and the head of Christ is
God." [621] But again, if God is only all three together, how can God
be the head of Christ, that is, the Trinity the head of Christ, since
Christ is in the Trinity in order that it may be the Trinity? Is that
which is the Father with the Son, the head of that which is the Son
alone? For the Father with the Son is God, but the Son alone is Christ:
especially since it is the Word already made flesh that speaks; and
according to this His humiliation also, the Father is greater than He,
as He says, "for my Father is greater than I;" [622] so that the very
being of God, which is one to Him with the Father, is itself the head
of the man who is mediator, which He is alone. [623] For if we rightly
call the mind the chief thing of man, that is, as it were the head of
the human substance, although the man himself together with the mind is
man; why is not the Word with the Father, which together is God, much
more suitably and much more the head of Christ, although Christ as man
cannot be understood except with the Word which was made flesh? But
this, as we have already said, we shall consider somewhat more
carefully hereafter. At present the equality and one and the same
substance of the Trinity has been demonstrated as briefly as possible,
that in whatever way that other question be determined, the more
rigorous discussion of which we have deferred, nothing may hinder us
from confessing the absolute equality of the Father, Son, and Holy
Spirit.
__________________________________________________________________
[619] John xvii. 3
[620] 1 Cor. iii. 22, 23
[621] 1 Cor. xi. 3
[622] John xiv. 28
[623] 1 Tim. ii. 5
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--Of the Attributes Assigned by Hilary to Each Person. The
Trinity is Represented in Things that are Made.
11. A certain writer, when he would briefly intimate the special
attributes of each of the persons in the Trinity, tells us that
"Eternity is in the Father, form in the Image, use in the Gift." And
since he was a man of no mean authority in handling the Scriptures, and
in the assertion of the faith, for it is Hilary who put this in his
book (On the Trinity, ii.); I have searched into the hidden meaning of
these words as far as I can, that is, of the Father, and the Image, and
the Gift, of eternity, and of form, and of use. And I do not think that
he intended more by the word eternity, than that the Father has not a
father from whom He is; but the Son is from the Father, so as to be,
and so as to be co-eternal with Him. For if an image perfectly fills
the measure of that of which it is the image, then the image is made
equal to that of which it is the image, not the latter to its own
image. And in respect to this image he has named form, I believe on
account of the quality of beauty, where there is at once such great
fitness, and prime equality, and prime likeness, differing in nothing,
and unequal in no respect, and in no part unlike, but answering exactly
to Him whose image it is: where there is prime and absolute life, to
whom it is not one thing to live, and another to be, but the same thing
to be and to live; and prime and absolute intellect, to whom it is not
one thing to live, another to understand, but to understand is to live,
and is to be, and all things are one: as though a perfect Word (John i.
1), to which nothing is wanting, and a certain skill of the omnipotent
and wise God, full of all living, unchangeable sciences, and all one in
it, as itself is one from one, with whom it is one. Therein God knew
all things which He made by it; and therefore, while times pass away
and succeed, nothing passes away or succeeds to the knowledge of God.
For things which are created are not therefore known by God, because
they have been made; and not rather have been therefore made, even
although changeable, because they are known unchangeably by Him.
Therefore that unspeakable conjunction of the Father and His image is
not without fruition, without love, without joy. Therefore that love,
delight, felicity, or blessedness, if indeed it can be worthily
expressed by any human word, is called by him, in short, Use; and is
the Holy Spirit in the Trinity, not begotten, but the sweetness of the
begetter and of the begotten, filling all creatures according to their
capacity with abundant bountifulness and copiousness, that they may
keep their proper order and rest satisfied in their proper place.
12. Therefore all these things which are made by divine skill, show in
themselves a certain unity, and form, and order; for each of them is
both some one thing, as are the several natures of bodies and
dispositions of souls; and is fashioned in some form, as are the
figures or qualities of bodies, and the various learning or skill of
souls; and seeks or preserves a certain order, as are the several
weights or combinations of bodies and the loves or delights of souls.
When therefore we regard the Creator, who is understood by the things
that are made [624] we must needs understand the Trinity of whom there
appear traces in the creature, as is fitting. For in that Trinity is
the supreme source of all things, and the most perfect beauty, and the
most blessed delight. Those three, therefore, both seem to be mutually
determined to each other, and are in themselves infinite. But here in
corporeal things, one thing alone is not as much as three together, and
two are something more than one; but in that highest Trinity one is as
much as the three together, nor are two anything more than one. And
They are infinite in themselves. So both each are in each, and all in
each, and each in all, and all in all, and all are one. Let him who
sees this, whether in part, or "through a glass and in an enigma,"
[625] rejoice in knowing God; and let him honor Him as God, and give
thanks; but let him who does not see it, strive to see it through
piety, not to cavil at it through blindness. Since God is one, but yet
is a Trinity. Neither are we to take the words, "of whom, and through
whom, and to whom are all things," as used indiscriminately [i.e., to
denote a unity without distinctions]; nor yet to denote many gods, for
"to Him, be glory for ever and ever. Amen." [626]
__________________________________________________________________
[624] Rom. i. 20
[625] 1 Cor. xiii. 12. Darkly, A.V.
[626] Rom. xi. 36, in A.V.
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
Book VII.
------------------------
The question is explained, which had been deferred in the previous
book, viz. that God the Father, who begat the Son, His power and
wisdom, is not only the Father of power and wisdom, but also Himself
power and wisdom; and similarly the Holy Spirit: yet that there are not
three powers or three wisdoms, but one power and one wisdom, as there
is one God and one essence. Inquiry is then made, why the Latins say
one essence, three persons, in God; but the Greeks, one essence, three
substances or hypostases: and both modes of expression are shown to
arise from the necessities of speech, that we might have an answer to
give when asked, what three, while truly confessing that there are
three, viz. the Father, and the Son, and the Holy Spirit.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--Augustin Returns to the Question, Whether Each Person of
the Trinity by Itself is Wisdom. With What Difficulty, or in What Way,
the Proposed Question is to Be Solved.
1. Let us now inquire more carefully, so far as God grants, into that
which a little before we deferred; whether each person also in the
Trinity can also by Himself and not with the other two be called God,
or great, or wise, or true, or omnipotent, or just, or anything else
that can be said of God, not relatively, but absolutely; or whether
these things cannot be said except when the Trinity is understood. For
the question is raised,--because it is written, "Christ the power of
God, and the wisdom of God," [627] --whether He is so the Father of His
own wisdom and His own power, as that He is wise with that wisdom which
He begat, and powerful with that power which He begat; and whether,
since He is always powerful and wise, He always begat power and wisdom.
For if it be so, then, as we have said, why is He not also the Father
of His own greatness by which He is great, and of His own goodness by
which He is good, and of His own justice by which He is just, and
whatever else there is? Or if all these things are understood, although
under more names than one, to be in the same wisdom and power, so that
that is greatness which is power, that is goodness which is wisdom, and
that again is wisdom which is power, as we have already argued; then
let us remember, that when I mention any one of these, I am to be taken
as if I mentioned all. It is asked, then, whether the Father also by
Himself is wise, and is Himself His own wisdom itself; or whether He is
wise in the same way as He speaks. For He speaks by the Word which He
begat, not by the word which is uttered, and sounds, and passes away,
but by the Word which was with God, and the Word was God, and all
things were made by Him: [628] by the Word which is equal to Himself,
by whom He always and unchangeably utters Himself. For He is not
Himself the Word, as He is not the Son nor the image. But in speaking
(putting aside those words of God in time which are produced in the
creature, for they sound and pass away,--in speaking then) by that
co-eternal Word, He is not understood singly, but with that Word
itself, without whom certainly He does not speak. Is He then in such
way wise as He is one who speaks, so as to be in such way wisdom, as He
is the Word, and so that to be the Word is to be wisdom, that is, also
to be power, so that power and wisdom and the Word may be the same, and
be so called relatively as the Son and the image: and that the Father
is not singly powerful or wise, but together with the power and wisdom
itself which He begat (genuit); just as He is not singly one who
speaks, but by that Word and together with that Word which He begat;
and in like way great by that and together with that greatness, which
He begat? And if He is not great by one thing, and God by another, but
great by that whereby He is God, because it is not one thing to Him to
be great and another to be God; it follows that neither is He God
singly, but by that and together with that deity (deitas) which He
begat; so that the Son is the deity of the Father, as He is the wisdom
and power of the Father, and as He is the Word and image of the Father.
And because it is not one thing to Him to be, another to be God, the
Son is also the essence of the Father, as He is His Word and image. And
hence also--except that He is the Father [the Unbegotten]--the Father
is not anything unless because He has the Son; so that not only that
which is meant by Father (which it is manifest He is not called
relatively to Himself but to the Son, and therefore is the Father
because He has the Son), but that which He is in respect to His own
substance is so called, because He begat His own essence. For as He is
great, only with that greatness which He begat, so also He is, only
with that essence which He begat; because it is not one thing to Him to
be, and another to be great. Is He therefore the Father of His own
essence, in the same way as He is the Father of His own greatness, as
He is the Father of His own power and wisdom? since His greatness is
the same as His power, and His essence the same as His greatness.
2. This discussion has arisen from that which is written, that "Christ
is the power of God, and the wisdom of God." Wherefore our discourse is
compressed into these narrow limits, while we desire to speak things
unspeakable; that either we must say that Christ is not the power of
God and the wisdom of God, and so shamelessly and impiously resist the
apostle; or we must acknowledge that Christ is indeed the power of God
and the wisdom of God, but that His Father is not the Father of His own
power and wisdom, which is not less impious; for so neither will He be
the Father of Christ, because Christ is the power of God and the wisdom
of God; or that the Father is not powerful with His own power, or wise
with His own wisdom: and who shall dare to say this? Or yet, again,
that we must understand, that in the Father it is one thing to be,
another thing to be wise, so that He is not by that by which He is
wise: a thing usually understood of the soul, which is at some times
unwise, at others wise; as being by nature changeable, and not
absolutely and perfectly simple. Or, again, that the Father is not
anything in respect to His own substance; and that not only that He is
the Father, but that He is, is said relatively to the Son. How then can
the Son be of the same essence as the Father, seeing that the Father,
in respect to Himself, is neither His own essence, nor is at all in
respect to Himself, but even His essence is in relation to the Son?
But, on the contrary, much more is He of one and the same essence,
since the Father and Son are one and the same essence; seeing that the
Father has His being itself not in respect to Himself, but to the Son,
which essence He begat, and by which essence He is whatever He is.
Therefore neither [person] is in respect to Himself alone; and both
exist relatively the one to the other. Or is the Father alone not
called Father of himself, but whatever He is called, is called
relatively to the Son, but the Son is predicated of in reference to
Himself? And if it be so, what is predicated of Him in reference to
Himself? Is it His essence itself? But the Son is the essence of the
Father, as He is the power and wisdom of the Father, as He is the Word
of the Father, and the image of the Father. Or if the Son is called
essence in reference to Himself, but the Father is not essence, but the
begetter of the essence, and is not in respect to Himself, but is by
that very essence which He begat; as He is great by that greatness
which He begat: therefore the Son is also called greatness in respect
to Himself; therefore He is also called, in like manner, power, and
wisdom, and word, and image. But what can be more absurd than that He
should be called image in respect to Himself? Or if image and word are
not the very same with power and wisdom, but the former are spoken
relatively, and the latter in respect to self, not to another; then we
get to this, that the Father is not wise with that wisdom which He
begat, because He Himself cannot be spoken relatively to it, and it
cannot be spoken relatively to Him. For all things which are said
relatively are said reciprocally; therefore it remains that even in
essence the Son is spoken of relatively to the Father. But from this is
educed a most unexpected sense: that essence itself is not essence, or
at least that, when it is called essence, not essence but something
relative is intimated. As when we speak of a master, essence is not
intimated, but a relative which has reference to a slave; but when we
speak of a man, or any such thing which is said in respect to self not
to something else, then essence is intimated. Therefore when a man is
called a master, man himself is essence, but he is called master
relatively; for he is called man in respect to himself, but master in
respect to his slave. But in regard to the point from which we started,
if essence itself is spoken relatively, essence itself is not essence.
Add further, that all essence which is spoken of relatively, is also
something, although the relation be taken away; as e.g. in the case of
a man who is a master, and a man who is a slave, and a horse that is a
beast of burden, and money that is a pledge, the man, and the horse,
and the money are spoken in respect to themselves, and are substances
or essences; but master, and slave, and beast of burden, and pledge,
are spoken relatively to something. But if there were not a man, that
is, some substance, there would be none who could be called relatively
a master; and if there were no horse having a certain essence, there
would be nothing that could be called relatively a beast of burden; so
if money were not some kind of substance, it could not be called
relatively a pledge. Wherefore, if the Father also is not something in
respect to Himself then there is no one at all that can be spoken of
relatively to something. For it is not as it is with color. The color
of a thing is referred to the thing colored, and color is not spoken at
all in reference to substance, but is always of something that is
colored; but that thing of which it is the color, even if it is
referred to color in respect to its being colored, is yet, in respect
to its being a body, spoken of in respect to substance. But in no way
may we think, in like manner, that the Father cannot be called anything
in respect to His own substance, but that whatever He is called, He is
called in relation to the Son; while the same Son is spoken of both in
respect to His own substance and in relation to the Father, when He is
called great greatness, and powerful power, plainly in respect to
Himself, and the greatness and power of the great and powerful Father,
by which the Father is great and powerful. It is not so; but both are
substance, and both are one substance. And as it is absurd to say that
whiteness is not white, so is it absurd to say that wisdom is not wise;
and as whiteness is called white in respect to itself, so also wisdom
is called wise in respect to itself. But the whiteness of a body is not
an essence, since the body itself is the essence, and that is a quality
of it; and hence also a body is said from that quality to be white, to
which body to be is not the same thing as to be white. For the form in
it is one thing, and the color another; and both are not in themselves,
but in a certain bulk, which bulk is neither form nor color, but is
formed and colored. True wisdom is both wise, and wise in itself. And
since in the case of every soul that becomes wise by partaking of
wisdom, if it again becomes foolish, yet wisdom in itself remains; nor
when that soul was changed into folly is the wisdom likewise so
changed; therefore wisdom is not in him who becomes wise by it, in the
same manner as whiteness is in the body which is by it made white. For
when the body has been changed into another color, that whiteness will
not remain, but will altogether cease to be. But if the Father who
begat wisdom is also made wise by it, and to be is not to Him the same
as to be wise, then the Son is His quality, not His offspring; and
there will no longer be absolute simplicity in the Godhead. But far be
it from being so, since in truth in the Godhead is absolutely simple
essence, and therefore to be is there the same as to be wise. But if to
be is there the same as to be wise, then the Father is not wise by that
wisdom which He begat; otherwise He did not beget it, but it begat Him.
For what else do we say when we say, that to Him to be is the same as
to be wise, unless that He is by that whereby He is wise? Wherefore,
that which is the cause to Him of being wise, is itself also the cause
to Him that He is; and accordingly, if the wisdom which He begat is the
cause to Him of being wise, it is also the cause to Him that He is; and
this cannot be the case, except either by begetting or by creating Him.
But no one ever said in any sense that wisdom is either the begetter or
the creator of the Father; for what could be more senseless? Therefore
both the Father Himself is wisdom, and the Son is in such way called
the wisdom of the Father, as He is called the light of the Father; that
is, that in the same manner as light from light, and yet both one
light, so we are to understand wisdom of wisdom, and yet both one
wisdom; and therefore also one essence, since, in God, to be, is the
same as to be wise. For what to be wise is to wisdom, and to be able is
to power, and to be eternal is to eternity, and to be just to justice,
and to be great to greatness, that being itself is to essence. And
since in the Divine simplicity, to be wise is nothing else than to be,
therefore wisdom there is the same as essence.
__________________________________________________________________
[627] 1 Cor. i. 24
[628] John i. 1, 3
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--The Father and the Son are Together One Wisdom, as One
Essence, Although Not Together One Word.
3. Therefore the Father and the Son together are one essence, and one
greatness, and one truth, and one wisdom. But the Father and Son both
together are not one Word, because both together are not one Son. For
as the Son is referred to the Father, and is not so called in respect
to Himself, so also the Word is referred to him whose Word it is, when
it is called the Word. Since He is the Son in that He is the Word, and
He is the Word in that He is the Son. Inasmuch, therefore, as the
Father and the Son together are certainly not one Son, it follows that
the Father and the Son together are not the one Word of both. And
therefore He is not the Word in that He is wisdom; since He is not
called the Word in respect to Himself, but only relatively to Him whose
Word He is, as He is called the Son in relation to the Father; but He
is wisdom by that whereby He is essence. And therefore, because one
essence, one wisdom. But since the Word is also wisdom, yet is not
thereby the Word because He is wisdom for He is understood to be the
Word relatively, but wisdom essentially: let us understand, that when
He is called the Word, it is meant, wisdom that is born, so as to be
both the Son and the Image; and that when these two words are used,
namely wisdom (is) born, in one of the two, namely born, [629] both
Word, and Image, and Son, are understood, and in all these names
essence is not expressed, since they are spoken relatively; but in the
other word, namely wisdom, since it is spoken also in respect to
substance, for wisdom is wise in itself, essence also is expressed, and
that being of His which is to be wise. Whence the Father and Son
together are one wisdom, because one essence, and singly wisdom of
wisdom, as essence of essence. And hence they are not therefore not one
essence, because the Father is not the Son, and the Son is not the
Father, or because the Father is un-begotten, but the Son is begotten:
since by these names only their relative attributes are expressed. But
both together are one wisdom and one essence; in which to be, is the
same as to be wise. And both together are not the Word or the Son,
since to be is not the same as to be the Word or the Son, as we have
already sufficiently shown that these terms are spoken relatively.
__________________________________________________________________
[629] [Augustin sometimes denominates the Son "begotten" (genitus), and
sometimes "born" (natus). Both terms signify that the Son is of the
Father; God of God, Light of Light, Essence of Essence.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--Why the Son Chiefly is Intimated in the Scriptures by the
Name of Wisdom, While Both the Father and the Holy Spirit are Wisdom.
That the Holy Spirit, Together with the Father and the Son, is One
Wisdom.
4. Why, then, is scarcely anything ever said in the Scriptures of
wisdom, unless to show that it is begotten or created of God?--begotten
in the case of that Wisdom by which all things are made; but created or
made, as in men, when they are converted to that Wisdom which is not
created and made but begotten, and are so enlightened; for in these men
themselves there comes to be something which may be called their
wisdom: even as the Scriptures foretell or narrate, that "the Word was
made flesh, and dwelt among us;" [630] for in this way Christ was made
wisdom, because He was made man. Is it on this account that wisdom does
not speak in these books, nor is anything spoken of it, except to
declare that it is born of God, or made by Him (although the Father is
Himself wisdom), namely, because wisdom ought to be commended and
imitated by us, by the imitation of which we are fashioned [rightly]?
For the Father speaks it, that it may be His Word: yet not as a word
producing a sound proceeds from the mouth, or is thought before it is
pronounced. For this word is completed in certain spaces of time, but
that is eternal, and speaks to us by enlightening us, what ought to be
spoken to men, both of itself and of the Father. And therefore He says,
"No man knoweth the Son, but the Father; neither knoweth any man the
Father, save the Son, and he to whomsoever the Son will reveal Him:"
[631] since the Father reveals by the Son, that is, by His Word. For if
that word which we utter, and which is temporal and transitory,
declares both itself, and that of which we speak, how much more the
Word of God, by which all things are made? For this Word so declares
the Father as He is the Father; because both itself so is, and is that
which is the Father, in so far as it is wisdom and essence. For in so
far as it is the Word, it is not what the Father is; because the Word
is not the Father, and Word is spoken relatively, as is also Son, which
assuredly is not the Father. And therefore Christ is the power and
wisdom of God, because He Himself, being also power and wisdom, is from
the Father, who is power and wisdom; as He is light of the Father, who
is light, and the fountain of life with God the Father, who is Himself
assuredly the fountain of life. For "with Thee," He says, "is the
fountain of life, and in Thy light shall we see light." [632] Because,
"as the Father hath life in Himself, so hath He given to the Son to
have life in Himself:" [633] and, "He was the true Light, which
lighteth every man that cometh into the world:" and this light, "the
Word," was "with God;" but "the Word also was God;" [634] and "God is
light, and in Him is no darkness at all:" [635] but a light that is not
corporeal, but spiritual; yet not in such way spiritual, that it was
wrought by illumination, as it was said to the apostles, "Ye are the
light of the world," [636] but "the light which lighteth every man,"
that very supreme wisdom itself who is God, of whom we now treat. The
Son therefore is Wisdom of wisdom, namely the Father, as He is Light of
light, and God of God; so that both the Father singly is light, and the
Son singly is light; and the Father singly is God, and the Son singly
is God: therefore the Father also singly is wisdom, and the Son singly
is wisdom. And as both together are one light and one God, so both are
one wisdom. But the Son is "by God made unto us wisdom, and
righteousness, and sanctification;" [637] because we turn ourselves to
Him in time, that is, from some particular time, that we may remain
with Him for ever. And He Himself from a certain time was "the Word
made flesh, and dwelt among us."
5. On this account, then, when anything concerning wisdom is declared
or narrated in the Scriptures, whether as itself speaking, or where
anything is spoken of it, the Son chiefly is intimated to us. And by
the example of Him who is the image, let us also not depart from God,
since we also are the Image of God: not indeed that which is equal to
Him, since we are made so by the Father through the Son, and not born
of the Father, as that is. And we are so, because we are enlightened
with light; but that is so, because it is the light that enlightens;
and which, therefore, being without pattern, is to us a pattern. For He
does not imitate any one going before Him, in respect to the Father,
from whom He is never separable at all, since He is the very same
substance with Him from whom He is. But we by striving imitate Him who
abides, and follow Him who stands still, and walking in Him, reach out
towards Him; because He is made for us a way in time by His
humiliation, which is to us an eternal abiding-place by His divinity.
For since to pure intellectual spirits, who have not fallen through
pride, He gives an example in the form of God and as equal with God and
as God; so, in order that He might also give Himself as an example of
returning to fallen man who on account of the uncleanness of sins and
the punishment of mortality cannot see God, "He emptied Himself;" not
by changing His own divinity, but by assuming our changeableness: and
"taking upon Him the form of a servant" [638] He came to us into this
world," [639] who "was in this world," because "the world was made by
Him;" [640] that He might be an example upwards to those who see God,
an example downwards to those who admire man, an example to the sound
to persevere, an example to the sick to be made whole, an example to
those who are to die that they may not fear, an example to the dead
that they may rise again, "that in all things He might have the
pre-eminence." [641] So that, because man ought not to follow any
except God to blessedness, and yet cannot perceive God; by following
God made man, he might follow at once Him whom he could perceive, and
whom he ought to follow. Let us then love Him and cleave to Him, by
charity spread abroad in our hearts, through the Holy Spirit which is
given unto us. [642] It is not therefore to be wondered at, if, on
account of the example which the Image, which is equal to the Father,
gives to us, in order that we may be refashioned after the image of
God, Scripture, when it speaks of wisdom, speaks of the Son, whom we
follow by living wisely; although the Father also is wisdom, as He is
both light and God.
6. The Holy Spirit also, whether we are to call Him that absolute love
which joins together Father and Son, and joins us also from beneath,
that so that is not unfitly said which is written, "God is love;" [643]
how is He not also Himself wisdom, since He is light, because "God is
light"? or whether after any other way the essence of the Holy Spirit
is to be singly and properly named; then, too, since He is God, He is
certainly light; and since He is light, He is certainly wisdom. But
that the Holy Spirit is God, Scripture proclaims by the apostle, who
says, "Know ye not that ye are the temple of God?" and immediately
subjoins, "And the Spirit of God dwelleth in you;" [644] for God
dwelleth in His own temple. For the Spirit of God does not dwell in the
temple of God as a servant, since he says more plainly in another
place, "Know ye not that your body is the temple of the Holy Ghost
which is in you, and which ye have of God, and ye are not your own? For
ye are bought with a great price: therefore glorify God in your body."
[645] But what is wisdom, except spiritual and unchangeable light? For
yonder sun also is light, but it is corporeal; and the spiritual
creature also is light, but it is not unchangeable. Therefore the
Father is light, the Son is light, and the Holy Spirit is light; but
together not three lights, but one light. And so the Father is wisdom,
the Son is wisdom, and the Holy Spirit is wisdom, and together not
three wisdoms, but one wisdom: and because in the Trinity to be is the
same as to be wise, the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit, are one essence.
Neither in the Trinity is it one thing to be and another to be God;
therefore the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit, are one God.
__________________________________________________________________
[630] John i. 14
[631] Matt. xi. 27
[632] Ps. xxxvi. 9
[633] John v. 2
[634] John i. 9, 1
[635] 1 John i. 5
[636] Matt. v. 14
[637] 1 Cor. i. 30
[638] Phil. ii. 7
[639] 1 Tim. i. 15
[640] John i. 10
[641] Col. i. 18
[642] Rom. v. 5
[643] 1 John iv. 8
[644] 1 Cor. iii. 16
[645] 1 Cor. vi. 19, 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--How It Was Brought About that the Greeks Speak of Three
Hypostases, the Latins of Three Persons. Scripture Nowhere Speaks of
Three Persons in One God.
7. For the sake, then, of speaking of things that cannot be uttered,
that we may be able in some way to utter what we are able in no way to
utter fully, our Greek friends have spoken of one essence, three
substances; but the Latins of one essence or substance, three persons;
because, as we have already said, [646] essence usually means nothing
else than substance in our language, that is, in Latin. And provided
that what is said is understood only in a mystery, such a way of
speaking was sufficient, in order that there might be something to say
when it was asked what the three are, which the true faith pronounces
to be three, when it both declares that the Father is not the Son, and
that the Holy Spirit, which is the gift of God, is neither the Father
nor the Son. When, then, it is asked what the three are, or who the
three are, we betake ourselves to the finding out of some special or
general name under which we may embrace these three; and no such name
occurs to the mind, because the super-eminence of the Godhead surpasses
the power of customary speech. For God is more truly thought than He is
altered, and exists more truly than He is thought. For when we say that
Jacob was not the same as Abraham, but that Isaac was neither Abraham
nor Jacob, certainly we confess that they are three, Abraham, Isaac,
and Jacob. But when it is asked what three, we reply three men, calling
them in the plural by a specific name; but if we were to say three
animals, then by a generic name; for man, as the ancients have defined
him, is a rational, mortal animal: or again, as our Scriptures usually
speak, three souls, since it is fitting to denominate the whole from
the better part, that is, to denominate both body and soul, which is
the whole man, from the soul; for so it is said that seventy-five souls
went down into Egypt with Jacob, instead of saying so many men. [647]
Again, when we say that your horse is not mine, and that a third
belonging to some one else is neither mine nor yours, then we confess
that there are three; and if any one ask what three, we answer three
horses by a specific name, but three animals by a generic one. And yet
again, when we say that an ox is not a horse, but that a dog is neither
an ox nor a horse, we speak of a three; and if any one questions us
what three, we do not speak now by a specific name of three horses, or
three oxen, or three dogs, because the three are not contained under
the same species, but by a generic name, three animals; or if under a
higher genus, three substances, or three creatures, or three natures.
But whatsoever things are expressed in the plural number specifically
by one name, can also be expressed generically by one name. But all
things which are generically called by one name cannot also be called
specifically by one name. For three horses, which is a specific name,
we also call three animals; but, a horse, and an ox, and a dog, we call
only three animals or substances, which are generic names, or anything
else that can be spoken generically concerning them; but we cannot
speak of them as three horses, or oxen, or dogs, which are specific
names; for we express those things by one name, although in the plural
number, which have that in common that is signified by the name. For
Abraham, and Isaac, and Jacob, have in common that which is man;
therefore they are called three men: a horse also, and an ox, and a
dog, have in common that which is animal; therefore they are called
three animals. So three several laurels we also call three trees; but a
laurel, and a myrtle, and an olive, we call only three trees, or three
substances, or three natures: and so three stones we call also three
bodies; but stone, and wood, and iron, we call only three bodies, or by
any other higher generic name by which they can be called. Of the
Father, therefore, the Son, and the Holy Spirit, seeing that they are
three, let us ask what three they are, and what they have in common.
For the being the Father is not common to them, so that they should be
interchangeably fathers to one another: as friends, since they are so
called relatively to each other, can be called three friends, because
they are so mutually to each other. But this is not the case in the
Trinity, since the Father only is there father; and not Father of two,
but of the Son only. Neither are they three Sons, since the Father
there is not the Son, nor is the Holy Spirit. Neither three Holy
Spirits, because the Holy Spirit also, in that proper meaning by which
He is also called the gift of God, is neither the Father nor the Son.
What three therefore? For if three persons, then that which is meant by
person is common to them; therefore this name is either specific or
generic to them, according to the manner of speaking. But where there
is no difference of nature, there things that are several in number are
so expressed generically, that they can also be expressed specifically.
For the difference of nature causes, that a laurel, and a myrtle, and
an olive, or a horse, and an ox, and a dog, are not called by the
specific name, the former of three laurels, or the latter of three
oxen, but by the generic name, the former of three trees, and the
latter of three animals. But here, where there is no difference of
essence, it is necessary that these three should have a specific name,
which yet is not to be found. For person is a generic name, insomuch
that man also can be so called, although there is so great a difference
between man and God.
8. Further, in regard to that very generic (generalis) word, if on this
account we say three persons, because that which person means is common
to them (otherwise they can in no way be so called, just as they are
not called three sons, because that which son means is not common to
them); why do we not also say three Gods? For certainly, since the
Father is a person, and the Son a person, and the Holy Spirit a person,
therefore there are three persons: since then the Father is God, and
the Son God, and the Holy Spirit God, why not three Gods? Or else,
since on account of their ineffable union these three are together one
God, why not also one person; so that we could not say three persons,
although we call each a person singly, just as we cannot say three
Gods, although we call each singly God, whether the Father, or the Son,
or the Holy Spirit? Is it because Scripture does not say three Gods?
But neither do we find that Scripture anywhere mentions three persons.
Or is it because Scripture does not call these three, either three
persons or one person (for we read of the person of the Lord, but not
of the Lord as a person), that therefore it was lawful through the mere
necessity of speaking and reasoning to say three persons, not because
Scripture says it, but because Scripture does not contradict it:
whereas, if we were to say three Gods, Scripture would contradict it,
which says, "Hear, O Israel; the Lord thy God is one God?" [648] Why
then is it not also lawful to say three essences; which, in like
manner, as Scripture does not say, so neither does it contradict? For
if essence is a specific (specialis) name common to three, why are They
not to be called three essences, as Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob are
called three men, because man is the specific name common to all men?
But if essence is not a specific name, but a generic one, since man,
and cattle, and tree, and constellation, and angel, are called
essences; why are not these called three essences, as three horses are
called three animals, and three laurels are called three trees, and
three stones three bodies? Or if they are not called three essences,
but one essence, on account of the unity of the Trinity, why is it not
the case, that on account of the same unity of the Trinity they are not
to be called three substances or three persons, but one substance and
one person? For as the name of essence is common to them, so that each
singly is called essence, so the name of either substance or person is
common to them. For that which must be understood of persons according
to our usage, this is to be understood of substances according to the
Greek usage; for they say three substances, one essence, in the same
way as we say three persons, one essence or substance.
9. What therefore remains, except that we confess that these terms
sprang from the necessity of speaking, when copious reasoning was
required against the devices or errors of the heretics? For when human
weakness endeavored to utter in speech to the senses of man what it
grasps in the secret places of the mind in proportion to its
comprehension respecting the Lord God its creator, whether by devout
faith, or by any discernment whatsoever; it feared to say three
essences, lest any difference should be understood to exist in that
absolute equality. Again, it could not say that there were not three
somewhats (tria quaedam), for it was because Sabellius said this that
he fell into heresy. For it must be devoutly believed, as most
certainly known from the Scriptures, and must be grasped by the mental
eye with undoubting perception, that there is both Father, and Son, and
Holy Spirit; and that the Son is not the same with the Father, nor the
Holy Spirit the same with the Father or the Son. It sought then what
three it should call them, and answered substances or persons; by which
names it did not intend diversity to be meant, but singleness to be
denied: that not only unity might be understood therein from the being
called one essence, but also Trinity from the being called three
substances or persons. For if it is the same thing with God to be
(esse) as to subsist (subsistere), they were not to be called three
substances, in such sense as they are not called three essences; just
as, because it is the same thing with God to be as to be wise, as we do
not say three essences, so neither three wisdoms. For so, because it is
the same thing to Him to be God as to be, it is not right to say three
essences, as it is not right to say three Gods. But if it is one thing
to God to be, another to subsist, as it is one thing to God to be,
another to be the Father or the Lord (for that which He is, is spoken
in respect to Himself, but He is called Father in relation to the Son,
and Lord in relation to the creature which serves Him); therefore He
subsists relatively, as He begets relatively, and bears rule
relatively: so then substance will be no longer substance, because it
will be relative. For as from being, He is called essence, so from
subsisting, we speak of substance. But it is absurd that substance
should be spoken relatively, for everything subsists in respect to
itself; how much more God? [649]
__________________________________________________________________
[646] Bk. v. c. 28.
[647] Gen. xlvi. 27, and Deut. x. 22
[648] Deut. vi. 4
[649] [Augustin's meaning is, that the term "substance" is not an
adequate one whereby to denote a trinitarian distinction, because in
order to denote such a distinction it must be employed relatively,
while in itself it has an absolute signification. In the next chapter
he proceeds to show this.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--In God, Substance is Spoken Improperly, Essence Properly.
10. If, however, it is fitting that God should be said to subsist--(For
this word is rightly applied to those things, in which as subjects
those things are, which are said to be in a subject, as color or shape
in body. For body subsists, and so is substance; but those things are
in the body, which subsists and is their subject, and they are not
substances, but are in a substance: and so, if either that color or
that shape ceases to be, it does not deprive the body of being a body,
because it is not of the being of body, that it should retain this or
that shape or color; therefore neither changeable nor simple things are
properly called substances.)--If, I say, God subsists so that He can be
properly called a substance, then there is something in Him as it were
in a subject, and He is not simple, i.e. such that to Him to be is the
same as is anything else that is said concerning Him in respect to
Himself; as, for instance, great, omnipotent, good, and whatever of
this kind is not unfitly said of God. But it is an impiety to say that
God subsists, and is a subject in relation to His own goodness, and
that this goodness is not a substance or rather essence, and that God
Himself is not His own goodness, but that it is in Him as in a subject.
And hence it is clear that God is improperly called substance, in order
that He may be understood to be, by the more usual name essence, which
He is truly and properly called; so that perhaps it is right that God
alone should be called essence. For He is truly alone, because He is
unchangeable; and declared this to be His own name to His servant
Moses, when He says, "I am that I am;" and, "Thus shalt thou say unto
the children of Israel: He who is hath sent me unto you." [650]
However, whether He be called essence, which He is properly called, or
substance, which He is called improperly, He is called both in respect
to Himself, not relatively to anything; whence to God to be is the same
thing as to subsist; and so the Trinity, if one essence, is also one
substance. Perhaps therefore they are more conveniently called three
persons than three substances.
__________________________________________________________________
[650] Ex. iii. 14
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--Why We Do Not in the Trinity Speak of One Person, and Three
Essences. What He Ought to Believe Concerning the Trinity Who Does Not
Receive What is Said Above. Man is Both After the Image, and is the
Image of God.
11. But lest I should seem to favor ourselves [the Latins], let us make
this further inquiry. Although they [the Greeks] also, if they pleased,
as they call three substances three hypostases, so might call three
persons three "prosopa," yet they preferred that word which, perhaps,
was more in accordance with the usage of their language. For the case
is the same with the word persons also; for to God it is not one thing
to be, another to be a person, but it is absolutely the same thing. For
if to be is said in respect to Himself, but person relatively; in this
way we should say three persons, the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit; just
as we speak of three friends, or three relations, or three neighbors,
in that they are so mutually, not that each one of them is so in
respect to himself. Wherefore any one of these is the friend of the
other two, or the relation, or the neighbor, because these names have a
relative signification. What then? Are we to call the Father the person
of the Son and of the Holy Spirit, or the Son the person of the Father
and of the Holy Spirit, or the Holy Spirit the person of the Father and
of the Son? But neither is the word person commonly so used in any
case; nor in this Trinity, when we speak of the person of the Father,
do we mean anything else than the substance of the Father. Wherefore,
as the substance of the Father is the Father Himself, not as He is the
Father, but as He is, so also the person of the Father is not anything
else than the Father Himself; for He is called a person in respect to
Himself, not in respect to the Son, or the Holy Spirit: just as He is
called in respect to Himself both God and great, and good, and just,
and anything else of the kind; and just as to Him to be is the same as
to be God, or as to be great, or as to be good, so it is the same thing
to Him to be, as to be a person. Why, therefore, do we not call these
three together one person, as one essence and one God, but say three
persons, while we do not say three Gods or three essences; unless it be
because we wish some one word to serve for that meaning whereby the
Trinity is understood, that we might not be altogether silent, when
asked, what three, while we confessed that they are three? For if
essence is the genus, and substance or person the species, as some
think, then I must omit what I just now said, that they ought to be
called three essences, as they are called three substances or persons;
as three horses are called three horses, and the same are called three
animals, since horse is the species, animal the genus. For in this case
the species is not spoken of in the plural, and the genus in the
singular, as if we were to say that three horses were one animal; but
as they are three horses by the special name, so they are three animals
by the generic one. But if they say that the name of substance or
person does not signify species, but something singular and individual;
so that any one is not so called a substance or person as he is called
a man, for man is common to all men, but in the same manner as he is
called this or that man, as Abraham, as Isaac, as Jacob, or anyone else
who, if present, could be pointed out with the finger: so will the same
reason reach these too. For as Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, are called
three individuals, so are they called three men, and three souls. Why
then are both the Father and the Son and the Holy Spirit, if we are to
reason about them also according to genus and species and individual,
not so called three essences, as they are called three substances or
persons? But this, as I said, I pass over: but I do affirm, that if
essence is a genus, then a single essence has no species; just as,
because animal is a genus, a single animal has no species. Therefore
the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit are not three species of one essence.
But if essence is a species, as man is a species, but those are three
which we call substances or persons, then they have the same species in
common, in such way as Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob have in common the
species which is called man; not as man is subdivided into Abraham,
Isaac, and Jacob, so can one man also be subdivided into several single
men; for this is altogether impossible, since one man is already a
single man. Why then is one essence subdivided into three substances or
persons? For if essence is a species, as man is, then one essence is as
one man is: or do we, as we say that any three human beings of the same
sex, of the same constitution of body, of the same mind, are one
nature,--for they are three human beings, but one nature,--so also say
in the Trinity three substances one essence, or three persons one
substance or essence? But this is somehow a parallel case, since the
ancients also who spoke Latin, before they had these terms, which have
not long come into use, that is, essence or substance, used for them to
say nature. We do not therefore use these terms according to genus or
species, but as if according to a matter that is common and the same.
Just as if three statues were made of the same gold, we should say
three statues one gold, yet should neither call the gold genus, and the
statues species; nor the gold species, and the statues individuals. For
no species goes beyond its own individuals, so as to comprehend
anything external to them. For when I define what man is, which is a
specific name, every several man that exists is contained in the same
individual definition, neither does anything belong to it which is not
a man. But when I define gold, not statues alone, if they be gold, but
rings also, and anything else that is made of gold, will belong to
gold; and even if nothing were made of it, it would still be called
gold; since, even if there were no gold statues, there will not
therefore be no statues at all. Likewise no species goes beyond the
definition of its genus. For when I define animal, since horse is a
species of this genus, every horse is an animal; but every statue is
not gold. So, although in the case of three golden statues we should
rightly say three statues, one gold; yet we do not so say it, as to
understand gold to be the genus, and the statues to be species.
Therefore neither do we so call the Trinity three persons or
substances, one essence and one God, as though three somethings
subsisted out of one matter [leaving a remainder, i. e.]; although
whatever that is, it is unfolded in these three. For there is nothing
else of that essence besides the Trinity. Yet we say three persons of
the same essence, or three persons one essence; but we do not say three
persons out of the same essence, as though therein essence were one
thing, and person another, as we can say three statues out of the same
gold; for there it is one thing to be gold, another to be statues. And
when we say three men one nature, or three men of the same nature, they
also can be called three men out of the same nature, since out of the
same nature there can be also three other such men. But in that essence
of the Trinity, in no way can any other person whatever exist out of
the same essence. Further, in these things, one man is not as much as
three men together; and two men are something more than one man: and in
equal statues, three together amount to more of gold than each singly,
and one amounts to less of gold than two. But in God it is not so; for
the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit together is not a greater
essence than the Father alone or the Son alone; but these three
substances or persons, if they must be so called, together are equal to
each singly: which the natural man does not comprehend. For he cannot
think except under the conditions of bulk and space, either small or
great, since phantasms or as it were images of bodies flit about in his
mind.
12. And until he be purged from this uncleanness, let him believe in
the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit, one God, alone, great, omnipotent,
good, just, merciful, Creator of all things visible and invisible, and
whatsoever can be worthily and truly said of Him in proportion to human
capacity. And when he is told that the Father only is God, let him not
separate from Him the Son or the Holy Spirit; for together with Him He
is the only God, together with whom also He is one God; because, when
we are told that the Son also is the only God, we must needs take it
without any separation of the Father or the Holy Spirit. And let him so
say one essence, as not to think one to be either greater or better
than, or in any respect differing from, another. Yet not that the
Father Himself is both Son and Holy Spirit, or whatever else each is
singly called in relation to either of the others; as Word, which is
not said except of the Son, or Gift, which is not said except of the
Holy Spirit. And on this account also they admit the plural number, as
it is written in the Gospel, "I and my Father are one." [651] He has
both said "one," [652] and "we are [653] one," according to essence,
because they are the same God; "we are," according to relation, because
the one is Father, the other is Son. Sometimes also the unity of the
essence is left unexpressed, and the relatives alone are mentioned in
the plural number: "My Father and I will come unto him, and make our
abode with him." [654] We will come, and we will make our abode, is the
plural number, since it was said before, "I and my Father," that is,
the Son and the Father, which terms are used relatively to one another.
Sometimes the meaning is altogether latent, as in Genesis: "Let us make
man after our image and likeness." [655] Both let us make and our is
said in the plural, and ought not to be received except as of
relatives. For it was not that gods might make, or make after the image
and likeness of gods; but that the Father, and Son, and Holy Spirit
might make after the image of the Father, and Son, and Holy Spirit,
that man might subsist as the image of God. And God is the Trinity. But
because that image of God was not made altogether equal to Him, as
being not born of Him, but created by Him; in order to signify this, he
is in such way the image as that he is "after the image," that is, he
is not made equal by parity, but approaches to Him by a sort of
likeness. For approach to God is not by intervals of place, but by
likeness, and withdrawal from Him is by unlikeness. For there are some
who draw this distinction, that they will have the Son to be the image,
but man not to be the image, but "after the image." But the apostle
refutes them, saying, "For a man indeed ought not to cover his head,
forasmuch as he is the image and glory of God." [656] He did not say
after the image, but the image. And this image, since it is elsewhere
spoken of as after the image, is not as if it were said relatively to
the Son, who is the image equal to the Father; otherwise he would not
say after our image. For how our, when the Son is the image of the
Father alone? But man is said to be "after the image," on account, as
we have said, of the inequality of the likeness; and therefore after
our image, that man might be the image of the Trinity; [657] not equal
to the Trinity as the Son is equal to the Father, but approaching to
it, as has been said, by a certain likeness; just as nearness may in a
sense be signified in things distant from each other, not in respect of
place, but of a sort of imitation. For it is also said, "Be ye
transformed by the renewing of your mind;" [658] to whom he likewise
says, "Be ye therefore imitators of God as dear children." [659] For it
is said to the new man, "which is renewed to the knowledge of God,
after the image of Him that created him." [660] Or if we choose to
admit the plural number, in order to meet the needs of argument, even
putting aside relative terms, that so we may answer in one term when it
is asked what three, and say three substances or three persons; then
let no one think of any bulk or interval, or of any distance of
howsoever little unlikeness, so that in the Trinity any should be
understood to be even a little less than another, in whatsoever way one
thing can be less than another: in order that there may be neither a
confusion of persons, nor such a distinction as that there should be
any inequality. And if this cannot be grasped by the understanding, let
it be held by faith, until He shall dawn in the heart who says by the
prophet, "If ye will not believe, surely ye shall not understand."
[661]
__________________________________________________________________
[651] John x. 30
[652] Unum
[653] Sumus
[654] John xiv. 23
[655] Gen. i. 26
[656] 1 Cor. xi. 7
[657] [Augustin would find this "image" in the ternaries of nature and
the human mind which illustrate the Divine trinality. The remainder of
the treatise is mainly devoted to this abstruse subject; and is one of
the most metaphysical pieces of composition in patristic literature.
The exegetical portion of the work ends substantially with the seventh
chapter. The remainder is ontological, yet growing out of, and founded
upon the biblical data and results of the first part.--W.G.T.S.]
[658] Rom. xii. 2
[659] Eph. v. 1
[660] Col. iii. 10
[661] Isa. vii. 9
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
Book VIII.
------------------------
Explains and proves that not only the Father is not greater than the
Son, but neither are both together anything greater than the Holy
Spirit, nor any two together in the same trinity anything greater than
one, nor all three together anything greater than each severally. It is
then shown how the nature itself of God may be understood from our
understanding of truth, and from our knowledge of the supreme good, and
from the innate love of righteousness, whereby a righteous soul is
loved even by a soul that is itself not yet righteous. But it is urged
above all, that the knowledge of God is to be sought by love, which God
is said to be in the Scriptures; and in this love is also pointed out
the existence of some trace of a trinity.
__________________________________________________________________
Preface.--The Conclusion of What Has Been Said Above. The Rule to Be
Observed in the More Difficult Questions of the Faith.
We have said elsewhere that those things are predicated specially in
the Trinity as belonging severally to each person, which are predicated
relatively the one to the other, as Father and Son, and the gift of
both, the Holy Spirit; for the Father is not the Trinity, nor the Son
the Trinity, nor the gift the Trinity: but what whenever each is singly
spoken of in respect to themselves, then they are not spoken of as
three in the plural number, but one, the Trinity itself, as the Father
God, the Son God, and the Holy Spirit God; the Father good, the Son
good, and the Holy Spirit good; and the Father omnipotent, the Son
omnipotent, and the Holy Spirit omnipotent: yet neither three Gods, nor
three goods, nor three omnipotents, but one God, good, omnipotent, the
Trinity itself; and whatsoever else is said of them not relatively in
respect to each other, but individually in respect to themselves. For
they are thus spoken of according to essence, since in them to be is
the same as to be great, as to be good, as to be wise, and whatever
else is said of each person individually therein, or of the Trinity
itself, in respect to themselves. And that therefore they are called
three persons, or three substances, not in order that any difference of
essence may be understood, but that we may be able to answer by some
one word, should any one ask what three, or what three things? And that
there is so great an equality in that Trinity, that not only the Father
is not greater than the Son, as regards divinity, but neither are the
Father and Son together greater than the Holy Spirit; nor is each
individual person, whichever it be of the three, less than the Trinity
itself. This is what we have said; and if it is handled and repeated
frequently, it becomes, no doubt, more familiarly known: yet some
limit, too, must be put to the discussion, and we must supplicate God
with most devout piety, that He will open our understanding, and take
away the inclination of disputing, in order that our minds may discern
the essence of the truth, that has neither bulk nor moveableness. Now,
therefore, so far as the Creator Himself aids us in His marvellous
mercy, let us consider these subjects, into which we will enter more
deeply than we entered into those which preceded, although they are in
truth the same; preserving the while this rule, that what has not yet
been made clear to our intellect, be nevertheless not loosened from the
firmness of our faith.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--It is Shown by Reason that in God Three are Not Anything
Greater Than One Person.
2. For we say that in this Trinity two or three persons are not
anything greater than one of them; which carnal perception does not
receive, for no other reason except because it perceives as it can the
true things which are created, but cannot discern the truth itself by
which they are created; for if it could, then the very corporeal light
would in no way be more clear than this which we have said. For in
respect to the substance of truth, since it alone truly is, nothing is
greater, unless because it more truly is. [662] But in respect to
whatsoever is intelligible and unchangeable, no one thing is more truly
than another, since all alike are unchangeably eternal; and that which
therein is called great, is not great from any other source than from
that by which it truly is. Wherefore, where magnitude itself is truth,
whatsoever has more of magnitude must needs have more of truth;
whatsoever therefore has not more of truth, has not also more of
magnitude. Further, whatsoever has more of truth is certainly more
true, just as that is greater which has more of magnitude; therefore in
respect to the substance of truth that is more great which is more
true. But the Father and the Son together are not more truly than the
Father singly, or the Son singly. Both together, therefore, are not
anything greater than each of them singly. And since also the Holy
Spirit equally is truly, the Father and Son together are not anything
greater than He, since neither are they more truly. The Father also and
the Holy Spirit together, since they do not surpass the Son in truth
(for they are not more truly), do not surpass Him either in magnitude.
And so the Son and the Holy Spirit together are just as great as the
Father alone, since they are as truly. So also the Trinity itself is as
great as each several person therein. For where truth itself is
magnitude, that is not more great which is not more true: since in
regard to the essence of truth, to be true is the same as to be, and to
be is the same as to be great; therefore to be great is the same as to
be true. And in regard to it, therefore, what is equally true must
needs also be equally great.
__________________________________________________________________
[662] [In this and the following chapter, the meaning of Augustin will
be clearer, if the Latin "veritas," "vera," and "vere," are rendered
occasionally, by "reality," "real," and "really." He is endeavoring to
prove the equality of the three persons, by the fact that they are
equally real (true), and the degree of their reality (truth) is the
same. Real being is true being; reality is truth. In common
phraseology, truth and reality are synonymous.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--Every Corporeal Conception Must Be Rejected, in Order that
It May Be Understood How God is Truth.
3. But in respect to bodies, it may be the case that this gold and that
gold may be equally true [real], but this may be greater than that,
since magnitude is not the same thing in this case as truth; and it is
one thing for it to be gold, another to be great. So also in the nature
of the soul; a soul is not called great in the same respect in which it
is called true. For he, too, has a true [real] soul who has not a great
soul; since the essence of body and soul is not the essence of the
truth [reality] itself; as is the Trinity, one God, alone, great, true,
truthful, the truth. Of whom if we endeavor to think, so far as He
Himself permits and grants, let us not think of any touch or embrace in
local space, as if of three bodies, or of any compactness of
conjunction, as fables tell of three-bodied Geryon; but let whatsoever
may occur to the mind, that is of such sort as to be greater in three
than in each singly, and less in one than in two, be rejected without
any doubt; for so everything corporeal is rejected. But also in
spiritual things let nothing changeable that may have occurred to the
mind be thought of God. For when we aspire from this depth to that
height, it is a step towards no small knowledge, if, before we can know
what God is, we can already know what He is not. For certainly He is
neither earth nor heaven; nor, as it were, earth and heaven; nor any
such thing as we see in the heaven; nor any such thing as we do not
see, but which perhaps is in heaven. Neither if you were to magnify in
the imagination of your thought the light of the sun as much as you are
able, either that it may be greater, or that it may be brighter, a
thousand times as much, or times without number; neither is this God.
Neither as [663] we think of the pure angels as spirits animating
celestial bodies, and changing and dealing with them after the will by
which they serve God; not even if all, and there are "thousands of
thousands," [664] were brought together into one, and became one;
neither is any such thing God. Neither if you were to think of the same
spirits as without bodies--a thing indeed most difficult for carnal
thought to do. Behold and see, if thou canst, O soul pressed down by
the corruptible body, and weighed down by earthly thoughts, many and
various; behold and see, if thou canst, that God is truth. [665] For it
is written that "God is light;" [666] not in such way as these eyes
see, but in such way as the heart sees, when it is said, He is truth
[reality]. Ask not what is truth [reality] for immediately the darkness
of corporeal images and the clouds of phantasms will put themselves in
the way, and will disturb that calm which at the first twinkling shone
forth to thee, when I said truth [reality]. See that thou remainest, if
thou canst, in that first twinkling with which thou art dazzled, as it
were, by a flash, when it is said to thee, Truth [Reality]. But thou
canst not; thou wilt glide back into those usual and earthly things.
And what weight, pray, is it that will cause thee so to glide back,
unless it be the bird-lime of the stains of appetite thou hast
contracted, and the errors of thy wandering from the right path?
__________________________________________________________________
[663] Read si for sicut, if for as. Bened. ed.
[664] Apoc. v. 11
[665] Wisd. ix. 15
[666] 1 John i. 5
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--How God May Be Known to Be the Chief Good. The Mind Does
Not Become Good Unless by Turning to God.
4. Behold again, and see if thou canst. Thou certainly dost not love
anything except what is good, since good is the earth, with the
loftiness of its mountains, and the due measure of its hills, and the
level surface of its plains; and good is an estate that is pleasant and
fertile; and good is a house that is arranged in due proportions, and
is spacious and bright; and good are animal and animate bodies; and
good is air that is temperate, and salubrious; and good is food that is
agreeable and fit for health; and good is health, without pains or
lassitude; and good is the countenance of man that is disposed in fit
proportions, and is cheerful in look, and bright in color; and good is
the mind of a friend, with the sweetness of agreement, and with the
confidence of love; and good is a righteous man; and good are riches,
since they are readily useful; and good is the heaven, with its sun,
and moon, and stars; and good are the angels, by their holy obedience;
and good is discourse that sweetly teaches and suitably admonishes the
hearer; and good is a poem that is harmonious in its numbers and
weighty in its sense. And why add yet more and more? This thing is good
and that good, but take away this and that, and regard good itself if
thou canst; so wilt thou see God, not good by a good that is other than
Himself, but the good of all good. For in all these good things,
whether those which I have mentioned, or any else that are to be
discerned or thought, we could not say that one was better than
another, when we judge truly, unless a conception of the good itself
had been impressed upon us, such that according to it we might both
approve some things as good, and prefer one good to another. So God is
to be loved, not this and that good, but the good itself. For the good
that must be sought for the soul is not one above which it is to fly by
judging, but to which it is to cleave by loving; and what can this be
except God? Not a good mind, or a good angel, or the good heaven, but
the good good. For perhaps what I wish to say may be more easily
perceived in this way. For when, for instance, a mind is called good,
as there are two words, so from these words I understand two
things--one whereby it is mind, and another whereby it is good. And
itself had no share in making itself a mind, for there was nothing as
yet to make itself to be anything; but to make itself to be a good
mind, I see, must be brought about by the will: not because that by
which it is mind is not itself anything good;--for how else is it
already called, and most truly called, better than the body?--but it is
not yet called a good mind, for this reason, that the action of the
will still is wanted, by which it is to become more excellent; and if
it has neglected this, then it is justly blamed, and is rightly called
not a good mind. For it then differs from the mind which does perform
this; and since the latter is praiseworthy, the former doubtless, which
does not perform, it is blameable. But when it does this of set
purpose, and becomes a good mind, it yet cannot attain to being so
unless it turn itself to something which itself is not. And to what can
it turn itself that it may become a good mind, except to the good which
it loves, and seeks, and obtains? And if it turns itself back again
from this, and becomes not good, then by the very act of turning away
from the good, unless that good remain in it from which it turns away,
it cannot again turn itself back thither if it should wish to amend.
5. Wherefore there would be no changeable goods, unless there were the
unchangeable good. Whenever then thou art told of this good thing and
that good thing, which things can also in other respects be called not
good, if thou canst put aside those things which are good by the
participation of the good, and discern that good itself by the
participation of which they are good (for when this or that good thing
is spoken of, thou understandest together with them the good itself
also): if, then, I say thou canst remove these things, and canst
discern the good in itself, then thou wilt have discerned God. And if
thou shalt cleave to Him with love, thou shalt be forthwith blessed.
But whereas other things are not loved, except because they are good,
be ashamed, in cleaving to them, not to love the good itself whence
they are good. That also, which is a mind, only because it is a mind,
while it is not yet also good by the turning itself to the unchangeable
good, but, as I said, is only a mind; whenever it so pleases us, as
that we prefer it even, if we understand aright, to all corporeal
light, does not please us in itself, but in that skill by which it was
made. For it is thence approved as made, wherein it is seen to have
been to be made. This is truth, and simple good: for it is nothing else
than the good itself, and for this reason also the chief good. For no
good can be diminished or increased, except that which is good from
some other good. Therefore the mind turns itself, in order to be good,
to that by which it comes to be a mind. Therefore the will is then in
harmony with nature, so that the mind may be perfected in good, when
that good is loved by the turning of the will to it, whence that other
good also comes which is not lost by the turning away of the will from
it. For by turning itself from the chief good, the mind loses the being
a good mind; but it does not lose the being a mind. And this, too, is a
good already, and one better than the body. The will, therefore, loses
that which the will obtains. For the mind already was, that could wish
to be turned to that from which it was: but that as yet was not, that
could wish to be before it was. And herein is our [supreme] good, when
we see whether the thing ought to be or to have been, respecting which
we comprehend that it ought to be or to have been, and when we see that
the thing could not have been unless it ought to have been, of which we
also do not comprehend in what manner it ought to have been. This good
then is not far from every one of us: for in it we live, and move, and
have our being. [667]
__________________________________________________________________
[667] Acts xvii. 27, 28
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--God Must First Be Known by an Unerring Faith, that He May
Be Loved.
6. But it is by love that we must stand firm to this and cleave to
this, in order that we may enjoy the presence of that by which we are,
and in the absence of which we could not be at all. For as "we walk as
yet by faith, and not by sight," [668] we certainly do not yet see God,
as the same [apostle] saith, "face to face:" [669] whom however we
shall never see, unless now already we love. But who loves what he does
not know? For it is possible something may be known and not loved: but
I ask whether it is possible that what is not known can be loved; since
if it cannot, then no one loves God before he knows Him. And what is it
to know God except to behold Him and steadfastly perceive Him with the
mind? For He is not a body to be searched out by carnal eyes. But
before also that we have power to behold and to perceive God, as He can
be beheld and perceived, which is permitted to the pure in heart; for
"blessed are the pure in heart. for they shall see God;" [670] except
He is loved by faith, it will not be possible for the heart to be
cleansed, in order that it may be apt and meet to see Him. For where
are there those three, in order to build up which in the mind the whole
apparatus of the divine Scriptures has been raised up, namely Faith,
Hope, and Charity, [671] except in a mind believing what it does not
yet see, and hoping and loving what it believes? Even He therefore who
is not known, but yet is believed, can be loved. But indisputably we
must take care, lest the mind believing that which it does not see,
feign to itself something which is not, and hope for and love that
which is false. For in that case, it will not be charity out of a pure
heart, and of a good conscience, and of faith unfeigned, which is the
end of the commandment, as the same apostle says. [672]
7. But it must needs be, that, when by reading or hearing of them we
believe in any corporeal things which we have not seen, the mind frames
for itself something under bodily features and forms, just as it may
occur to our thoughts; which either is not true, or even if it be true,
which can most rarely happen, yet this is of no benefit to us to
believe in by faith, but it is useful for some other purpose, which is
intimated by means of it. For who is there that reads or hears what the
Apostle Paul has written, or what has been written of him, that does
not imagine to himself the countenance both of the apostle himself, and
of all those whose names are there mentioned? And whereas, among such a
multitude of men to whom these books are known, each imagines in a
different way those bodily features and forms, it is assuredly
uncertain which it is that imagines them more nearly and more like the
reality. Nor, indeed, is our faith busied therein with the bodily
countenance of those men; but only that by the grace of God they so
lived and so acted as that Scripture witnesses: this it is which it is
both useful to believe, and which must not be despaired of, and must be
sought. For even the countenance of our Lord Himself in the flesh is
variously fancied by the diversity of countless imaginations, which yet
was one, whatever it was. Nor in our faith which we have of our Lord
Jesus Christ, is that wholesome which the mind imagines for itself,
perhaps far other than the reality, but that which we think of man
according to his kind: for we have a notion of human nature implanted
in us, as it were by rule, according to which we know forthwith, that
whatever such thing we see is a man or the form of a man.
__________________________________________________________________
[668] 2 Cor. v. 7
[669] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[670] Matt. v. 8
[671] 1 Cor. xiii. 13
[672] 1 Tim. i. 5
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--How the Trinity May Be Loved Though Unknown.
Our conception is framed according to this notion, when we believe that
God was made man for us, as an example of humility, and to show the
love of God towards us. For this it is which it is good for us to
believe, and to retain firmly and unshakenly in our heart, that the
humility by which God was born of a woman, and was led to death through
contumelies so great by mortal men, is the chiefest remedy by which the
swelling of our pride may be cured, and the profound mystery by which
the bond of sin may be loosed. So also, because we know what
omnipotence is, we believe concerning the omnipotent God in the power
of His miracles and of His resurrection, and we frame conceptions
respecting actions of this kind, according to the species and genera of
things that are either ingrafted in us by nature, or gathered by
experience, that our faith may not be feigned. For neither do we know
the countenance of the Virgin Mary; from whom, untouched by a husband,
nor tainted in the birth itself, He was wonderfully born. Neither have
we seen what were the lineaments of the body of Lazarus; nor yet
Bethany; nor the sepulchre, and that stone which He commanded to be
removed when He raised Him from the dead; nor the new tomb cut out in
the rock, whence He Himself arose; nor the Mount of Olives, from whence
He ascended into heaven. And, in short, whoever of us have not seen
these things, know not whether they are as we conceive them to be, nay
judge them more probably not to be so. For when the aspect either of a
place, or a man, or of any other body, which we happened to imagine
before we saw it, turns out to be the same when it occurs to our sight
as it was when it occurred to our mind, we are moved with no little
wonder. So scarcely and hardly ever does it happen. And yet we believe
those things most steadfastly, because we imagine them according to a
special and general notion, of which we are certain. For we believe our
Lord Jesus Christ to be born of a virgin who was called Mary. But what
a virgin is, or what it is to be born, and what is a proper name, we do
not believe, but certainly know. And whether that was the countenance
of Mary which occurred to the mind in speaking of those things or
recollecting them, we neither know at all, nor believe. It is
allowable, then, in this case to say without violation of the faith,
perhaps she had such or such a countenance, perhaps she had not: but no
one could say without violation of the Christian faith, that perhaps
Christ was born of a virgin.
8. Wherefore, since we desire to understand the eternity, and equality,
and unity of the Trinity, as much as is permitted us, but ought to
believe before we understand; and since we must watch carefully, that
our faith be not feigned; since we must have the fruition of the same
Trinity, that we may live blessedly; but if we have believed anything
false of it, our hope would be worthless, and our charity not pure: how
then can we love, by believing, that Trinity which we do not know? Is
it according to the special or general notion, according to which we
love the Apostle Paul? In whose case, even if he was not of that
countenance which occurs to us when we think of him (and this we do not
know at all), yet we know what a man is. For not to go far away, this
we are; and it is manifest he, too, was this, and that his soul joined
to his body lived after the manner of mortals. Therefore we believe
this of him, which we find in ourselves, according to the species or
genus under which all human nature alike is comprised. What then do we
know, whether specially or generally, of that most excellent Trinity,
as if there were many such trinities, some of which we had learned by
experience, so that we may believe that Trinity, too, to have been such
as they, through the rule of similitude, impressed upon us, whether a
special or a general notion; and thus love also that thing which we
believe and do not yet know, from the parity of the thing which we do
know? But this certainly is not so. Or is it that, as we love in our
Lord Jesus Christ, that He rose from the dead, although we never saw
any one rise from thence, so we can believe in and love the Trinity
which we do not see, and the like of which we never have seen? But we
certainly know what it is to die, and what it is to live; because we
both live, and from time to time have seen and experienced both dead
and dying persons. And what else is it to rise again, except to live
again, that is, to return to life from death? When, therefore, we say
and believe that there is a Trinity, we know what a Trinity is, because
we know what three are; but this is not what we love. For we can easily
have this whenever we will, to pass over other things, by just holding
up three fingers. Or do we indeed love, not every trinity, but the
Trinity, that is God? We love then in the Trinity, that it is God: but
we never saw or knew any other God, because God is One; He alone whom
we have not yet seen, and whom we love by believing. But the question
is, from what likeness or comparison of known things can we believe, in
order that we may love God, whom we do not yet know?
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--How the Man Not Yet Righteous Can Know the Righteous Man
Whom He Loves.
9. Return then with me, and let us consider why we love the apostle. Is
it at all on account of his human kind, which we know right well, in
that we believe him to have been a man? Assuredly not; for if it were
so, he now is not him whom we love, since he is no longer that man, for
his soul is separated from his body. But we believe that which we love
in him to be still living, for we love his righteous mind. From what
general or special rule then, except that we know both what a mind is,
and what it is to be righteous? And we say, indeed, not unfitly, that
we therefore know what a mind is, because we too have a mind. For
neither did we ever see it with our eyes, and gather a special or
general notion from the resemblance of more minds than one, which we
had seen; but rather, as I have said before, because we too have it.
For what is known so intimately, and so perceives itself to be itself,
as that by which also all other things are perceived, that is, the mind
itself? For we recognize the movements of bodies also, by which we
perceive that others live besides ourselves, from the resemblance of
ourselves; since we also so move our body in living as we observe those
bodies to be moved. For even when a living body is moved, there is no
way opened to our eyes to see the mind, a thing which cannot be seen by
the eyes; but we perceive something to be contained in that bulk, such
as is contained in ourselves, so as to move in like manner our own
bulk, which is the life and the soul. Neither is this, as it were, the
property of human foresight and reason, since brute animals also
perceive that not only they themselves live, but also other brute
animals interchangeably, and the one the other, and that we ourselves
do so. Neither do they see our souls, save from the movements of the
body, and that immediately and most easily by some natural agreement.
Therefore we both know the mind of any one from our own, and believe
also from our own of him whom we do not know. For not only do we
perceive that there is a mind, but we can also know what a mind is, by
reflecting upon our own: for we have a mind. But whence do we know what
a righteous man is? For we said above that we love the apostle for no
other reason except that he is a righteous mind. We know, then, what a
righteous man also is, just as we know what a mind is. But what a mind
is, as has been said, we know from ourselves, for there is a mind in
us. But whence do we know what a righteous man is, if we are not
righteous? But if no one but he who is righteous knows what is a
righteous man, no one but a righteous man loves a righteous man; for
one cannot love him whom one believes to be righteous, for this very
reason that one does believe him to be righteous, if one does not know
what it is to be righteous; according to that which we have shown
above, that no one loves what he believes and does not see, except by
some rule of a general or special notion. And if for this reason no one
but a righteous man loves a righteous man, how will any one wish to be
a righteous man who is not yet so? For no one wishes to be that which
he does not love. But, certainly, that he who is not righteous may be
so, it is necessary that he should wish to be righteous; and in order
that he may wish to be righteous, he loves the righteous man.
Therefore, even he who is not yet righteous, loves the righteous man.
[673] But he cannot love the righteous man, who is ignorant what a
righteous man is. Accordingly, even he who is not yet righteous, knows
what a righteous man is. Whence then does he know this? Does he see it
with his eyes? Is any corporeal thing righteous, as it is white, or
black, or square, or round? Who could say this? Yet with one's eyes one
has seen nothing except corporeal things. But there is nothing
righteous in a man except the mind; and when a man is called a
righteous man, he is called so from the mind, not from the body. For
righteousness is in some sort the beauty of the mind, by which men are
beautiful; very many too who are misshapen and deformed in body. And as
the mind is not seen with the eyes, so neither is its beauty. From
whence then does he who is not yet righteous know what a righteous man
is, and love the righteous man that he may become righteous? Do certain
signs shine forth by the motion of the body, by which this or that man
is manifested to be righteous? But whence does any one know that these
are the signs of a righteous mind when he is wholly ignorant what it is
to be righteous? Therefore he does know. But whence do we know what it
is to be righteous, even when we are not yet righteous? If we know from
without ourselves, we know it by some bodily thing. But this is not a
thing of the body. Therefore we know in ourselves what it is to be
righteous. For I find this nowhere else when I seek to utter it, except
within myself; and if I ask another what it is to be righteous, he
seeks within himself what to answer; and whosoever hence can answer
truly, he has found within himself what to answer. And when indeed I
wish to speak of Carthage, I seek within myself what to speak, and I
find within myself a notion or image of Carthage; but I have received
this through the body, that is, through the perception of the body,
since I have been present in that city in the body, and I saw and
perceived it, and retained it in my memory, that I might find within
myself a word concerning it, whenever I might wish to speak of it. For
its word is the image itself of it in my memory, not that sound of two
syllables when Carthage is named, or even when that name itself is
thought of silently from time to time, but that which I discern in my
mind, when I utter that dissyllable with my voice, or even before I
utter it. So also, when I wish to speak of Alexandria, which I never
saw, an image of it is present with me. For whereas I had heard from
many and had believed that city to be great, in such way as it could be
told me, I formed an image of it in my mind as I was able; and this is
with me its word when I wish to speak of it, before I utter with my
voice the five syllables which make the name that almost every one
knows. And yet if I could bring forth that image from my mind to the
eyes of men who know Alexandria, certainly all either would say, It is
not it; or if they said, It is, I should greatly wonder; and as I gazed
at it in my mind, that is, at the image which was as it were its
picture, I should yet not know it to be it, but should believe those
who retained an image they had seen. But I do not so ask what it is to
be righteous, nor do I so find it, nor do I so gaze upon it, when I
utter it; neither am I so approved when I am heard, nor do I so approve
when I hear; as though I have seen such a thing with my eyes, or
learned it by some perception of the body, or heard it from those who
had so learned it. For when I say, and say knowingly, that mind is
righteous which knowingly and of purpose assigns to every one his due
in life and behavior, I do not think of anything absent, as Carthage,
or imagine it as I am able, as Alexandria, whether it be so or not; but
I discern something present, and I discern it within myself, though I
myself am not that which I discern; and many if they hear will approve
it. And whoever hears me and knowingly approves, he too discerns this
same thing within himself, even though he himself be not what he
discerns. But when a righteous man says this, he discerns and says that
which he himself is. And whence also does he discern it, except within
himself? But this is not to be wondered at; for whence should he
discern himself except within himself? The wonderful thing is, that the
mind should see within itself that which it has seen nowhere else, and
should see truly, and should see the very true righteous mind, and
should itself be a mind, and yet not a righteous mind, which
nevertheless it sees within itself. Is there another mind that is
righteous in a mind that is not yet righteous? Or if there is not, what
does it there see when it sees and says what is a righteous mind, nor
sees it anywhere else but in itself, when itself is not a righteous
mind? Is that which it sees an inner truth present to the mind which
has power to behold it? Yet all have not that power; and they who have
power to behold it, are not all also that which they behold, that is,
they are not also righteous minds themselves, just as they are able to
see and to say what is a righteous mind. And whence will they be able
to be so, except by cleaving to that very same form itself which they
behold, so that from thence they may be formed and may be righteous
minds; not only discerning and saying that the mind is righteous which
knowingly and of purpose assigns to every one that which is his due in
life and behavior, but so likewise that they themselves may live
righteously and be righteous in character, by assigning to every one
that which is his due, so as to owe no man anything, but to love one
another. [674] And whence can any one cleave to that form but by loving
it? Why then do we love another whom we believe to be righteous, and do
not love that form itself wherein we see what is a righteous mind, that
we also may be able to be righteous? Is it that unless we loved that
also, we should not love him at all, whom through it we love; but
whilst we are not righteous, we love that form too little to allow of
our being able to be righteous? The man therefore who is believed to be
righteous, is loved through that form and truth which he who loves
discerns and understands within himself; but that very form and truth
itself cannot be loved from any other source than itself. For we do not
find any other such thing besides itself, so that by believing we might
love it when it is unknown, in that we here already know another such
thing. For whatsoever of such a kind one may have seen, is itself; and
there is not any other such thing, since itself alone is such as itself
is. He therefore who loves men, ought to love them either because they
are righteous, or that they may become righteous. For so also he ought
to love himself, either because he is righteous, or that he may become
righteous; for in this way he loves his neighbor as himself without any
risk. For he who loves himself otherwise, loves himself wrongfully,
since he loves himself to this end that he may be unrighteous;
therefore to this end that he may be wicked; and hence it follows next
that he does not love himself; for, "He who loveth iniquity, [675]
hateth his own soul." [676]
__________________________________________________________________
[673] [The "wish" and "love" which Augustin here attributes to the
non-righteous man is not true and spiritual, but selfish. In chapter
vii. 10, he speaks of true love as distinct from that kind of desire
which is a mere wish. The latter he calls cupiditas. "That is to be
called love which is true, otherwise it is desire (cupiditas); and so
those who desire (cupidi) are improperly said to love (diligere), just
as they who love (diligunt) are said improperly to desire
(cupere)."--W.G.T.S.]
[674] Rom. xiii. 8
[675] Violence--A.V.
[676] Ps. xi. 6
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--Of True Love, by Which We Arrive at the Knowledge of the
Trinity. God is to Be Sought, Not Outwardly, by Seeking to Do Wonderful
Things with the Angels, But Inwardly, by Imitating the Piety of Good
Angels.
10. No other thing, then, is chiefly to be regarded in this inquiry,
which we make concerning the Trinity and concerning knowing God, except
what is true love, nay, rather what is love. For that is to be called
love which is true, otherwise it is desire; and so those who desire are
said improperly to love, just as they who love are said improperly to
desire. But this is true love, that cleaving to the truth we may live
righteously, and so may despise all mortal things in comparison with
the love of men, whereby we wish them to live righteously. For so we
should be prepared also to die profitably for our brethren, as our Lord
Jesus Christ taught us by His example. For as there are two
commandments on which hang all the Law and the prophets, love of God
and love of our neighbor; [677] not without cause the Scripture mostly
puts one for both: whether it be of God only, as is that text, "For we
know that all things work together for good to them that love God;"
[678] and again, "But if any man love God, the same is known of Him;"
[679] and that, "Because the love of God is shed abroad in our hearts
by the Holy Ghost which is given unto us;" [680] and many other
passages; because he who loves God must both needs do what God has
commanded, and loves Him just in such proportion as he does so;
therefore he must needs also love his neighbor, because God has
commanded it: or whether it be that Scripture only mentions the love of
our neighbor, as in that text, "Bear ye one another's burdens, and so
fulfill the law of Christ;" [681] and again, "For all the law is
fulfilled in one word, even in this, Thou shalt love thy neighbor as
thyself;" [682] and in the Gospel, "All things whatsoever ye would that
men should do to you, do ye even so to them; for this is the Law and
the prophets." [683] And many other passages occur in the sacred
writings, in which only the love of our neighbor seems to be commanded
for perfection, while the love of God is passed over in silence;
whereas the Law and the prophets hang on both precepts. But this, too,
is because he who loves his neighbor must needs also love above all
else love itself. But "God is love; and he that dwelleth in love,
dwelleth in God." [684] Therefore he must needs above all else love
God.
11. Wherefore they who seek God through those Powers which rule over
the world, or parts of the world, are removed and cast away far from
Him; not by intervals of space, but by difference of affections: for
they endeavor to find a path outwardly, and forsake their own inward
things, within which is God. Therefore, even although they may either
have heard some holy heavenly Power, or in some way or another may have
thought of it, yet they rather covet its deeds at which human weakness
marvels, but do not imitate the piety by which divine rest is acquired.
For they prefer, through pride, to be able to do that which an angel
does, more than, through devotion, to be that which an angel is. For no
holy being rejoices in his own power, but in His from whom he has the
power which he fitly can have; and he knows it to be more a mark of
power to be united to the Omnipotent by a pious will, than to be able,
by his own power and will, to do what they may tremble at who are not
able to do such things. Therefore the Lord Jesus Christ Himself, in
doing such things, in order that He might teach better things to those
who marvelled at them, and might turn those who were intent and in
doubt about unusual temporal things to eternal and inner things, says,
"Come unto me, all ye that labor and are heavy laden, and I will give
you rest. Take my yoke upon you." And He does not say, Learn of me,
because I raise those who have been dead four days; but He says, "Learn
of me; for I am meek and lowly in heart." For humility, which is most
solid, is more powerful and safer than pride, that is most inflated.
And so He goes on to say, "And ye shall find rest unto your souls,"
[685] for "Love [686] is not puffed up;" [687] and "God is Love;" [688]
and "such as be faithful in love shall rest in [689] Him," [690] called
back from the din which is without to silent joys. Behold, "God is
Love:" why do we go forth and run to the heights of the heavens and the
lowest parts of the earth, seeking Him who is within us, if we wish to
be with Him?
__________________________________________________________________
[677] Matt. xxii. 37-40
[678] Rom. viii. 28
[679] 1 Cor. viii. 3
[680] Rom. v. 5
[681] Gal. vi. 2
[682] Gal. v. 14
[683] Matt. vii. 12
[684] 1 John iv. 6
[685] Matt. xi. 28, 29
[686] Charity.--A.V.
[687] 1 Cor. xiii. 4
[688] 1 John iv. 8
[689] Abide with.--A.V.
[690] Wisd. iii. 9
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--That He Who Loves His Brother, Loves God; Because He Loves
Love Itself, Which is of God, and is God.
12. Let no one say, I do not know what I love. Let him love his
brother, and he will love the same love. For he knows the love with
which he loves, more than the brother whom he loves. So now he can know
God more than he knows his brother: clearly known more, because more
present; known more, because more within him; known more, because more
certain. Embrace the love of God, and by love embrace God. That is love
itself, which associates together all good angels and all the servants
of God by the bond of sanctity, and joins together us and them mutually
with ourselves, and joins us subordinately to Himself. In proportion,
therefore, as we are healed from the swelling of pride, in such
proportion are we more filled with love; and with what is he full, who
is full of love, except with God? Well, but you will say, I see love,
and, as far as I am able, I gaze upon it with my mind, and I believe
the Scripture, saying, that "God is love; and he that dwelleth in love,
dwelleth in God;" [691] but when I see love, I do not see in it the
Trinity. Nay, but thou dost see the Trinity if thou seest love. But if
I can I will put you in mind, that thou mayest see that thou seest it;
only let itself be present, that we may be moved by love to something
good. Since, when we love love, we love one who loves something, and
that on account of this very thing, that he does love something;
therefore what does love love, that love itself also may be loved? For
that is not love which loves nothing. But if it loves itself it must
love something, that it may love itself as love. For as a word
indicates something, and indicates also itself, but does not indicate
itself to be a word, unless it indicates that it does indicate
something; so love also loves indeed itself, but except it love itself
as loving something, it loves itself not as love. What therefore does
love love, except that which we love with love? But this, to begin from
that which is nearest to us, is our brother. And listen how greatly the
Apostle John commends brotherly love: "He that loveth his brother
abideth in the light, and there is none occasion of stumbling in him."
[692] It is manifest that he placed the perfection of righteousness in
the love of our brother; for he certainly is perfect in whom "there is
no occasion of stumbling." And yet he seems to have passed by the love
of God in silence; which he never would have done, unless because he
intends God to be understood in brotherly love itself. For in this same
epistle, a little further on, he says most plainly thus: "Beloved, let
us love one another: for love is of God; and every one that loveth is
born of God, and knoweth God. He that loveth not, knoweth not God; for
God is love." And this passage declares sufficiently and plainly, that
this same brotherly love itself (for that is brotherly love by which we
love each other) is set forth by so great authority, not only to be
from God, but also to be God. When, therefore, we love our brother from
love, we love our brother from God; neither can it be that we do not
love above all else that same love by which we love our brother: whence
it may be gathered that these two commandments cannot exist unless
interchangeably. For since "God is love," he who loves love certainly
loves God; but he must needs love love, who loves his brother. And so a
little after he says, "For he that loveth not his brother whom he hath
seen, how can he love God whom he hath not seen"? [693] because the
reason that he does not see God is, that he does not love his brother.
For he who does not love his brother, abideth not in love; and he who
abideth not in love, abideth not in God, because God is love. Further,
he who abideth not in God, abideth not in light; for "God is light, and
in Him is no darkness at all." [694] He therefore who abideth not in
light, what wonder is it if he does not see light, that is, does not
see God, because he is in darkness? But he sees his brother with human
sight, with which God cannot be seen. But if he loved with spiritual
love him whom he sees with human sight, he would see God, who is love
itself, with the inner sight by which He can be seen. Therefore he who
does not love his brother whom he sees, how can he love God, whom on
that account he does not see, because God is love, which he has not who
does not love his brother? Neither let that further question disturb
us, how much of love we ought to spend upon our brother, and how much
upon God: incomparably more upon God than upon ourselves, but upon our
brother as much as upon ourselves; and we love ourselves so much the
more, the more we love God. Therefore we love God and our neighbor from
one and the same love; but we love God for the sake of God, and
ourselves and our neighbors for the sake of God.
__________________________________________________________________
[691] 1 John iv. 16
[692] 1 John ii. 10
[693] 1 John iv. 7, 8, 20
[694] 1 John i. 5
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--Our Love of the Righteous is Kindled from Love Itself of
the Unchangeable Form of Righteousness.
13. For why is it, pray, that we burn when we hear and read, "Behold,
now is the accepted time; behold, now is the day of salvation: giving
no offense in anything, that the ministry be not blamed: but in all
things approving ourselves as the ministers of God, in much patience,
in afflictions, in necessities, in distresses, in stripes, in
imprisonments, in tumults, in labors, in watchings, in fastings; by
pureness, by knowledge, by long-suffering, by kindness, by the Holy
Ghost, by love unfeigned, by the word of truth, by the power of God, by
the armor of righteousness on the right hand and on the left, by honor
and dishonor, by evil report and good report: as deceivers, and yet
true; as unknown, and yet well known; as dying, and, behold, we live;
as chastened, and not killed; as sorrowful, yet alway rejoicing; as
poor, yet making many rich; as having nothing, and yet possessing all
things?" [695] Why is it that we are inflamed with love of the Apostle
Paul, when we read these things, unless that we believe him so to have
lived? But we do not believe that the ministers of God ought so to live
because we have heard it from any one, but because we behold it
inwardly within ourselves, or rather above ourselves, in the truth
itself. Him, therefore, whom we believe to have so lived, we love for
that which we see. And except we loved above all else that form which
we discern as always steadfast and unchangeable, we should not for that
reason love him, because we hold fast in our belief that his life, when
he was living in the flesh, was adapted to, and in harmony with, this
form. But somehow we are stirred up the more to the love of this form
itself, through the belief by which we believe some one to have so
lived; and to the hope by which we no more at all despair, that we,
too, are able so to live; we who are men, from this fact itself, that
some men have so lived, so that we both desire this more ardently, and
pray for it more confidently. So both the love of that form, according
to which they are believed to have lived, makes the life of these men
themselves to be loved by us; and their life thus believed stirs up a
more burning love towards that same form; so that the more ardently we
love God, the more certainly and the more calmly do we see Him, because
we behold in God the unchangeable form of righteousness, according to
which we judge that man ought to live. Therefore faith avails to the
knowledge and to the love of God, not as though of one altogether
unknown, or altogether not loved; but so that thereby He may be known
more clearly, and loved more steadfastly.
__________________________________________________________________
[695] 2 Cor. vi. 2-10
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--There are Three Things in Love, as It Were a Trace of the
Trinity.
14. But what is love or charity, which divine Scripture so greatly
praises and proclaims, except the love of good? But love is of some one
that loves, and with love something is loved. Behold, then, there are
three things: he that loves, and that which is loved, and love. What,
then, is love, except a certain life which couples or seeks to couple
together some two things, namely, him that loves, and that which is
loved? And this is so even in outward and carnal loves. But that we may
drink in something more pure and clear, let us tread down the flesh and
ascend to the mind. What does the mind love in a friend except the
mind? There, then, also are three things: he that loves, and that which
is loved, and love. It remains to ascend also from hence, and to seek
those things which are above, as far as is given to man. But here for a
little while let our purpose rest, not that it may think itself to have
found already what it seeks; but just as usually the place has first to
be found where anything is to be sought, while the thing itself is not
yet found, but we have only found already where to look for it; so let
it suffice to have said thus much, that we may have, as it were, the
hinge of some starting-point, whence to weave the rest of our
discourse.
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
Book IX.
------------------------
That a kind of trinity exists in man, who is the image of God, viz. the
mind, and the knowledge wherewith the mind knows itself, and the love
wherewith it loves both itself and its own knowledge; and these three
are shown to be mutually equal, and of one essence.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--In What Way We Must Inquire Concerning the Trinity.
1. We certainly seek a trinity,--not any trinity, but that Trinity
which is God, and the true and supreme and only God. Let my hearers
then wait, for we are still seeking. And no one justly finds fault with
such a search, if at least he who seeks that which either to know or to
utter is most difficult, is steadfast in the faith. But whosoever
either sees or teaches better, finds fault quickly and justly with any
one who confidently affirms concerning it. "Seek God," he says, "and
your heart shall live;" [696] and lest any one should rashly rejoice
that he has, as it were, apprehended it, "Seek," he says, "His face
evermore." [697] And the apostle: "If any man," he says, "think that he
knoweth anything, he knoweth nothing yet as he ought to know. But if
any man love God, the same is known of Him." [698] He has not said, has
known Him, which is dangerous presumption, but "is known of Him." So
also in another place, when he had said, "But now after that ye have
known God:" immediately correcting himself, he says, "or rather are
known of God." [699] And above all in that other place, "Brethren," he
says, "I count not myself to have apprehended: but this one thing I do,
forgetting those things which are behind, and reaching forth unto those
things which are before, I press in purpose [700] toward the mark, for
the prize of the high calling of God in Christ Jesus. Let us therefore,
as many as be perfect, be thus minded." [701] Perfection in this life,
he tells us, is nothing else than to forget those things which are
behind, and to reach forth and press in purpose toward those things
which are before. For he that seeks has the safest purpose, [who seeks]
until that is taken hold of whither we are tending, and for which we
are reaching forth. But that is the right purpose which starts from
faith. For a certain faith is in some way the starting-point of
knowledge; but a certain knowledge will not be made perfect, except
after this life, when we shall see face to face. [702] Let us therefore
be thus minded, so as to know that the disposition to seek the truth is
more safe than that which presumes things unknown to be known. Let us
therefore so seek as if we should find, and so find as if we were about
to seek. For "when a man hath done, then he beginneth." [703] Let us
doubt without unbelief of things to be believed; let us affirm without
rashness of things to be understood: authority must be held fast in the
former, truth sought out in the latter. As regards this question, then,
let us believe that the Father, and the Son, and the Holy Spirit is one
God, the Creator and Ruler of the whole creature; and that the Father
is not the Son, nor the Holy Spirit either the Father or the Son, but a
trinity of persons mutually interrelated, and a unity of an equal
essence. And let us seek to understand this, praying for help from
Himself, whom we wish to understand; and as much as He grants, desiring
to explain what we understand with so much pious care and anxiety, that
even if in any case we say one thing for another, we may at least say
nothing unworthy. As, for the sake of example, if we say anything
concerning the Father that does not properly belong to the Father, or
does belong to the Son, or to the Holy Spirit, or to the Trinity
itself; and if anything of the Son which does not properly suit with
the Son, or at all events which does suit with the Father, or with the
Holy Spirit, or with the Trinity; or if, again, anything concerning the
Holy Spirit, which is not fitly a property of the Holy Spirit, yet is
not alien from the Father, or from the Son, or from the one God the
Trinity itself. Even as now our wish is to see whether the Holy Spirit
is properly that love which is most excellent which if He is not,
either the Father is love, or the Son, or the Trinity itself; since we
cannot withstand the most certain faith and weighty authority of
Scripture, saying, "God is love." [704] And yet we ought not to deviate
into profane error, so as to say anything of the Trinity which does not
suit the Creator, but rather the creature, or which is feigned outright
by mere empty thought.
__________________________________________________________________
[696] Ps. lxix. 32
[697] Ps. cv. 4
[698] 1 Cor. viii. 2
[699] Gal. iv. 19
[700] In purpose, om. in A.V.
[701] Phil. iii. 13-15
[702] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[703] Ecclus. xviii. 7
[704] 1 John iv. 16
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--The Three Things Which are Found in Love Must Be
Considered. [705]
2. And this being so, let us direct our attention to those three things
which we fancy we have found. We are not yet speaking of heavenly
things, nor yet of God the Father, and Son, and Holy Spirit, but of
that inadequate image, which yet is an image, that is, man; for our
feeble mind perhaps can gaze upon this more familiarly and more easily.
Well then, when I, who make this inquiry, love anything, there are
three things concerned--myself, and that which I love, and love itself.
For I do not love love, except I love a lover; for there is no love
where nothing is loved. Therefore there are three things--he who loves,
and that which is loved, and love. But what if I love none except
myself? Will there not then be two things--that which I love, and love?
For he who loves and that which is loved are the same when any one
loves himself; just as to love and to be loved, in the same way, is the
very same thing when any one loves himself. Since the same thing is
said, when it is said, he loves himself, and he is loved by himself.
For in that case to love and to be loved are not two different things:
just as he who loves and he who is loved are not two different persons.
But yet, even so, love and what is loved are still two things. For
there is no love when any one loves himself, except when love itself is
loved. But it is one thing to love one's self, another to love one's
own love. For love is not loved, unless as already loving something;
since where nothing is loved there is no love. Therefore there are two
things when any one loves himself--love, and that which is loved. For
then he that loves and that which is loved are one. Whence it seems
that it does not follow that three things are to be understood wherever
love is. For let us put aside from the inquiry all the other many
things of which a man consists; and in order that we may discover
clearly what we are now seeking, as far as in such a subject is
possible, let us treat of the mind alone. The mind, then, when it loves
itself, discloses two things--mind and love. But what is to love one's
self, except to wish to help one's self to the enjoyment of self? And
when any one wishes himself to be just as much as he is, then the will
is on a par with the mind, and the love is equal to him who loves. And
if love is a substance, it is certainly not body, but spirit; and the
mind also is not body, but spirit. Yet love and mind are not two
spirits, but one spirit; nor yet two essences, but one: and yet here
are two things that are one, he that loves and love; or, if you like so
to put it, that which is loved and love. And these two, indeed, are
mutually said relatively. Since he who loves is referred to love, and
love to him who loves. For he who loves, loves with some love, and love
is the love of some one who loves. But mind and spirit are not said
relatively, but express essence. For mind and spirit do not exist
because the mind and spirit of some particular man exists. For if we
subtract the body from that which is man, which is so called with the
conjunction of body, the mind and spirit remain. But if we subtract him
that loves, then there is no love; and if we subtract love, then there
is no one that loves. And therefore, in so far as they are mutually
referred to one another, they are two; but whereas they are spoken in
respect to themselves, each are spirit, and both together also are one
spirit; and each are mind, and both together one mind. Where, then, is
the trinity? Let us attend as much as we can, and let us invoke the
everlasting light, that He may illuminate our darkness, and that we may
see in ourselves, as much as we are permitted, the image of God.
__________________________________________________________________
[705] [Augustin here begins his discussion of some ternaries that are
found in the Finite, that illustrate the trinality of the Infinite.
Like all finite analogies, they fail at certain points. In the case
chosen--namely, the lover, the loved, and love--the first two are
substances, the last is not. The mind is a substance, but its activity
in loving is not. In chapter iv. 5, Augustin asserts that "love and
knowledge exist substantially, as the mind itself does." But no
psychology, ancient or modern, has ever maintained that the agencies of
a spiritual entity or substance are themselves spiritual entity or
substances. The activities of the human mind in cognizing, loving,
etc., are only its energizing, not its substance. The ambiguity of the
Latin contributes to this error. The mind and its loving, and also the
mind and its cognizing, are denominated "duo quaedam" the mind, love,
and knowledge, are denominated "tria quaedem." By bringing the mind and
its love and knowledge under the one term "quaedam," and then giving
the meaning of "substance" to "thing," in "something," the result
follows that all three are alike and equally "substantial." This
analogy taken from the mind and its activities illustrates the
trinality of the Divine essence, but fails to illustrate the
substantiality of the three persons. The three Divine persons are not
the Divine essence together with two of its activities (such, e.g., as
creation and redemption), but the essence in three modes, or "forms,"
as St. Paul denominates them in Phil. iii. 6 If Augustin could prove
his assertion that the activities of the human spirit in knowing and
loving are strictly "substantial," then this ternary would illustrate
not only the trinality of the essence, but the essentiality and
objectivity of the persons. The fact which he mentions, that knowledge
and love are inseparable from the knowing and loving mind, does not
prove their equal substantiality with the mind.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--The Image of the Trinity in the Mind of Man Who Knows
Himself and Loves Himself. The Mind Knows Itself Through Itself.
3. For the mind cannot love itself, except also it know itself; for how
can it love what it does not know? Or if any body says that the mind,
from either general or special knowledge, believes itself of such a
character as it has by experience found others to be and therefore
loves itself, he speaks most foolishly. For whence does a mind know
another mind, if it does not know itself? For the mind does not know
other minds and not know itself, as the eye of the body sees other eyes
and does not see itself; for we see bodies through the eyes of the
body, because, unless we are looking into a mirror, we cannot refract
and reflect the rays into themselves which shine forth through those
eyes, and touch whatever we discern,--a subject, indeed, which is
treated of most subtlely and obscurely, until it be clearly
demonstrated whether the fact be so, or whether it be not. But whatever
is the nature of the power by which we discern through the eyes,
certainly, whether it be rays or anything else, we cannot discern with
the eyes that power itself; but we inquire into it with the mind, and
if possible, understand even this with the mind. As the mind, then,
itself gathers the knowledge of corporeal things through the senses of
the body, so of incorporeal things through itself. Therefore it knows
itself also through itself, since it is incorporeal; for if it does not
know itself, it does not love itself.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--The Three are One, and Also Equal, Viz The Mind Itself, and
the Love, and the Knowledge of It. That the Same Three Exist
Substantially, and are Predicated Relatively. That the Same Three are
Inseparable. That the Same Three are Not Joined and Commingled Like
Parts, But that They are of One Essence, and are Relatives.
4. But as there are two things (duo quaedam), the mind and the love of
it, when it loves itself; so there are two things, the mind and the
knowledge of it, when it knows itself. Therefore the mind itself, and
the love of it, and the knowledge of it, are three things (tria
quaedam), and these three are one; and when they are perfect they are
equal. For if one loves himself less than as he is,--as for example,
suppose that the mind of a man only loves itself as much as the body of
a man ought to be loved, whereas the mind is more than the body,--then
it is in fault, and its love is not perfect. Again, if it loves itself
more than as it is,--as if, for instance, it loves itself as much as
God is to be loved, whereas the mind is incomparably less than
God,--here also it is exceedingly in fault, and its love of self is not
perfect. But it is in fault more perversely and wrongly still, when it
loves the body as much as God is to be loved. Also, if knowledge is
less than that thing which is known, and which can be fully known, then
knowledge is not perfect; but if it is greater, then the nature which
knows is above that which is known, as the knowledge of the body is
greater than the body itself, which is known by that knowledge. For
knowledge is a kind of life in the reason of the knower, but the body
is not life; and any life is greater than any body, not in bulk, but in
power. But when the mind knows itself, its own knowledge does not rise
above itself, because itself knows, and itself is known. When,
therefore, it knows itself entirely, and no other thing with itself,
then its knowledge is equal to itself; because its knowledge is not
from another nature, since it knows itself. And when it perceives
itself entirely, and nothing more, then it is neither less nor greater.
We said therefore rightly, that these three things, [mind, love, and
knowledge], when they are perfect, are by consequence equal.
5. Similar reasoning suggests to us, if indeed we can any way
understand the matter, that these things [i.e. love and knowledge]
exist in the soul, and that, being as it were involved in it, they are
so evolved from it as to be perceived and reckoned up substantially,
or, so to say, essentially. Not as though in a subject; as color, or
shape, or any other quality or quantity, are in the body. For anything
of this [material] kind does not go beyond the subject in which it is;
for the color or shape of this particular body cannot be also those of
another body. But the mind can also love something besides itself, with
that love with which it loves itself. And further, the mind does not
know itself only, but also many other things. Wherefore love and
knowledge are not contained in the mind as in a subject, but these also
exist substantially, as the mind itself does; because, even if they are
mutually predicated relatively, yet they exist each severally in their
own substance. Nor are they so mutually predicated relatively as color
and the colored subject are; so that color is in the colored subject,
but has not any proper substance in itself, since colored body is a
substance, but color is in a substance; but as two friends are also two
men, which are substances, while they are said to be men not
relatively, but friends relatively.
6. But, further, although one who loves or one who knows is a
substance, and knowledge is a substance, and love is a substance, but
he that loves and love, or, he that knows and knowledge, are spoken of
relatively to each other, as are friends: yet mind or spirit are not
relatives, as neither are men relatives: nevertheless he that loves and
love, or he that knows and knowledge, cannot exist separately from each
other, as men can that are friends. Although it would seem that
friends, too, can be separated in body, not in mind, in as far as they
are friends: nay, it can even happen that a friend may even also begin
to hate a friend and on this account cease to be a friend while the
other does not know it, and still loves him. But if the love with which
the mind loves itself ceases to be, then the mind also will at the same
time cease to love. Likewise, if the knowledge by which the mind knows
itself ceases to be, then the mind will also at the same time cease to
know itself. Just as the head of anything that has a head is certainly
a head, and they are predicated relatively to each other, although they
are also substances: for both a head is a body, and so is that which
has a head; and if there be no head, then neither will there be that
which has a head. Only these things can be separated from each other by
cutting off, those cannot.
7. And even if there are some bodies which cannot be wholly separated
and divided, yet they would not be bodies unless they consisted of
their own proper parts. A part then is predicated relatively to a
whole, since every part is a part of some whole, and a whole is a whole
by having all its parts. But since both part and whole are bodies,
these things are not only predicated relatively, but exist also
substantially. Perhaps, then, the mind is a whole, and the love with
which it loves itself, and the knowledge with which it knows itself,
are as it were its parts, of which two parts that whole consists. Or
are there three equal parts which make up the one whole? But no part
embraces the whole, of which it is a part; whereas, when the mind knows
itself as a whole, that is, knows itself perfectly, then the knowledge
of it extends through the whole of it; and when it loves itself
perfectly, then it loves itself as a whole, and the love of it extends
through the whole of it. Is it, then, as one drink is made from wine
and water and honey, and each single part extends through the whole,
and yet they are three things (for there is no part of the drink which
does not contain these three things; for they are not joined as if they
were water and oil, but are entirely commingled: and they are all
substances, and the whole of that liquor which is composed of the three
is one substance),--is it, I say, in some such way as this we are to
think these three to be together, mind, love, and knowledge? But water,
wine, and honey are not of one substance, although one substance
results in the drink made from the commingling of them. And I cannot
see how those other three are not of the same substance, since the mind
itself loves itself, and itself knows itself; and these three so exist,
as that the mind is neither loved nor known by any other thing at all.
These three, therefore, must needs be of one and the same essence; and
for that reason, if they were confounded together as it were by a
commingling, they could not be in any way three, neither could they be
mutually referred to each other. Just as if you were to make from one
and the same gold three similar rings, although connected with each
other, they are mutually referred to each other, because they are
similar. For everything similar is similar to something, and there is a
trinity of rings, and one gold. But if they are blended with each
other, and each mingled with the other through the whole of their own
bulk, then that trinity will fall through, and it will not exist at
all; and not only will it be called one gold, as it was called in the
case of those three rings, but now it will not be called three things
of gold at all.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--That These Three are Several in Themselves, and Mutually
All in All.
8. But in these three, when the mind knows itself and loves itself,
there remains a trinity: mind, love, knowledge; and this trinity is not
confounded together by any commingling: although they are each
severally in themselves and mutually all in all, or each severally in
each two, or each two in each. Therefore all are in all. For certainly
the mind is in itself, since it is called mind in respect to itself:
although it is said to be knowing, or known, or knowable, relatively to
its own knowledge; and although also as loving, and loved, or lovable,
it is referred to love, by which it loves itself. And knowledge,
although it is referred to the mind that knows or is known,
nevertheless is also predicated both as known and knowing in respect to
itself: for the knowledge by which the mind knows itself is not unknown
to itself. And although love is referred to the mind that loves, whose
love it is; nevertheless it is also love in respect to itself, so as to
exist also in itself: since love too is loved, yet cannot be loved with
anything except with love, that is with itself. So these things are
severally in themselves. But so are they in each other; because both
the mind that loves is in love, and love is in the knowledge of him
that loves, and knowledge is in the mind that knows. And each severally
is in like manner in each two, because the mind which knows and loves
itself, is in its own love and knowledge: and the love of the mind that
loves and knows itself, is in the mind and in its knowledge: and the
knowledge of the mind that knows and loves itself is in the mind and in
its love, because it loves itself that knows, and knows itself that
loves. And hence also each two is in each severally, since the mind
which knows and loves itself, is together with its own knowledge in
love, and together with its own love in knowledge; and love too itself
and knowledge are together in the mind, which loves and knows itself.
But in what way all are in all, we have already shown above; since the
mind loves itself as a whole, and knows itself as a whole, and knows
its own love wholly, and loves its own knowledge wholly, when these
three things are perfect in respect to themselves. Therefore these
three things are marvellously inseparable from each other, and yet each
of them is severally a substance, and all together are one substance or
essence, whilst they are mutually predicated relatively. [706]
__________________________________________________________________
[706] [Augustin here illustrates, by the ternary of mind, love, and
knowledge, what the Greek Trinitarians denominate the perichoresis of
the divine essence. By the figure of a circulation, they describe the
eternal inbeing and indwelling of one person in another. This is
founded on John xiv. 10, 11; xvii. 21, 23. "Believest thou not that I
am in the Father, and the Father in Me? I pray that they all may be
one, as thou Father art in Me, and I in Thee." Athanasius (Oratio, iii.
21) remarks that Christ here prays that the disciples "may imitate the
trinitarian unity of essence, in their unity of affection." Had it been
possible for the disciples to be in the essence of the Father as the
Son is, he would have prayed that they all may be "one in Thee,"
instead of "one in Us." The Platonists, also, employed this figure of
circulatory movement, to explain the self-reflecting and self-communing
nature of the human mind. "It is not possible for us to know what our
souls are, but only by their kineseis kuklikai, their circular and
reflex motions and converse with themselves, which only can steal from
them their own secrets." J. Smith: Immortality of the Soul, Ch. ii.
Augustin's illustration, however, is imperfect, because "the three
things" which circulate are not "each of them severally a substance."
Only one of them, namely, the mind, is a substance.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--There is One Knowledge of the Thing in the Thing Itself,
and Another in Eternal Truth Itself. That Corporeal Things, Too, are to
Be Judged the Rules of Eternal Truth.
9. But when the human mind knows itself and loves itself, it does not
know and love anything unchangeable: and each individual man declares
his own particular mind by one manner of speech, when he considers what
takes place in himself; but defines the human mind abstractly by
special or general knowledge. And so, when he speaks to me of his own
individual mind, as to whether he understands this or that, or does not
understand it, or whether he wishes or does not wish this or that, I
believe; but when he speaks the truth of the mind of man generally or
specially, I recognize and approve. Whence it is manifest, that each
sees a thing in himself, in such way that another person may believe
what he says of it, yet may not see it; but another [sees a thing] in
the truth itself, in such way that another person also can gaze upon
it; of which the former undergoes changes at successive times, the
latter consists in an unchangeable eternity. For we do not gather a
generic or specific knowledge of the human mind by means of resemblance
by seeing many minds with the eyes of the body: but we gaze upon
indestructible truth, from which to define perfectly, as far as we can,
not of what sort is the mind of any one particular man, but of what
sort it ought to be upon the eternal plan.
10. Whence also, even in the case of the images of things corporeal
which are drawn in through the bodily sense, and in some way infused
into the memory, from which also those things which have not been seen
are thought under a fancied image, whether otherwise than they really
are, or even perchance as they are;--even here too, we are proved
either to accept or reject, within ourselves, by other rules which
remain altogether unchangeable above our mind, when we approve or
reject anything rightly. For both when I recall the walls of Carthage
which I have seen, and imagine to myself the walls of Alexandria which
I have not seen, and, in preferring this to that among forms which in
both cases are imaginary, make that preference upon grounds of reason;
the judgment of truth from above is still strong and clear, and rests
firmly upon the utterly indestructible rules of its own right; and if
it is covered as it were by cloudiness of corporeal images, yet is not
wrapt up and confounded in them.
11. But it makes a difference, whether, under that or in that darkness,
I am shut off as it were from the clear heaven; or whether (as usually
happens on lofty mountains), enjoying the free air between both, I at
once look up above to the calmest light, and down below upon the
densest clouds. For whence is the ardor of brotherly love kindled in
me, when I hear that some man has borne bitter torments for the
excellence and steadfastness of faith? And if that man is shown to me
with the finger, I am eager to join myself to him, to become acquainted
with him, to bind him to myself in friendship. And accordingly, if
opportunity offers, I draw near, I address him, I converse with him, I
express my goodwill towards him in what words I can, and wish that in
him too in turn should be brought to pass and expressed goodwill
towards me; and I endeavor after a spiritual embrace in the way of
belief, since I cannot search out so quickly and discern altogether his
innermost heart. I love therefore the faithful and courageous man with
a pure and genuine love. But if he were to confess to me in the course
of conversation, or were through unguardedness to show in any way, that
either he believes something unseemly of God, and desires also
something carnal in Him, and that he bore these torments on behalf of
such an error, or from the desire of money for which he hoped, or from
empty greediness of human praise: immediately it follows that the love
with which I was borne towards him, displeased, and as it were
repelled, and taken away from an unworthy man, remains in that form,
after which, believing him such as I did, I had loved him; unless
perhaps I have come to love him to this end, that he may become such,
while I have found him not to be such in fact. And in that man, too,
nothing is changed: although it can be changed, so that he may become
that which I had believed him to be already. But in my mind there
certainly is something changed, viz., the estimate I had formed of him,
which was before of one sort, and now is of another: and the same love,
at the bidding from above of unchangeable righteousness, is turned
aside from the purpose of enjoying, to the purpose of taking counsel.
But the form itself of unshaken and stable truth, wherein I should have
enjoyed the fruition of the man, believing him to be good, and wherein
likewise I take counsel that he may be good, sheds in an immoveable
eternity the same light of incorruptible and most sound reason, both
upon the sight of my mind, and upon that cloud of images, which I
discern from above, when I think of the same man whom I had seen.
Again, when I call back to my mind some arch, turned beautifully and
symmetrically, which, let us say, I saw at Carthage; a certain reality
that had been made known to the mind through the eyes, and transferred
to the memory, causes the imaginary view. But I behold in my mind yet
another thing, according to which that work of art pleases me; and
whence also, if it displeased me, I should correct it. We judge
therefore of those particular things according to that [form of eternal
truth], and discern that form by the intuition of the rational mind.
But those things themselves we either touch if present by the bodily
sense, or if absent remember their images as fixed in our memory, or
picture, in the way of likeness to them, such things as we ourselves
also, if we wished and were able, would laboriously build up: figuring
in the mind after one fashion the images of bodies, or seeing bodies
through the body; but after another, grasping by simple intelligence
what is above the eye of the mind, viz., the reasons and the
unspeakably beautiful skill of such forms.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--We Conceive and Beget the Word Within, from the Things We
Have Beheld in the Eternal Truth. The Word, Whether of the Creature or
of the Creator, is Conceived by Love.
12. We behold, then, by the sight of the mind, in that eternal truth
from which all things temporal are made, the form according to which we
are, and according to which we do anything by true and right reason,
either in ourselves, or in things corporeal; and we have the true
knowledge of things, thence conceived, as it were as a word within us,
and by speaking we beget it from within; nor by being born does it
depart from us. And when we speak to others, we apply to the word,
remaining within us, the ministry of the voice or of some bodily sign,
that by some kind of sensible remembrance some similar thing may be
wrought also in the mind of him that hears,--similar, I say, to that
which does not depart from the mind of him that speaks. We do nothing,
therefore, through the members of the body in our words and actions, by
which the behavior of men is either approved or blamed, which we do not
anticipate by a word uttered within ourselves. For no one willingly
does anything, which he has not first said in his heart.
13. And this word is conceived by love, either of the creature or of
the Creator, that is, either of changeable nature or of unchangeable
truth. [707]
__________________________________________________________________
[707] [The inward production of a thought in the finite essence of the
human spirit which is expressed outwardly in a spoken word, is
analogous to the eternal generation of the Eternal Wisdom in the
infinite essence of God expressed in the Eternal Word. Both are alike,
in that something spiritual issues from something spiritual, without
division or diminution of substance. But a thought of the human mind is
not an objective thing or substance; while the Eternal Word
is.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--In What Desire and Love Differ.
[Conceived] therefore, either by desire or by love: not that the
creature ought not to be loved; but if that love [of the creature] is
referred to the Creator, then it will not be desire (cupiditas), but
love (charitas). For it is desire when the creature is loved for
itself. And then it does not help a man through making use of it, but
corrupts him in the enjoying it. When, therefore, the creature is
either equal to us or inferior, we must use the inferior in order to
God, but we must enjoy the equal duly in God. For as thou oughtest to
enjoy thyself, not in thyself, but in Him who made thee, so also him
whom thou lovest as thyself. Let us enjoy, therefore, both ourselves
and our brethren in the Lord; and hence let us not dare to yield, and
as it were to relax, ourselves to ourselves in the direction downwards.
Now a word is born, when, being thought out, it pleases us either to
the effect of sinning, or to that of doing right. Therefore love, as it
were a mean, conjoins our word and the mind from which it is conceived,
and without any confusion binds itself as a third with them, in an
incorporeal embrace.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--In the Love of Spiritual Things the Word Born is the Same
as the Word Conceived. It is Otherwise in the Love of Carnal Things.
14. But the word conceived and the word born are the very same when the
will finds rest in knowledge itself, as is the case in the love of
spiritual things. For instance, he who knows righteousness perfectly,
and loves it perfectly, is already righteous; even if no necessity
exist of working according to it outwardly through the members of the
body. But in the love of carnal and temporal things, as in the
offspring of animals, the conception of the word is one thing, the
bringing forth another. For here what is conceived by desiring is born
by attaining. Since it does not suffice to avarice to know and to love
gold, except it also have it; nor to know and love to eat, or to lie
with any one, unless also one does it; nor to know and love honors and
power, unless they actually come to pass. Nay, all these things, even
if obtained, do not suffice. "Whosoever drinketh of this water," He
says, "shall thirst again." [708] And so also the Psalmist, "He hath
conceived pain and brought forth iniquity." [709] And he speaks of pain
or labor as conceived, when those things are conceived which it is not
sufficient to know and will, and when the mind burns and grows sick
with want, until it arrives at those things, and, as it were, brings
them forth. Whence in the Latin language we have the word "parta" used
elegantly for both "reperta" and "comperta," which words sound as if
derived from bringing forth. [710] Since "lust, when it hath conceived,
bringeth forth sin." [711] Wherefore the Lord proclaims, "Come unto me
all ye that labor and are heavy laden;" [712] and in another place "Woe
unto them that are with child, and to them that give suck, in those
days!" [713] And when therefore He referred all either right actions or
sins to the bringing forth of the word, "By thy mouth," [714] He says,
"thou shalt be justified, and by thy mouth [715] thou shalt be
condemned," [716] intending thereby not the visible mouth, but that
which is within and invisible, of the thought and of the heart.
__________________________________________________________________
[708] John iv. 13
[709] Ps. vii. 14
[710] Partus
[711] Jas. i. 15
[712] Matt. xi. 28
[713] Matt. xxiv. 19
[714] Words.
[715] Words.--A.V.
[716] Matt. xii. 37
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--Whether Only Knowledge that is Loved is the Word of the
Mind.
15. It is rightly asked then, whether all knowledge is a word, or only
knowledge that is loved. For we also know the things which we hate; but
what we do not like, cannot be said to be either conceived or brought
forth by the mind. For not all things which in anyway touch it, are
conceived by it; but some only reach the point of being known, but yet
are not spoken as words, as for instance those of which we speak now.
For those are called words in one way, which occupy spaces of time by
their syllables, whether they are pronounced or only thought; and in
another way, all that is known is called a word imprinted on the mind,
as long as it can be brought forth from the memory and defined, even
though we dislike the thing itself; and in another way still, when we
like that which is conceived in the mind. And that which the apostle
says, must be taken according to this last kind of word, "No man can
say that Jesus is the Lord, but by the Holy Ghost;" [717] since those
also say this, but according to another meaning of the term "word," of
whom the Lord Himself says, "Not every one that saith unto me, Lord,
Lord, shall enter into the kingdom of heaven." [718] Nay, even in the
case of things which we hate, when we rightly dislike and rightly
censure them, we approve and like the censure bestowed upon them, and
it becomes a word. Nor is it the knowledge of vices that displeases us,
but the vices themselves. For I like to know and define what
intemperance is; and this is its word. Just as there are known faults
in art, and the knowledge of them is rightly approved, when a
connoisseur discerns the species or the privation of excellence, as to
affirm and deny that it is or that it is not; yet to be without
excellence and to fall away into fault, is worthy of condemnation. And
to define intemperance, and to say its word, belongs to the art of
morals; but to be intemperate belongs to that which that art censures.
Just as to know and define what a solecism is, belongs to the art of
speaking; but to be guilty of one, is a fault which the same art
reprehends. A word, then, which is the point we wish now to discern and
intimate, is knowledge together with love. Whenever, then, the mind
knows and loves itself, its word is joined to it by love. And since it
loves knowledge and knows love, both the word is in love and love is in
the word, and both are in him who loves and speaks. [719]
__________________________________________________________________
[717] 1 Cor. xii. 3
[718] Matt. vii. 21
[719] [The meaning of this obscure chapter seems to be, that only what
the mind is pleased with, is the real expression and index of the
mind--its true "word." The true nature of the mind is revealed in its
sympathies. But this requires some qualification. For in the case of
contrary qualities, like right and wrong, beauty and ugliness, the real
nature of the mind is seen also in its antipathy as well as in its
sympathy; in its hatred of wrong as well as in its love of right. Each
alike is a true index of the mind, because each really implies the
other.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 11.--That the Image or Begotten Word of the Mind that Knows
Itself is Equal to the Mind Itself.
16. But all knowledge according to species is like the thing which it
knows. For there is another knowledge according to privation, according
to which we speak a word only when we condemn. And this condemnation of
a privation is equivalent to praise of the species, and so is approved.
The mind, then, contains some likeness to a known species, whether when
liking that species or when disliking its privation. And hence, in so
far as we know God, we are like Him, but not like to the point of
equality, since we do not know Him to the extent of His own being. And
as, when we speak of bodies by means of the bodily sense, there arises
in our mind some likeness of them, which is a phantasm of the memory;
for the bodies themselves are not at all in the mind, when we think
them, but only the likenesses of those bodies; therefore, when we
approve the latter for the former, we err, for the approving of one
thing for another is an error; yet the image of the body in the mind is
a thing of a better sort than the species of the body itself, inasmuch
as the former is in a better nature, viz. in a living substance, as the
mind is: so when we know God, although we are made better than we were
before we knew Him, and above all when the same knowledge being also
liked and worthily loved becomes a word, and so that knowledge becomes
a kind of likeness of God; yet that knowledge is of a lower kind, since
it is in a lower nature; for the mind is creature, but God is Creator.
And from this it may be inferred, that when the mind knows and approves
itself, this same knowledge is in such way its word, as that it is
altogether on a par and equal with it, and the same; because it is
neither the knowledge of a lower essence, as of the body, nor of a
higher, as of God. And whereas knowledge bears a likeness to that which
it knows, that is, of which it is the knowledge; in this case it has
perfect and equal likeness, when the mind itself, which knows, is
known. And so it is both image and word; because it is uttered
concerning that mind to which it is equalled in knowing, and that which
is begotten is equal to the begetter.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 12.--Why Love is Not the Offspring of the Mind, as Knowledge is
So. The Solution of the Question. The Mind with the Knowledge of Itself
and the Love of Itself is the Image of the Trinity.
17. What then is love? Will it not be an image? Will it not be a word?
Will it not be begotten? For why does the mind beget its knowledge when
it knows itself, and not beget its love when it loves itself? For if it
is the cause of its own knowing, for the reason that it is knowable, it
is also the cause of its own love because it is lovable. It is hard,
then, to say why it does not beget both. For there is a further
question also respecting the supreme Trinity itself, the omnipotent God
the Creator, after whose image man is made, which troubles men, whom
the truth of God invites to the faith by human speech; viz. why the
Holy Spirit is not also to be either believed or understood to be
begotten by God the Father, so that He also may be called a Son. And
this question we are endeavoring in some way to investigate in the
human mind, in order that from a lower image, in which our own nature
itself as it were answers, upon being questioned, in a way more
familiar to ourselves, we may be able to direct a more practised mental
vision from the enlightened creature to the unchangeable light;
assuming, however, that the truth itself has persuaded us, that as no
Christian doubts the Word of God to be the Son, so that the Holy Spirit
is love. Let us return, then, to a more careful questioning and
consideration upon this subject of that image which is the creature,
that is, of the rational mind; wherein the knowledge of some things
coming into existence in time, but which did not exist before, and the
love of some things which were not loved before, opens to us more
clearly what to say: because to speech also itself, which must be
disposed in time, that thing is easier of explanation which is
comprehended in the order of time.
18. First, therefore, it is clear that a thing may possibly be
knowable, that is, such as can be known, and yet that it may be
unknown; but that it is not possible for that to be known which is not
knowable. Wherefore it must be clearly held that everything whatsoever
that we know begets at the same time in us the knowledge of itself; for
knowledge is brought forth from both, from the knower and from the
thing known. When, therefore, the mind knows itself, it alone is the
parent of its own knowledge; for it is itself both the thing known and
the knower of it. But it was knowable to itself also before it knew
itself, only the knowledge of itself was not in itself so long as it
did not know itself. In knowing itself, then, it begets a knowledge of
itself equal to itself; since it does not know itself as less than
itself is, nor is its knowledge the knowledge of the essence of some
one else, not only because itself knows, but also because it knows
itself, as we have said above. What then is to be said of love; why,
when the mind loves itself, it should not seem also to have begotten
the love of itself? For it was lovable to itself even before it loved
itself since it could love itself; just as it was knowable to itself
even before it knew itself, since it could know itself. For if it were
not knowable to itself, it never could have known itself; and so, if it
were not lovable to itself, it never could have loved itself. Why
therefore may it not be said by loving itself to have begotten its own
love, as by knowing itself it has begotten its own knowledge? Is it
because it is thereby indeed plainly shown that this is the principle
of love, whence it proceeds? for it proceeds from the mind itself,
which is lovable to itself before it loves itself, and so is the
principle of its own love by which it loves itself: but that this love
is not therefore rightly said to be begotten by the mind, as is the
knowledge of itself by which the mind knows itself, because in the case
of knowledge the thing has been found already, which is what we call
brought forth or discovered; [720] and this is commonly preceded by an
inquiry such as to find rest when that end is attained. For inquiry is
the desire of finding, or, what is the same thing, of discovering.
[721] But those things which are discovered are as it were brought
forth, whence they are like offspring; but wherein, except in the case
itself of knowledge? For in that case they are as it were uttered and
fashioned. For although the things existed already which we found by
seeking, yet the knowledge of them did not exist, which knowledge we
regard as an offspring that is born. Further, the desire (appetitus)
which there is in seeking proceeds from him who seeks, and is in some
way in suspense, and does not rest in the end whither it is directed,
except that which is sought be found and conjoined with him who seeks.
And this desire, that is, inquiry,--although it does not seem to be
love, by which that which is known is loved, for in this case we are
still striving to know,--yet it is something of the same kind. For it
can be called will (voluntas),since every one who seeks wills (vult) to
find; and if that is sought which belongs to knowledge, every one who
seeks wills to know. But if he wills ardently and earnestly, he is said
to study (studere): a word that is most commonly employed in the case
of pursuing and obtaining any branches of learning. Therefore, the
bringing forth of the mind is preceded by some desire, by which,
through seeking and finding what we wish to know, the offspring, viz.
knowledge itself, is born. And for this reason, that desire by which
knowledge is conceived and brought forth, cannot rightly be called the
bringing forth and the offspring; and the same desire which led us to
long for the knowing of the thing, becomes the love of the thing when
known, while it holds and embraces its accepted offspring, that is,
knowledge, and unites it to its begetter. And so there is a kind of
image of the Trinity in the mind itself, and the knowledge of it, which
is its offspring and its word concerning itself, and love as a third,
and these three are one, and one substance. [722] Neither is the
offspring less, since the mind knows itself according to the measure of
its own being; nor is the love less, since it loves itself according to
the measure both of its own knowledge and of its own being.
__________________________________________________________________
[720] "Partum" or "repertum."
[721] "Reperiendi."
[722] [It is not these three together that constitute the one
substance. The mind alone is the substance--the knowledge and the love
being only two activities of it. When the mind is not cognizing or
loving, it is still an entire mind. As previously remarked in the
annotation on IX. ii. this ternary will completely illustrate a
trinality of a certain kind, but not that of the Trinity; in which the
"tria quaedam" are three subsistences, each of which is so substantial
as to be the subject of attributes, and to be able to employ them. The
human mind is substantial enough to possess and employ the attributes
of knowledge and love. We say that the mind knows and loves. But an
activity of the mind is not substantial enough to possess and employ
the attributes of knowledge and love. We cannot say that the loving
loves; or the loving knows; or the knowing loves, etc.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
Book X.
------------------------
In which there is shown to be another trinity in the mind of man, and
one that appears much more evidently, viz. in his memory,
understanding, and will.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--The Love of the Studious Mind, that Is, of One Desirous to
Know, is Not the Love of a Thing Which It Does Not Know.
1. Let us now proceed, then, in due order, with a more exact purpose,
to explain this same point more thoroughly. And first, since no one can
love at all a thing of which he is wholly ignorant, we must carefully
consider of what sort is the love of those who are studious, that is,
of those who do not already know, but are still desiring to know any
branch of learning. Now certainly, in those things whereof the word
study is not commonly used, love often arises from hearsay, when the
reputation of anything for beauty inflames the mind to the seeing and
enjoying it; since the mind knows generically wherein consist the
beauties of corporeal things, from having seen them very frequently,
and since there exists within a faculty of approving that which
outwardly is longed for. And when this happens, the love that is called
forth is not of a thing wholly unknown, since its genus is thus known.
But when we love a good man whose face we never saw, we love him from
the knowledge of his virtues, which virtues we know [abstractly] in the
truth itself. But in the case of learning, it is for the most part the
authority of others who praise and commend it that kindles our love of
it; although nevertheless we could not burn with any zeal at all for
the study of it, unless we had already in our mind at least a slight
impression of the knowledge of each kind of learning. For who, for
instance, would devote any care and labor to the learning of rhetoric,
unless he knew before that it was the science of speaking? Sometimes,
again, we marvel at the results of learning itself, which we have heard
of or experienced; and hence burn to obtain, by learning, the power of
attaining these results. Just as if it were said to one who did not
know his letters, that there is a kind of learning which enables a man
to send words, wrought with the hand in silence, to one who is ever so
far absent, for him in turn to whom they are sent to gather these
words, not with his ears, but with his eyes; and if the man were to see
the thing actually done, is not that man, since he desires to know how
he can do this thing, altogether moved to study with a view to the
result which he already knows and holds? So it is that the studious
zeal of those who learn is kindled: for that of which any one is
utterly ignorant, he can in no way love.
2. So also, if any one hear an unknown sign, as, for instance, the
sound of some word of which he does not know the signification, he
desires to know what it is; that is, he desires to know what thing it
is which it is agreed shall be brought to mind by that sound: as if he
heard the word temetum [723] uttered, and not knowing, should ask what
it is. He must then know already that it is a sign, i.e. that the word
is not an empty sound, but that something is signified by it; for in
other respects this trisyllabic word is known to him already, and has
already impressed its articulate form upon his mind through the sense
of hearing. And then what more is to be required in him, that he may go
on to a greater knowledge of that of which all the letters and all the
spaces of its several sounds are already known, unless that it shall at
the same time have become known to him that it is a sign, and shall
have also moved him with the desire of knowing of what it is the sign?
The more, then, the thing is known, yet not fully known, the more the
mind desires to know concerning it what remains to be known. For if he
knew it to be only such and such a spoken word, and did not know that
it was the sign of something, he would seek nothing further, since the
sensible thing is already perceived as far as it can be by the sense.
But because he knows it to be not only a spoken word, but also a sign,
he wishes to know it perfectly; and no sign is known perfectly, except
it be known of what it is the sign. He then who with ardent carefulness
seeks to know this, and inflamed by studious zeal perseveres in the
search; can such an one be said to be without love? What then does he
love? For certainly nothing can be loved unless it is known. For that
man does not love those three syllables which he knows already. But if
he loves this in them, that he knows them to signify something, this is
not the point now in question, for it is not this which he seeks to
know. But we are now asking what it is he loves, in that which he is
desirous to know, but which certainly he does not yet know; and we are
therefore wondering why he loves, since we know most assuredly that
nothing can be loved unless it be known. What then does he love, except
that he knows and perceives in the reason of things what excellence
there is in learning, in which the knowledge of all signs is contained;
and what benefit there is in the being skilled in these, since by them
human fellowship mutually communicates its own perceptions, lest the
assemblies of men should be actually worse than utter solitude, if they
were not to mingle their thoughts by conversing together? The soul,
then, discerns this fitting and serviceable species, and knows it, and
loves it; and he who seeks the meaning of any words of which he is
ignorant, studies to render that species perfect in himself as much as
he can: for it is one thing to behold it in the light of truth, another
to desire it as within his own capacity. For he beholds in the light of
truth how great and how good a thing it is to understand and to speak
all tongues of all nations, and so to hear no tongue and to be heard by
none as from a foreigner. The beauty, then, of this knowledge is
already discerned by thought, and the thing being known is loved; and
that thing is so regarded, and so stimulates the studious zeal of
learners, that they are moved with respect to it, and desire it eagerly
in all the labor which they spend upon the attainment of such a
capacity, in order that they may also embrace in practice that which
they know beforehand by reason. And so every one, the nearer he
approaches that capacity in hope, the more fervently desires it with
love; for those branches of learning are studied the more eagerly,
which men do not despair of being able to attain; for when any one
entertains no hope of attaining his end, then he either loves
lukewarmly or does not love at all, howsoever he may see the excellence
of it. Accordingly, because the knowledge of all languages is almost
universally felt to be hopeless, every one studies most to know that of
his own nation; but if he feels that he is not sufficient even to
comprehend this perfectly, yet no one is so indolent in this knowledge
as not to wish to know, when he hears an unknown word, what it is, and
to seek and learn it if he can. And while he is seeking it, certainly
he has a studious zeal of learning, and seems to love a thing he does
not know; but the case is really otherwise. For that species touches
the mind, which the mind knows and thinks, wherein the fitness is
clearly visible which accrues from the associating of minds with one
another, in the hearing and returning of known and spoken words. And
this species kindles studious zeal in him who seeks what indeed he
knows not, but gazes upon and loves the unknown form to which that
pertains. If then, for example, any one were to ask, What is temetum
(for I had instanced this word already), and it were said to him, What
does this matter to you? he will answer, Lest perhaps I hear some one
speaking, and understand him not; or perhaps read the word somewhere,
and know not what the writer meant. Who, pray, would say to such an
inquirer, Do not care about understanding what you hear; do not care
about knowing what you read? For almost every rational soul quickly
discerns the beauty of that knowledge, through which the thoughts of
men are mutually made known by the enunciation of significant words;
and it is on account of this fitness thus known, and because known
therefore loved, that such an unknown word is studiously sought out.
When then he hears and learns that wine was called "temetum" by our
forefathers, but that the word is already quite obsolete in our present
usage of language, he will think perhaps that he has still need of the
word on account of this or that book of those forefathers. But if he
holds these also to be superfluous, perhaps he does now come to think
the word not worth remembering, since he sees it has nothing to do with
that species of learning which he knows with the mind, and gazes upon,
and so loves.
3. Wherefore in all cases the love of a studious mind, that is, of one
that wishes to know what it does not know, is not the love of that
thing which it does not know, but of that which it knows; on account of
which it wishes to know what it does not know. Or if it is so
inquisitive as to be carried away, not for any other cause known to it,
but by the mere love of knowing things unknown; then such an
inquisitive person is, doubtless distinguishable from an ordinary
student, yet does not, any more than he, love things he does not know;
nay, on the contrary, he is more fitly said to hate things he knows
not, of which he wishes that there should be none, in wishing to know
everything. But lest any one should lay before us a more difficult
question, by declaring that it is just as impossible for any one to
hate what he does not know, as to love what he does not know, we will
not withstand what is true; but it must be understood that it is not
the same thing to say he loves to know things unknown, as to say he
loves things unknown. For it is possible that a man may love to know
things unknown; but it is not possible that he should love things
unknown. For the word to know is not placed there without meaning;
since he who loves to know things unknown, does not love the unknown
things themselves, but the knowing of them. And unless he knew what
knowing means, no one could say confidently, either that he knew or
that he did not know. For not only he who says I know, and says so
truly, must needs know what knowing is; but he also who says, I do not
know, and says so confidently and truly, and knows that he says so
truly, certainly knows what knowing is; for he both distinguishes him
who does not know from him who knows, when he looks into himself and
says truly I do not know; and whereas he knows that he says this truly,
whence should he know it, if he did not know what knowing is?
__________________________________________________________________
[723] Wine.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--No One at All Loves Things Unknown.
4. No studious person, then, no inquisitive person, loves things he
does not know, even while he is urgent with the most vehement desire to
know what he does not know. For he either knows already generically
what he loves, and longs to know it also in some individual or
individuals, which perhaps are praised, but not yet known to him; and
he pictures in his mind an imaginary form by which he may be stirred to
love. And whence does he picture this, except from those things which
he has already known? And yet perhaps he will not love it, if he find
that form which was praised to be unlike that other form which was
figured and in thought most fully known to his mind. And if he has
loved it, he will begin to love it from that time when he learned it;
since a little before, that form which was loved was other than that
which the mind that formed it had been wont to exhibit to itself. But
if he shall find it similar to that form which report had proclaimed,
and to be such that he could truly say I was already loving thee; yet
certainly not even then did he love a form he did not know, since he
had known it in that likeness. Or else we see somewhat in the species
of the eternal reason, and therein love it; and when this is manifested
in some image of a temporal thing, and we believe the praises of those
who have made trial of it, and so love it, then we do not love anything
unknown, according to that which we have already sufficiently discussed
above. Or else, again, we love something known, and on account of it
seek something unknown; and so it is by no means the love of the thing
unknown that possesses us, but the love of the thing known, to which we
know the unknown thing belongs, so that we know that too which we seek
still as unknown; as a little before I said of an unknown word. Or
else, again, every one loves the very knowing itself, as no one can
fail to know who desires to know anything. For these reasons they seem
to love things unknown who wish to know anything which they do not
know, and who, on account of their vehement desire of inquiry, cannot
be said to be without love. But how different the case really is, and
that nothing at all can be loved which is not known, I think I must
have persuaded every one who carefully looks upon truth. But since the
examples which we have given belong to those who desire to know
something which they themselves are not, we must take thought lest
perchance some new notion appear, when the mind desires to know itself.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--That When the Mind Loves Itself, It is Not Unknown to
Itself.
5. What, then, does the mind love, when it seeks ardently to know
itself, whilst it is still unknown to itself? For, behold, the mind
seeks to know itself, and is excited thereto by studious zeal. It
loves, therefore; but what does it love? Is it itself? But how can this
be when it does not yet know itself, and no one can love what he does
not know? Is it that report has declared to it its own species, in like
way as we commonly hear of people who are absent? Perhaps, then, it
does not love itself, but loves that which it imagines of itself, which
is perhaps widely different from what itself is: or if the phantasy in
the mind is like the mind itself, and so when it loves this fancied
image, it loves itself before it knew itself, because it gazes upon
that which is like itself; then it knew other minds from which to
picture itself, and so is known to itself generically. Why, then, when
it knows other minds, does it not know itself, since nothing can
possibly be more present to it than itself? But if, as other eyes are
more known to the eyes of the body, than those eyes are to themselves;
then let it not seek itself, because it never will find itself. For
eyes can never see themselves except in looking-glasses; and it cannot
be supposed in any way that anything of that kind can be applied also
to the contemplation of incorporeal things, so that the mind should
know itself, as it were, in a looking-glass. Or does it see in the
reason of eternal truth how beautiful it is to know one's self, and so
loves this which it sees, and studies to bring it to pass in itself?
because, although it is not known to itself, yet it is known to it how
good it is, that it should be known to itself. And this, indeed, is
very wonderful, that it does not yet know itself, and yet knows already
how excellent a thing it is to know itself. Or does it see some most
excellent end, viz. its own serenity and blessedness, by some hidden
remembrance, which has not abandoned it, although it has gone far
onwards, and believes that it cannot attain to that same end unless it
know itself? And so while it loves that, it seeks this; and loves that
which is known, on account of which it seeks that which is unknown. But
why should the remembrance of its own blessedness be able to last, and
the remembrance of itself not be able to last as well; that so it
should know itself which wishes to attain, as well as know that to
which it wishes to attain? Or when it loves to know itself, does it
love, not itself, which it does not yet know, but the very act of
knowing; and feel the more annoyed that itself is wanting to its own
knowledge wherewith it wishes to embrace all things? And it knows what
it is to know; and whilst it loves this, which it knows, desires also
to know itself. Whereby, then, does it know its own knowing, if it does
not know itself? For it knows that it knows other things, but that it
does not know itself; for it is from hence that it knows also what
knowing is. In what way, then, does that which does not know itself,
know itself as knowing anything? For it does not know that some other
mind knows, but that itself does so. Therefore it knows itself.
Further, when it seeks to know itself, it knows itself now as seeking.
Therefore again it knows itself. And hence it cannot altogether not
know itself, when certainly it does so far know itself as that it knows
itself as not knowing itself. But if it does not know itself not to
know itself, then it does not seek to know itself. And therefore, in
the very fact that it seeks itself, it is clearly convicted of being
more known to itself than unknown. For it knows itself as seeking and
as not knowing itself, in that it seeks to know itself.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--How the Mind Knows Itself, Not in Part, But as a Whole.
6. What then shall we say? Does that which knows itself in part, not
know itself in part? But it is absurd to say, that it does not as a
whole know what it knows. I do not say, it knows wholly; but what it
knows, it as a whole knows. When therefore it knows anything about
itself, which it can only know as a whole, it knows itself as a whole.
But it does know that itself knows something, while yet except as a
whole it cannot know anything. Therefore it knows itself as a whole.
Further, what in it is so known to itself, as that it lives? And it
cannot at once be a mind, and not live, while it has also something
over and above, viz., that it understands: for the souls of beasts also
live, but do not understand. As therefore a mind is a whole mind, so it
lives as a whole. But it knows that it lives. Therefore it knows itself
as a whole. Lastly, when the mind seeks to know itself, it already
knows that it is a mind: otherwise it knows not whether it seeks
itself, and perhaps seeks one thing while intending to seek another.
For it might happen that itself was not a mind, and so, in seeking to
know a mind, that it did not seek to know itself. Wherefore since the
mind, when it seeks to know what mind is, knows that it seeks itself,
certainly it knows that itself is a mind. Furthermore, if it knows this
in itself, that it is a mind, and a whole mind, then it knows itself as
a whole. But suppose it did not know itself to be a mind, but in
seeking itself only knew that it did seek itself. For so, too, it may
possibly seek one thing for another, if it does not know this: but that
it may not seek one thing for another, without doubt it knows what it
seeks. But if it knows what it seeks, and seeks itself, then certainly
it knows itself. What therefore more does it seek? But if it knows
itself in part, but still seeks itself in part, then it seeks not
itself, but part of itself. For when we speak of the mind itself, we
speak of it as a whole. Further, because it knows that it is not yet
found by itself as a whole, it knows how much the whole is. And so it
seeks that which is wanting, as we are wont to seek to recall to the
mind something that has slipped from the mind, but has not altogether
gone away from it; since we can recognize it, when it has come back, to
be the same thing that we were seeking. But how can mind come into
mind, as though it were possible for the mind not to be in the mind?
Add to this, that if, having found a part, it does not seek itself as a
whole, yet it as a whole seeks itself. Therefore as a whole it is
present to itself, and there is nothing left to be sought: for that is
wanting which is sought, not the mind which seeks. Since therefore it
as a whole seeks itself, nothing of it is wanting. Or if it does not as
a whole seek itself, but the part which has been found seeks the part
which has not yet been found then the mind does not seek itself, of
which no part seeks itself. For the part which has been found, does not
seek itself; nor yet does the part itself which has not yet been found,
seek itself; since it is sought by that part which has been already
found. Wherefore, since neither the mind as a whole seeks itself, nor
does any part of it seek itself, the mind does not seek itself at all.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--Why the Soul is Enjoined to Know Itself. Whence Come the
Errors of the Mind Concerning Its Own Substance.
7. Why therefore is it enjoined upon it, that it should know itself? I
suppose, in order that, it may consider itself, and live according to
its own nature; that is, seek to be regulated according to its own
nature, viz., under Him to whom it ought to be subject, and above those
things to which it is to be preferred; under Him by whom it ought to be
ruled, above those things which it ought to rule. For it does many
things through vicious desire, as though in forgetfulness of itself.
For it sees some things intrinsically excellent, in that more excellent
nature which is God: and whereas it ought to remain steadfast that it
may enjoy them, it is turned away from Him, by wishing to appropriate
those things to itself, and not to be like to Him by His gift, but to
be what He is by its own, and it begins to move and slip gradually down
into less and less, which it thinks to be more and more; for it is
neither sufficient for itself, nor is anything at all sufficient for
it, if it withdraw from Him who is alone sufficient: and so through
want and distress it becomes too intent upon its own actions and upon
the unquiet delights which it obtains through them: and thus, by the
desire of acquiring knowledge from those things that are without, the
nature of which it knows and loves, and which it feels can be lost
unless held fast with anxious care, it loses its security, and thinks
of itself so much the less, in proportion as it feels the more secure
that it cannot lose itself. So, whereas it is one thing not to know
oneself, and another not to think of oneself (for we do not say of the
man that is skilled in much learning, that he is ignorant of grammar,
when he is only not thinking of it, because he is thinking at the time
of the art of medicine);--whereas, then, I say it is one thing not to
know oneself, and another not to think of oneself, such is the strength
of love, that the mind draws in with itself those things which it has
long thought of with love, and has grown into them by the close
adherence of diligent study, even when it returns in some way to think
of itself. And because these things are corporeal which it loved
externally through the carnal senses; and because it has become
entangled with them by a kind of daily familiarity, and yet cannot
carry those corporeal things themselves with itself internally as it
were into the region of incorporeal nature; therefore it combines
certain images of them, and thrusts them thus made from itself into
itself. For it gives to the forming of them somewhat of its own
substance, yet preserves the while something by which it may judge
freely of the species of those images; and this something is more
properly the mind, that is, the rational understanding, which is
preserved that it may judge. For we see that we have those parts of the
soul which are informed by the likenesses of corporeal things, in
common also with beasts.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--The Opinion Which the Mind Has of Itself is Deceitful.
8. But the mind errs, when it so lovingly and intimately connects
itself with these images, as even to consider itself to be something of
the same kind. For so it is conformed to them to some extent, not by
being this, but by thinking it is so: not that it thinks itself to be
an image, but outright that very thing itself of which it entertains
the image. For there still lives in it the power of distinguishing the
corporeal thing which it leaves without, from the image of that
corporeal thing which it contains therefrom within itself: except when
these images are so projected as if felt without and not thought
within, as in the case of people who are asleep, or mad, or in a
trance.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--The Opinions of Philosophers Respecting the Substance of
the Soul. The Error of Those Who are of Opinion that the Soul is
Corporeal, Does Not Arise from Defective Knowledge of the Soul, But
from Their Adding There to Something Foreign to It. What is Meant by
Finding.
9. When, therefore, it thinks itself to be something of this kind, it
thinks itself to be a corporeal thing; and since it is perfectly
conscious of its own superiority, by which it rules the body, it has
hence come to pass that the question has been raised what part of the
body has the greater power in the body; and the opinion has been held
that this is the mind, nay, that it is even the whole soul altogether.
And some accordingly think it to be the blood, others the brain, others
the heart; not as the Scripture says, "I will praise Thee, O Lord, with
my whole heart;" and, "Thou shall love the Lord thy God with all thine
heart;" [724] for this word by misapplication or metaphor is
transferred from the body to the soul; but they have simply thought it
to be that small part itself of the body, which we see when the inward
parts are rent asunder. Others, again, have believed the soul to be
made up of very minute and individual corpustules, which they call
atoms, meeting in themselves and cohering. Others have said that its
substance is air, others fire. Others have been of opinion that it is
no substance at all, since they could not think any substance unless it
is body, and they did not find that the soul was body; but it was in
their opinion the tempering together itself of our body, or the
combining together of the elements, by which that flesh is as it were
conjoined. And hence all of these have held the soul to be mortal;
since, whether it were body, or some combination of body, certainly it
could not in either case continue always without death. But they who
have held its substance to be some kind of life the reverse of
corporeal, since they have found it to be a life that animates and
quickens every living body, have by consequence striven also, according
as each was able, to prove it immortal, since life cannot be without
life.
For as to that fifth kind of body, I know not what, which some have
added to the four well-known elements of the world, and have said that
the soul was made of this, I do not think we need spend time in
discussing it in this place. For either they mean by body what we mean
by it, viz., that of which a part is less than the whole in extension
of place, and they are to be reckoned among those who have believed the
mind to be corporeal: or if they call either all substance, or all
changeable substance, body, whereas they know that not all substance is
contained in extension of place by any length and breadth and height,
we need not contend with them about a question of words.
10. Now, in the case of all these opinions, any one who sees that the
nature of the mind is at once substance, and yet not corporeal,--that
is, that it does not occupy a less extension of place with a less part
of itself, and a greater with a greater,--must needs see at the same
time that they who are of opinion that it is corporeal [725] do not err
from defect of knowledge concerning mind, but because they associate
with it qualities without which they are not able to conceive any
nature at all. For if you bid them conceive of existence that is
without corporeal phantasms, they hold it merely nothing. And so the
mind would not seek itself, as though wanting to itself. For what is so
present to knowledge as that which is present to the mind? Or what is
so present to the mind as the mind itself? And hence what is called
"invention," if we consider the origin of the word, what else does it
mean, unless that to find out [726] is to "come into" that which is
sought? Those things accordingly which come into the mind as it were of
themselves, are not usually said to be found out, [727] although they
may be said to be known; since we did not endeavor by seeking to come
into them, that is to invent or find them out. And therefore, as the
mind itself really seeks those things which are sought by the eyes or
by any other sense of the body (for the mind directs even the carnal
sense, and then finds out or invents, when that sense comes to the
things which are sought); so, too, it finds out or invents other things
which it ought to know, not with the medium of corporeal sense, but
through itself, when it "comes into" them; and this, whether in the
case of the higher substance that is in God, or of the other parts of
the soul; just as it does when it judges of bodily images themselves,
for it finds these within, in the soul, impressed through the body.
__________________________________________________________________
[724] Ps. ix., cxi., and cxxxviii., Deut. vi. 5, and Matt. xxii. 37
[725] [The distinction between corporeal and incorporeal substance is
one that Augustin often insists upon. See Confessions VII. i-iii. The
doctrine that all substance is extended body, and that there is no such
entity as spiritual unextended substance, is combatted by Plato in the
Theatetus. For a history of the contest and an able defence of the
substantiality of spirit, see Cudworth's Intellectual System, III. 384
sq. Harrison's Ed.--W.G.T.S.]
[726] Invenire
[727] Inventa
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--How the Soul Inquires into Itself. Whence Comes the Error
of the Soul Concerning Itself.
11. It is then a wonderful question, in what manner the soul seeks and
finds itself; at what it aims in order to seek, or whither it comes,
that it may come into or find out. For what is so much in the mind as
the mind itself? But because it is in those things which it thinks of
with love, and is wont to be in sensible, that is, in corporeal things
with love, it is unable to be in itself without the images of those
corporeal things. And hence shameful error arises to block its way,
whilst it cannot separate from itself the images of sensible things, so
as to see itself alone. For they have marvellously cohered with it by
the close adhesion of love. And herein consists its uncleanness; since,
while it strives to think of itself alone, it fancies itself to be
that, without which it cannot think of itself. When, therefore, it is
bidden to become acquainted with itself, let it not seek itself as
though it were withdrawn from itself; but let it withdraw that which it
has added to itself. For itself lies more deeply within, not only than
those sensible things, which are clearly without, but also than the
images of them; which are indeed in some part of the soul, viz., that
which beasts also have, although these want understanding, which is
proper to the mind. As therefore the mind is within, it goes forth in
some sort from itself, when it exerts the affection of love towards
these, as it were, footprints of many acts of attention. And these
footprints are, as it were, imprinted on the memory, at the time when
the corporeal things which are without are perceived in such way, that
even when those corporeal things are absent, yet the images of them are
at hand to those who think of them. Therefore let the mind become
acquainted with itself, and not seek itself as if it were absent; but
fix upon itself the act of [voluntary] attention, by which it was
wandering among other things, and let it think of itself. So it will
see that at no time did it ever not love itself, at no time did it ever
not know itself; but by loving another thing together with itself it
has confounded itself with it, and in some sense has grown one with it.
And so, while it embraces diverse things, as though they were one, it
has come to think those things to be one which are diverse.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--The Mind Knows Itself, by the Very Act of Understanding the
Precept to Know Itself.
12. Let it not therefore seek to discern itself as though absent, but
take pains to discern itself as present. Nor let it take knowledge of
itself as if it did not know itself, but let it distinguish itself from
that which it knows to be another. For how will it take pains to obey
that very precept which is given it, "Know thyself," if it knows not
either what "know" means or what "thyself" means? But if it knows both,
then it knows also itself. Since "know thyself" is not so said to the
mind as is "Know the cherubim and the seraphim;" for they are absent,
and we believe concerning them, and according to that belief they are
declared to be certain celestial powers. Nor yet again as it is said,
Know the will of that man: for this it is not within our reach to
perceive at all, either by sense or understanding, unless by corporeal
signs actually set forth; and this in such a way that we rather believe
than understand. Nor again as it is said to a man, Behold thy own face;
which he can only do in a looking-glass. For even our own face itself
is out of the reach of our own seeing it; because it is not there where
our look can be directed. But when it is said to the mind, Know
thyself; then it knows itself by that very act by which it understands
the word "thyself;" and this for no other reason than that it is
present to itself. But if it does not understand what is said, then
certainly it does not do as it is bid to do. And therefore it is bidden
to do that thing which it does do, when it understands the very precept
that bids it.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--Every Mind Knows Certainly Three Things Concerning
Itself--That It Understands, that It Is, and that It Lives.
13. Let it not then add anything to that which it knows itself to be,
when it is bidden to know itself. For it knows, at any rate, that this
is said to itself; namely, to the self that is, and that lives, and
that understands. But a dead body also is, and cattle live; but neither
a dead body nor cattle understand. Therefore it so knows that it so is,
and that it so lives, as an understanding is and lives. When,
therefore, for example's sake, the mind thinks itself air, it thinks
that air understands; it knows, however, that itself understands, but
it does not know itself to be air, but only thinks so. Let it separate
that which it thinks itself; let it discern that which it knows; let
this remain to it, about which not even have they doubted who have
thought the mind to be this corporeal thing or that. For certainly
every mind does not consider itself to be air; but some think
themselves fire, others the brain, and some one kind of corporeal
thing, others another, as I have mentioned before; yet all know that
they themselves understand, and are, and live; but they refer
understanding to that which they understand, but to be, and to live, to
themselves. And no one doubts, either that no one understands who does
not live, or that no one lives of whom it is not true that he is; and
that therefore by consequence that which understands both is and lives;
not as a dead body is which does not live, nor as a soul lives which
does not understand, but in some proper and more excellent manner.
Further, they know that they will, and they equally know that no one
can will who is not and who does not live; and they also refer that
will itself to something which they will with that will. They know also
that they remember; and they know at the same time that nobody could
remember, unless he both was and lived; but we refer memory itself also
to something, in that we remember those things. Therefore the knowledge
and science of many things are contained in two of these three, memory
and understanding; but will must be present, that we may enjoy or use
them. For we enjoy things known, in which things themselves the will
finds delight for their own sake, and so reposes; but we use those
things, which we refer to some other thing which we are to enjoy.
Neither is the life of man vicious and culpable in any other way, than
as wrongly using and wrongly enjoying. But it is no place here to
discuss this.
14. But since we treat of the nature of the mind, let us remove from
our consideration all knowledge which is received from without, through
the senses of the body; and attend more carefully to the position which
we have laid down, that all minds know and are certain concerning
themselves. For men certainly have doubted whether the power of living,
of remembering, of understanding, of willing, of thinking, of knowing,
of judging, be of air, or of fire, or of the brain, or of the blood, or
of atoms, or besides the usual four elements of a fifth kind of body, I
know not what; or ,whether the combining or tempering together of this
our flesh itself has power to accomplish these things. And one has
attempted to establish this, and another to establish that. Yet who
ever doubts that he himself lives, and remembers, and understands, and
wills, and thinks, and knows, and judges? Seeing that even if he
doubts, he lives; if he doubts, he remembers why he doubts; if he
doubts, he understands that he doubts; if he doubts, he wishes to be
certain; if he doubts, he thinks; if he doubts, he knows that he does
not know; if he doubts, he judges that he ought not to assent rashly.
Whosoever therefore doubts about anything else, ought not to doubt of
all these things; which if they were not, he would not be able to doubt
of anything.
15. They who think the mind to be either a body or the combination or
tempering of the body, will have all these things to seem to be in a
subject, so that the substance is air, or fire, or some other corporeal
thing, which they think to be the mind; but that the understanding
(intelligentia) is in this corporeal thing as its quality, so that this
corporeal thing is the subject, but the understanding is in the
subject: viz. that the mind is the subject, which they judge to be a
corporeal thing, but the understanding [intelligence], or any other of
those things which we have mentioned as certain to us, is in that
subject. They also hold nearly the same opinion who deny the mind
itself to be body, but think it to be the combination or tempering
together of the body; for there is this difference, that the former say
that the mind itself is the substance, in which the understanding
[intelligence] is, as in a subject; but the latter say that the mind
itself is in a subject, viz. in the body, of which it is the
combination or tempering together. And hence, by consequence, what else
can they think, except that the understanding also is in the same body
as in a subject?
16. And all these do not perceive that the mind knows itself, even when
it seeks for itself, as we have already shown. But nothing is at all
rightly said to be known while its substance is not known. And
therefore, when the mind knows itself, it knows its own substance; and
when it is certain about itself, it as certain about its own substance.
But it is certain about itself, as those things which are said above
prove convincingly; although it is not at all certain whether itself is
air, or fire, or some body, or some function of body. Therefore it is
not any of these. And to that whole which is bidden to know itself,
belongs this, that it is certain that it is not any of those things of
which it is uncertain, and is certain that it is that only, which only
it is certain that it is. For it thinks in this way of fire, or air,
and whatever else of the body it thinks of. Neither can it in any way
be brought to pass that it should so think that which itself is, as it
thinks that which itself is not. Since it thinks all these things
through an imaginary phantasy, whether fire, or air, or this or that
body, or that part or combination and tempering together of the body:
nor assuredly is it said to be all those things, but some one of them.
But if it were any one of them, it would think this one in a different
manner from the rest viz. not through an imaginary phantasy, as absent
things are thought, which either themselves or some of like kind have
been touched by the bodily sense; but by some inward, not feigned, but
true presence (for nothing is more present to it than itself); just as
it thinks that itself lives, and remembers, and understands, and wills.
For it knows these things in itself, and does not imagine them as
though it had touched them by the sense outside itself, as corporeal
things are touched. And if it attaches nothing to itself from the
thought of these things, so as to think itself to be something of the
kind, then whatsoever remains to it from itself that alone is itself.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 11.--In Memory, Understanding [or Intelligence], and Will, We
Have to Note Ability, Learning, and Use. Memory, Understanding, and
Will are One Essentially, and Three Relatively.
17. Putting aside, then, for a little while all other things, of which
the mind is certain concerning itself, let us especially consider and
discuss these three--memory, understanding, will. For we may commonly
discern in these three the character of the abilities of the young
also; since the more tenaciously and easily a boy remembers, and the
more acutely he understands, and the more ardently he studies, the more
praiseworthy is he in point of ability. But when the question is about
any one's learning, then we ask not how solidly and easily he
remembers, or how shrewdly he understands; but what it is that he
remembers, and what it is that he understands. And because the mind is
regarded as praiseworthy, not only as being learned, but also as being
good, one gives heed not only to what he remembers and what he
understands, but also to what he wills (velit); not how ardently he
wills, but first what it is he wills, and then how greatly he wills it.
For the mind that loves eagerly is then to be praised, when it loves
that which ought to be loved eagerly. Since, then, we speak of these
three--ability, knowledge, use--the first of these is to be considered
under the three heads, of what a man can do in memory, and
understanding, and will. The second of them is to be considered in
regard to that which any one has in his memory and in his
understanding, which he has attained by a studious will. But the third,
viz. use, lies in the will, which handles those things that are
contained in the memory and understanding, whether it refer them to
anything further, or rest satisfied with them as an end. For to use, is
to take up something into the power of the will; and to enjoy, is to
use with joy, not any longer of hope, but of the actual thing.
Accordingly, every one who enjoys, uses; for he takes up something into
the power of the will, wherein he also is satisfied as with an end. But
not every one who uses, enjoys, if he has sought after that, which he
takes up into the power of the will, not on account of the thing
itself, but on account of something else.
18. Since, then, these three, memory, understanding, will, are not
three lives, but one life; nor three minds, but one mind; it follows
certainly that neither are they three substances, but one substance.
Since memory, which is called life, and mind, and substance, is so
called in respect to itself; but it is called memory, relatively to
something. And I should say the same also of understanding and of will,
since they are called understanding and will relatively to something;
but each in respect to itself is life, and mind, and essence. And hence
these three are one, in that they are one life, one mind, one essence;
and whatever else they are severally called in respect to themselves,
they are called also together, not plurally, but in the singular
number. But they are three, in that wherein they are mutually referred
to each other; and if they were not equal, and this not only each to
each, but also each to all, they certainly could not mutually contain
each other; for not only is each contained by each, but also all by
each. For I remember that I have memory and understanding, and will;
and I understand that I understand, and will, and remember; and I will
that I will, and remember, and understand; and I remember together my
whole memory, and understanding, and will. For that of my memory which
I do not remember, is not in my memory; and nothing is so much in the
memory as memory itself. Therefore I remember the whole memory. Also,
whatever I understand I know that I understand, and I know that I will
whatever I will; but whatever I know I remember. Therefore I remember
the whole of my understanding, and the whole of my will. Likewise, when
I understand these three things, I understand them together as whole.
For there is none of things intelligible which I do not understand,
except what I do not know; but what I do not know, I neither remember,
nor will. Therefore, whatever of things intelligible I do not
understand, it follows also that I neither remember nor will. And
whatever of things intelligible I remember and will, it follows that I
understand. My will also embraces my whole understanding and my whole
memory whilst I use the whole that I understand and remember. And,
therefore, while all are mutually comprehended by each, and as wholes,
each as a whole is equal to each as a whole, and each as a whole at the
same time to all as wholes; and these three are one, one life, one
mind, one essence. [728]
__________________________________________________________________
[728] [This ternary of memory, understanding, and will, is a better
analogue to the Trinity than the preceding one in chapter IX--namely,
mind, knowledge, and love. Memory, understanding, and will have equal
substantiality, while mind, knowledge, and love have not. The former
are three faculties, in each of which is the whole mind or spirit. The
memory is the whole mind as remembering; the understanding is the whole
mind as cognizing; and the will is the whole mind as determining. The
one essence of the mind is in each of these three modes, each of which
is distinct from the others; and yet there are not three essences or
minds. In the other ternary, of mind, knowledge, and love, the last two
are not faculties but single acts of the mind. A particular act of
cognition is not the whole mind in the general mode of cognition. This
would make it a faculty. A particular act of loving, or of willing, is
not the whole mind in the general mode of loving, or of willing. This
would make the momentary and transient act a permanent faculty. This
ternary fails, as we have noticed in a previous annotation (IX. ii. 2),
in that only the mind is a substance. The ternary of memory,
understanding, and will is an adequate analogue to the Trinity in
respect to equal substantiality. But it fails when the separate
consciousness of the Trinitarian distinctions is brought into
consideration. The three faculties of memory, understanding, and will,
are not so objective to each other as to admit of three forms of
consciousness, of the use of the personal pronouns, and of the personal
actions that are ascribed to the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit. It also
fails, in that these three are not all the modes of the mind. There are
other faculties: e. g., the imagination. The whole essence of the mind
is in this also.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 12.--The Mind is an Image of the Trinity in Its Own Memory, and
Understanding, and Will.
19. Are we, then, now to go upward, with whatever strength of purpose
we may, to that chiefest and highest essence, of which the human mind
is an inadequate image, yet an image? Or are these same three things to
be yet more distinctly made plain in the soul, by means of those things
which we receive from without, through the bodily sense, wherein the
knowledge of corporeal things is impressed upon us in time? Since we
found the mind itself to be such in its own memory, and understanding,
and will, that since it was understood always to know and always to
will itself, it was understood also at the same time always to remember
itself, always to understand and love itself, although not always to
think of itself as separate from those things which are not itself; and
hence its memory of itself, and understanding of itself, are with
difficult discerned in it. For in this case, where these two things are
very closely conjoined, and one is not preceded by the other by any
time at all, it looks as if they were not two things, but one called by
two names; and love itself is not so plainly felt to exist when the
sense of need does not disclose it, since what is loved is always at
hand. And hence these things may be more lucidly set forth, even to men
of duller minds, if such topics are treated of as are brought within
reach of the mind in time, and happen to it in time; while it remembers
what it did not remember before, and sees what it did not see before,
and loves what it did not love before. But this discussion demands now
another beginning, by reason of the measure of the present book.
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
Book XI.
------------------------
A kind of image of the Trinity is pointed out, even in the outer man;
first of all, in those things which are perceived from without, viz. in
the bodily object that is seen, and in the form that is impressed by it
upon the sight of the seer, and in the purpose of the will that
combines the two; although these three are neither mutually equal, nor
of one substance. Next, a kind of trinity, in three somewhats of one
substance, is observed to exist in the mind itself, as it were
introduced there from those things that are perceived from without;
viz. the image of the bodily object which is in the memory, and the
impression formed therefrom when the mind's eye of the thinker is
turned to it, and the purpose of the will combining both. And this
latter trinity is also said to pertain to the outer man, in that it is
introduced into the mind from bodily objects, which are perceived from
without.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--A Trace of the Trinity Also In the Outer Man.
1. No one doubts that, as the inner man is endued with understanding,
so is the outer with bodily sense. Let us try, then, if we can, to
discover in this outer man also, some trace, however slight, of the
Trinity, not that itself also is in the same manner the image of God.
For the opinion of the apostle is evident, which declares the inner man
to be renewed in the knowledge of God after the image of Him that
created him: [729] whereas he says also in another place, "But though
our outer man perish, yet the inward man is renewed day by day." [730]
Let us seek, then, so far as we can, in that which perishes, some image
of the Trinity, if not so express, yet perhaps more easy to be
discerned. For that outer man also is not called man to no purpose, but
because there is in it some likeness of the inner man. And owing to
that very order of our condition whereby we are made mortal and
fleshly, we handle things visible more easily and more familiarly than
things intelligible; since the former are outward, the latter inward;
and the former are perceived by the bodily sense, the latter are
understood by the mind; and we ourselves, i.e. our minds, are not
sensible things, that is, bodies, but intelligible things, since we are
life. And yet, as I said, we are so familiarly occupied with bodies,
and our thought has projected itself outwardly with so wonderful a
proclivity towards bodies, that, when it has been withdrawn from the
uncertainty of things corporeal, that it may be fixed with a much more
certain and stable knowledge in that which is spirit, it flies back to
those bodies, and seeks rest there whence it has drawn weakness. And to
this its feebleness we must suit our argument; so that, if we would
endeavor at any time to distinguish more aptly, and intimate more
readily, the inward spiritual thing, we must take examples of
likenesses from outward things pertaining to the body. The outer man,
then, endued as he is with the bodily sense, is conversant with bodies.
And this bodily sense, as is easily observed, is fivefold; seeing,
hearing, smelling, tasting, touching. But it is both a good deal of
trouble, and is not necessary, that we should inquire of all these five
senses about that which we seek. For that which one of them declares to
us, holds also good in the rest. Let us use, then, principally the
testimony of the eyes. For this bodily sense far surpasses the rest;
and in proportion to its difference of kind, is nearer to the sight of
the mind.
__________________________________________________________________
[729] Col. iii. 10
[730] 2 Cor. iv. 16
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--A Certain Trinity in the Sight. That There are Three Things
in Sight, Which Differ in Their Own Nature. In What Manner from a
Visible Thing Vision is Produced, or the Image of that Thing Which is
Seen. The Matter is Shown More Clearly by an Example. How These Three
Combine in One.
2. When, then, we see any corporeal object, these three things, as is
most easy to do, are to be considered and distinguished: First, the
object itself which we see; whether a stone, or flame, or any other
thing that can be seen by the eyes; and this certainly might exist also
already before it was seen; next, vision or the act of seeing, which
did not exist before we perceived the object itself which is presented
to the sense; in the third place, that which keeps the sense of the eye
in the object seen, so long as it is seen, viz. the attention of the
mind. In these three, then, not only is there an evident distinction,
but also a diverse nature. For, first, that visible body is of a far
different nature from the sense of the eyes, through the incidence of
which sense upon it vision arises. And what plainly is vision itself
other than perception informed by that thing which is perceived?
Although there is no vision if the visible object be withdrawn, nor
could there be any vision of the kind at all if there were no body that
could be seen; yet the body by which the sense of the eyes is informed,
when that body is seen, and the form itself which is imprinted by it
upon the sense, which is called vision, are by no means of the same
substance. For the body that is seen is, in its own nature, separable;
but the sense, which was already in the living subject, even before it
saw what it was able to see, when it fell in with something
visible,--or the vision which comes to be in the sense from the visible
body when now brought into connection with it and seen,--the sense,
then, I say, or the vision, that is, the sense informed from without,
belongs to the nature of the living subject, which is altogether other
than that body which we perceive by seeing, and by which the sense is
not so formed as to be sense, but as to be vision. For unless the sense
were also in us before the presentation to us of the sensible object,
we should not differ from the blind, at times when we are seeing
nothing, whether in darkness, or when our eyes are closed. But we
differ from them in this, that there is in us, even when we are not
seeing, that whereby we are able to see, which is called the sense;
whereas this is not in them, nor are they called blind for any other
reason than because they have it not. Further also, that attention of
the mind which keeps the sense in that thing which we see, and connects
both, not only differs from that visible thing in its nature; in that
the one is mind, and the other body; but also from the sense and the
vision itself: since this attention is the act of the mind alone; but
the sense of the eyes is called a bodily sense, for no other reason
than because the eyes themselves also are members of the body; and
although an inanimate body does not perceive, yet the soul commingled
with the body perceives through a corporeal instrument, and that
instrument is called sense. And this sense, too, is cut off and
extinguished by suffering on the part of the body, when any one is
blinded; while the mind remains the same; and its attention, since the
eyes are lost, has not, indeed, the sense of the body which it may
join, by seeing, to the body without it, and so fix its look thereupon
and see it, yet by the very effort shows that, although the bodily
sense be taken away, itself can neither perish nor be diminished. For
there remains unimpaired a desire [appetitus] of seeing, whether it can
be carried into effect or not. These three, then, the body that is
seen, and vision itself, and the attention of mind which joins both
together, are manifestly distinguishable, not only on account of the
properties of each, but also on account of the difference of their
natures.
3. And since, in this case, the sensation does not proceed from that
body which is seen, but from the body of the living being that
perceives, with which the soul is tempered together in some wonderful
way of its own; yet vision is produced, that is, the sense itself is
informed, by the body which is seen; so that now, not only is there the
power of sense, which can exist also unimpaired even in darkness,
provided the eyes are sound, but also a sense actually informed, which
is called vision. Vision, then, is produced from a thing that is
visible; but not from that alone, unless there be present also one who
sees. Therefore vision is produced from a thing that is visible,
together with one who sees; in such way that, on the part of him who
sees, there is the sense of seeing and the intention of looking and
gazing at the object; while yet that information of the sense, which is
called vision, is imprinted only by the body which is seen, that is, by
some visible thing; which being taken away, that form remains no more
which was in the sense so long as that which was seen was present: yet
the sense itself remains, which existed also before anything was
perceived; just as the trace of a thing in water remains so long as the
body itself, which is impressed on it, is in the water; but if this has
been taken away, there will no longer be any such trace, although the
water remains, which existed also before it took the form of that body.
And therefore we cannot, indeed, say that a visible thing produces the
sense; yet it produces the form, which is, as it were, its own
likeness, which comes to be in the sense, when we perceive anything by
seeing. But we do not distinguish, through the same sense, the form of
the body which we see, from the form which is produced by it in the
sense of him who sees; since the union of the two is so close that
there is no room for distinguishing them. But we rationally infer that
we could not have sensation at all, unless some similitude of the body
seen was wrought in our own sense. For when a ring is imprinted on wax,
it does not follow that no image is produced, because we cannot discern
it unless when it has been separated. But since, after the wax is
separated, what was made remains, so that it can be seen; we are on
that account easily persuaded that there was already also in the wax a
form impressed from the ring before it was separated from it. But if
the ring were imprinted upon a fluid, no image at all would appear when
it was withdrawn; and yet none the less for this ought the reason to
discern that there was in that fluid before the ring was withdrawn a
form of the ring produced from the ring, which is to be distinguished
from that form which is in the ring, whence that form was produced
which ceases to be when the ring is withdrawn, although that in the
ring remains, whence the other was produced. And so the [sensuous]
perception of the eyes may not be supposed to contain no image of the
body, which is seen as long as it is seen, [merely] because when that
is withdrawn the image does not remain. And hence it is very difficult
to persuade men of duller mind that an image of the visible thing is
formed in our sense, when we see it, and that this same form is vision.
4. But if any perhaps attend to what I am about to mention, they will
find no such trouble in this inquiry. Commonly, when we have looked for
some little time at a light, and then shut our eyes, there seem to play
before our eyes certain bright colors variously changing themselves,
and shining less and less until they wholly cease; and these we must
understand to be the remains of that form which was wrought in the
sense, while the shining body was seen, and that these variations take
place in them as they slowly and step by step fade away. For the
lattices, too, of windows, should we happen to be gazing at them,
appear often in these colors; so that it is evident that our sense is
affected by such impressions from that thing which is seen. That form
therefore existed also while we were seeing, and at that time it was
more clear and express. But it was then closely joined with the species
of that thing which was being perceived, so that it could not be at all
distinguished from it; and this was vision itself. Why, even when the
little flame of a lamp is in some way, as it were, doubled by the
divergent rays of the eyes, a twofold vision comes to pass, although
the thing which is seen is one. For the same rays, as they shoot forth
each from its own eye, are affected severally, in that they are not
allowed to meet evenly and conjointly, in regarding that corporeal
thing, so that one combined view might be formed from both. And so, if
we shut one eye, we shall not see two flames, but one as it really is.
But why, if we shut the left eye, that appearance ceases to be seen,
which was on the right; and if, in turn, we shut the right eye, that
drops out of existence which was on the left, is a matter both tedious
in itself, and not necessary at all to our present subject to inquire
and discuss. For it is enough for the business in hand to consider,
that unless some image, precisely like the thing we perceive, were
produced in our sense, the appearance of the flame would not be doubled
according to the number of the eyes; since a certain way of perceiving
has been employed, which could separate the union of rays. Certainly
nothing that is really single can be seen as if it were double by one
eye, draw it down, or press, or distort it as you please, if the other
is shut.
5. The case then being so, let us remember how these three things,
although diverse in nature, are tempered together into a kind of unity;
that is, the form of the body which is seen, and the image of it
impressed on the sense, which is vision or sense informed, and the will
of the mind which applies the sense to the sensible thing, and retains
the vision itself in it. The first of these, that is, the visible thing
itself, does not belong to the nature of the living being, except when
we discern our own body. But the second belongs to that nature to this
extent, that it is wrought in the body, and through the body in the
soul; for it is wrought in the sense, which is neither without the body
nor without the soul. But the third is of the soul alone, because it is
the will. Although then the substances of these three are so different,
yet they coalesce into such a unity that the two former can scarcely be
distinguished, even with the intervention of the reason as judge,
namely the form of the body which is seen, and the image of it which is
wrought in the sense, that is, vision. And the will so powerfully
combines these two, as both to apply the sense, in order to be
informed, to that thing which is perceived, and to retain it when
informed in that thing. And if it is so vehement that it can be called
love, or desire, or lust, it vehemently affects also the rest of the
body of the living being; and where a duller and harder matter does not
resist, changes it into like shape and color. One may see the little
body of a chameleon vary with ready change, according to the colors
which it sees. And in the case of other animals, since their grossness
of flesh does not easily admit change, the offspring, for the most
part, betray the particular fancies of the mothers, whatever it is that
they have beheld with special delight. For the more tender, and so to
say, the more formable, are the primary seeds, the more effectually and
capably they follow the bent of the soul of the mother, and the
phantasy that is wrought in it through that body, which it has greedily
beheld. Abundant instances might be adduced, but one is sufficient,
taken from the most trustworthy books; viz. what Jacob did, that the
sheep and goats might give birth to offspring of various colors, by
placing variegated rods before them in the troughs of water for them to
look at as they drank, at the time they had conceived. [731]
__________________________________________________________________
[731] Gen. xxx. 37-41
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--The Unity of the Three Takes Place in Thought, Viz Of
Memory, of Ternal Vision,and of Will Combining Both.
6. The rational soul, however, lives in a degenerate fashion, when it
lives according to a trinity of the outer man; that is, when it applies
to those things which form the bodily sense from without, not a
praiseworthy will, by which to refer them to some useful end, but a
base desire, by which to cleave to them. Since even if the form of the
body, which was corporeally perceived, be withdrawn, its likeness
remains in the memory, to which the will may again direct its eye, so
as to be formed thence from within, as the sense was formed from
without by the presentation of the sensible body. And so that trinity
is produced from memory, from internal vision, and from the will which
unites both. And when these three things are combined into one, from
that combination [732] itself they are called conception. [733] And in
these three there is no longer any diversity of substance. For neither
is the sensible body there, which is altogether distinct from the
nature of the living being, nor is the bodily sense there informed so
as to produce vision, nor does the will itself perform its office of
applying the sense, that is to be informed, to the sensible body, and
of retaining it in it when informed; but in place of that bodily
species which was perceived from without, there comes the memory
retaining that species which the soul has imbibed through the bodily
sense; and in place of that vision which was outward when the sense was
informed through the sensible body, there comes a similar vision
within, while the eye of the mind is informed from that which the
memory retains, and the corporeal things that are thought of are
absent; and the will itself, as before it applied the sense yet to be
informed to the corporeal thing presented from without, and united it
thereto when informed, so now converts the vision of the recollecting
mind to memory, in order that the mental sight may be informed by that
which the memory has retained, and so there may be in the conception a
like vision. And as it was the reason that distinguished the visible
appearance by which the bodily sense was informed, from the similitude
of it, which was wrought in the sense when informed in order to produce
vision (otherwise they had been so united as to be thought altogether
one and the same); so, although that phantasy also, which arises from
the mind thinking of the appearance of a body that it has seen,
consists of the similitude of the body which the memory retains,
together with that which is thence formed in the eye of the mind that
recollects; yet it so seems to be one and single, that it can only be
discovered to be two by the judgment of reason, by which we understand
that which remains in the memory, even when we think it from some other
source, to be a different thing from that which is brought into being
when we remember, that is, come back again to the memory, and there
find the same appearance. And if this were not now there, we should say
that we had so forgotten as to be altogether unable to recollect. And
if the eye of him who recollects were not informed from that thing
which was in the memory, the vision of the thinker could in no way take
place; but the conjunction of both, that is, of that which the memory
retains, and of that which is thence expressed so as to inform the eye
of him who recollects, makes them appear as if they were one, because
they are exceedingly like. But when the eye of the concipient is turned
away thence, and has ceased to look at that which was perceived in the
memory, then nothing of the form that was impressed thereon will remain
in that eye, and it will be informed by that to which it had again been
turned, so as to bring about another conception. Yet that remains which
it has left in the memory, to which it may again be turned when we
recollect it, and being turned thereto may be informed by it, and
become one with that whence it is informed.
__________________________________________________________________
[732] Coactus
[733] Cogitatio
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--How This Unity Comes to Pass.
7. But if that will which moves to and fro, hither and thither, the eye
that is to be informed, and unites it when formed, shall have wholly
converged to the inward phantasy, and shall have absolutely turned the
mind's eye from the presence of the bodies which lie around the senses,
and from the very bodily senses themselves, and shall have wholly
turned it to that image, which is perceived within; then so exact a
likeness of the bodily species expressed from the memory is presented,
that not even reason itself is permitted to discern whether the body
itself is seen without, or only something of the kind thought of
within. For men sometimes either allured or frightened by over-much
thinking of visible things, have even suddenly uttered words
accordingly, as if in real fact they were engaged in the very midst of
such actions or sufferings. And I remember some one telling me that he
was wont to perceive in thought, so distinct and as it were solid, a
form of a female body, as to be moved, as though it were a reality.
Such power has the soul over its own body, and such influence has it in
turning and changing the quality of its [corporeal] garment; just as a
man may be affected when clothed, to whom his clothing sticks. It is
the same kind of affection, too, with which we are beguiled through
imaginations in sleep. But it makes a very great difference, whether
the senses of the body are lulled to torpor, as in the case of
sleepers, or disturbed from their inward structure, as in the case of
madmen, or distracted in some other mode, as in that of diviners or
prophets; and so from one or other of these causes, the intention of
the mind is forced by a kind of necessity upon those images which occur
to it, either from memory, or by some other hidden force through
certain spiritual commixtures of a similarly spiritual substance: or
whether, as sometimes happens to people in health and awake, that the
will occupied by thought turns itself away from the senses, and so
informs the eye of the mind by various images of sensible things, as
though those sensible things themselves were actually perceived. But
these impressions of images not only take place when the will is
directed upon such things by desiring them, but also when, in order to
avoid and guard against them, the mind is carried away to look upon
these very thing so as to flee from them. And hence, not only desire,
but fear, causes both the bodily eye to be informed by the sensible
things themselves, and the mental eye (acies) by the images of those
sensible things. Accordingly, the more vehement has been either fear or
desire, the more distinctly is the eye informed, whether in the case of
him who [sensuously] perceives by means of the body that which lies
close to him in place, or in the case of him who conceives from the
image of the body which is contained in the memory. What then a body in
place is to the bodily sense, that, the similitude of a body in memory
is to the eye of the mind; and what the vision of one who looks at a
thing is to that appearance of the body from which the sense is
informed, that, the vision of a concipient is to the image of the body
established in the memory, from which the eye of the mind is informed;
and what the intention of the will is towards a body seen and the
vision to be combined with it, in order that a certain unity of three
things may therein take place, although their nature is diverse, that,
the same intention of the will is towards combining the image of the
body which is in the memory, and the vision of the concipient, that is,
the form which the eye of the mind has taken in returning to the
memory, in order that here too a certain unity may take place of three
things, not now distinguished by diversity of nature, but of one and
the same substance; because this whole is within, and the whole is one
mind.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--The Trinity of the Outer Man, or of External Vision, is Not
an Image of God. The Likeness of God is Desired Even in Sins. In
External Vision the Form of the Corporeal Thing is as It Were the
Parent, Vision the Offspring; But the Will that Unites These Suggests
the Holy Spirit.
8. But as, when [both] the form and species of a body have perished,
the will cannot recall to it the sense of perceiving; so, when the
image which memory bears is blotted out by forgetfulness, the will will
be unable to force back the eye of the mind by recollection, so as to
be formed thereby. But because the mind has great power to imagine not
only things forgotten, but also things that it never saw, or
experienced, either by increasing, or diminishing, or changing, or
compounding, after its pleasure, those which have not dropped out of
its remembrance, it often imagines things to be such as either it knows
they are not, or does not know that they are. And in this case we have
to take care, lest it either speak falsely that it may deceive, or hold
an opinion so as to be deceived. And if it avoid these two evils, then
imagined phantasms do not hinder it: just as sensible things
experienced or retained by memory do not hinder it, if they are neither
passionately sought for when pleasant, nor basely shunned when
unpleasant. But when the will leaves better things, and greedily
wallows in these, then it becomes unclean; and they are so thought of
hurtfully, when they are present, and also more hurtfully when they are
absent. And he therefore lives badly and degenerately who lives
according to the trinity of the outer man; because it is the purpose of
using things sensible and corporeal, that has begotten also that
trinity, which although it imagines within, yet imagines things
without. For no one could use those things even well, unless the images
of things perceived by the senses were retained in the memory. And
unless the will for the greatest part dwells in the higher and interior
things, and unless that will itself, which is accommodated either to
bodies without, or to the images of them within, refers whatever it
receives in them to a better and truer life, and rests in that end by
gazing at which it judges that those things ought to be done; what else
do we do, but that which the apostle prohibits us from doing, when he
says, "Be not conformed to this world"? [734] And therefore that
trinity is not an image of God since it is produced in the mind itself
through the bodily sense, from the lowest, that is, the corporeal
creature, than which the mind is higher. Yet neither is it altogether
dissimilar: for what is there that has not a likeness of God, in
proportion to its kind and measure, seeing that God made all things
very good, [735] and for no other reason except that He Himself is
supremely good? In so far, therefore, as anything that is, is good, in
so far plainly it has still some likeness of the supreme good, at
however great a distance; and if a natural likeness, then certainly a
right and well-ordered one; but if a faulty likeness, then certainly a
debased and perverse one. For even souls in their very sins strive
after nothing else but some kind of likeness of God, in a proud and
preposterous, and, so to say, slavish liberty. So neither could our
first parents have been persuaded to sin unless it had been said, "Ye
shall be as gods." [736] No doubt every thing in the creatures which is
in any way like God, is not also to be called His image; but that alone
than which He Himself alone is higher. For that only is in all points
copied from Him, between which and Himself no nature is interposed.
9. Of that vision then; that is, of the form which is wrought in the
sense of him who sees; the form of the bodily thing from which it is
wrought, is, as it were, the parent. But it is not a true parent;
whence neither is that a true offspring; for it is not altogether born
therefrom, since something else is applied to the bodily thing in order
that it may be formed from it, namely, the sense of him who sees. And
for this reason, to love this is to be estranged. [737] Therefore the
will which unites both, viz. the quasi-parent and the quasi-child, is
more spiritual than either of them. For that bodily thing which is
discerned, is not spiritual at all. But the vision which comes into
existence in the sense, has something spiritual mingled with it, since
it cannot come into existence without the soul. But it is not wholly
spiritual; since that which is formed is a sense of the body. Therefore
the will which unites both is confessedly more spiritual, as I have
said; and so it begins to suggest (insinuare), as it were, the person
of the Spirit in the Trinity. But it belongs more to the sense that is
formed, than to the bodily thing whence it is formed. For the sense and
will of an animate being belongs to the soul, not to the stone or other
bodily thing that is seen. It does not therefore proceed from that
bodily thing as from a parent; yet neither does it proceed from that
other as it were offspring, namely, the vision and form that is in the
sense. For the will existed before the vision came to pass, which will
applied the sense that was to be formed to the bodily thing that was to
be discerned; but it was not yet satisfied. For how could that which
was not yet seen satisfy? And satisfaction means a will that rests
content. And, therefore, we can neither call the will the
quasi-offspring of vision, since it existed before vision; nor the
quasi-parent, since that vision was not formed and expressed from the
will, but from the bodily thing that was seen.
__________________________________________________________________
[734] Rom. xii. 2
[735] Ecclus. xxxix. 16
[736] Gen. iii. 5
[737] Vid. Retract. Bk. II. c. 15, where Augustin adds that it is
possible to love the bodily species to the praise of the Creator, in
which case there is no "estrangement."
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--Of What Kind We are to Reckon the Rest (Requies), and End
(Finis), of the Will in Vision.
10. Perhaps we can rightly call vision the end and rest of the will,
only with respect to this one object [namely, the bodily thing that is
visible]. For it will not will nothing else merely because it sees
something which it is now willing. It is not therefore the whole will
itself of the man, of which the end is nothing else than blessedness;
but the will provisionally directed to this one object, which has as
its end in seeing, nothing but vision, whether it refer the thing seen
to any other thing or not. For if it does not refer the vision to
anything further, but wills only to see this, there can be no question
made about showing that the end of the will is the vision; for it is
manifest. But if it does refer it to anything further, then certainly
it does will something else, and it will not be now a will merely to
see; or if to see, not one to see the particular thing. Just as, if any
one wished to see the scar, that from thence he might learn that there
had been a wound; or wished to see the window, that through the window
he might see the passers-by: all these and other such acts of will have
their own proper [proximate] ends, which are referred to that [final]
end of the will by which we will to live blessedly, and to attain to
that life which is not referred to anything else, but suffices of
itself to him who loves it. The will then to see, has as its end
vision; and the will to see this particular thing, has as its end the
vision of this particular thing. Therefore the will to see the scar,
desires its own end, that is, the vision of the scar, and does not
reach beyond it; for the will to prove that there had been a wound, is
a distinct will, although dependent upon that, of which the end also is
to prove that there had been a wound. And the will to see the window,
has as its end the vision of the window; for that is another and
further will which depends upon it, viz. to see the passers-by through
the window, of which also the end is the vision of the passers-by. But
all the several wills that are bound to each other, are at once right,
if that one is good, to which all are referred; and if that is bad,
then all are bad. And so the connected series of right wills is a sort
of road which consists as it were of certain steps, whereby to ascend
to blessedness; but the entanglement of depraved and distorted wills is
a bond by which he will be bound who thus acts, so as to be cast into
outer darkness. [738] Blessed therefore are they who in act and
character sing the song of the steps [degrees]; [739] and woe to those
that draw sin, as it were a long rope. [740] And it is just the same to
speak of the will being in repose, which we call its end, if it is
still referred to something further, as if we should say that the foot
is at rest in walking, when it is placed there, whence yet another foot
may be planted in the direction of the man's steps. But if something so
satisfies, that the will acquiesces in it with a certain delight; it is
nevertheless not yet that to which the man ultimately tends; but this
too is referred to something further, so as to be regarded not as the
native country of a citizen, but as a place of refreshment, or even of
stopping, for a traveller.
__________________________________________________________________
[738] Matt. xxii. 13
[739] Psalms cxx., and following.
[740] Isa. v. 18
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--There is Another Trinity in the Memory of Him Who Thinks
Over Again What He Has Seen.
11. But yet again, take the case of another trinity, more inward indeed
than that which is in things sensible, and in the senses, but which is
yet conceived from thence; while now it is no longer the sense of the
body that is informed from the body, but the eye of the mind that is
informed from the memory, since the species of the body which we
perceived from without has inhered in the memory itself. And that
species, which is in the memory, we call the quasi-parent of that which
is wrought in the phantasy of one who conceives. For it was in the
memory also, before we conceived it, just as the body was in place also
before we [sensuously] perceived it, in order that vision might take
place. But when it is conceived, then from that form which the memory
retains, there is copied in the mind's eye (acie) of him who conceives,
and by remembrance is formed, that species, which is the
quasi-offspring of that which the memory retains. But neither is the
one a true parent, nor the other a true offspring. For the mind's
vision which is formed from memory when we think anything by
recollection, does not proceed from that species which we remember as
seen; since we could not indeed have remembered those things, unless we
had seen them; yet the mind's eye, which is informed by the
recollection, existed also before we saw the body that we remember; and
therefore how much more before we committed it to memory? Although
therefore the form which is wrought in the mind's eye of him who
remembers, is wrought from that form which is in the memory; yet the
mind's eye itself does not exist from thence, but existed before it.
And it follows, that if the one is not a true parent, neither is the
other a true offspring. But both that quasi-parent and that
quasi-offspring suggest something, whence the inner and truer things
may appear more practically and more certainly.
12. Further, it is more difficult to discern clearly, whether the will
which connects the vision to the memory is not either the parent or the
offspring of some one of them; and the likeness and equality of the
same nature and substance cause this difficulty of distinguishing. For
it is not possible to do in this case, as with the sense that is formed
from without (which is easily discerned from the sensible body, and
again the will from both), on account of the difference of nature which
is mutually in all three, and of which we have treated sufficiently
above. For although this trinity, of which we at present speak, is
introduced into the mind from without; yet it is transacted within, and
there is no part of it outside of the nature of the mind itself. In
what way, then, can it be demonstrated that the will is neither the
quasi-parent, nor the quasi-offspring, either of the corporeal likeness
which is contained in the memory, or of that which is copied thence in
recollecting; when it so unites both in the act of conceiving, as that
they appear singly as one, and cannot be discerned except by reason? It
is then first to be considered that there cannot be any will to
remember, unless we retain in the recesses of the memory either the
whole, or some part, of that thing which we wish to remember. For the
very will to remember cannot arise in the case of a thing which we have
forgotten altogether and absolutely; since we have already remembered
that the thing which we wish to remember is or has been, in our memory.
For example, if I wish to remember what I supped on yesterday, either I
have already remembered that I did sup, or if not yet this, at least I
have remembered something about that time itself, if nothing else; at
all events, I have remembered yesterday, and that part of yesterday in
which people usually sup, and what supping is. For if I had not
remembered anything at all of this kind, I could not wish to remember
what I supped on yesterday. Whence we may perceive that the will of
remembering proceeds, indeed, from those things which are retained in
the memory, with the addition also of those which, by the act of
discerning, are copied thence through recollection; that is, from the
combination of something which we have remembered, and of the vision
which was thence wrought, when we remembered, in the mind's eye of him
who thinks. But the will itself which unites both requires also some
other thing, which is, as it were, close at hand, and adjacent to him
who remembers. There are, then, as many trinities of this kind as there
are remembrances; because there is no one of them wherein there are not
these three things, viz. that which was stored up in the memory also
before it was thought, and that which takes place in the conception
when this is discerned, and the will that unites both, and from both
and itself as a third, completes one single thing. Or is it rather that
we so recognize some one trinity in this kind, as that we are to speak
generally, of whatever corporeal species lie hidden in the memory, as
of a single unity, and again of the general vision of the mind which
remembers and conceives such things, as of a single unity, to the
combination of which two there is to be joined as a third the will that
combines them, that this whole may be a certain unity made up from
three?
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--Different Modes of Conceiving.
But since the eye of the mind cannot look at all things together, in
one glance, which the memory retains, these trinities of thought
alternate in a series of withdrawals and successions, and so that
trinity becomes most innumerably numerous; and yet not infinite, if it
pass not beyond the number of things stored up in the memory. For,
although we begin to reckon from the earliest perception which any one
has of material things through any bodily sense, and even take in also
those things which he has forgotten, yet the number would undoubtedly
be certain and determined, although innumerable. For we not only call
infinite things innumerable, but also those, which, although finite,
exceed any one's power of reckoning.
13. But we can hence perceive a little more clearly that what the
memory stores up and retains is a different thing from that which is
thence copied in the conception of the man who remembers, although,
when both are combined together, they appear to be one and the same;
because we can only remember just as many species of bodies as we have
actually seen, and so great, and such, as we have actually seen; for
the mind imbibes them into the memory from the bodily sense; whereas
the things seen in conception, although drawn from those things which
are in the memory, yet are multiplied and varied innumerably, and
altogether without end. For I remember, no doubt, but one sun, because
according to the fact, I have seen but one; but if I please, I conceive
of two, or three, or as many as I will; but the vision of my mind, when
I conceive of many, is formed from the same memory by which I remember
one. And I remember it just as large as I saw it. For if I remember it
as larger or smaller than I saw it, then I no longer remember what I
saw, and so I do not remember it. But because I remember it, I remember
it as large as I saw it; yet I conceive of it as greater or as less
according to my will. And I remember it as I saw it; but I conceive of
it as running its course as I will, and as standing still where I will,
and as coming whence I will, and whither I will. For it is in my power
to conceive of it as square, although I remember it as round; and
again, of what color I please, although I have never seen, and
therefore do not remember, a green sun; and as the sun, so all other
things. But owing to the corporeal and sensible nature of these forms
of things, the mind falls into error when it imagines them to exist
without, in the same mode in which it conceives them within, either
when they have already ceased to exist without, but are still retained
in the memory, or when in any other way also, that which we remember is
formed in the mind, not by faithful recollection, but after the
variations of thought.
14. Yet it very often happens that we believe also a true narrative,
told us by others, of things which the narrators have themselves
perceived by their senses. And in this case, when we conceive the
things narrated to us, as we hear them, the eye of the mind does not
seem to be turned back to the memory, in order to bring up visions in
our thoughts; for we do not conceive these things from our own
recollection, but upon the narration of another; and that trinity does
not here seem to come to its completion, which is made when the species
lying hid in the memory, and the vision of the man that remembers, are
combined by will as a third. For I do not conceive that which lay hid
in my memory, but that which I hear, when anything is narrated to me. I
am not speaking of the words themselves of the speaker, lest any one
should suppose that I have gone off to that other trinity, which is
transacted without, in sensible things, or in the senses: but I am
conceiving of those species of material things, which the narrator
signifies to me by words and sounds; which species certainly I conceive
of not by remembering, but by hearing. But if we consider the matter
more carefully, even in this case, the limit of the memory is not
overstepped. For I could not even understand the narrator, if I did not
remember generically the individual things of which he speaks, even
although I then hear them for the first time as connected together in
one tale. For he who, for instance, describes to me some mountain
stripped of timber, and clothed with olive trees, describes it to me
who remembers the species both of mountains, and of timber, and of
olive trees; and if I had forgotten these, I should not know at all of
what he was speaking, and therefore could not conceive that
description. And so it comes to pass, that every one who conceives
things corporeal, whether he himself imagine anything, or hear, or
read, either a narrative of things past, or a foretelling of things
future, has recourse to his memory, and finds there the limit and
measure of all the forms at which he gazes in his thought. For no one
can conceive at all, either a color or a form of body, which he never
saw, or a sound which he never heard, or a flavor which he never
tasted, or a scent which he never smelt, or any touch of a corporeal
thing which he never felt. But if no one conceives anything corporeal
except what he has [sensuously] perceived, because no one remembers
anything corporeal except what he has thus perceived, then, as is the
limit of perceiving in bodies, so is the limit of thinking in the
memory. For the sense receives the species from that body which we
perceive, and the memory from the sense; but the mental eye of the
concipient, from the memory.
15. Further, as the will applies the sense to the bodily object, so it
applies the memory to the sense, and the eye of the mind of the
concipient to the memory. But that which harmonizes those things and
unites them, itself also disjoins and separates them, that is, the
will. But it separates the bodily senses from the bodies that are to be
perceived, by movement of the body, either to hinder our perceiving the
thing, or that we may cease to perceive it: as when we avert our eyes
from that which we are unwilling to see, or shut them; so, again, the
ears from sounds, or the nostrils from smells. So also we turn away
from tastes, either by shutting the mouth, or by casting the thing out
of the mouth. In touch, also, we either remove the bodily thing, that
we may not touch what we do not wish, or if we were already touching
it, we fling or push it away. Thus the will acts by movement of the
body, so that the bodily sense shall not be joined to the sensible
things. And it does this according to its power; for when it endures
hardship in so doing, on account of the condition of slavish mortality,
then torment is the result, in such wise that nothing remains to the
will save endurance. But the will averts the memory from the sense;
when, through its being intent on something else, it does not suffer
things present to cleave to it. As any one may see, when often we do
not seem to ourselves to have heard some one who was speaking to us,
because we were thinking of something else. But this is a mistake; for
we did hear, but we do not remember, because the words of the speaker
presently slipped out of the perception of our ears, through the
bidding of the will being diverted elsewhere, by which they are usually
fixed in the memory. Therefore, we should say more accurately in such a
case, we do not remember, than, we did not hear; for it happens even in
reading, and to myself very frequently, that when I have read through a
page or an epistle, I do not know what I have read, and I begin it
again. For the purpose of the will being fixed on something else, the
memory was not so applied to the bodily sense, as the sense itself was
applied to the letters. So, too, any one who walks with the will intent
on something else, does not know where he has got to; for if he had not
seen, he would not have walked thither, or would have felt his way in
walking with greater attention, especially if he was passing through a
place he did not know; yet, because he walked easily, certainly he saw;
but because the memory was not applied to the sense itself in the same
way as the sense of the eyes was applied to the places through which he
was passing, he could not remember at all even the last thing he saw.
Now, to will to turn away the eye of the mind from that which is in the
memory, is nothing else but not to think thereupon.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--Species is Produced by Species in Succession.
16. In this arrangement, then, while we begin from the bodily species
and arrive finally at the species which comes to be in the intuition
(contuitu) of the concipient, we find four species born, as it were,
step by step one from the other, the second from the first, the third
from the second, the fourth from the third: since from the species of
the body itself, there arises that which comes to be in the sense of
the percipient; and from this, that which comes to be in the memory;
and from this, that which comes to be in the mind's eye of the
concipient. And the will, therefore, thrice combines as it were parent
with offspring: first the species of the body with that to which it
gives birth in the sense of the body; and that again with that which
from it comes to be in the memory; and this also, thirdly, with that
which is born from it in the intuition of the concipient's mind. But
the intermediate combination which is the second, although it is nearer
to the first, is yet not so like the first as the third is. For there
are two kinds of vision, the one of [sensuous] perception (sentientis),
the other of conception (cogitantis). But in order that the vision of
conception may come to be, there is wrought for the purpose, in the
memory, from the vision of [sensuous] perception something like it, to
which the eye of the mind may turn itself in conceiving, as the glance
(acies) of the eyes turns itself in [sensuously] perceiving to the
bodily object. I have, therefore, chosen to put forward two trinities
in this kind: one when the vision of [sensuous] perception is formed
from the bodily object, the other when the vision of conception is
formed from the memory. But I have refrained from commending an
intermediate one; because we do not commonly call it vision, when the
form which comes to be in the sense of him who perceives, is entrusted
to the memory. Yet in all cases the will does not appear unless as the
combiner as it were of parent and offspring; and so, proceed from
whence it may, it can be called neither parent nor offspring. [741]
__________________________________________________________________
[741] [Augustin's map of consciousness is as follows: (1). The
corporeal species=the external object (outward appearance). (2). The
sensible species=the sensation (appearance for the sense). (3). The
mental species in its first form=present perception. (4). The mental
species in its second form=remembered perception. These three "species"
or appearances of the object: namely, corporeal, sensible, and mental,
according to him, are combined in one synthesis with the object by the
operation of the will. By "will," he does not mean distinct and
separate volitions: but the spontaneity of the ego--what Kant
denominates the mechanism of the understanding, seen in the spontaneous
employment of the categories of thought, as the mind ascends from
empirical sensation to rational conception. The English translator has
failed to make clear the sharply defined psychology of these chapters,
by loosely rendering "sentire," "to perceive," and "cogitare" to
think.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--The Imagination Also Adds Even to Things We Have Not Seen,
Those Things Which We Have Seen Elsewhere.
17. But if we do not remember except what we have [sensuously]
perceived, nor conceive except what we remember; why do we often
conceive things that are false, when certainly we do not remember
falsely those things which we have perceived, unless it be because that
will (which I have already taken pains to show as much as I can to be
the uniter and the separater of things of this kind) leads the vision
of the conceiver that is to be formed, after its own will and pleasure,
through the hidden stores of the memory; and, in order to conceive
[imagine] those things which we do not remember, impels it to take one
thing from hence, and another from thence, from those which we do
remember; and these things combining into one vision make something
which is called false, because it either does not exist externally in
the nature of corporeal things, or does not seem copied from the
memory, in that we do not remember that we ever saw such a thing. For
who ever saw a black swan? And therefore no one remembers a black swan;
yet who is there that cannot conceive it? For it is easy to apply to
that shape which we have come to know by seeing it, a black color,
which we have not the less seen in other bodies; and because we have
seen both, we remember both. Neither do I remember a bird with four
feet, because I never saw one; but I contemplate such a phantasy very
easily, by adding to some winged shape such as I have seen, two other
feet, such as I have likewise seen. [742] And therefore, in conceiving
conjointly, what we remember to have seen singly, we seem not to
conceive that which we remember; while we really do this under the law
of the memory, whence we take everything which we join together after
our own pleasure in manifold and diverse ways. For we do not conceive
even the very magnitudes of bodies, which magnitudes we never saw,
without help of the memory; for the measure of space to which our gaze
commonly reaches through the magnitude of the world, is the measure
also to which we enlarge the bulk of bodies, whatever they may be, when
we conceive them as great as we can. And reason, indeed, proceeds still
beyond, but phantasy does not follow her; as when reason announces the
infinity of number also, which no vision of him who conceives according
to corporeal things can apprehend. The same reason also teaches that
the most minute atoms are infinitely divisible; yet when we have come
to those slight and minute particles which we remember to have seen,
then we can no longer behold phantasms more slender and more minute,
although reason does not cease to continue to divide them. So we
conceive no corporeal things, except either those we remember, or from
those things which we remember.
__________________________________________________________________
[742] Vid. Retract. 11. xv. 2. [Augustin here says that when he wrote
the above, he forgot what is said in Leviticus xi. 20, of "fowls that
creep, going upon all four, which have legs above their feet to leap
withal upon the earth."--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 11.--Number, Weight, Measure.
18. But because those things which are impressed on the memory singly,
can be conceived according to number, measure seems to belong to the
memory, but number to the vision; because, although the multiplicity of
such visions is innumerable, yet a limit not to be transgressed is
prescribed for each in the memory. Therefore, measure appears in the
memory, number in the vision of things: as there is some measure in
visible bodies themselves, to which measure the sense of those who see
is most numerously adjusted, and from one visible object is formed the
vision of many beholders, so that even a single person sees commonly a
single thing under a double appearance, on account of the number of his
two eyes, as we have laid down above. Therefore there is some measure
in those things whence visions are copied, but in the visions
themselves there is number. But the will which unites and regulates
these things, and combines them into a certain unity, and does not
quietly rest its desire of [sensuously] perceiving or of conceiving,
except in those things from whence the visions are formed, resembles
weight. And therefore I would just notice by way of anticipation these
three things, measure, number, weight, which are to be perceived in all
other things also. In the meantime, I have now shown as much as I can,
and to whom I can, that the will is the uniter of the visible thing and
of the vision; as it were, of parent and of offspring; whether in
[sensuous] perception or in conception, and that it cannot be called
either parent or offspring. Wherefore time admonishes us to seek for
this same trinity in the inner man, and to strive to pass inwards from
that animal and carnal and (as he is called) outward man, of whom I
have so long spoken. And here we hope to be able to find an image of
God according to the Trinity, He Himself helping our efforts, who as
things themselves show, and as Holy Scripture also witnesses, has
regulated all things in measure, and number, and weight. [743]
__________________________________________________________________
[743] Wisd. xi. 21
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
Book XII.
------------------------
Commencing with a distinction between wisdom and knowledge, points out
a kind of trinity, of a peculiar sort, in that which is properly called
knowledge, and which is the lower of the two; and this trinity,
although it certainly pertains to the inner man, is still not yet to be
called or thought an image of God.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--Of What Kind are the Outer and the Inner Man.
1. Come now, and let us see where lies, as it were, the boundary line
between the outer and inner man. For whatever we have in the mind
common with the beasts, thus much is rightly said to belong to the
outer man. For the outer man is not to be considered to be the body
only, but with the addition also of a certain peculiar life of the
body, whence the structure of the body derives its vigor, and all the
senses with which he is equipped for the perception of outward things;
and when the images of these outward things already perceived, that
have been fixed in the memory, are seen again by recollection, it is
still a matter pertaining to the outer man. And in all these things we
do not differ from the beasts, except that in shape of body we are not
prone, but upright. And we are admonished through this, by Him who made
us, not to be like the beasts in that which is our better part--that
is, the mind--while we differ from them by the uprightness of the body.
Not that we are to throw our mind into those bodily things which are
exalted; for to seek rest for the will, even in such things, is to
prostrate the mind. But as the body is naturally raised upright to
those bodily things which are most elevated, that is, to things
celestial; so the mind, which is a spiritual substance, must be raised
upright to those things which are most elevated in spiritual things,
not by the elation of pride, but by the dutifulness of righteousness.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--Man Alone of Animate Creatures Perceives the Eternal
Reasons of Things Pertaining to the Body.
2. And the beasts, too, are able both to perceive things corporeal from
without, through the senses of the body, and to fix them in the memory,
and remember them, and in them to seek after things suitable, and shun
things inconvenient. But to note these things, and to retain them not
only as caught up naturally but also as deliberately committed to
memory, and to imprint them again by recollection and conception when
now just slipping away into forgetfulness; in order that as conception
is formed from that which the memory contains, so also the contents
themselves of the memory may be fixed firmly by thought: to combine
again imaginary objects of sight, by taking this or that of what the
memory remembers, and, as it were, tacking them to one another: to
examine after what manner it is that in this kind things like the true
are to be distinguished from the true, and this not in things
spiritual, but in corporeal things themselves;--these acts, and the
like, although performed in reference to things sensible, and those
which the mind has deduced through the bodily senses, yet, as they are
combined with reason, so are not common to men and beasts. But it is
the part of the higher reason to judge of these corporeal things
according to incorporeal and eternal reasons; which, unless they were
above the human mind, would certainly not be unchangeable; and yet,
unless something of our own were subjoined to them, we should not be
able to employ them as our measures by which to judge of corporeal
things. But we judge of corporeal things from the rule of dimensions
and figures, which the mind knows to remain unchangeably. [744]
__________________________________________________________________
[744] [The distinction drawn here is between that low form of
intelligence which exists in the brute, and that high form
characteristic of man. In the Kantian nomenclature, the brute has
understanding, but unenlightened by reason; either theoretical or
practical. He has intelligence, but not as modified by the forms of
space and time and the categories of quantity, quality, relation etc.;
and still less as modified and exalted by the ideas of reason--namely,
the mathematical ideas, and the moral ideas of God, freedom, and
immortality. The animal has no rational intelligence. He has mere
understanding without reason.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--The Higher Reason Which Belongs to Contemplation, and the
Lower Which Belongs to Action, are in One Mind.
3. But that of our own which thus has to do with the handling of
corporeal and temporal things, is indeed rational, in that it is not
common to us with the beasts; but it is drawn, as it were, out of that
rational substance of our mind, by which we depend upon and cleave to
the intelligible and unchangeable truth, and which is deputed to handle
and direct the inferior things. For as among all the beasts there was
not found for the man a help like unto him, unless one were taken from
himself, and formed to be his consort: so for that mind, by which we
consult the supernal and inward truth, there is no like help for such
employment as man's nature requires among things corporeal out of those
parts of the soul which we have in common with the beasts. And so a
certain part of our reason, not separated so as to sever unity, but, as
it were, diverted so as to be a help to fellowship, is parted off for
the performing of its proper work. And as the twain is one flesh in the
case of male and female, so in the mind one nature embraces our
intellect and action, or our counsel and performance, or our reason and
rational appetite, or whatever other more significant terms there may
be by which to express them; so that, as it was said of the former,
"And they two shall be in one flesh," [745] it may be said of these,
they two are in one mind.
__________________________________________________________________
[745] Gen. ii. 24
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--The Trinity and the Image of God is in that Part of the
Mind Alone Which Belongs to the Contemplation of Eternal Things.
4. When, therefore, we discuss the nature of the human mind, we discuss
a single subject, and do not double it into those two which I have
mentioned, except in respect to its functions. Therefore, when we seek
the trinity in the mind, we seek it in the whole mind, without
separating the action of the reason in things temporal from the
contemplation of things eternal, so as to have further to seek some
third thing, by which a trinity may be completed. But this trinity must
needs be so discovered in the whole nature of the mind, as that even if
action upon temporal things were to be withdrawn, for which work that
help is necessary, with a view to which some part of the mind is
diverted in order to deal with these inferior things, yet a trinity
would still be found in the one mind that is no where parted off; and
that when this distribution has been already made, not only a trinity
may be found, but also an image of God, in that alone which belongs to
the contemplation of eternal things; while in that other which is
diverted from it in the dealing with temporal things, although there
may be a trinity, yet there cannot be found an image of God.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--The Opinion Which Devises an Image of the Trinity in the
Marriage of Male and Female, and in Their Offspring.
5. Accordingly they do not seem to me to advance a probable opinion,
who lay it down that a trinity of the image of God in three persons, so
far as regards human nature, can so be discovered as to be completed in
the marriage of male and female and in their offspring; in that the man
himself, as it were, indicates the person of the Father, but that which
has so proceeded from him as to be born, that of the Son; and so the
third person as of the Spirit, is, they say, the woman, who has so
proceeded from the man as not herself to be either son or daughter,
[746] although it was by her conception that the offspring was born.
For the Lord hath said of the Holy Spirit that He proceedeth from the
Father, [747] and yet he is not a son. In this erroneous opinion, then,
the only point probably alleged, and indeed sufficiently shown
according to the faith of the Holy Scripture, is this,--in the account
of the original creation of the woman,--that what so comes into
existence from some person as to make another person, cannot in every
case be called a son; since the person of the woman came into existence
from the person of the man, and yet she is not called his daughter. All
the rest of this opinion is in truth so absurd, nay indeed so false,
that it is most easy to refute it. For I pass over such a thing, as to
think the Holy Spirit to be the mother of the Son of God, and the wife
of the Father; since perhaps it may be answered that these things
offend us in carnal things, because we think of bodily conceptions and
births. Although these very things themselves are most chastely thought
of by the pure, to whom all things are pure; but to the defiled and
unbelieving, of whom both the mind and conscience are polluted, nothing
is pure; [748] so that even Christ, born of a virgin according to the
flesh, is a stumbling-block to some of them. But yet in the case of
those supreme spiritual things, after the likeness of which those kinds
of the inferior creature also are made although most remotely, and
where there is nothing that can be injured and nothing corruptible,
nothing born in time, nothing formed from that which is formless, or
whatever like expressions there may be; yet they ought not to disturb
the sober prudence of any one, lest in avoiding empty disgust he run
into pernicious error. Let him accustom himself so to find in corporeal
things the traces of things spiritual, that when he begins to ascend
upwards from thence, under the guidance of reason, in order to attain
to the unchangeable truth itself through which these things were made,
he may not draw with himself to things above what he despises in things
below. For no one ever blushed to choose for himself wisdom as a wife,
because the name of wife puts into a man's thoughts the corruptible
connection which consists in begetting children; or because in truth
wisdom itself is a woman in sex, since it is expressed in both Greek
and Latin tongues by a word of the feminine gender.
__________________________________________________________________
[746] Gen. ii. 22
[747] John xv. 26
[748] Tit. i. 15
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6. --Why This Opinion is to Be Rejected.
6. We do not therefore reject this opinion, because we fear to think of
that holy and inviolable and unchangeable Love, as the spouse of God
the Father, existing as it does from Him, but not as an offspring in
order to beget the Word by which all things are made; but because
divine Scripture evidently shows it to be false. For God said, "Let us
make man in our image, after our likeness;" and a little after it is
said, "So God created man in the image of God." [749] Certainly, in
that it is of the plural number, the word "our" would not be rightly
used if man were made in the image of one person, whether of the
Father, or of the Son, or of the Holy Spirit; but because he was made
in the image of the Trinity, on that account it is said, "After our
image." But again, lest we should think that three Gods were to be
believed in the Trinity, whereas the same Trinity is one God, it is
said, "So God created man in the image of God," instead of saying, "In
His own image."
7. For such expressions are customary in the Scriptures; and yet some
persons, while maintaining the Catholic faith, do not carefully attend
to them, in such wise that they think the words, "God made man in the
image of God," to mean that the Father made man after the image of the
Son; and they thus desire to assert that the Son also is called God in
the divine Scriptures, as if there were not other most true and clear
proofs wherein the Son is called not only God, but also the true God.
For whilst they aim at explaining another difficulty in this text, they
become so entangled that they cannot extricate themselves. For if the
Father made man after the image of the Son, so that he is not the image
of the Father, but of the Son, then the Son is unlike the Father. But
if a pious faith teaches us, as it does, that the Son is like the
Father after an equality of essence, then that which is made in the
likeness of the Son must needs also be made in the likeness of the
Father. Further, if the Father made man not in His own image, but in
the image of His Son, why does He not say, "Let us make man after Thy
image and likeness," whereas He does say, "our;" unless it be because
the image of the Trinity was made in man, that in this way man should
be the image of the one true God, because the Trinity itself is the one
true God? Such expressions are innumerable in the Scriptures, but it
will suffice to have produced these. It is so said in the Psalms,
"Salvation belongeth unto the Lord; Thy blessing is upon Thy people;"
[750] as if the words were spoken to some one else, not to Him of whom
it had been said, "Salvation belongeth unto the Lord." And again, "For
by Thee," he says, "I shall be delivered from temptation, and by hoping
in my God I shall leap over the wall;" [751] as if he said to some one
else, "By Thee I shall be delivered from temptation." And again, "In
the heart of the king's enemies; whereby the people fall under Thee;"
[752] as if he were to say, in the heart of Thy enemies. For he had
said to that King, that is, to our Lord Jesus Christ, "The people fall
under Thee," whom he intended by the word King, when he said, "In the
heart of the king's enemies." Things of this kind are found more rarely
in the New Testament. But yet the apostle says to the Romans,
"Concerning His Son who was made to Him of the seed of David according
to the flesh, and declared to be the Son of God with power, according
to the spirit of holiness, by the resurrection of the dead of Jesus
Christ our Lord;" [753] as though he were speaking above of some one
else. For what is meant by the Son of God declared by the resurrection
of the dead of Jesus Christ, except of the same Jesus Christ who was
declared to be Son of God with power? And as then in this passage, when
we are told, "the Son of God with power of Jesus Christ," or "the Son
of God according to the spirit of holiness of Jesus Christ," or "the
Son of God by the resurrection of the dead of Jesus Christ," whereas it
might have been expressed in the ordinary way, In His own power, or
according to the spirit of His own holiness, or by the resurrection of
His dead, or of their dead: as, I say, we are not compelled to
understand another person, but one and the same, that is, the person of
the Son of God our Lord Jesus Christ; so, when we are told that "God
made man in the image of God," although it might have been more usual
to say, after His own image, yet we are not compelled to understand any
other person in the Trinity, but the one and selfsame Trinity itself,
who is one God, and after whose image man is made.
8. And since the case stands thus, if we are to accept the same image
of the Trinity, as not in one, but in three human beings, father and
mother and son, then the man was not made after the image of God before
a wife was made for him, and before they procreated a son; because
there was not yet a trinity. Will any one say there was already a
trinity, because, although not yet in their proper form, yet in their
original nature, both the woman was already in the side of the man, and
the son in the loins of his father? Why then, when Scripture had said,
"God made man after the image of God," did it go on to say, "God
created him; male and female created He them: and God blessed them"?
[754] (Or if it is to be so divided, "And God created man," so that
thereupon is to be added, "in the image of God created He him," and
then subjoined in the third place, "male and female created He them;"
for some have feared to say, He made him male and female, lest
something monstrous, as it were, should be understood, as are those
whom they call hermaphrodites, although even so both might be
understood not falsely in the singular number, on account of that which
is said, "Two in one flesh.") Why then, as I began by saying, in regard
to the nature of man made after the image of God, does Scripture
specify nothing except male and female? Certainly, in order to complete
the image of the Trinity, it ought to have added also son, although
still placed in the loins of his father, as the woman was in his side.
Or was it perhaps that the woman also had been already made, and that
Scripture had combined in a short and comprehensive statement, that of
which it was going to explain afterwards more carefully, how it was
done; and that therefore a son could not be mentioned, because no son
was yet born? As if the Holy Spirit could not have comprehended this,
too, in that brief statement, while about to narrate the birth of the
son afterwards in its own place; as it narrated afterwards in its own
place, that the woman was taken from the side of the man, [755] and yet
has not omitted here to name her.
__________________________________________________________________
[749] Gen. i. 26, 27
[750] Ps. iii. 8
[751] Ps. xviii. 29
[752] Ps. xlv. 5
[753] Rom. i. 3, 4
[754] Gen. i. 27, 28
[755] Gen. ii. 24, 22
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--How Man is the Image of God. Whether the Woman is Not Also
the Image of God. How the Saying of the Apostle, that the Man is the
Image of God, But the Woman is the Glory of the Man, is to Be
Understood Figuratively and Mystically.
9. We ought not therefore so to understand that man is made in the
image of the supreme Trinity, that is, in the image of God, as that the
same image should be understood to be in three human beings; especially
when the apostle says that the man is the image of God, and on that
account removes the covering from his head, which he warns the woman to
use, speaking thus: "For a man indeed ought not to cover his head,
forasmuch as he is the image and glory of God; but the woman is the
glory of the man." What then shall we say to this? If the woman fills
up the image of the trinity after the measure of her own person, why is
the man still called that image after she has been taken out of his
side? Or if even one person of a human being out of three can be called
the image of God, as each person also is God in the supreme Trinity
itself, why is the woman also not the image of God? For she is
instructed for this very reason to cover her head, which he is
forbidden to do because he is the image of God. [756]
10. But we must notice how that which the apostle says, that not the
woman but the man is the image of God, is not contrary to that which is
written in Genesis, "God created man: in the image of God created He
him; male and female created He them: and He blessed them." For this
text says that human nature itself, which is complete [only] in both
sexes, was made in the image of God; and it does not separate the woman
from the image of God which it signifies. For after saying that God
made man in the image of God, "He created him," it says, "male and
female:" or at any rate, punctuating the words otherwise, "male and
female created He them." How then did the apostle tell us that the man
is the image of God, and therefore he is forbidden to cover his head;
but that the woman is not so, and therefore is commanded to cover hers?
Unless, forsooth, according to that which I have said already, when I
was treating of the nature of the human mind, that the woman together
with her own husband is the image of God, so that that whole substance
may be one image; but when she is referred separately to her quality of
help-meet, which regards the woman herself alone, then she is not the
image of God; but as regards the man alone, he is the image of God as
fully and completely as when the woman too is joined with him in one.
As we said of the nature of the human mind, that both in the case when
as a whole it contemplates the truth it is the image of God; and in the
case when anything is divided from it, and diverted in order to the
cognition of temporal things; nevertheless on that side on which it
beholds and consults truth, here also it is the image of God, but on
that side whereby it is directed to the cognition of the lower things,
it is not the image of God. And since it is so much the more formed
after the image of God, the more it has extended itself to that which
is eternal, and is on that account not to be restrained, so as to
withhold and refrain itself from thence; therefore the man ought not to
cover his head. But because too great a progression towards inferior
things is dangerous to that rational cognition that is conversant with
things corporeal and temporal; this ought to have power on its head,
which the covering indicates, by which it is signified that it ought to
be restrained. For a holy and pious meaning is pleasing to the holy
angels. [757] For God sees not after the way of time, neither does
anything new take place in His vision and knowledge, when anything is
done in time and transitorily, after the way in which such things
affect the senses, whether the carnal senses of animals and men, or
even the heavenly senses of the angels.
11. For that the Apostle Paul, when speaking outwardly of the sex of
male and female, figured the mystery of some more hidden truth, may be
understood from this, that when he says in another place that she is a
widow indeed who is desolate, without children and nephews, and yet
that she ought to trust in God, and to continue in prayers night and
day, [758] he here indicates, that the woman having been brought into
the transgression by being deceived, is brought to salvation by
child-bearing; and then he has added, "If they continue in faith, and
charity, and holiness, with sobriety." [759] As if it could possibly
hurt a good widow, if either she had not sons, or if those whom she had
did not choose to continue in good works. But because those things
which are called good works are, as it were, the sons of our life,
according to that sense of life in which it answers to the question,
What is a man's life? that is, How does he act in these temporal
things? which life the Greeks do not call xoe but bios; and because
these good works are chiefly performed in the way of offices of mercy,
while works of mercy are of no profit, either to Pagans, or to Jews who
do not believe in Christ, or to any heretics or schismstics whatsoever
in whom faith and charity and sober holiness are not found: what the
apostle meant to signify is plain, and in so far figuratively and
mystically, because he was speaking of covering the head of the woman,
which will remain mere empty words, unless referred to some hidden
sacrament.
12. For, as not only most true reason but also the authority of the
apostle himself declares, man was not made in the image of God
according to the shape of his body, but according to his rational mind.
For the thought is a debased and empty one, which holds God to be
circumscribed and limited by the lineaments of bodily members. But
further, does not the same blessed apostle say, "Be renewed in the
spirit of your mind, and put on the new man, which is created after
God;" [760] and in another place more clearly, "Putting off the old
man," he says, "with his deeds; put on the new man, which is renewed to
the knowledge of God after the image of Him that created him?" [761]
If, then, we are renewed in the spirit of our mind, and he is the new
man who is renewed to the knowledge of God after the image of Him that
created him; no one can doubt, that man was made after the image of Him
that created him, not according to the body, nor indiscriminately
according to any part of the mind, but according to the rational mind,
wherein the knowledge of God can exist. And it is according to this
renewal, also, that we are made sons of God by the baptism of Christ;
and putting on the new man, certainly put on Christ through faith. Who
is there, then, who will hold women to be alien from this fellowship,
whereas they are fellow-heirs of grace with us; and whereas in another
place the same apostle says, "For ye are all the children of God by
faith in Christ Jesus; for as many as have been baptized into Christ
have put on Christ: there is neither Jew nor Greek, there is neither
bond nor free, there is neither male nor female; for ye are all one in
Christ Jesus?" [762] Pray, have faithful women then lost their bodily
sex? But because they are there renewed after the image of God, where
there is no sex; man is there made after the image of God, where there
is no sex, that is, in the spirit of his mind. Why, then, is the man on
that account not bound to cover his head, because he is the image and
glory of God, while the woman is bound to do so, because she is the
glory of the man; as though the woman were not renewed in the spirit of
her mind, which spirit is renewed to the knowledge of God after the
image of Him who created him? But because she differs from the man in
bodily sex, it was possible rightly to represent under her bodily
covering that part of the reason which is diverted to the government of
temporal things; so that the image of God may remain on that side of
the mind of man on which it cleaves to the beholding or the consulting
of the eternal reasons of things; and this, it is clear, not men only,
but also women have.
__________________________________________________________________
[756] 1 Cor. xi. 7, 5
[757] 1 Cor. xi. 10
[758] 1 Tim. v. 5
[759] 1 Tim. ii. 15
[760] Eph. iv. 23, 24
[761] Col. iii. 9, 10
[762] Gal. iii. 26-28
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--Turning Aside from the Image of God.
13. A common nature, therefore, is recognized in their minds, but in
their bodies a division of that one mind itself is figured. As we
ascend, then, by certain steps of thought within, along the succession
of the parts of the mind, there where something first meets us which is
not common to ourselves with the beasts reason begins, so that here the
inner man can now be recognized. And if this inner man himself, through
that reason to which the administering of things temporal has been
delegated, slips on too far by over-much progress into outward things,
that which is his head moreover consenting, that is, the (so to call
it) masculine part which presides in the watch-tower of counsel not
restraining or bridling it: then he waxeth old because of all his
enemies, [763] viz. the demons with their prince the devil, who are
envious of virtue; and that vision of eternal things is withdrawn also
from the head himself, eating with his spouse that which was forbidden,
so that the light of his eyes is gone from him; [764] and so both being
naked from that enlightenment of truth, and with the eyes of their
conscience opened to behold how they were left shameful and unseemly,
like the leaves of sweet fruits, but without the fruits themselves,
they so weave together good words without the fruit of good works, as
while living wickedly to cover over their disgrace as it were by
speaking well. [765]
__________________________________________________________________
[763] Ps. vi. 7
[764] Ps. xxxviii. 10
[765] Gen. iii. 4
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--The Same Argument is Continued.
14. For the soul loving its own power, slips onwards from the whole
which is common, to a part, which belongs especially to itself. And
that apostatizing pride, which is called "the beginning of sin," [766]
whereas it might have been most excellently governed by the laws of
God, if it had followed Him as its ruler in the universal creature, by
seeking something more than the whole, and struggling to govern this by
a law of its own, is thrust on, since nothing is more than the whole,
into caring for a part; and thus by lusting after something more, is
made less; whence also covetousness is called "the root of all evil."
[767] And it administers that whole, wherein it strives to do something
of its own against the laws by which the whole is governed, by its own
body, which it possesses only in part; and so being delighted by
corporeal forms and motions, because it has not the things themselves
within itself, and because it is wrapped up in their images, which it
has fixed in the memory, and is foully polluted by fornication of the
phantasy, while it refers all its functions to those ends, for which it
curiously seeks corporeal and temporal things through the senses of the
body, either it affects with swelling arrogance to be more excellent
than other souls that are given up to the corporeal senses, or it is
plunged into a foul whirlpool of carnal pleasure.
__________________________________________________________________
[766] Ecclus. x. 15
[767] 1 Tim. vi. 10
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--The Lowest Degradation Reached by Degrees.
15. When the soul then consults either for itself or for others with a
good will towards perceiving the inner and higher things, such as are
possessed in a chaste embrace, without any narrowness or envy, not
individually, but in common by all who love such things; then even if
it be deceived in anything, through ignorance of things temporal (for
its action in this case is a temporal one), and if it does not hold
fast to that mode of acting which it ought, the temptation is but one
common to man. And it is a great thing so to pass through this life, on
which we travel, as it were, like a road on our return home, that no
temptation may take us, but what is common to man. [768] For this is a
sin, without the body, and must not be reckoned fornication, and on
that account is very easily pardoned. But when the soul does anything
in order to attain those things which are perceived through the body,
through lust of proving or of surpassing or of handling them, in order
that it may place in them its final good, then whatever it does, it
does wickedly, and commits fornication, sinning against its own body:
[769] and while snatching from within the deceitful images of corporeal
things, and combining them by vain thought, so that nothing seems to it
to be divine, unless it be of such a kind as this; by selfish
greediness it is made fruitful in errors, and by selfish prodigality it
is emptied of strength. Yet it would not leap on at once from the
commencement to such shameless and miserable fornication, but, as it is
written, "He that contemneth small things, shall fall by little and
little." [770]
__________________________________________________________________
[768] 1 Cor. x. 13
[769] 1 Cor. vi. 18
[770] Ecclus. xix. 1
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 11.--The Image of the Beast in Man.
16. For as a snake does not creep on with open steps, but advances by
the very minutest efforts of its several scales; so the slippery motion
of falling away [from what is good] takes possession of the negligent
only gradually, and beginning from a perverse desire for the likeness
of God, arrives in the end at the likeness of beasts. Hence it is that
being naked of their first garment, they earned by mortality coats of
skins. [771] For the true honor of man is the image and likeness of
God, which is not preserved except it be in relation to Him by whom it
is impressed. The less therefore that one loves what is one's own, the
more one cleaves to God. But through the desire of making trial of his
own power, man by his own bidding falls down to himself as to a sort of
intermediate grade. And so, while he wishes to be as God is, that is,
under no one, he is thrust on, even from his own middle grade, by way
of punishment, to that which is lowest, that is, to those things in
which beasts delight: and thus, while his honor is the likeness of God,
but his dishonor is the likeness of the beast, "Man being in honor
abideth not: he is compared to the beasts that are foolish, and is made
like to them." [772] By what path, then, could he pass so great a
distance from the highest to the lowest, except through his own
intermediate grade? For when he neglects the love of wisdom, which
remains always after the same fashion, and lusts after knowledge by
experiment upon things temporal and mutable, that knowledge puffeth up,
it does not edify: [773] so the mind is overweighed and thrust out, as
it were, by its own weight from blessedness; and learns by its own
punishment, through that trial of its own intermediateness, what the
difference is between the good it has abandoned and the bad to which it
has committed itself; and having thrown away and destroyed its
strength, it cannot return, unless by the grace of its Maker calling it
to repentance, and forgiving its sins. For who will deliver the unhappy
soul from the body of this death, unless the grace of God through Jesus
Christ our Lord? [774] of which grace we will discourse in its place,
so far as He Himself enables us.
__________________________________________________________________
[771] Gen. iii. 21
[772] Ps. xlix. 12
[773] 1 Cor. viii. 1
[774] Rom. vii. 24, 25
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 12.--There is a Kind of Hidden Wedlock in the Inner Man.
Unlawful Pleasures of the Thoughts.
17. Let us now complete, so far as the Lord helps us, the discussion
which we have undertaken, respecting that part of reason to which
knowledge belongs, that is, the cognizance of things temporal and
changeable, which is necessary for managing the affairs of this life.
For as in the case of that visible wedlock of the two human beings who
were made first, the serpent did not eat of the forbidden tree, but
only persuaded them to eat of it; and the woman did not eat alone, but
gave to her husband, and they eat together; although she alone spoke
with the serpent, and she alone was led away by him: [775] so also in
the case of that hidden and secret kind of wedlock, which is transacted
and discerned in a single human being, the carnal, or as I may say,
since it is directed to the senses of the body, the sensuous movement
of the soul, which is common to us with beasts, is shut off from the
reason of wisdom. For certainly bodily things are perceived by the
sense of the body; but spiritual things, which are eternal and
unchangeable, are understood by the reason of wisdom. But the reason of
knowledge has appetite very near to it: seeing that what is called the
science or knowledge of actions reasons concerning the bodily things
which are perceived by the bodily sense; if well, in order that it may
refer that knowledge to the end of the chief good; but if ill, in order
that it may enjoy them as being such good things as those wherein it
reposes with a false blessedness. Whenever, then, that carnal or animal
sense introduces into this purpose of the mind which is conversant
about things temporal and corporeal, with a view to the offices of a
man's actions, by the living force of reason, some inducement to enjoy
itself, that is, to enjoy itself as if it were some private good of its
own, not as the public and common, which is the unchangeable, good;
then, as it were, the serpent discourses with the woman. And to consent
to this allurement, is to eat of the forbidden tree. But if that
consent is satisfied by the pleasure of thought alone, but the members
are so restrained by the authority of higher counsel that they are not
yielded as instruments of unrighteousness unto sin; [776] this, I
think, is to be considered as if the woman alone should have eaten the
forbidden food. But if, in this consent to use wickedly the things
which are perceived through the senses of the body, any sin at all is
so determined upon, that if there is the power it is also fulfilled by
the body; then that woman must be understood to have given the unlawful
food to her husband with her, to be eaten together. For it is not
possible for the mind to determine that a sin is not only to be thought
of with pleasure, but also to be effectually committed, unless also
that intention of the mind yields, and serves the bad action, with
which rests the chief power of applying the members to an outward act,
or of restraining them from one.
18. And yet, certainly, when the mind is pleased in thought alone with
unlawful things, while not indeed determining that they are to be done,
but yet holding and pondering gladly things which ought to have been
rejected the very moment they touched the mind, it cannot be denied to
be a sin, but far less than if it were also determined to accomplished
it in outward act. And therefore pardon must be sought for such
thoughts too, and the breast must be smitten, and it must be said,
"Forgive us our debts;" and what follows must be done, and must be
joined in our prayer, "As we also forgive our debtors." [777] For it is
not as it was with those two first human beings, of which each one bare
his own person; and so, if the woman alone had eaten the forbidden
food, she certainly alone would have been smitten with the punishment
of death: it cannot, I say, be so said also in the case of a single
human being now, that if the thought, remaining alone, be gladly fed
with unlawful pleasures, from which it ought to turn away directly,
while yet there is no determination that the bad actions are to be
done, but only that they are retained with pleasure in remembrance, the
woman as it were can be condemned without the man. Far be it from us to
believe this. For here is one person, one human being, and he as a
whole will be condemned, unless those things which, as lacking the will
to do, and yet having the will to please the mind with them, are
perceived to be sins of thought alone, are pardoned through the grace
of the Mediator. [778]
19. This reasoning, then, whereby we have sought in the mind of each
several human being a certain rational wedlock of contemplation and
action, with functions distributed through each severally, yet with the
unity of the mind preserved in both; saving meanwhile the truth of that
history which divine testimony hands down respecting the first two
human beings, that is, the man and his wife, from whom the human
species is propagated; [779] --this reasoning, I say, must be listened
to only thus far, that the apostle may be understood to have intended
to signify something to be sought in one individual man, by assigning
the image of God to the man only, and not also to the woman, although
in the merely different sex of two human beings.
__________________________________________________________________
[775] Gen. iii. 1-6
[776] Rom. vi. 13
[777] Matt. vi. 12
[778] [Augustin here teaches that the inward lust is guilt as well as
the outward action prompted by it. This is in accordance with Matt. v.
28; Acts viii. 21-22; Rom. vii. 7; James i. 14.--W.G.T.S.]
[779] [Augustin means, that while he has given an allegorical and
mystical interpretation to the narrative of the fall, in Genesis, he
also holds to its historical sense.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 13.--The Opinion of Those Who Have Thought that the Mind Was
Signified by the Man, the Bodily Sense by the Woman.
20. Nor does it escape me, that some who before us were eminent
defenders of the Catholic faith and expounders of the word of God,
while they looked for these two things in one human being, whose entire
soul they perceived to be a sort of excellent paradise, asserted that
the man was the mind, but that the woman was the bodily sense. And
according to this distribution, by which the man is assumed to be the
mind, but the woman the bodily sense, all things seem aptly to agree
together if they are handled with due attention: unless that it is
written, that in all the beasts and flying things there was not found
for man an helpmate like to himself; and then the woman was made out of
his side. [780] And on this account I, for my part, have not thought
that the bodily sense should be taken for the woman, which we see to be
common to ourselves and to the beasts; but I have desired to find
something which the beasts had not; and I have rather thought the
bodily sense should be understood to be the serpent, whom we read to
have been more subtle than all beasts of the field. [781] For in those
natural good things which we see are common to ourselves and to the
irrational animals, the sense excels by a kind of living power; not the
sense of which it is written in the epistle addressed to the Hebrews,
where we read, that "strong meat belongeth to them that are of full
age, even those who by reason of use have their senses exercised to
discern both good and evil;" [782] for these "senses" belong to the
rational nature and pertain to the understanding; but that sense which
is divided into five parts in the body, through which corporeal species
and motion is perceived not only by ourselves, but also by the beasts.
21. But whether that the apostle calls the man the image and glory of
God, but the woman the glory of the man, [783] is to be received in
this, or that, or in any other way; yet it is clear, that when we live
according to God, our mind which is intent on the invisible things of
Him ought to be fashioned with proficiency from His eternity, truth,
charity; but that something of our own rational purpose, that is, of
the same mind, must be directed to the using of changeable and
corporeal things, without which this life does not go on; not that we
may be conformed to this world, [784] by placing our end in such good
things, and by forcing the desire of blessedness towards them, but that
whatever we do rationally in the using of temporal things, we may do it
with the contemplation of attaining eternal things, passing through the
former, but cleaving to the latter.
__________________________________________________________________
[780] Gen. ii. 20-22
[781] Gen. iii. 1
[782] Heb. v. 14
[783] 1 Cor. xi. 7
[784] Rom. xii. 2
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 14.--What is the Difference Between Wisdom and Knowledge. The
Worship of God is the Love of Him. How the Intellectual Cognizance of
Eternal Things Comes to Pass Through Wisdom.
For knowledge also has its own good measure, if that in it which puffs
up, or is wont to puff up, is conquered by love of eternal things,
which does not puff up, but, as we know, edifieth. [785] Certainly
without knowledge the virtues themselves, by which one lives rightly,
cannot be possessed, by which this miserable life may be so governed,
that we may attain to that eternal life which is truly blessed.
22. Yet action, by which we use temporal things well, differs from
contemplation of eternal things; and the latter is reckoned to wisdom,
the former to knowledge. For although that which is wisdom can also be
called knowledge, as the apostle too speaks, where he says, "Now I know
in part, but then shall I know even as also I am known;" [786] when
doubtless he meant his words to be understood of the knowledge of the
contemplation of God, which will be the highest reward of the saints;
yet where he says, "For to one is given by the Spirit the word of
wisdom, to another the word of knowledge by the same Spirit," [787]
certainly he distinguishes without doubt these two things, although he
does not there explain the difference, nor in what way one may be
discerned from the other. But having examined a great number of
passages from the Holy Scriptures, I find it written in the Book of
Job, that holy man being the speaker, "Behold, piety, that is wisdom;
but to depart from evil is knowledge." [788] In thus distinguishing, it
must be understood that wisdom belongs to contemplation, knowledge to
action. For in this place he meant by piety the worship of God, which
in Greek is called theosebeia. For the sentence in the Greek mss. has
that word. And what is there in eternal things more excellent than God,
of whom alone the nature is unchangeable? And what is the worship of
Him except the love of Him, by which we now desire to see Him, and we
believe and hope that we shall see Him; and in proportion as we make
progress, see now through a glass in an enigma, but then in clearness?
For this is what the Apostle Paul means by "face to face." [789] This
is also what John says, "Beloved, now we are the sons of God, and it
doth not yet appear what we shall be; but we know that, when He shall
appear, we shall be like Him; for we shall see Him as He is." [790]
Discourse about these and the like subjects seems to me to be the
discourse itself of wisdom. But to depart from evil, which Job says is
knowledge, is without doubt of temporal things. Since it is in
reference to time [and this world] that we are in evil, from which we
ought to abstain that we may come to those good eternal things. And
therefore, whatsoever we do prudently, boldly, temperately, and justly,
belongs to that knowledge or discipline wherewith our action is
conversant in avoiding evil and desiring good; and so also, whatsoever
we gather by the knowledge that comes from inquiry, in the way of
examples either to be guarded against or to be imitated, and in the way
of necessary proofs respecting any subject, accommodated to our use.
23. When a discourse then relates to these things, I hold it to be a
discourse belonging to knowledge, and to be distinguished from a
discourse belonging to wisdom, to which those things belong, which
neither have been, nor shall be, but are; and on account of that
eternity in which they are, are said to have been, and to be, and to be
about to be, without any changeableness of times. For neither have they
been in such way as that they should cease to be, nor are they about to
be in such way as if they were not now; but they have always had and
always will have that very absolute being. And they abide, but not as
if fixed in some place as are bodies; but as intelligible things in
incorporeal nature, they are so at hand to the glance of the mind, as
things visible or tangible in place are to the sense of the body. And
not only in the case of sensible things posited in place, there abide
also intelligible and incorporeal reasons of them apart from local
space; but also of motions that pass by in successive times, apart from
any transit in time, there stand also like reasons, themselves
certainly intelligible, and not sensible. And to attain to these with
the eye of the mind is the lot of few; and when they are attained as
much as they can be, he himself who attains to them does not abide in
them, but is as it were repelled by the rebounding of the eye itself of
the mind, and so there comes to be a transitory thought of a thing not
transitory. And yet this transient thought is committed to the memory
through the instructions by which the mind is taught; that the mind
which is compelled to pass from thence, may be able to return thither
again; although, if the thought should not return to the memory and
find there what it had committed to it, it would be led thereto like an
uninstructed person, as it had been led before, and would find it where
it had first found it, that is to say, in that incorporeal truth,
whence yet once more it may be as it were written down and fixed in the
mind. For the thought of man, for example, does not so abide in that
incorporeal and unchangeable reason of a square body, as that reason
itself abides: if, to be sure, it could attain to it at all without the
phantasy of local space. Or if one were to apprehend the rhythm of any
artificial or musical sound, passing through certain intervals of time,
as it rested without time in some secret and deep silence, it could at
least be thought as long as that song could be heard; yet what the
glance of the mind, transient though it was, caught from thence, and,
absorbing as it were into a belly, so laid up in the memory, over this
it will be able to rumiuate in some measure by recollection, and to
transfer what it has thus learned into systematic knowledge. But if
this has been blotted out by absolute forgetfulness, yet once again,
under the guidance of teaching, one will come to that which had
altogether dropped away, and it will be found such as it was.
__________________________________________________________________
[785] 1 Cor. viii. 1
[786] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[787] 1 Cor. xii. 8
[788] Job xxviii. 8
[789] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[790] 1 John iii. 2
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 15.--In Opposition to the Reminiscence of Plato and Pythagoras.
Pythagoras the Samian. Of the Difference Between Wisdom and Knowledge,
and of Seeking the Trinity in the Knowledge of Temporal Things.
24. And hence that noble philosopher Plato endeavored to persuade us
that the souls of men lived even before they bare these bodies; and
that hence those things which are learnt are rather remembered, as
having been known already, than taken into knowledge as things new. For
he has told us that a boy, when questioned I know not what respecting
geometry, replied as if he were perfectly skilled in that branch of
learning. For being questioned step by step and skillfully, he saw what
was to be seen, and said that which he saw. [791] But if this had been
a recollecting of things previously known, then certainly every one, or
almost every one, would not have been able so to answer when
questioned. For not every one was a geometrician in the former life,
since geometricians are so few among men that scarcely one can be found
anywhere. But we ought rather to believe, that the intellectual mind is
so formed in its nature as to see those things, which by the
disposition of the Creator are subjoined to things intelligible in a
natural order, by a sort of incorporeal light of an unique kind; as the
eye of the flesh sees things adjacent to itself in this bodily light,
of which light it is made to be receptive, and adapted to it. For none
the more does this fleshly eye, too, distinguish black things from
white without a teacher, because it had already known them before it
was created in this flesh. Why, lastly, is it possible only in
intelligible things that any one properly questioned should answer
according to any branch of learning, although ignorant of it? Why can
no one do this with things sensible, except those which he has seen in
this his present body, or has believed the information of others who
knew them, whether somebody's writings or words? For we must not
acquiesce in their story, who assert that the Samian Pythagoras
recollected some things of this kind, which he had experienced when he
was previously here in another body; and others tell yet of others,
that they experienced something of the same sort in their minds: but it
may be conjectured that these were untrue recollections, such as we
commonly experience in sleep, when we fancy we remember, as though we
had done or seen it, what we never did or saw at all; and that the
minds of these persons, even though awake, were affected in this way at
the suggestion of malignant and deceitful spirits, whose care it is to
confirm or to sow some false belief concerning the changes of souls, in
order to deceive men. This, I say, may be conjectured from this, that
if they really remembered those things which they had seen here before,
while occupying other bodies, the same thing would happen to many, nay
to almost all; since they suppose that as the dead from the living, so,
without cessation and continually, the living are coming into existence
from the dead; as sleepers from those that are awake, and those that
are awake from them that sleep.
25. If therefore this is the right distinction between wisdom and
knowledge, that the intellectual cognizance of eternal things belongs
to wisdom, but the rational cognizance of temporal things to knowledge,
it is not difficult to judge which is to be preferred or postponed to
which. But if we must employ some other distinction by which to know
these two apart, which without doubt the apostle teaches us are
different, saying, "To one is given by the Spirit the word of wisdom;
to another the word of knowledge, by the same Spirit:" still the
difference between those two which we have laid down is a most evident
one, in that the intellectual cognizance of eternal things is one
thing, the rational cognizance of temporal things another; and no one
doubts but that the former is to be preferred to the latter. As then we
leave behind those things which belong to the outer man, and desire to
ascend within from those things which we have in common with beasts,
before we come to the cognizance of things intelligible and supreme,
which are eternal, the rational cognizance of temporal things presents
itself. Let us then find a trinity in this also, if we can, as we found
one in the senses of the body, and in those things which through them
entered in the way of images into our soul or spirit; so that instead
of corporeal things which we touch by corporeal sense, placed as they
are without us, we might have resemblances of bodies impressed within
on the memory from which thought might be formed, while the will as a
third united them; just as the sight of the eyes was formed from
without, which the will applied to the visible thing in order to
produce vision, and united both, while itself also added itself thereto
as a third. But this subject must not be compressed into this book; so
that in that which follows, if God help, it may be suitably examined,
and the conclusions to which we come may be unfolded.
__________________________________________________________________
[791] [This fine specimen of the "obstetric method" of Socrates is
given in Plato's dialogue, Meno.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
Book XIII.
------------------------
The inquiry is prosecuted respecting knowledge, in which, as
distinguished from wisdom, Augustin had begun in the former book to
look for a kind of trinity. And occasion is taken of commending
Christian faith, and of explaining how the faith of believers is one
and common. Next, that all desire blessedness, yet that all have not
the faith whereby we arrive at blessedness; and that this faith is
defined in Christ, who in the flesh rose from the dead; and that no one
is set free from the dominion of the devil through forgiveness of sins,
save through Him. It is shown also at length that it was needful that
the devil should be conquered by Christ, not by power, but by
righteousness. Finally, that when the words of this faith are committed
to memory, there is in the mind a kind of trinity, since there are,
first, in the memory the sounds of the words, and this even when the
man is not thinking of them; and next, the mind's eye of his
recollection is formed thereupon when he thinks of them; and, lastly,
the will, when he so thinks and remembers, combines both.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--The Attempt is Made to Distinguish Out of the Scriptures
the Offices of Wisdom and of Knowledge. That in the Beginning of John
Some Things that are Said Belong to Wisdom, Some to Knowledge. Some
Things There are Only Known by the Help of Faith. How We See the Faith
that is in Us. In the Same Narrative of John, Some Things are Known by
the Sense of the Body, Others Only by the Reason of the Mind.
1. In the book before this, viz. the twelfth of this work, we have done
enough to distinguish the office of the rational mind in temporal
things, wherein not only our knowing but our action is concerned, from
the more excellent office of the same mind, which is employed in
contemplating eternal things, and is limited to knowing alone. But I
think it more convenient that I should insert somewhat out of the Holy
Scriptures, by which the two may more easily be distinguished.
2. John the Evangelist has thus begun his Gospel: "In the beginning was
the Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was God. The same was
in the beginning with God. All things were made by Him; and without was
Him not anything made that was made. In Him was life; and the life was
the light of men. And the light shineth in darkness; and the darkness
comprehended it not. There was a man sent from God, whose name was
John. The same came for a witness, to bear witness of the Light, that
all men through Him might believe. He was not that Light, but was sent
to bear witness of that Light. That was the true Light, which lighteth
every man that cometh into the world. He was in the world, and the
world was made by Him, and the world knew Him not. He came unto His
own, and His own received Him not. But as many as received Him, to them
gave He power to become the sons of God, even to them that believe on
His name: which were born, not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh,
nor of the will of man, but of God. And the Word was made flesh, and
dwelt among us (and we beheld His glory, the glory as of the
only-begotten of the Father), full of grace and truth." [792] This
entire passage, which I have here taken from the Gospel, contains in
its earlier portions what is immutable and eternal, the contemplation
of which makes us blessed; but in those which follow, eternal things
are mentioned in conjunction with temporal things. And hence some
things there belong to knowledge, some to wisdom, according to our
previous distinction in the twelfth book. For the words,--"In the
beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was
God. The same was in the beginning with God. All things were made by
Him; and without Him was not anything made that was made. In Him was
life; and the life was the light of men. And the light shineth in
darkness, and the darkness comprehended it not:"--require a
contemplative life, and must be discerned by the intellectual mind; and
the more any one has profited in this, the wiser without doubt will he
become. But on account of the verse, "The light shineth in darkness,
and the darkness comprehended it not," faith certainly was necessary,
whereby that which was not seen might be believed. For by "darkness" he
intended to signify the hearts of mortals turned away from light of
this kind, and hardly able to behold it; for which reason he subjoins,
"There was a man sent from God, whose name was John. The same came for
a witness, to bear witness of the Light, that all men through Him might
believe." But here we come to a thing that was done in time, and
belongs to knowledge, which is comprised in the cognizance of facts.
And we think of the man John under that phantasy which is impressed on
our memory from the notion of human nature. And whether men believe or
not, they think this in the same manner. For both alike know what man
is, the outer part of whom, that is, his body, they have learned
through the eyes of the body; but of the inner, that is, the soul, they
possess the knowledge in themselves, because they also themselves are
men, and through intercourse with men; so that they are able to think
what is said, "There was a man, whose name was John," because they know
the names also by interchange of speech. But that which is there also,
viz. "sent from God," they who hold at all, hold by faith; and they who
do not hold it by faith, either hesitate through doubt, or deride it
through unbelief. Yet both, if they are not in the number of those
over-foolish ones, who say in their heart "There is no God," [793] when
they hear these words, think both things, viz. both what God is, and
what it is to be sent from God; and if they do not do this as the
things themselves really are, they do it at any rate as they can.
3. Further, we know from other sources the faith itself which a man
sees to be in his own heart, if he believes, or not to be there, if he
does not believe: but not as we know bodies, which we see with the
bodily eyes, and think of even when absent through the images of
themselves which we retain in memory; nor yet as those things which we
have not seen, and which we frame howsoever we can in thought from
those which we have seen, and commit them to memory, that we may recur
to them when we will, in order that therein we may similarly by
recollection discern them, or rather discern the images of them, of
what sort soever these are which we have fixed there; nor again as a
living man, whose soul we do not indeed see, but conjecture from our
own, and from corporeal motions gaze also in thought upon the living
man, as we have learnt him by sight. Faith as not so seen in the heart
in which it is, by him whose it is; but most certain knowledge holds it
fast, and conscience proclaims it. Although therefore we are bidden to
believe on this account, because we cannot see what we are bidden to
believe; nevertheless we see faith itself in ourselves, when that faith
is in us; because faith even in absent things is present, and faith in
things which are without us is within, and faith in things which are
not seen is itself seen, and itself none the less comes into the hearts
of men in time; and if any cease to be faithful and become unbelievers,
then it perishes from them. And sometimes faith is accommodated even to
falsehoods; for we sometimes so speak as to say, I put faith in him,
and he deceived me. And this kind of faith, if indeed it too is to be
called faith, perishes from the heart without blame, when truth is
found and expels it. But faith in things that are true, passes, as one
should wish it to pass, into the things themselves. For we must not say
that faith perishes, when those things which were believed are seen.
For is it indeed still to be called faith, when faith, according to the
definition in the Epistle to the Hebrews, is the evidence of things not
seen? [794]
4. In the words which follow next, "The same came for a witness, to
bear witness of the Light, that all men through him might believe;" the
action, as we have said, is one done in time. For to bear witness even
to that which is eternal, as is that light that is intelligible, is a
thing done in time. And of this it was that John came to bear witness
who "was not that Light, but was sent to bear witness of that Light."
For he adds "That was the true Light that lighteth every man that
cometh into the world. He was in the world, and the world was made by
Him, and the world knew Him not. He came unto His own, and His own
received Him not." Now they who know the Latin language, understand all
these words, from those things which they know: and of these, some have
become known to us through the senses of the body, as man, as the world
itself, of which the greatness is so evident to our sight; as again the
sounds of the words themselves, for hearing also is a sense of the
body; and some through the reason of the mind, as that which is said,
"And His own received Him not;" for this means, that they did not
believe in Him; and what belief is, we do not know by any sense of the
body, but by the reason of the mind. We have learned, too, not the
sounds, but the meanings of the words themselves, partly through the
sense of the body, partly through the reason of the mind. Nor have we
now heard those words for the first time, but they are words we had
heard before. And we were retaining in our memory as things known, and
we here recognized, not only the words themselves, but also what they
meant. For when the bisyllabic word mundus is uttered, then something
that is certainly corporeal, for it is a sound, has become known
through the body, that is, through the ear. But that which it means
also, has become known through the body, that is, through the eyes of
the flesh. For so far as the world is known to us at all, it is known
through sight. But the quadri-syllabic word crediderunt reaches us, so
far as its sound, since that is a corporeal thing, through the ear of
the flesh; but its meaning is discoverable by no sense of the body, but
by the reason of the mind. For unless we knew through the mind what the
word crediderunt meant, we should not understand what they did not do,
of whom it is said, "And His own received Him not." The sound then of
the word rings upon the ears of the body from without, and reaches the
sense which is called hearing. The species also of man is both known to
us in ourselves, and is presented to the senses of the body from
without, in other men; to the eyes, when it is seen; to the ears, when
it is heard; to the touch, when it is held and touched; and it has,
too, its image in our memory, incorporeal indeed, but like the body.
Lastly, the wonderful beauty of the world itself is at hand from
without, both to our gaze, and to that sense which is called touch, if
we come in contact with any of it: and this also has its image within
in our memory, to which we revert, when we think of it either in the
enclosure of a room, or again in darkness. But we have already
sufficiently spoken in the eleventh book of these images of corporeal
things; incorporeal indeed, yet having the likeness of bodies, and
belonging to the life of the outer man. But we are treating now of the
inner man, and of his knowledge, namely, that knowledge which is of
things temporal and changeable; into the purpose and scope of which,
when anything is assumed, even of things belonging to the outer man, it
must be assumed for this end, that something may thence be taught which
may help rational knowledge. And hence the rational use of those things
which we have in common with irrational animals belongs to the inner
man; neither can it rightly be said that this is common to us with the
irrational animals.
__________________________________________________________________
[792] John i. 1-14
[793] Ps. xiv. 1
[794] Heb. xi. 1
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--Faith a Thing of the Heart, Not of the Body; How It is
Common and One and the Same in All Believers. The Faith of Believers is
One, No Otherwise than the Will of Those Who Will is One.
5. But faith, of which we are compelled, by reason of the arrangement
of our subject, to dispute somewhat more at length in this book: faith
I say, which they who have are called the faithful, and they who have
not, unbelievers, as were those who did not receive the Son of God
coming to His own; although it is wrought in us by hearing, yet does
not belong to that sense of the body which is called hearing, since it
is not a sound; nor to the eyes of this our flesh, since it is neither
color nor bodily form; nor to that which is called touch, since it has
nothing of bulk; nor to any sense of the body at all, since it is a
thing of the heart, not of the body; nor is it without apart from us,
but deeply seated within us; nor does any man see it in another, but
each one in himself. Lastly, it is a thing that can both be feigned by
pretence, and be thought to be in him in whom it is not. Therefore
every one sees his own faith in himself; but does not see, but
believes, that it is in another; and believes this the more firmly, the
more he knows the fruits of it, which faith is wont to work by love.
[795] And therefore this faith is common to all of whom the evangelist
subjoins, "But as many as received Him, to them gave He power to become
the sons of God, even to them that believe on His name: which were
born, not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of
man, but of God;" common I say, not as any form of a bodily object is
common, as regards sight, to the eyes of all to whom it is present, for
in some way the gaze of all that behold it is informed by the same one
form; but as the human countenance can be said to be common to all men;
for this is so said that yet each certainly has his own. We say
certainly with perfect truth, that the faith of believers is impressed
from one doctrine upon the heart of each several person who believes
the same thing. But that which is believed is a different thing from
the faith by which it is believed. For the former is in things which
are said either to be, or to have been or to be about to be; but the
latter is in the mind of the believer, and is visible to him only whose
it is; although not indeed itself but a faith like it, is also in
others. For it is not one in number, but in kind; yet on account of the
likeness, and the absence of all difference, we rather call it one than
many. For when, too, we see two men exceedingly alike, we wonder, and
say that both have one countenance. It is therefore more easily said
that the souls were many,--a several soul, of course, for each several
person--of whom we read in the Acts of the Apostles, that they were of
one soul, [796] --than it is, where the apostle speaks of "one faith,"
[797] for any one to venture to say that there are as many faiths as
there are faithful. And yet He who says, "O woman, great is thy faith;"
[798] and to another, "O thou of little faith, wherefore didst thou
doubt?" [799] intimates that each has his own faith. But the like faith
of believers is said to be one, in the same way as a like will of those
who will is said to be one; since in the case also of those who have
the same will, the will of each is visible to himself, but that of the
other is not visible, although he wills the same thing; and if it
intimate itself by any signs, it is believed rather than seen. But each
being conscious of his own mind certainly does not believe, but
manifestly sees outright, that this is his own will.
__________________________________________________________________
[795] Gal. v. 6
[796] Acts iv. 32
[797] Eph. iv. 5
[798] Matt. xv. 28
[799] Matt. xiv. 31
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--Some Desires Being the Same in All, are Known to Each. The
Poet Ennius.
6. There is, indeed, so closely conspiring a harmony in the same nature
living and using reason, that although one knows not what the other
wills, yet there are some wills of all which are also known to each;
and although each man does not know what any other one man wills, yet
in some things he may know what all will. And hence comes that story of
the comic actor's witty joke, who promised that he would say in the
theatre, in some other play, what all had in their minds, and what all
willed; and when a still greater crowd had come together on the day
appointed, with great expectation, all being in suspense and silent, is
affirmed to have said: You will to buy cheap, and sell dear. And mean
actor though he was, yet all in his words recognized what themselves
were conscious of, and applauded him with wonderful goodwill, for
saying before the eyes of all what was confessedly true, yet what no
one looked for. And why was so great expectation raised by his
promising that he would say what was the will of all, unless because no
man knows the wills of other men? But did not he know that will? Is
there any one who does not know it? Yet why, unless because there are
some things which not unfitly each conjectures from himself to be in
others, through sympathy or agreement either in vice or virtue? But it
is one thing to see one's own will; another to conjecture, however
certainly, what is another's. For, in human affairs, I am as certain
that Rome was built as that Constantinople was, although I have seen
Rome with my eyes, but know nothing of the other city, except what I
have believed on the testimony of others. And truly that comic actor
believed it to be common to all to will to buy cheap and sell dear,
either by observing himself or by making experiment also of others. But
since such a will is in truth a fault, every one can attain the counter
virtue, or run into the mischief of some other fault which is contrary
to it, whereby to resist and conquer it. For I myself know a case where
a manuscript was offered to a man for purchase, who perceived that the
vendor was ignorant of its value, and was therefore asking something
very small, and who thereupon gave him, though not expecting it, the
just price, which was much more. Suppose even the case of a man
possessed with wickedness so great as to sell cheap what his parents
left to him, and to buy dear, in order to waste it on his own lusts?
Such wanton extravagance, I fancy, is not incredible; and if such men
are sought, they may be found, or even fall in one's way although not
sought; who, by a wickedness more than that of the theatre, make a mock
of the theatrical proposition or declaration, by buying dishonor at a
great price, while selling lands at a small one. We have heard, too, of
persons that, for the sake of distribution, have bought corn at a
higher price, and sold it to their fellow-citizens at a lower one. And
note also what the old poet Ennius has said: that "all mortals wish
themselves to be praised;" wherein, doubtless, he conjectured what was
in others, both by himself, and by those whom he knew by experience;
and so seems to have declared what it is that all men will. Lastly, if
that comic actor himself, too, had said, You all will to be praised, no
one of you wills to be abused; he would have seemed in like manner to
have expressed what all will. Yet there are some who hate their own
faults, and do not desire to be praised by others for that for which
they are displeased with themselves; and who thank the kindness of
those who rebuke them, when the purpose of that rebuke is their own
amendment. But if he had said, You all will to be blessed, you do not
will to be wretched; he would have said something which there is no one
that would not recognize in his own will. For whatever else a man may
will secretly, he does not withdraw from that will, which is well known
to all men, and well known to be in all men.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--The Will to Possess Blessedness is One in All, But the
Variety of Wills is Very Great Concerning that Blessedness Itself.
7. It is wonderful, however, since the will to obtain and retain
blessedness is one in all, whence comes, on the other hand, such a
variety and diversity of wills concerning that blessedness itself; not
that any one is unwilling to have it, but that all do not know it. For
if all knew it, it would not be thought by some to be in goodness of
mind; by others, in pleasure of body; by others, in both; and by some
in one thing, by others in another. For as men find special delight in
this thing or that, so have they placed in it their idea of a blessed
life. How, then, do all love so warmly what not all know? Who can love
what he does not know?--a subject which I have already discussed in the
preceding books. [800] Why, therefore, is blessedness loved by all,
when it is not known by all? Is it perhaps that all know what it is
itself, but all do not know where it is to be found, and that the
dispute arises from this?--as if, forsooth, the business was about some
place in this world, where every one ought to will to live who wills to
live blessedly; and as if the question where blessedness is were not
implied in the question what it is. For certainly, if it is in the
pleasure of the body, he is blessed who enjoys the pleasure of the
body; if in goodness of mind, he has it who enjoys this; if in both, he
who enjoys both. When, therefore, one says, to live blessedly is to
enjoy the pleasure of the body; but another, to live blessedly is to
enjoy goodness of mind; is it not, that either both know, or both do
not know, what a blessed life is? How, then, do both love it, if no one
can love what he does not know? Or is that perhaps false which we have
assumed to be most true and most certain, viz. that all men will to
live blessedly? For if to live blessedly is, for argument's sake, to
live according to goodness of mind, how does he will to live blessedly
who does not will this? Should we not say more truly, That man does not
will to live blessedly, because he does not wish to live according to
goodness, which alone is to live blessedly? Therefore all men do not
will to live blessedly; on the contrary, few wish it; if to live
blessedly is nothing else but to live according to goodness of mind,
which many do not will to do. Shall we, then, hold that to be false of
which the Academic Cicero himself did not doubt (although Academics
doubt every thing), who, when he wanted in the dialogue Hortensius to
find some certain thing, of which no one doubted, from which to start
his argument, says, We certainly all will to be blessed? Far be it from
me to say this is false. But what then? Are we to say that, although
there is no other way of living blessedly than living according to
goodness of mind, yet even he who does not will this, wills to live
blessedly? This, indeed, seems too absurd. For it is much as if we
should say, Even he who does not will to live blessedly, wills to live
blessedly. Who could listen to, who could endure, such a contradiction?
And yet necessity thrusts us into this strait, if it is both true that
all will to live blessedly, and yet all do not will to live in that way
in which alone one can live blessedly.
__________________________________________________________________
[800] Bks. viii. c. 4, etc., x. c. 1.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--Of the Same Thing.
8. Or is, perhaps, the deliverance from our difficulties to be found in
this, that, since we have said that every one places his idea of a
blessed life in that which has most pleased him, as pleasure pleased
Epicurus, and goodness Zeno, and something else pleased other people,
we say that to live blessedly is nothing else but to live according to
one's own pleasure: so that it is not false that all will to live
blessedly, because all will that which pleases each? For if this, too,
had been proclaimed to the people in the theatre, all would have found
it in their own wills. But when Cicero, too, had propounded this in
opposition to himself, he so refuted it as to make them blush who
thought so. For he says: "But, behold! people who are not indeed
philosophers, but who yet are prompt to dispute, say that all are
blessed, whoever live as they will;" which is what we mean by, as
pleases each. But by and by he has subjoined: "But this is indeed
false. For to will what is not fitting, is itself most miserable;
neither is it so miserable not to obtain what one wills, as to will to
obtain what one ought not." Most excellently and altogether most truly
does he speak. For who can be so blind in his mind, so alienated from
all light of decency, and wrapped up in the darkness of indecency, as
to call him blessed, because he lives as he will, who lives wickedly
and disgracefully; and with no one restraining him, no one punishing,
and no one daring even to blame him, nay more, too, with most people
praising him, since, as divine Scripture says, "The wicked is praised
in his heart's desire: and he who works iniquity is blessed," [801]
gratifies all his most criminal and flagitious desires; when,
doubtless, although even so he would be wretched, yet he would be less
wretched, if he could have had nothing of those things which he had
wrongly willed? For every one is made wretched by a wicked will also,
even though it stop short with will but more wretched by the power by
which the longing of a wicked will is fulfilled. And, therefore, since
it is true that all men will to be blessed, and that they seek for this
one thing with the most ardent love, and on account of this seek
everything which they do seek; nor can any one love that of which he
does not know at all what or of what sort it is, nor can be ignorant
what that is which he knows that he wills; it follows that all know a
blessed life. But all that are blessed have what they will, although
not all who have what they will are forewith blessed. But they are
forewith wretched, who either have not what they will, or have that
which they do not rightly will. Therefore he only is a blessed man, who
both has all things which he wills, and wills nothing ill.
__________________________________________________________________
[801] Ps. x. 3
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--Why, When All Will to Be Blessed, that is Rather Chosen by
Which One Withdraws from Being So.
9. Since, then, a blessed life consists of these two things, and is
known to all, and dear to all; what can we think to be the cause why,
when they cannot have both, men choose, out of these two, to have all
things that they will, rather than to will all things well, even
although they do not have them? Is it the depravity itself of the human
race, in such wise that, while they are not unaware that neither is he
blessed who has not what he wills, nor he who has what he wills
wrongly, but he who both has whatsoever good things he wills, and wills
no evil ones, yet, when both are not granted of those two things in
which the blessed life consists, that is rather chosen by which one is
withdrawn the more from a blessed life (since he certainly is further
from it who obtains things which he wickedly desired, than he who only
does not obtain the things which he desired); whereas the good will
ought rather to be chosen, and to be preferred, even if it do not
obtain the things which it seeks? For he comes near to being a blessed
man, who wills well whatsoever he wills, and wills things, which when
he obtains, he will be blessed. And certainly not bad things, but good,
make men blessed, when they do so make them. And of good things he
already has something, and that, too, a something not to be lightly
esteemed,--namely, the very good will itself; who longs to rejoice in
those good things of which human nature is capable, and not in the
performance or the attainment of any evil; and who follows diligently,
and attains as much as he can, with a prudent, temperate, courageous,
and right mind, such good things as are possible in the present
miserable life; so as to be good even in evils, and when all evils have
been put an end to, and all good things fulfilled, then to be blessed.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--Faith is Necessary, that Man May at Some Time Be Blessed,
Which He Will Only Attain in the Future Life. The Blessedness of Proud
Philosophers Ridiculous and Pitiable.
10. And on this account, faith, by which men believe in God, is above
all things necessary in this mortal life, most full as it is of errors
and hardships. For there are no good things whatever, and above all,
not those by which any one is made good, or those by which he will
become blessed, of which any other source can be found whence they come
to man, and are added to man, unless it be from God. But when he who is
good and faithful in these miseries shall have come from this life to
the blessed life, then will truly come to pass what now is absolutely
impossible,--namely, that a man may live as he will. [802] For he will
not will to live badly in the midst of that felicity, nor will he will
anything that will be wanting, nor will there be wanting anything which
he shall have willed. Whatever shall be loved, will be present; nor
will that be longed for, which shall not be present. Everything which
will be there will be good, and the supreme God will be the supreme
good and will be present for those to enjoy who love Him; and what
altogether is most blessed, it will be certain that it will be so
forever. But now, indeed, philosophers have made for themselves,
according to the pleasure of each, their own ideals of a blessed life;
that they might be able, as it were by their own power, to do that,
which by the common conditions of mortals they were not able to
do,--namely, to live as they would. For they felt that no one could be
blessed otherwise than by having what he would, and by suffering
nothing which he would not. And who would not will, that the life
whatsoever it be, with which he is delighted, and which he therefore
calls blessed, were so in his own power, that he could have it
continually? And yet who is in this condition? Who wills to suffer
troubles in order that he may endure them manfully, although he both
wills and is able to endure them if he does suffer them? Who would will
to live in torments, even although he is able to live laudably by
holding fast to righteousness in the midst of them through patience?
They who have endured these evils, either in wishing to have or in
fearing to lose what they loved, whether wickedly or laudably, have
thought of them as transitory. For many have stretched boldly through
transitory evils to good things which will last. And these, doubtless,
are blessed through hope, even while actually suffering such transitory
evils, through which they arrive at good things which will not be
transitory. But he who is blessed through hope is not yet blessed: for
he expects, through patience, a blessedness which he does not yet
grasp. Whereas he, on the other hand, who is tormented without any such
hope, without any such reward, let him use as much endurance as he
pleases, is not truly blessed, but bravely miserable. For he is not on
that account not miserable, because he would be more so if he also bore
misery impatiently. Further, even if he does not suffer those things
which he would not will to suffer in his own body, not even then is he
to be esteemed blessed, inasmuch as he does not live as he wills. For
to omit other things, which, while the body remains unhurt, belong to
those annoyances of the mind, without which we should will to live, and
which are innumerable; he would will, at any rate, if he were able, so
to have his body safe and sound, and so to suffer no inconveniences
from it, as to have it within his own control, or even to have it with
an imperishableness of the body itself; and because he does not possess
this, and hangs in doubt about it, he certainly does not live as he
wills. For although he may be ready from fortitude to accept, and bear
with an equal mind, whatever adversities may happen to him, yet he had
rather they should not happen, and prevents them if he is able; and he
is in such way ready for both alternatives, that, as much as is in him,
he wishes for the one and shuns the other; and if he have fallen into
that which he shuns, he therefore bears it willingly, because that
could not happen which he willed. He bears it, therefore, in order that
he may not be crushed; but he would not willingly be even burdened.
How, then, does he live as he wills? Is it because he is willingly
strong to bear what he would not will to be put upon him? Then he only
wills what he can, because he cannot have what he wills. And here is
the sum-total of the blessedness of proud mortals, I know not whether
to be laughed at, or not rather to be pitied, who boast that they live
as they will, because they willingly bear patiently what they are
unwilling should happen to them. For this, they say, is like Terence's
wise saying,--
"Since that cannot be which you will, will that which thou canst."
[803]
That this is aptly said, who denies? But it is advice given to the
miserable man, that he may not be more miserable. And it is not rightly
or truly said to the blessed man, such as all wish themselves to be,
That cannot be which you will. For if he is blessed, whatever he wills
can be; since he does not will that which cannot be. But such a life is
not for this mortal state, neither will it come to pass unless when
immortality also shall come to pass. And if this could not be given at
all to man, blessedness too would be sought in vain, since it cannot be
without immortality.
__________________________________________________________________
[802] [The prophet Nathan enunciates the same truth, in his words to
David, "Go do all that is in thine heart; for the Lord is with thee." 2
Sam. vii. 3.--W.G.T.S.]
[803] Andreia, Act ii. Scene i, v. 5, 6.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--Blessedness Cannot Exist Without Immortality.
11. As, therefore, all men will to be blessed, certainly, if they will
truly, they will also to be immortal; for otherwise they could not be
blessed. And further, if questioned also concerning immortality, as
before concerning blessedness, all reply that they will it. But
blessedness of what quality soever, such as is not so, but rather is so
called, is sought, nay indeed is feigned in this life, whilst
immortality is despaired of, without which true blessedness cannot be.
Since he lives blessedly, as we have already said before, and have
sufficiently proved and concluded, who lives as he wills, and wills
nothing wrongly. But no one wrongly wills immortality, if human nature
is by God's gift capable of it; and if it is not capable of it, it is
not capable of blessedness. For, that a man may live blessedly, he must
needs live. And if life quits him by his dying, how can a blessed life
remain with him? And when it quits him, without doubt it either quits
him unwilling, or willing, or neither. If unwilling, how is the life
blessed which is so within his will as not to be within his power? And
whereas no one is blessed who wills something that he does not have,
how much less is he blessed who is quitted against his will, not by
honor, nor by possessions, nor by any other thing, but by the blessed
life itself, since he will have no life at all? And hence, although no
feeling is left for his life to be thereby miserable (for the blessed
life quits him, because life altogether quits him), yet he is wretched
as long as he feels, because he knows that against his will that is
being destroyed for the sake of which he loves all else, and which he
loves beyond all else. A life therefore cannot both be blessed, and yet
quit a man against his will, since no one becomes blessed against his
will; and hence how much more does it make a man miserable by quitting
him against his will, when it would make him miserable if he had it
against his will! But if it quit him with his will, even so how was
that a blessed life, which he who had it willed should perish? It
remains then for them to say, that neither of these is in the mind of
the blessed man; that is, that he is neither unwilling nor willing to
be quitted by a blessed life, when through death life quits him
altogether; for that he stands firm with an even heart, prepared alike
for either alternative. But neither is that a blessed life which is
such as to be unworthy of his love whom it makes blessed. For how is
that a blessed life which the blessed man does not love? Or how is that
loved, of which it is received indifferently, whether it is to flourish
or to perish? Unless perhaps the virtues, which we love in this way on
account of blessedness alone, venture to persuade us that we do not
love blessedness itself. Yet if they did this, we should certainly
leave off loving the virtues themselves, when we do not love that on
account of which alone we loved them. And further, how will that
opinion be true, which has been so tried, and sifted, and thoroughly
strained, and is so certain, viz. that all men will to be blessed, if
they themselves who are already blessed neither will nor do not will to
be blessed? Or if they will it, as truth proclaims, as nature
constrains, in which indeed the supremely good and unchangeably blessed
Creator has implanted that will: if, I say, they will to be blessed who
are blessed, certainly they do not will to be not blessed. But if they
do not will not to be blessed, without doubt they do not will to be
annihilated and perish in regard to their blessedness. But they cannot
be blessed except they are alive; therefore they do not will so to
perish in regard to their life. Therefore, whoever are either truly
blessed or desire to be so, will to be immortal. But he does not live
blessedly who has not that which he wills. Therefore it follows that in
no way can life be truly blessed unless it be eternal.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--We Say that Future Blessedness is Truly Eternal, Not
Through Human Reasonings, But by the Help of Faith. The Immortality of
Blessedness Becomes Credible from the Incarnation of the Son of God.
12. Whether human nature can receive this, which yet it confesses to be
desirable, is no small question. But if faith be present, which is in
those to whom Jesus has given power to become the sons of God, then
there is no question. Assuredly, of those who endeavor to discover it
from human reasonings, scarcely a few, and they endued with great
abilities, and abounding in leisure, and learned with the most subtle
learning, have been able to attain to the investigation of the
immortality of the soul alone. And even for the soul they have not
found a blessed life that is stable, that is, true; since they have
said that it returns to the miseries of this life even after
blessedness. And they among them who are ashamed of this opinion, and
have thought that the purified soul is to be placed in eternal
happiness without a body, hold such opinions concerning the past
eternity of the world, as to confute this opinion of theirs concerning
the soul; a thing which here it is too long to demonstrate; but it has
been, as I think, sufficiently explained by us in the twelfth book of
the City of God. [804] But that faith promises, not by human reasoning,
but by divine authority, that the whole man, who certainly consists of
soul and body, shall be immortal, and on this account truly blessed.
And so, when it had been said in the Gospel, that Jesus has given
"power to become the sons of God to them who received Him;" and what it
is to have received Him had been shortly explained by saying, "To them
that believe on His name;" and it was further added in what way they
are to become sons of God, viz., "Which were born not of blood, nor of
the will of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God;"--lest that
infirmity of men which we all see and bear should despair of attaining
so great excellence, it is added in the same place, "And the Word was
made flesh, and dwelt among us;" [805] that, on the contrary, men might
be convinced of that which seemed incredible. For if He who is by
nature the Son of God was made the Son of man through mercy for the
sake of the sons of men,--for this is what is meant by "The Word was
made flesh, and dwelt among us" men,--how much more credible is it that
the sons of men by nature should be made the sons of God by the grace
of God, and should dwell in God, in whom alone and from whom alone the
blessed can be made partakers of that immortality; of which that we
might be convinced, the Son of God was made partaker of our mortality?
__________________________________________________________________
[804] C. 20.
[805] John i. 12-14
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--There Was No Other More Suitable Way of Freeing Man from
the Misery of Mortality Than The Incarnation of the Word. The Merits
Which are Called Ours are the Gifts of God.
13. Those then who say, What, had God no other way by which He might
free men from the misery of this mortality, that He should will the
only-begotten Son, God co-eternal with Himself, to become man, by
putting on a human soul and flesh, and being made mortal to endure
death?--these, I say, it is not enough so to refute, as to assert that
that mode by which God deigns to free us through the Mediator of God
and men, the man Christ Jesus, is good and suitable to the dignity of
God; but we must show also, not indeed that no other mode was possible
to God, to whose power all things are equally subject, but that there
neither was nor need have been any other mode more appropriate for
curing our misery. For what was so necessary for the building up of our
hope, and for the freeing the minds of mortals cast down by the
condition of mortality itself, from despair of immortality, than that
it should be demonstrated to us at how great a price God rated us, and
how greatly He loved us? But what is more manifest and evident in this
so great proof hereof, than that the Son of God, unchangeably good,
remaining what He was in Himself, and receiving from us and for us what
He was not, apart from any loss of His own nature, and deigning to
enter into the fellowship of ours, should first, without any evil
desert of His own, bear our evils; and so with unobligated munificence
should bestow His own gifts upon us, who now believe how much God loves
us, and who now hope that of which we used to despair, without any good
deserts of our own, nay, with our evil deserts too going before?
14. Since those also which are called our deserts, are His gifts. For,
that faith may work by love, [806] "the love of God is shed abroad in
our hearts by the Holy Ghost which is given unto us." [807] And He was
then given, when Jesus was glorified by the resurrection. For then He
promised that He Himself would send Him, and He sent Him; [808] because
then, as it was written and foretold of Him, "He ascended up on high,
He led captivity captive, and gave gifts unto men." [809] These gifts
constitute our deserts, by which we arrive at the chief good of an
immortal blessedness. "But God," says the apostle, "commendeth His love
towards as, in that, while we were yet sinners, Christ died for us.
Much more, then, being now justified by His blood, we shall be saved
from wrath through Him." To this he goes on to add, "For if, when we
were enemies, we were reconciled to God by the death of His Son; much
more, being reconciled, we shall be saved by His life." Those whom he
first calls sinners he afterwards calls the enemies of God; and those
whom he first speaks of as justified by His blood, he afterwards speaks
of as reconciled by the death of the Son of God; and those whom he
speaks of first as saved from wrath through Him, he afterwards speaks
of as saved by His life. We were not, therefore, before that grace
merely anyhow sinners, but in such sins that we were enemies of God.
But the same apostle calls us above several times by two appellations,
viz. sinners and enemies of God,--one as if the most mild, the other
plainly the most harsh,--saying, "For if when we were yet weak, in due
time Christ died for the ungodly." [810] Those whom he called weak, the
same he called ungodly. Weakness seems something slight; but sometimes
it is such as to be called impiety. Yet except it were weakness, it
would not need a physician, who is in the Hebrew Jesus, in the Greek
Soter, but in our speech Saviour. And this word the Latin language had
not previously, but could have seeing that it could have it when it
wanted it. And this foregoing sentence of the apostle, where he says,
"For when we were yet weak, in due time He died for the ungodly,"
coheres with those two following sentences; in the one of which he
spoke of sinners, in the other of enemies of God, as though he referred
each severally to each, viz. sinners to the weak, the enemies of God to
the ungodly.
__________________________________________________________________
[806] Gal. v. 5
[807] Rom. v. 4, 5
[808] John xx. 22, vii. 39, and xv. 26
[809] Eph. iv. 8 and Ps. lxviii. 18
[810] Rom. v. 6-10
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 11.--A Difficulty, How We are Justitified in the Blood of the
Son of God.
15. But what is meant by "justified in His blood?" What power is there
in this blood, I beseech you, that they who believe should be justified
in it? And what is meant by "being reconciled by the death of His Son?"
Was it indeed so, that when God the Father was wroth with us, He saw
the death of His Son for us, and was appeased towards us? Was then His
Son already so far appeased towards us, that He even deigned to die for
us; while the Father was still so far wroth, that except His Son died
for us, He would not be appeased? And what, then, is that which the
same teacher of the Gentiles himself says in another place: "What shall
we then say to these things? If God be for us, who can be against us?
He that spared not His own Son, but delivered Him up for us all; how
has He not with Him also freely given us all things?" [811] Pray,
unless the Father had been already appeased, would He have delivered up
His own Son, not sparing Him for us? Does not this opinion seem to be
as it were contrary to that? In the one, the Son dies for us, and the
Father is reconciled to us by His death; in the other, as though the
Father first loved us, He Himself on our account does not spare the
Son, He Himself for us delivers Him up to death. But I see that the
Father loved us also before, not only before the Son died for us, but
before He created the world; the apostle himself being witness, who
says, "According as He hath chosen us in Him before the foundation of
the world." [812] Nor was the Son delivered up for us as it were
unwillingly, the Father Himself not sparing Him; for it is said also
concerning Him, "Who loved me, and delivered up Himself for me." [813]
Therefore together both the Father and the Son, and the Spirit of both,
work all things equally and harmoniously; yet we are justified in the
blood of Christ, and we are reconciled to God by the death of His Son.
And I will explain, as I shall be able, here also, how this was done,
as much as may seem sufficient.
__________________________________________________________________
[811] Rom. viii. 31, 32
[812] Eph. i. 4
[813] Gal. ii. 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 12.--All, on Account of the Sin of Adam, Were Delivered into
the Power of the Devil.
16. By the justice of God in some sense, the human race was delivered
into the power of the devil; the sin of the first man passing over
originally into all of both sexes in their birth through conjugal
union, and the debt of our first parents binding their whole posterity.
This delivering up is first signified in Genesis, where, when it had
been said to the serpent, "Dust shalt thou eat," it was said to the
man, "Dust thou art, and unto dust thou shall return." [814] In the
words, "Unto dust shalt thou return," the death of the body is
fore-announced, because he would not have experienced that either, if
he had continued to the end upright as he was made; but in that it is
said to him whilst still living, "Dust thou art," it is shown that the
whole man was changed for the worse. For "Dust thou art" is much the
same as, "My spirit shall not always remain in these men, for that they
also are flesh." [815] Therefore it was at that time shown, that he was
delivered to him, in that it had been said to him, "Dust shall thou
eat." But the apostle declares this more clearly, where he says: "And
you who were dead in trespasses and sins, wherein in time past ye
walked according to the course of this world, according to the prince
of the power of the air, the spirit that now worketh in the children of
unfaithfulness; among whom we also had our conversation in times past,
in the lusts of our flesh, fulfilling the desires of the flesh and of
the mind; and were by nature the children of wrath, even as others."
[816] The "children of unfaithfulness" are the unbelievers; and who is
not this before he becomes a believer? And therefore all men are
originally under the prince of the power of the air, "who worketh in
the children of unfaithfulness." And that which I have expressed by
"originally" is the same that the apostle expresses when he speaks of
themselves who "by nature" were as others; viz. by nature as it has
been depraved by sin, not as it was created upright from the beginning.
But the way in which man was thus delivered into the power of the
devil, ought not to be so understood as if God did this, or commanded
it to be done; but that He only permitted it, yet that justly. For when
He abandoned the sinner, the author of the sin immediately entered. Yet
God did not certainly so abandon His own creature as not to show
Himself to him as God creating and quickening, and among penal evils
bestowing also many good things upon the evil. For He hath not in anger
shut up His tender mercies. [817] Nor did He dismiss man from the law
of His own power, when He permitted him to be in the power of the
devil; since even the devil himself is not separated from the power of
the Omnipotent, as neither from His goodness. For whence do even the
evil angels subsist in whatever manner of life they have, except
through Him who quickens all things? If, therefore, the commission of
sins through the just anger of God subjected man to the devil,
doubtless the remission of sins through the merciful reconciliation of
God rescues man from the devil.
__________________________________________________________________
[814] Gen. iii. 14-19
[815] Gen. vi. 3. "Strive with man," A.V.
[816] Eph. ii. 1-3
[817] Ps. lxxvii. 9
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 13.--Man Was to Be Rescued from the Power of the Devil, Not by
Power, But by Righteousness.
17. But the devil was to be overcome, not by the power of God, but by
His righteousness. For what is more powerful than the Omnipotent? Or
what creature is there of which the power can be compared to the power
of the Creator? But since the devil, by the fault of his own
perversity, was made a lover of power, and a forsaker and assailant of
righteousness,--for thus also men imitate him so much the more in
proportion as they set their hearts on power, to the neglect or even
hatred of righteousness, and as they either rejoice in the attainment
of power, or are inflamed by the lust of it,--it pleased God, that in
order to the rescuing of man from the grasp of the devil, the devil
should be conquered, not by power, but by righteousness; and that so
also men, imitating Christ, should seek to conquer the devil by
righteousness, not by power. Not that power is to be shunned as as
though it were something evil; but the order must be preserved, whereby
righteousness is before it. For how great can be the power of mortals?
Therefore let mortals cleave to righteousness; power will be given to
immortals. And compared to this, the power, how great soever, of those
men who are called powerful on earth, is found to be ridiculous
weakness, and a pitfall is dug there for the sinner, where the wicked
seem to be most powerful. And the righteous man says in his song,
"Blessed is the man whom Thou chasteneth, O Lord, and teachest him out
of Thy law: that Thou mayest give him rest from the days of adversity,
until the pit be digged for the wicked. For the Lord will not cast off
His people, neither will He forsake His inheritance, until
righteousness return unto judgment, and all who follow it are upright
in heart." [818] At this present time, then, in which the might of the
people of God is delayed, "the Lord will not cast off His people,
neither will He forsake His inheritance," how bitter and unworthy
things soever it may suffer in its humility and weakness; "until the
righteousness," which the weakness of the pious now possesses, "shall
return to judgment," that is, shall receive the power of judging; which
is preserved in the end for the righteous when power in its due order
shall have followed after righteousness going before. For power joined
to righteousness, or righteousness added to power, constitutes a
judicial authority. But righteousness belongs to a good will; whence it
was said by the angels when Christ was born: "Glory to God in the
highest, and on earth peace to men of good will." [819] But power ought
to follow righteousness, not to go before it; and accordingly it is
placed in "second," that is, prosperous fortune; and this is called
"second," [820] from "following." For whereas two things make a man
blessed, as we have argued above, to will well, and to be able to do
what one wills, people ought not to be so perverse, as has been noted
in the same discussion, as that a man should choose from the two things
which make him blessed, the being able to do what he wills, and should
neglect to will what he ought; whereas he ought first to have a good
will, but great power afterwards. Further, a good will must be purged
from vices, by which if a man is overcome, he is in such wise overcome
as that he wills evil; and then how will his will be still good? It is
to be wished, then, that power may now be given, but power against
vices, to conquer which men do not wish to be powerful, while they wish
to be so in order to conquer men; and why is this, unless that, being
in truth conquered, they feignedly conquer, and are conquerors not in
truth, but in opinion? Let a man will to be prudent, will to be strong,
will to be temperate, will to be just; and that he may be able to have
these things truly, let him certainly desire power, and seek to be
powerful in himself, and (strange though it be) against himself for
himself. But all the other things which he wills rightly, and yet is
not able to have, as, for instance, immortality and true and full
felicity, let him not cease to long for, and let him patiently expect.
__________________________________________________________________
[818] Ps. xciv. 12-15
[819] Luke ii. 14
[820] Res secundoe
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 14.--The Unobligated Death of Christ Has Freed Those Who Were
Liable to Death.
18. What, then, is the righteousness by which the devil was conquered?
What, except the righteousness of Jesus Christ? And how was he
conquered? Because, when he found in Him nothing worthy of death, yet
he slew Him. And certainly it is just, that we whom he held as debtors,
should be dismissed free by believing in Him whom he slew without any
debt. In this way it is that we are said to be justified in the blood
of Christ. [821] For so that innocent blood was shed for the remission
of our sins. Whence He calls Himself in the Psalms, "Free among the
dead." [822] For he only that is dead is free from the debt of death.
Hence also in another psalm He says, "Then I restored that which I
seized not;" [823] meaning sin by the thing seized, because sin is laid
hold of against what is lawful. Whence also He says, by the mouth of
His own Flesh, as is read in the Gospel: "For the prince of this world
cometh, and hath nothing in me," that is, no sin; but "that the world
may know," He says, "that I do the commandment of the Father; arise,
let us go hence." [824] And hence He proceeds to His passion, that He
might pay for us debtors that which He Himself did not owe. Would then
the devil be conquered by this most just right, if Christ had willed to
deal with him by power, not by righteousness? But He held back what was
possible to Him, in order that He might first do what was fitting. And
hence it was necessary that He should be both man and God. For unless
He had been man, He could not have been slain; unless He had been God,
men would not have believed that He would not do what He could, but
that He could not do what He would; nor should we have thought that
righteousness was preferred by Him to power, but that He lacked power.
But now He suffered for us things belonging to man, because He was man;
but if He had been unwilling, it would have been in His power to not so
to suffer, because He was also God. And righteousness was therefore
made more acceptable in humility, because so great power as was in His
Divinity, if He had been unwilling, would have been able not to suffer
humility; and thus by Him who died, being thus powerful, both
righteousness was commended, and power promised, to us, weak mortals.
For He did one of these two things by dying, the other by rising again.
For what is more righteous, than to come even to the death of the cross
for righteousness? And what more powerful, than to rise from the dead,
and to ascend into heaven with that very flesh in which He was slain?
And therefore He conquered the devil first by righteousness, and
afterwards by power: namely, by righteousness, because He had no sin,
and was slain by him most unjustly; but by power, because having been
dead He lived again, never afterwards to die. [825] But He would have
conquered the devil by power, even though He could not have been slain
by him: although it belongs to a greater power to conquer death itself
also by rising again, than to avoid it by living. But the reason is
really a different one, why we are justified in the blood of Christ,
when we are rescued from the power of the devil through the remission
of sins: it pertains to this, that the devil is conquered by Christ by
righteousness, not by power. For Christ was crucified, not through
immortal power, but through the weakness which He took upon Him in
mortal flesh; of which weakness nevertheless the apostle says, "that
the weakness of God is stronger than men." [826]
__________________________________________________________________
[821] Rom. v. 9
[822] Ps. lxxxviii. 5
[823] Ps. lxix. 4
[824] John xiv. 30-31
[825] Rom. vi. 9
[826] 1 Cor. i. 25
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 15.--Of the Same Subject.
19. It is not then difficult to see that the devil was conquered, when
he who was slain by Him rose again. It is something more, and more
profound of comprehension, to see that the devil was conquered when he
thought himself to have conquered, that is, when Christ was slain. For
then that blood, since it was His who had no sin at all, was poured out
for the remission of our sins; that, because the devil deservedly held
those whom, as guilty of sin, he bound by the condition of death, he
might deservedly loose them through Him, whom, as guilty of no sin, the
punishment of death undeservedly affected. The strong man was conquered
by this righteousness, and bound with this chain, that his vessels
might be spoiled, [827] which with himself and his angels had been
vessels of wrath while with him, and might be turned into vessels of
mercy. [828] For the Apostle Paul tells us, that these words of our
Lord Jesus Christ Himself were spoken from heaven to him when he was
first called. For among the other things which he heard, he speaks also
of this as said to him thus: "For I have appeared unto thee for this
purpose, to make thee a minister and a witness both of these things
which thou hast seen from me, and of those things in the which I will
appear unto thee; delivering thee from the people, and from the
Gentiles, unto whom now I send thee, to open the eyes of the blind, and
to turn them from darkness [to light], and from the power of Satan unto
God, that they may receive forgiveness of sins, and inheritance among
them which are sanctified, and faith that is in me." [829] And hence
the same apostle also, exhorting believers to the giving of thanks to
God the Father, says: "Who hath delivered us from the power of darkness
and hath translated us into the kingdom of His dear Son: in whom we
have redemption, even the forgiveness of sins." [830] In this
redemption, the blood of Christ was given, as it were, as a price for
us, by accepting which the devil was not enriched, but bound: [831]
that we might be loosened from his bonds, and that he might not with
himself involve in the meshes of sins, and so deliver to the
destruction of the second and eternal death, [832] any one of those
whom Christ, free from all debt, had redeemed by pouring out His own
blood unindebtedly; but that they who belong to the grace of Christ,
foreknown, and predestinated, and elected before the foundation of the
world [833] should only so far die as Christ Himself died for them,
i.e. only by the death of the flesh, not of the spirit.
__________________________________________________________________
[827] Mark iii. 27
[828] Rom. ix. 22, 23
[829] Acts xxvi. 16-18
[830] Col. i. 13, 14
[831] [In this representation of Augustin, the relics of that
misconception which appears in the earlier soteriology, paricularly
that of Irenaeus, are seen: namely, that the death of Christ ransoms
the sinner from Satan. Certain texts which teach that redemption
delivers from the captivity to sin and Satan, were interpreted to teach
deliverance from the claims of Satan. Augustin's soteriology is more
free from this error than that of Irenaeus, yet not entirely free from
it. The doctrine of justification did not obtain its most consistent
and complete statement in the Patristic church.--W.G.T.S.]
[832] Apoc. xxi. 8
[833] 1 Pet. i. 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 16.--The Remains of Death and the Evil Things of the World Turn
to Good for the Elect. How Fitly the Death of Christ Was Chosen, that
We Might Be Justified in His Blood. What the Anger of God is.
20. For although the death, too, of the flesh itself came originally
from the sin of the first man, yet the good use of it has made most
glorious martyrs. And so not only that death itself, bat all the evils
of this world, and the griefs and labors of men, although they come
from the deserts of sins, and especially of original sin, whence life
itself too became bound by the bond of death, yet have fitly remained,
even when sin is forgiven; that man might have wherewith to contend for
truth, and whereby the goodness of the faithful might be exercised; in
order that the new man through the new covenant might be made ready
among the evils of this world for a new world, by bearing wisely the
misery which this condemned life deserved, and by rejoicing soberly
because it will be finished, but expecting faithfully and patiently the
blessedness which the future life, being set free, will have for ever.
For the devil being cast forth from his dominion, and from the hearts
of the faithful, in the condemnation and faithlessness of whom he,
although himself also condemned, yet reigned, is only so far permitted
to be an adversary according to the condition of this mortality, as God
knows to be expedient for them: concerning which the sacred writings
speak through the mouth of the apostle: "God is faithful, who will not
suffer you to be tempted above that ye are able; but will with the
temptation also make a way to escape, that ye may be able to bear it."
[834] And those evils which the faithful endure piously, are of profit
either for the correction of sins, or for the exercising and proving of
righteousness, or to manifest the misery of this life, that the life
where will be that true and perpetual blessedness may be desired more
ardently, and sought out more earnestly. But it is on their account
that these evils are still kept in being, of whom the apostle says:
"For we know that all things work together for good to them that love
God, to them who are called to be holy according to His purpose. For
whom He did foreknow, He also did predestinate to be conformed to the
image of His Son, that He might be the first-born among many brethren.
Moreover, whom He did predestinate, them He also called; and whom He
called, them He also justified; and whom He justified, them He also
glorified." It is of these who are predestinated, that not one shall
perish with the devil; not one shall remain even to death under the
power of the devil. And then follows what I have already cited above:
[835] "What shall we then say to these things? If God be for us, who
can be against us? He that spared not His own Son, but delivered Him up
for us all; how has He not with Him also freely given us all things?"
[836]
21. Why then should the death of Christ not have come to pass? Nay,
rather, why should not that death itself have been chosen above all
else to be brought to pass, to the passing by of the other innumerable
ways which He who is omnipotent could have employed to free us; that
death, I say, wherein neither was anything diminished or changed from
His divinity, and so great benefit was conferred upon men, from the
humanity which He took upon Him, that a temporal death, which was not
due, was rendered by the eternal Son of God, who was also the Son of
man, whereby He might free them from an eternal death which was due?
The devil was holding fast our sins, and through them was fixing us
deservedly in death. He discharged them, who had none of His own, and
who was led by him to death undeservedly. That blood was of such price,
that he who even slew Christ for a time by a death which was not due,
can as his due detain no one, who has put on Christ, in the eternal
death which was due. Therefore "God commendeth His love towards us, in
that, while we were yet sinners, Christ died for us. Much more then,
being now justified in His blood, we shall be saved from wrath through
Him." Justified, he says, in His blood,--justified plainly, in that we
are freed from all sin; and freed from all sin, because the Son of God,
who knew no sin, was slain for us. Therefore "we shall be saved from
wrath through Him;" from the wrath certainly of God, which is nothing
else but just retribution. For the wrath of God is not, as is that of
man, a perturbation of the mind; but it is the wrath of Him to whom
Holy Scripture says in another place, "But Thou, O Lord, mastering Thy
power, judgest with calmness." [837] If, therefore, the just
retribution of God has received such a name, what can be the right
understanding also of the reconciliation of God, unless that then such
wrath comes to an end? Neither were we enemies to God, except as sins
are enemies to righteousness; which being forgiven, such enmities come
to an end, and they whom He Himself justifies are reconciled to the
Just One. And yet certainly He loved them even while still enemies,
since "He spared not His own Son, but delivered Him up for us all,"
when we were still enemies. And therefore the apostle has rightly
added: "For if, when we were enemies, we were reconciled to God by the
death of His Son," by which that remission of sins was made, "much
more, being reconciled, we shall be saved in His life." Saved in life,
who were reconciled by death. For who can doubt that He will give His
life for His friends, for whom, when enemies, He gave His death? "And
not only so," he says, "but we also joy in God, through our Lord Jesus
Christ, by whom we have now received the atonement." "Not only," he
says, "shall we be saved," but "we also joy;" and not in ourselves, but
"in God;" nor through ourselves, "but through our Lord Jesus Christ, by
whom we have now received the atonement," as we have argued above. Then
the apostle adds, "Wherefore, as by one man sin entered into the world,
and death by sin; and so death passed upon all men, in whom all have
sinned;" [838] etc.: in which he disputes at some length concerning the
two men; the one the first Adam, through whose sin and death we, his
descendants, are bound by, as it were, hereditary evils; and the other
the second Adam, who is not only man, but also God, by whose payment
for us of what He owed not, we are freed from the debts both of our
first father and of ourselves. Further, since on account of that one
the devil held all who were begotten through his corrupted carnal
concupiscence, it is just that on account of this one he should loose
all who are regenerated through His immaculate spiritual grace.
__________________________________________________________________
[834] 1 Cor. x. 13
[835] C. 2.
[836] Rom. viii. 28-32
[837] Wisd. xii. 18
[838] Rom. v. 8, 12
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 17.--Other Advantages of the Incarnation.
22. There are many other things also in the incarnation of Christ,
displeasing as it is to the proud, that are to be observed and thought
of advantageously. And one of them is, that it has been demonstrated to
man what place he has in the things which God has created; since human
nature could so be joined to God, that one person could be made of two
substances, and thereby indeed of three--God, soul, and flesh: so that
those proud malignant spirits, who interpose themselves as mediators to
deceive, although as if to help, do not therefore dare to place
themselves above man because they have not flesh; and chiefly because
the Son of God deigned to die also in the same flesh, lest they,
because they seem to be immortal, should therefore succeed in getting
themselves worshipped as gods. Further, that the grace of God might be
commended to us in the man Christ without any precedent merits; because
not even He Himself obtained by any precedent merits that He should be
joined in such great unity with the true God, and should become the Son
of God, one Person with Him; but from the time when He began to be man,
from that time He is also God; whence it is said, "The Word was made
flesh." [839] Then, again, there is this, that the pride of man, which
is the chief hindrance against his cleaving to God, can be confuted and
healed through such great humility of God. Man learns also how far he
has gone away from God; and what it is worth to him as a pain to cure
him, when he returns through such a Mediator, who both as God assists
men by His divinity, and as man agrees with men by His weakness. For
what greater example of obedience could be given to us, who had
perished through disobedience, than God the Son obedient to God the
Father, even to the death of the cross? [840] Nay, wherein could the
reward of obedience itself be better shown, than in the flesh of so
great a Mediator, which rose again to eternal life? It belonged also to
the justice and goodness of the Creator, that the devil should be
conquered by the same rational creature which he rejoiced to have
conquered, and by one that came from that same race which, by the
corruption of its origin through one, he held altogether.
__________________________________________________________________
[839] John i. 14
[840] Phil. ii. 8
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 18.--Why the Son of God Took Man Upon Himself from the Race of
Adam, and from a Virgin.
23. For assuredly God could have taken upon Himself to be man, that in
that manhood He might be the Mediator between God and men, from some
other source, and not from the race of that Adam who bound the human
race by his sin; as He did not create him whom He first created, of the
race of some one else. Therefore He was able, either so, or in any
other mode that He would, to create yet one other, by whom the
conqueror of the first might be conquered. But God judged it better
both to take upon Him man through whom to conquer the enemy of the
human race, from the race itself that had been conquered; and yet to do
this of a virgin, whose conception, not flesh but spirit, not lust but
faith, preceded. [841] Nor did that concupiscence of the flesh
intervene, by which the rest of men, who derive original sin, are
propagated and conceived; but holy virginity became pregnant, not by
conjugal intercourse, but by faith,--lust being utterly absent,--so
that that which was born from the root of the first man might derive
only the origin of race, not also of guilt. For there was born, not a
nature corrupted by the contagion of transgression, but the one only
remedy of all such corruptions. There was born, I say, a Man having
nothing at all, and to have nothing at all, of sin; through whom they
were to be born again so as to be freed from sin, who could not be born
without sin. For although conjugal chastity makes a right use of the
carnal concupiscence which is in our members; yet it is liable to
motions not voluntary, by which it shows either that it could not have
existed at all in paradise before sin, or if it did, that it was not
then such as that sometimes it should resist the will. But now we feel
it to be such, that in opposition to the law of the mind, and even if
there is no question of begetting, it works in us the incitement of
sexual intercourse; and if in this men yield to it, then it is
satisfied by an act of sin; if they do not, then it is bridled by an
act of refusal: which two things who could doubt to have been alien
from paradise before sin? For neither did the chastity that then was do
anything indecorous, nor did the pleasure that then was suffer anything
unquiet. It was necessary, therefore, that this carnal concupiscence
should be entirely absent, when the offspring of the Virgin was
conceived; in whom the author of death was to find nothing worthy of
death, and yet was to slay Him in order that he might be conquered by
the death of the Author of life: the conqueror of the first Adam, who
held fast the human race, conquered by the second Adam, and losing the
Christian race, freed out of the human race from human guilt, through
Him who was not in the guilt, although He was of the race; that that
deceiver might be conquered by that race which he had conquered by
guilt. And this was so done, in order that man may not be lifted up,
but "that he that glorieth should glory in the Lord." [842] For he who
was conquered was only man; and he was therefore conquered, because he
lusted proudly to be a god. But He who conquered was both man and God;
and therefore He so conquered, being born of a virgin, because God in
humility did not, as He governs other saints, so govern that Man, but
bare Him [as a Son]. These so great gifts of God, and whatever else
there are, which it is too long for us now upon this subject both to
inquire and to discuss, could not exist unless the Word had been made
flesh.
__________________________________________________________________
[841] Luke i. 26-32
[842] 2 Cor. x. 17
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 19.--What in the Incarnate Word Belongs to Knowledge, What to
Wisdom.
24. And all these things which the Word made flesh did and bare for us
in time and place, belong, according to the distinction which we have
undertaken to demonstrate, to knowledge, not to wisdom. And as the Word
is without time and without place, it is co-eternal with the Father,
and in its wholeness everywhere; and if any one can, and as much as he
can, speak truly concerning this Word, then his discourse will pertain
to wisdom. And hence the Word made flesh, which is Christ Jesus, has
the treasures both of wisdom and of knowledge. For the apostle, writing
to the Colossians, says: "For I would that ye knew what great conflict
I have for you, and for them at Laodicea, and for as many as have not
seen my face in the flesh; that their hearts might be comforted, being
knit together in love, and unto all riches of the full assurance of
understanding, to the acknowledgment of the mystery of God which is
Christ Jesus: in whom are hid all the treasures of wisdom and
knowledge." [843] To what extent the apostle knew all those treasures,
how much of them he had penetrated, and in them to how great things he
had reached, who can know? Yet, for my part, according to that which is
written, "But the manifestation of the Spirit is given to every man to
profit withal; for to one is given by the Spirit the word of wisdom, to
another the word of knowledge by the same Spirit;" [844] if these two
are in such way to be distinguished from each other, that wisdom is to
be assigned to divine things, knowledge to human, I acknowledge both in
Christ, and so with me do all His faithful ones. And when I read, "The
Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us," I understand by the Word the
true Son of God, I acknowledge in the flesh the true Son of man, and
both together joined into one Person of God and man, by an ineffable
copiousness of grace. And on account of this, the apostle goes on to
say, "And we beheld His glory, the glory as of the Only-begotten of the
Father, full of grace and truth." [845] If we refer grace to knowledge,
and truth to wisdom, I think we shall not swerve from that distinction
between these two things which we have commended. For in those things
that have their origin in time, this is the highest grace, that man is
joined with God in unity of person; but in things eternal the highest
truth is rightly attributed to the Word of God. But that the same is
Himself the Only-begotten of the Father, full of grace and truth,--this
took place, in order that He Himself in things done for us in time
should be the same for whom we are cleansed by the same faith, that we
may contemplate Him steadfastly in things eternal. And those
distinguished philosophers of the heathen who have been able to
understand and discern the invisible things of God by those things
which are made, have yet, as is said of them, "held down the truth in
iniquity;" [846] because they philosophized without a Mediator, that
is, without the man Christ, whom they neither believed to be about to
come at the word of the prophets, nor to have come at that of the
apostles. For, placed as they were in these lowest things, they could
not but seek some media through which they might attain to those lofty
things which they had understood; and so they fell upon deceitful
spirits, through whom it came to pass, that "they changed the glory of
the incorruptible God into an image made like to corruptible man, and
to birds, and four-footed beasts, and creeping things." [847] For in
such forms also they set up or worshipped idols. Therefore Christ is
our knowledge, and the same Christ is also our wisdom. He Himself
implants in us faith concerning temporal things, He Himself shows forth
the truth concerning eternal things. Through Him we reach on to
Himself: we stretch through knowledge to wisdom; yet we do not withdraw
from one and the same Christ, "in whom are hidden all the treasures of
wisdom and of knowledge." But now we speak of knowledge, and will
hereafter speak of wisdom as much as He Himself shall grant. And let us
not so take these two things, as if it were not allowable to speak
either of the wisdom which is in human things, or of the knowledge
which is in divine. For after a laxer custom of speech, both can be
called wisdom, and both knowledge. Yet the apostle could not in any way
have written, "To one is given the word of wisdom, to another the word
of knowledge," except also these several things had been properly
called by the several names, of the distinction between which we are
now treating.
__________________________________________________________________
[843] Col. ii. 1-3
[844] 1 Cor. xii. 7, 8
[845] John i. 14
[846] Rom. i. 23; detinuerum.
[847] Rom. i. 18, 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 20.--What Has Been Treated of in This Book. How We Have Reached
by Steps to a Certain Trinity, Which is Found in Practical Knowledge
and True Faith.
25. Now, therefore, let us see what this prolix discourse has effected,
what it has gathered, whereto it has reached. It belongs to all men to
will to be blessed; yet all men have not faith, whereby the heart is
cleansed, and so blessedness is reached. And thus it comes to pass,
that by means of the faith which not all men will, we have to reach on
to the blessedness which every one wills. All see in their own heart
that they will to be blessed; and so great is the agreement of human
nature on this subject, that the man is not deceived who conjectures
this concerning another's mind, out of his own: in short, we know
ourselves that all will this. But many despair of being immortal,
although no otherwise can any one be that which all will, that is,
blessed. Yet they will also to be immortal if they could; but through
not believing that they can, they do not so live that they can.
Therefore faith is necessary, that we may attain blessedness in all the
good things of human nature, that is, of both soul and body. But that
same faith requires that this faith be limited in Christ, who rose in
the flesh from the dead, not to die any more; and that no one is freed
from the dominion of the devil, through the forgiveness of sins, save
by Him; and that in the abiding place of the devil, life must needs be
at once miserable and never-ending, which ought rather to be called
death than life. All which I have also argued, so far as space
permitted, in this book, while I have already said much on the subject
in the fourth book of this work as well; [848] but in that place for
one purpose, here for another,--namely, there, that I might show why
and how Christ was sent in the fullness of time by the Father, [849] on
account of those who say that He who sent and He who was sent cannot be
equal in nature; but here, in order to distinguish practical knowlege
from contemplative wisdom.
26. For we wished to ascend, as it were, by steps, and to seek in the
inner man, both in knowledge and in wisdom, a sort of trinity of its
own special kind, such as we sought before in the outer man; in order
that we may come, with a mind more practised in these lower things, to
the contemplation of that Trinity which is God, according to our little
measure, if indeed, we can even do this, at least in a riddle and as
through a glass. [850] If, then, any one have committed to memory the
words of this faith in their sounds alone, not knowing what they mean,
as they commonly who do not know Greek hold in memory Greek words, or
similarly Latin ones, or those of any other language of which they are
ignorant, has not he a sort of trinity in his mind? because, first,
those sounds of words are in his memory, even when he does not think
thereupon; and next, the mental vision (acies) of his act of
recollection is formed thence when he conceives of them; and next, the
will of him who remembers and thinks unites both. Yet we should by no
means say that the man in so doing busies himself with a trinity of the
interior man, but rather of the exterior; because he remembers, and
when he wills, contemplates as much as he wills, that alone which
belongs to the sense of the body, which is called hearing. Nor in such
an act of thought does he do anything else than deal with images of
corporeal things, that is, of sounds. But if he holds and recollects
what those words signify, now indeed something of the inner man is
brought into action; not yet, however, ought he to be said or thought
to live according to a trinity of the inner man, if he does not love
those things which are there declared, enjoined, promised. For it is
possible for him also to hold and conceive these things, supposing them
to be false, in order that he may endeavor to disprove them. Therefore
that will, which in this case unites those things which are held in the
memory with those things which are thence impressed on the mind's eye
in conception, completes, indeed, some kind of trinity, since itself is
a third added to two others; but the man does not live according to
this, when those things which are conceived are taken to be false, and
are not accepted. But when those things are believed to be true, and
those things which therein ought to be loved, are loved, then at last
the man does live according to a trinity of the inner man; for every
one lives according to that which he loves. But how can things be loved
which are not known, but only believed? This question has been already
treated of in former books; [851] and we found, that no one loves what
he is wholly ignorant of, but that when things not known are said to be
loved, they are loved from those things which are known. And now we so
conclude this book, that we admonish the just to live by faith, [852]
which faith worketh by love, [853] so that the virtues also themselves,
by which one lives prudently, boldly, temperately, and justly, be all
referred to the same faith; for not otherwise can they be true virtues.
And yet these in this life are not of so great worth, as that the
remission of sins, of some kind or other, is not sometimes necessary
here; and this remission comes not to pass, except through Him, who by
His own blood conquered the prince of sinners. Whatsoever ideas are in
the mind of the faithful man from this faith, and from such a life,
when they are contained in the memory, and are looked at by
recollection, and please the will, set forth a kind of trinity of its
own sort. [854] But the image of God, of which by His help we shall
afterwards speak, is not yet in that trinity; a thing which will then
be more apparent, when it shall have been shown where it is, which the
reader may expect in a succeeding book.
__________________________________________________________________
[848] Cc. 19-21.
[849] Gal. iv. 4
[850] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[851] Bk. viii. cc. 8 seqq., and Bk. x. c. 1, etc.
[852] Rom. i. 17
[853] Gal. v. 6
[854] [The ternary is this: 1. The idea of a truth or fact held in the
memory. 2. The contemplation of it as thus recollected. 3. The love of
it. This last is the "will" that "unites" the first two.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
Book XIV.
------------------------
The true wisdom of man is treated of; and it is shown that the image of
God, which man is in respect to his mind, is not placed properly in
transitory things, as in memory, understanding, and love, whether of
faith itself as existing in time, or even of the mind as busied with
itself, but in things that are permanent; and that this wisdom is then
perfected, when the mind is renewed in the knowledge of God, according
to the image of Him who created man after His own Image, and thus
attains to wisdom, wherein that which is contemplated is eternal.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--What the Wisdom is of Which We are Here to Treat. Whence
the Name of Philosopher Arose. What Has Been Already Said Concerning
the Distinction of Knowledge and Wisdom.
1. We must now discourse concerning wisdom; not the wisdom of God,
which without doubt is God, for His only-begotten Son is called the
wisdom of God; [855] but we will speak of the wisdom of man, yet of
true wisdom, which is according to God, and is His true and chief
worship, which is called in Greek by one term, theosebeia. And this
term, as we have already observed, when our own countrymen themselves
also wished to interpret it by a single term, was by them rendered
piety, whereas piety means more commonly what the Greeks call eusebeia.
But because theosebeia cannot be translated perfectly by any one word,
it is better translated by two, so as to render it rather by "the
worship of God." That this is the wisdom of man, as we have already
laid down in the twelfth book [856] of this work, is shown by the
authority of Holy Scripture, in the book of God's servant Job, where we
read that the Wisdom of God said to man, "Behold piety, that is wisdom;
and to depart from evil is knowledge;" [857] or, as some have
translated the Greek word epistemen, "learning," [858] which certainly
takes its name from learning, [859] whence also it may be called
knowledge. For everything is learned in order that it may be known.
Although the same word, indeed, [860] is employed in a different sense,
where any one suffers evils for his sins, that he may be corrected.
Whence is that in the Epistle to the Hebrews, "For what son is he to
whom the father giveth not discipline?" And this is still more apparent
in the same epistle: "Now no chastening [861] for the present seemeth
to be joyous, but grievous: nevertheless afterward it yieldeth the
peaceable fruit of righteousness unto them which are exercised
thereby." [862] Therefore God Himself is the chiefest wisdom; but the
worship of God is the wisdom of man, of which we now speak. For "the
wisdom of this world is foolishness with God." [863] It is in respect
to this wisdom, therefore, which is the worship of God, that Holy
Scripture says, "The multitude of the wise is the welfare of the
world." [864]
2. But if to dispute of wisdom belongs to wise men, what shall we do?
Shall we dare indeed to profess wisdom, lest it should be mere
impudence for ourselves to dispute about it? Shall we not be alarmed by
the example of Pythagoras?--who dared not profess to be a wise man, but
answered that he was a philosopher, i.e., a lover of wisdom; whence
arose the name, that became thenceforth so much the popular name, that
no matter how great the learning wherein any one excelled, either in
his own opinion or that of others, in things pertaining to wisdom, he
was still called nothing more than philosopher. Or was it for this
reason that no one, even of such as these, dared to profess himself a
wise man,--because they imagined that a wise man was one without sin?
But our Scriptures do not say this, which say, "Rebuke a wise man, and
he will love thee." [865] For doubtless he who thinks a man ought to be
rebuked, judges him to have sin. However, for my part, I dare not
profess myself a wise man even in this sense; it is enough for me to
assume, what they themselves cannot deny, that to dispute of wisdom
belongs also to the philosopher, i.e., the lover of wisdom. For they
have not given over so disputing who have professed to be lovers of
wisdom rather than wise men.
3. In disputing, then, about wisdom, they have defined it thus: Wisdom
is the knowledge of things human and divine. And hence, in the last
book, I have not withheld the admission, that the cognizance of both
subjects, whether divine or human, may be called both knowledge and
wisdom. [866] But according to the distinction made in the apostle's
words, "To one is given the word of wisdom, to another the word of
knowledge," [867] this definition is to be divided, so that the
knowledge of things divine shall be called wisdom, and that of things
human appropriate to itself the name of knowledge; and of the latter I
have treated in the thirteenth book, not indeed so as to attribute to
this knowledge everything whatever that can be known by man about
things human, wherein there is exceeding much of empty vanity and
mischievous curiosity, but only those things by which that most
wholesome faith, which leads to true blessedness, is begotten,
nourished, defended, strengthened; and in this knowledge most of the
faithful are not strong, however exceeding strong in the faith itself.
For it is one thing to know only what man ought to believe in order to
attain to a blessed life, which must needs be an eternal one; but
another to know in what way this belief itself may both help the pious,
and be defended against the impious, which last the apostle seems to
call by the special name of knowledge. And when I was speaking of this
knowledge before, my especial business was to commend faith, first
briefly distinguishing things eternal from things temporal, and there
discoursing of things temporal; but while deferring things eternal to
the present book, I showed also that faith respecting things eternal is
itself a thing temporal, and dwells in time in the hearts of believers,
and yet is necessary in order to attain the things eternal themselves.
[868] I argued also, that faith respecting the things temporal which He
that is eternal did and suffered for us as man, which manhood He bare
in time and carried on to things eternal, is profitable also for the
obtaining of things eternal; and that the virtues themselves, whereby
in this temporal and mortal life men live prudently, bravely,
temperately, and justly, are not true virtues, unless they are referred
to that same faith, temporal though it is, which leads on nevertheless
to things eternal.
__________________________________________________________________
[855] Ecclus. xxiv. 5. and 1 Cor. i. 24
[856] C. 14.
[857] Job xxviii. 28
[858] Disciplina, disco
[859] Disciplina, disco
[860] Disciplina
[861] Disciplina
[862] Heb. xii. 7, 11
[863] 1 Cor. iii. 19
[864] Wisd. vi. 26
[865] Prov. ix. 8
[866] Bk. xiii. cc. 1, 19.
[867] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[868] Bk. xiii. c. 7.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--There is a Kind of Trinity in the Holding, Contemplating,
and Loving of Faith Temporal, But One that Does Not Yet Attain to Being
Properly an Image of God.
4. Wherefore since, as it is written, "While we are in the body, we are
absent from the Lord; for we walk by faith, not by sight;" [869]
undoubtedly, so long as the just man lives by faith, [870] howsoever he
lives according to the inner man, although he aims at truth and reaches
on to things eternal by this same temporal faith, nevertheless in the
holding, contemplating, and loving this temporal faith, we have not yet
reached such a trinity as is to be called an image of God; lest that
should seem to be constituted in things temporal which ought to be so
in things eternal. For when the human mind sees its own faith, whereby
it believes what it does not see, it does not see a thing eternal. For
that will not always exist, which certainly will not then exist, when
this pilgrimage, whereby we are absent from God, in such way that we
must needs walk by faith, shall be ended, and that sight shall have
succeeded it whereby we shall see face to face; [871] just as now,
because we believe although we do not see, we shall deserve to see, and
shall rejoice at having been brought through faith to sight. For then
it will be no longer faith, by which that is believed which is not
seen; but sight, by which that is seen which is believed. And then,
therefore, although we remember this past mortal life, and call to mind
by recollection that we once believed what we did not see, yet that
faith will be reckoned among things past and done with, not among
things present and always continuing. And hence also that trinity which
now consists in the remembering, contemplating, and loving this same
faith while present and continuing, will then be found to be done with
and past, and not still enduring. And hence it is to be gathered, that
if that trinity is indeed an image of God, then this image itself would
have to be reckoned, not among things that exist always, but among
things transient.
__________________________________________________________________
[869] 2 Cor. v. 6, 7
[870] Rom. i. 17
[871] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--A Difficulty Removed, Which Lies in the Way of What Has
Just Been Said.
But far be it from us to think, that while the nature of the soul is
immortal, and from the first beginning of its creation thenceforth
never ceases to be, yet that that which is the best thing it has should
not endure for ever with its own immortality. Yet what is there in its
nature as created, better than that it is made after the image of its
Creator? [872] We must find then what may be fittingly called the image
of God, not in the holding, contemplating, and loving that faith which
will not exist always, but in that which will exist always.
5. Shall we then scrutinize somewhat more carefully and deeply whether
the case is really thus? For it may be said that this trinity does not
perish even when faith itself shall have passed away; because, as now
we both hold it by memory, and discern it by thought, and love it by
will; so then also, when we shall both hold in memory, and shall
recollect, that we once had it, and shall unite these two by the third,
namely will, the same trinity will still continue. Since, if it have
left in its passage as it were no trace in us, doubtless we shall not
have ought of it even in our memory, whereto to recur when recollecting
it as past, and by the third, viz. purpose, coupling both these, to
wit, what was in our memory though we were not thinking about it, and
what is formed thence by conception. But he who speaks thus, does not
perceive, that when we hold, see, and love in ourselves our present
faith, we are concerned with a different trinity as now existing, from
that trinity which will exist, when we shall contemplate by
recollection, not the faith itself, but as it were the imagined trace
of it laid up in the memory, and shall unite by the will, as by a
third, these two things, viz. that which was in the memory of him who
retains, and that which is impressed thence upon the vision of the mind
of him who recollects. And that we may understand this, let us take an
example from things corporeal, of which we have sufficiently spoken in
the eleventh book. [873] For as we ascend from lower to higher things,
or pass inward from outer to inner things, we first find a trinity in
the bodily object which is seen, and in the vision of the seer, which,
when he sees it, is informed thereby, and in the purpose of the will
which combines both. Let us assume a trinity like this, when the faith
which is now in ourselves is so established in our memory as the bodily
object we spoke of was in place, from which faith is formed the
conception in recollection, as from that bodily object was formed the
vision of the beholder; and to these two, to complete the trinity, will
is to be reckoned as a third, which connects and combines the faith
established in the memory, and a sort of effigy of that faith impressed
upon the vision of recollection; just as in that trinity of corporeal
vision, the form of the bodily object that is seen, and the
corresponding form wrought in the vision of the beholder, are combined
by the purpose of the will. Suppose, then, that this bodily object
which was beheld was dissolved and had perished, and that nothing at
all of it remained anywhere, to the vision of which the gaze might have
recourse; are we then to say, that because the image of the bodily
object thus now past and done with remains in the memory, whence to
form the conception in recollecting, and to have the two united by will
as a third, therefore it is the same trinity as that former one, when
the appearance of the bodily object posited in place was seen?
Certainly not, but altogether a different one: for, not to say that
that was from without, while this is from within; the former certainly
was produced by the appearance of a present bodily object, the latter
by the image of that object now past. So, too, in the case of which we
are now treating, to illustrate which we have thought good to adduce
this example, the faith which is even now in our mind, as that bodily
object was in place, while held, looked at, loved, produces a sort of
trinity; but that trinity will exist no more, when this faith in the
mind, like that bodily object in place, shall no longer exist. But that
which will then exist, when we shall remember it to have been, but not
now to be, in us, will doubtless be a different one. For that which now
is, is wrought by the thing itself, actually present and attached to
the mind of one who believes; but that which shall then be, will be
wrought by the imagination of a past thing left in the memory of one
who recollects.
__________________________________________________________________
[872] Gen. i. 27
[873] Cc. 2 sq.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--The Image of God is to Be Sought in the Immortality of the
Rational Soul. How a Trinity is Demonstrated in the Mind.
6. Therefore neither is that trinity an image of God, which is not now,
nor is that other an image of God, which then will not be; but we must
find in the soul of man, i.e., the rational or intellectual soul, that
image of the Creator which is immortally implanted in its immortality.
For as the immortality itself of the soul is spoken with a
qualification; since the soul too has its proper death, when it lacks a
blessed life, which is to be called the true life of the soul; but it
is therefore called immortal, because it never ceases to live with some
life or other, even when it is most miserable;--so, although reason or
intellect is at one time torpid in it, at another appears small, and at
another great, yet the human soul is never anything save rational or
intellectual; and hence, if it is made after the image of God in
respect to this, that it is able to use reason and intellect in order
to understand and behold God, then from the moment when that nature so
marvellous and so great began to be, whether this image be so worn out
as to be almost none at all, or whether it be obscure and defaced, or
bright and beautiful, certainly it always is. Further, too, pitying the
defaced condition of its dignity, divine Scripture tells us, that
"although man walks in an image, yet he disquieteth himself in vain; he
heapeth up riches, and cannot tell who shall gather them." [874] It
would not therefore attribute vanity to the image of God, unless it
perceived it to have been defaced. Yet it sufficiently shows that such
defacing does not extend to the taking away its being an image, by
saying, "Although man walks in an image." Wherefore in both ways that
sentence can be truly enunciated; in that, as it is said, "Although man
walketh in an image, yet he disquieteth himself in vain," so it may be
said, "Although man disquieteth himself in vain, yet he walketh in an
image." For although the nature of the soul is great, yet it can be
corrupted, because it is not the highest; and although it can be
corrupted, because it is not the highest, yet because it is capable and
can be partaker of the highest nature, it is a great nature. Let us
seek, then, in this image of God a certain trinity of a special kind,
with the aid of Him who Himself made us after His own image. For no
otherwise can we healthfully investigate this subject, or arrive at any
result according to the wisdom which is from Him. But if the reader
will either hold in remembrance and recollect what we have said of the
human soul or mind in former books, and especially in the tenth, or
will carefully re-peruse it in the passages wherein it is contained, he
will not require here any more lengthy discourse respecting the inquiry
into so great a thing.
7. We said, then, among other things in the tenth book, that the mind
of man knows itself. For the mind knows nothing so much as that which
is close to itself; and nothing is more close to the mind than itself.
We adduced also other evidences, as much as seemed sufficient, whereby
this might be most certainly proved.
__________________________________________________________________
[874] Ps. xxxix. 7
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--Whether the Mind of Infants Knows Itself.
What, then, is to be said of the mind of an infant, which is still so
small, and buried in such profound ignorance of things, that the mind
of a man which knows anything shrinks from the darkness of it? Is that
too to be believed to know itself; but that, as being too intent upon
those things which it has begun to perceive through the bodily senses,
with the greater delight in proportion to their novelty, it is not able
indeed to be ignorant of itself, but is also not able to think of
itself? Moreover, how intently it is bent upon sensible things that are
without it, may be conjectured from this one fact, that it is so greedy
of sensible light, that if any one through carelessness, or ignorance
of the possible consequences, place a light at nighttime where an
infant is lying down, on that side to which the eyes of the child so
lying down can be bent, but its neck cannot be turned, the gaze of that
child will be so fixed in that direction, that we have known some to
have come to squint by this means, in that the eyes retained that form
which habit in some way impressed upon them while tender and soft.
[875] In the case, too, of the other bodily senses, the souls of
infants, as far as their age permits, so narrow themselves as it were,
and are bent upon them, that they either vehemently detest or
vehemently desire that only which offends or allures through the flesh,
but do not think of their own inward self, nor can be made to do so by
admonition; because they do not yet know the signs that express
admonition, whereof words are the chief, of which as of other things
they are wholly ignorant. And that it is one thing not to know oneself,
another not to think of oneself, we have shown already in the same
book. [876]
8. But let us pass by the infantine age, since we cannot question it as
to what goes on within itself, while we have ourselves pretty well
forgotten it. Let it suffice only for us hence to be certain, that when
man has come to be able to think of the nature of his own mind, and to
find out what is the truth, he will find it nowhere else but in
himself. And he will find, not what he did not know, but that of which
he did not think. For what do we know, if we do not know what is in our
own mind; when we can know nothing at all of what we do know, unless by
the mind?
__________________________________________________________________
[875] [This occurred in the the case of Edward Irving. Oliphant's Life
of Irving.--W.G.T.S.]
[876] Bk. x. c. 5.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--How a Kind of Trinity Exists in the Mind Thinking of
Itself. What is the Part of Thought in This Trinity.
The function of thought, however, is so great, that not even the mind
itself can, so to say, place itself in its own sight, except when it
thinks of itself; and hence it is so far the case, that nothing is in
the sight of the mind, except that which is being thought of, that not
even the mind itself, whereby we think whatever we do think, can be in
its own sight otherwise than by thinking of itself. But in what way it
is not in its own sight when it is not thinking of itself, while it can
never be without itself, as though itself were one thing, and the sight
of itself another, it is not in my power to discover. For this is not
unreasonably said of the eye of the body; for the eye itself of the
body is fixed in its own proper place in the body, but its sight
extends to things external to itself, and reaches even to the stars.
And the eye is not in its own sight, since it does not look at itself,
unless by means of a mirror, as is said above; [877] a thing that
certainly does not happen when the mind places itself in its own sight
by thinking of itself. Does it then see one part of itself by means of
another part of itself, when it looks at itself in thought, as we look
at some of our members, which can be in our sight, with other also of
our members, viz. with our eyes? What can be said or thought more
absurd? For by what is the mind removed, except by itself? or where is
it placed so as to be in its own sight, except before itself? Therefore
it will not be there, where it was, when it was not in its own sight;
because it has been put down in one place, after being taken away from
another. But if it migrated in order to be beheld, where will it remain
in order to behold? Is it as it were doubled, so as to be in this and
in that place at the same time, viz. both where it can behold, and
where it can be beheld; that in itself it may be beholding, and before
itself beheld? If we ask the truth, it will tell us nothing of the sort
since it is but feigned images of bodily objects of which we conceive
when we conceive thus; and that the mind is not such, is very certain
to the few minds by which the truth on such a subject can be inquired.
It appears, therefore, that the beholding of the mind is something
pertaining to its nature, and is recalled to that nature when it
conceives of itself, not as if by moving through space, but by an
incorporeal conversion; but when it is not conceiving of itself, it
appears that it is not indeed in its own sight, nor is its own
perception formed from it, but yet that it knows itself as though it
were to itself a remembrance of itself. Like one who is skilled in many
branches of learning: the things which he knows are contained in his
memory, but nothing thereof is in the sight of his mind except that of
which he is conceiving; while all the rest are stored up in a kind of
secret knowledge, which is called memory. The trinity, then, which we
were setting forth, was constituted in this way: first, we placed in
the memory the object by which the perception of the percipient was
formed; next, the conformation, or as it were the image which is
impressed thereby; lastly, love or will as that which combines the two.
When the mind, then, beholds itself in conception, it understands and
cognizes itself; it begets, therefore, this its own understanding and
cognition. For an incorporeal thing is understood when it is beheld,
and is cognized when understood. Yet certainly the mind does not so
beget this knowledge of itself, when it beholds itself as understood by
conception, as though it had before been unknown to itself; but it was
known to itself, in the way in which things are known which are
contained in the memory, but of which one is not thinking; since we say
that a man knows letters even when he is thinking of something else,
and not of letters. And these two, the begetter and the begotten, are
coupled together by love, as by a third, which is nothing else than
will, seeking or holding fast the enjoyment of something. We held,
therefore, that a trinity of the mind is to be intimated also by these
three terms, memory, intelligence, will.
9. But since the mind, as we said near the end of the same tenth book,
always remembers itself, and always understands and loves itself,
although it does not always think of itself as distinguished from those
things which are not itself; we must inquire in what way understanding
(intellectus) belongs to conception, while the notion (notitia) of each
thing that is in the mind, even when one is not thinking of it, is said
to belong only to the memory. For if this is so, then the mind had not
these three things: viz. the remembrance, the understanding, and the
love of itself; but it only remembered itself, and afterwards, when it
began to think of itself, then it understood and loved itself.
__________________________________________________________________
[877] Bk. x. c. 3.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--The Thing is Made Plain by an Example. In What Way the
Matter is Handled in Order to Help the Reader.
Wherefore let us consider more carefully that example which we have
adduced, wherein it was shown that not knowing a thing is different
from not thinking [conceiving] of it; and that it may so happen that a
man knows something of which he is not thinking, when he is thinking of
something else, not of that. When any one, then, who is skilled in two
or more branches of knowledge is thinking of one of them, though he is
not thinking of the other or others, yet he knows them. But can we
rightly say, This musician certainly knows music, but he does not now
understand it, because he is not thinking of it; but he does now
understand geometry, for of that he is now thinking? Such an assertion,
as far as appears, is absurd. What, again, if we were to say, This
musician certainly knows music, but he does not now love it, while he
is not now thinking of it; but he does now love geometry, because of
that he is now thinking,--is not this similarly absurd? But we say
quite correctly, This person whom you perceive disputing about geometry
is also a perfect musician, for he both remembers music, and
understands, and loves it; but although he both knows and loves it, he
is not now thinking of it, since he is thinking of geometry, of which
he is disputing. And hence we are warned that we have a kind of
knowledge of certain things stored up in the recesses of the mind, and
that this, when it is thought of, as it were, steps forth in public,
and is placed as if openly in the sight of the mind; for then the mind
itself finds that it both remembers, and understands, and loves itself,
even although it was not thinking of itself, when it was thinking of
something else. But in the case of that of which we have not thought
for a long time, and cannot think of it unless reminded; that, if the
phrase is allowable, in some wonderful way I know not how, we do not
know that we know. In short, it is rightly said by him who reminds, to
him whom he reminds, You know this, but you do not know that you know
it; I will remind you, and you will find that you know what you had
thought you did not know. Books, too, lead to the same results, viz.
those that are written upon subjects which the reader under the
guidance of reason finds to be true; not those subjects which he
believes to be true on the faith of the narrator, as in the case of
history; but those which he himself also finds to be true, either of
himself, or in that truth itself which is the light of the mind. But he
who cannot contemplate these things, even when reminded, is too deeply
buried in the darkness of ignorance, through great blindness of heart
and too wonderfully needs divine help, to be able to attain to true
wisdom.
10. For this reason I have wished to adduce some kind of proof, be it
what it might, respecting the act of conceiving, such as might serve to
show in what way, out of the things contained in the memory, the mind's
eye is informed in recollecting, and some such thing is begotten, when
a man conceives, as was already in him when, before he conceived, he
remembered; because it is easier to distinguish things that take place
at successive times, and where the parent precedes the offspring by an
interval of time. For if we refer ourselves to the inner memory of the
mind by which it remembers itself, and to the inner understanding by
which it understands itself, and to the inner will by which it loves
itself, where these three always are together, and always have been
together since they began to be at all, whether they were being thought
of or not; the image of this trinity will indeed appear to pertain even
to the memory alone; but because in this case a word cannot be without
a thought (for we think all that we say, even if it be said by that
inner word which belongs to no separate language), this image is rather
to be discerned in these three things, viz. memory, intelligence, will.
And I mean now by intelligence that by which we understand in thought,
that is, when our thought is formed by the finding of those things,
which had been at hand to the memory but were not being thought of; and
I mean that will, or love, or preference which combines this offspring
and parent, and is in some way common to both. Hence it was that I
tried also, viz. in the eleventh book, to lead on the slowness of
readers by means of outward sensible things which are seen by the eyes
of the flesh; and that I then proceeded to enter with them upon that
power of the inner man whereby he reasons of things temporal, deferring
the consideration of that which dominates as the higher power, by which
he contemplates things eternal. And I discussed this in two books,
distinguishing the two in the twelfth, the one of them being higher and
the other lower, and that the lower ought to be subject to the higher;
and in the thirteenth I discussed, with what truth and brevity I could,
the office of the lower, in which the wholesome knowledge of things
human is contained, in order that we may so act in this temporal life
as to attain that which is eternal; since, indeed, I have cursorily
included in a single book a subject so manifold and copious, and one so
well known by the many and great arguments of many and great men, while
manifesting that a trinity exists also in it, but not yet one that can
be called an image of God.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--The Trinity Which is the Image of God is Now to Be Sought
in the Noblest Part of the Mind.
11. But we have come now to that argument in which we have undertaken
to consider the noblest part of the human mind, by which it knows or
can know God, in order that we may find in it the image of God. For
although the human mind is not of the same nature with God, yet the
image of that nature than which none is better, is to be sought and
found in us, in that than which our nature also has nothing better. But
the mind must first be considered as it is in itself, before it becomes
partaker of God; and His image must be found in it. For, as we have
said, although worn out and defaced by losing the participation of God,
yet the image of God still remains. [878] For it is His image in this
very point, that it is capable of Him, and can be partaker of Him;
which so great good is only made possible by its being His image. Well,
then, the mind remembers, understands, loves itself; if we discern
this, we discern a trinity, not yet indeed God, but now at last an
image of God. The memory does not receive from without that which it is
to hold; nor does the understanding find without that which it is to
regard, as the eye of the body does; nor has will joined these two from
without, as it joins the form of the bodily object and that which is
thence wrought in the vision of the beholder; nor has conception, in
being turned to it, found an image of a thing seen without, which has
been somehow seized and laid up in the memory, whence the intuition of
him that recollects has been formed, will as a third joining the two:
as we showed to take place in those trinities which were discovered in
things corporeal, or which were somehow drawn within from bodily
objects by the bodily sense; of all which we have discoursed in the
eleventh book. [879] Nor, again, as it took place, or appeared to do
so, when we went on further to discuss that knowledge, which had its
place now in the workings of the inner man, and which was to be
distinguished from wisdom; of which knowledge the subject-matter was,
as it were, adventitious to the mind, and either was brought thither by
historical information,--as deeds and words, which are performed in
time and pass away, or which again are established in the nature of
things in their own times and places,--or arises in the man himself not
being there before, whether on the information of others, or by his own
thinking,--as faith, which we commended at length in the thirteenth
book, or as the virtues, by which, if they are true, one so lives well
in this mortality as to live blessedly in that immortality which God
promises. These and other things of the kind have their proper order in
time, and in that order we discerned more easily a trinity of memory,
sight, and love. For some of such things anticipate the knowledge of
learners. For they are knowable also before they are known, and beget
in the learner a knowledge of themselves. And they either exist in
their own proper places, or have happened in time past; although things
that are past do not themselves exist, but only certain signs of them
as past, the sight or hearing of which makes it known that they have
been and have passed away. And these signs are either situate in the
places themselves, as e.g. monuments of the dead or the like; or exist
in written books worthy of credit, as is all history that is of weight
and approved authority; or are in the minds of those who already know
them; since what is already known to them is knowable certainly to
others also, whose knowledge it has anticipated, and who are able to
know it on the information of those who do know it. And all these
things, when they are learned, produce a certain kind of trinity, viz.
by their own proper species, which was knowable also before it was
known, and by the application to this of the knowledge of the learner,
which then begins to exist when he learns them, and by will as a third
which combines both; and when they are known, yet another trinity is
produced in the recollecting of them, and this now inwardly in the mind
itself, from those images which, when they were learned, were impressed
upon the memory, and from the informing of the thought when the look
has been turned upon these by recollection, and from the will which as
a third combines these two. But those things which arise in the mind,
not having been there before, as faith and other things of that kind,
although they appear to be adventitious, since they are implanted by
teaching, yet are not situate without or transacted without, as are
those things which are believed; but began to be altogether within in
the mind itself. For faith is not that which is believed, but that by
which it is believed; and the former is believed, the latter seen.
Nevertheless, because it began to be in the mind, which was a mind also
before these things began to be in it, it seems to be somewhat
adventitious, and will be reckoned among things past, when sight shall
have succeeded, and itself shall have ceased to be. And it makes now by
its presence, retained as it is, and beheld, and loved, a different
trinity from that which it will then make by means of some trace of
itself, which in passing it will have left in the memory: as has been
already said above.
__________________________________________________________________
[878] Supra, c. iv.
[879] Cc. 2 sq.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--Whether Justice and the Other Virtues Cease to Exist in the
Future Life.
12. There is, however, some question raised, whether the virtues
likewise by which one lives well in this present mortality, seeing that
they themselves begin also to be in the mind, which was a mind none the
less when it existed before without them, cease also to exist at that
time when they have brought us to things eternal. For some have thought
that they will cease, and in the case of three--prudence, fortitude,
temperance--such an assertion seems to have something in it; but
justice is immortal, and will rather then be made perfect in us than
cease to be. Yet Tullius, the great author of eloquence, when arguing
in the dialogue Hortensius, says of all four: "If we were allowed, when
we migrated from this life, to live forever in the islands of the
blessed, as fables tell, what need were there of eloquence when there
would be no trials, or what need, indeed, of the very virtues
themselves? For we should not need fortitude when nothing of either
toil or danger was proposed to us; nor justice, when there was nothing
of anybody else's to be coveted; nor temperance, to govern lasts that
would not exist; nor, indeed, should we need prudence, when there was
no choice offered between good and evil. We should be blessed,
therefore, solely by learning and knowing nature, by which alone also
the life of the gods is praiseworthy. And hence we may perceive that
everything else is a matter of necessity, but this is one of free
choice." This great orator, then, when proclaiming the excellence of
philosophy, going over again all that he had learned from philosophers,
and excellently and pleasantly explaining it, has affirmed all four
virtues to be necessary in this life only, which we see to be full of
troubles and mistakes; but not one of them when we shall have migrated
from this life, if we are permitted to live there where is a blessed
life; but that blessed souls are blessed only in learning and knowing,
i.e. in the contemplation of nature, than which nothing is better and
more lovable. It is that nature which created and appointed all other
natures. And if it belongs to justice to be subject to the government
of this nature then justice is certainly immortal; nor will it cease to
be in that blessedness, but will be such and so great that it cannot be
more perfect or greater. Perhaps, too, the other three
virtues--prudence although no longer with any risk of error, and
fortitude without the vexation of bearing evils, and temperance without
the thwarting of lust--will exist in that blessedness: so that it may
be the part of prudence to prefer or equal no good thing to God; and of
fortitude, to cleave to Him most steadfastly; and of temperance, to be
pleased by no harmful defect. But that which justice is now concerned
with in helping the wretched, and prudence in guarding against
treachery, and fortitude in bearing troubles patiently, and temperance
in controlling evil pleasures, will not exist there, where there will
be no evil at all. And hence those acts of the virtues which are
necessary to this mortal life, like the faith to which they are to be
referred, will be reckoned among things past; and they make now a
different trinity, whilst we hold, look at, and love them as present,
from that which they will then make, when we shall discover them not to
be, but to have been, by certain traces of them which they will have
left in passing in the memory; since then, too, there will be a
trinity, when that trace, be it of what sort it may, shall be retained
in the memory, and truly recognized, and then these two be joined by
will as a third.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--How a Trinity is Produced by the Mind Remembering,
Understanding, and Loving Itself.
13. In the knowledge of all these temporal things which we have
mentioned, there are some knowable things which precede the acquisition
of the knowledge of them by an interval of time, as in the case of
those sensible objects which were already real before they were known,
or of all those things that are learned through history; but some
things begin to be at the same time with the knowing of them,--just as,
if any visible object, which did not exist before at all, were to rise
up before our eyes, certainly it does not precede our knowing it; or if
there be any sound made where there is some one to hear, no doubt the
sound and the hearing that sound begin and end simultaneously. Yet none
the less, whether preceding in time or beginning to exist
simultaneously, knowable things generate knowledge, and are not
generated by knowledge. But when knowledge has come to pass, whenever
the things known and laid up in memory are reviewed by recollection,
who does not see that the retaining them in the memory is prior in time
to the sight of them in recollection, and to the uniting of the two
things by will as a third? In the mind, howver, it is not so. For the
mind is not adventitious to itself, as though there came to itself
already existing, that same self not already existing, from somewhere
else, or did not indeed come from somewhere else, but that in the mind
itself already existing, there was born that same mind not already
existing; just as faith, which before was not, arises in the mind which
already was. Nor does the mind see itself, as it were, set up in its
own memory by recollection subsequently to the knowing of itself, as
though it was not there before it knew itself; whereas,doubtless, from
the time when it began to be, it has never ceased to remember, to
understand, and to love itself, as we have already shown. And hence,
when it is turned to itself by thought, there arises a trinity, in
which now at length we can discern also a word; since it is formed from
thought itself, will uniting both. Here, then, we may recognize, more
than we have hitherto done, the image of which we are in search.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 11.--Whether Memory is Also of Things Present.
14. But some one will say, That is not memory by which the mind, which
is ever present to itself, is affirmed to remember itself; for memory
is of things past, not of things present. For there are some, and among
them Cicero, who, in treating of the virtues, have divided prudence
into these three--memory, understanding, forethought: to wit, assigning
memory to things past, understanding to things present, forethought to
things future; which last is certain only in the case of those who are
prescient of the future; and this is no gift of men, unless it be
granted from above, as to the prophets. And hence the book of Wisdom,
speaking of men, "The thoughts of mortals," it says, "are fearful, and
our forethought uncertain." [880] But memory of things past, and
understanding of things present, are certain: certain, I mean,
respecting things incorporeal, which are present; for things corporeal
are present to the sight of the corporeal eyes. But let any one who
denies that there is any memory of things present, attend to the
language used even in profane literature, where exactness of words was
more looked for than truth of things. "Nor did Ulysses suffer such
things, nor did the Ithacan forget himself in so great a peril." [881]
For when Virgil said that Ulysses did not forget himself, what else did
he mean, except that he remembered himself? And since he was present to
himself, he could not possibly remember himself, unless memory
pertained to things present. And, therefore, as that is called memory
in things past which makes it possible to recall and remember them; so
in a thing present, as the mind is to itself, that is not unreasonably
to be called memory, which makes the mind at hand to itself, so that it
can be understood by its own thought, and then both be joined together
by love of itself.
__________________________________________________________________
[880] Wisd. ix. 14
[881] AEneid, iii. 628, 629.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 12.--The Trinity in the Mind is the Image of God, in that It
Remembers, Understands, and Loves God, Which to Do is Wisdom.
15. This trinity, then, of the mind is not therefore the image of God,
because the mind remembers itself, and understands and loves itself;
but because it can also remember, understand, and love Him by whom it
was made. And in so doing it is made wise itself. But if it does not do
so, even when it remembers, understands, and loves itself, then it is
foolish. Let it then remember its God, after whose image it is made,
and let it understand and love Him. Or to say the same thing more
briefly, let it worship God, who is not made, by whom because itself
was made, it is capable and can be partaker of Him; wherefore it is
written, "Behold, the worship of God, that is wisdom." [882] And then
it will be wise, not by its own light, but by participation of that
supreme Light; and wherein it is eternal, therein shall reign in
blessedness. For this wisdom of man is so called, in that it is also of
God. For then it is true wisdom; for if it is human, it is vain. Yet
not so of God, as is that wherewith God is wise. For He is not wise by
partaking of Himself, as the mind is by partaking of God. But as we
call it the righteousness of God, not only when we speak of that by
which He Himself is righteous, but also of that which He gives to man
when He justifies the ungodly, which latter righteousness the apostle
commending, says of some, that "not knowing the righteousness of God
and going about to establish their own righteousness,they are not
subject to the righteousness of God;" [883] so also it may be said of
some, that not knowing the wisdom of God and going about to establish
their own wisdom, they are not subject to the wisdom of God.
16. There is, then, a nature not made, which made all other natures,
great and small, and is without doubt more excellent than those which
it has made, and therefore also than that of which we are speaking;
viz. than the rational and intellectual nature, which is the mind of
man, made after the image of Him who made it. And that nature, more
excellent than the rest, is God. And indeed "He is not far from every
one of us," as the apostle says, who adds, "For in Him we live, and are
moved, and have our being." [884] And if this were said in respect to
the body, it might be understood even of this corporeal world; for in
it too in respect to the body, we live, and are moved, and have our
being. And therefore it ought to be taken in a more excellent way, and
one that is spiritual, not visible, in respect to the mind, which is
made after His image. For what is there that is not in Him, of whom it
is divinely written, "For of Him, and through Him, and in Him, are all
things"? [885] If, then, all things are in Him, in whom can any
possibly live that do live, or be moved that are moved, except in Him
in whom they are? Yet all are not with Him in that way in which it is
said to Him, "I am continually with Thee." [886] Nor is He with all in
that way in which we say, The Lord be with you. And so it is the
especial wretchedness of man not to be with Him, without whom he cannot
be. For, beyond a doubt, he is not without Him in whom he is; and yet
if he does not remember, and understand, and love Him, he is not with
Him. And when any one absolutely forgets a thing, certainly it is
impossible even to remind him of it.
__________________________________________________________________
[882] Job xxviii. 28
[883] Rom. x. 3
[884] Acts xvii. 27, 28
[885] Rom. xi. 36
[886] Ps. lxxiii. 23
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 13.--How Any One Can Forget and Remember God.
17. Let us take an instance for the purpose from visible things.
Somebody whom you do not recognize, says to you, You know me; and in
order to remind you, tells you where, when, and how he became known to
you; and if, after the mention of every sign by which you might be
recalled to remembrance, you still do not recognize him, then you have
so come to forget, as that the whole of that knowledge is altogether
blotted out of your mind; and nothing else remains, but that you take
his word for it who tells you that you once knew him; or do not even do
that, if you do not think the person who speaks to you to be worthy of
credit. But if you do remember him, then no doubt you return to your
own memory, and find in it that which had not been altogether blotted
out by forgetfulness. Let us return to that which led us to adduce this
instance from the intercourse of men. Among other things, the 9th Psalm
says, "The wicked shall be turned into hell, and all the nations. that
forget God;" [887] and again the 22d Psalm, "All the ends of the world
shall be reminded, and turned unto the Lord." [888] These nations,
then, will not so have forgotten God as to be unable to remember Him
when reminded of Him; yet, by forgetting God, as though forgetting
their own life, they had been turned into death, i.e. into hell. [889]
But when reminded they are turned to the Lord, as though coming to life
again by remembering their proper life which they had forgotten. It is
read also in the 94th Psalm, "Perceive now, ye who are unwise among the
people; and ye fools, when will ye be wise? He that planted the ear,
shall He not hear?" etc. [890] For this is spoken to those, who said
vain things concerning God through not understanding Him.
__________________________________________________________________
[887] Ps. ix. 17
[888] Ps. xxii. 27
[889] [Augustin here understands "Sheol," to denote the place of
retribution for the wicked.--W.G.T.S.]
[890] Ps. xciv. 8, 9
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 14.--The Mind Loves God in Rightly Loving Itself; And If It
Love Not God, It Must Be Said to Hate Itself. Even a Weak and Erring
Mind is Always Strong in Remembering, Understanding, and Loving Itself.
Let It Be Turned to God, that It May Be Blessed by Remembering,
Understanding, and Loving Him.
18. But there are yet more testimonies in the divine Scriptures
concerning the love of God. For in it, those other two [namely, memory
and understanding] are understood by consequence, inasmuch as no one
loves that which he does not remember, or of which he is wholly
ignorant. And hence is that well known and primary commandment, "Thou
shalt love the Lord thy God." [891] The human mind, then, is so
constituted, that at no time does it not remember, and understand, and
love itself. But since he who hates any one is anxious to injure him,
not undeservedly is the mind of man also said to hate itself when it
injures itself. For it wills ill to itself through ignorance, in that
it does not think that what it wills is prejudicial to it; but it none
the less does will ill to itself, when it wills what would be
prejudicial to it. And hence it is written, "He that loveth iniquity,
hateth his own soul." [892] He, therefore, who knows how to love
himself, loves God; but he who does not love God, even if he does love
himself,--a thing implanted in him by nature,--yet is not unsuitably
said to hate himself, inasmuch as he does that which is adverse to
himself, and assails himself as though he were his own enemy. And this
is no doubt a terrible delusion, that whereas all will to profit
themselves, many do nothing but that which is most pernicious to
themselves. When the poet was describing a like disease of dumb
animals, "May the gods," says he, "grant better things to the pious,
and assign that delusion to enemies. They were rending with bare teeth
their own torn limbs." [893] Since it was a disease of the body he was
speaking of, why has he called it a delusion, unless because, while
nature inclines every animal to take all the care it can of itself,
that disease was such that those animals rent those very limbs of
theirs which they desired should be safe and sound? But when the mind
loves God, and by consequence, as has been said remembers and
understands Him, then it is rightly enjoined also to love its neighbor
as itself; for it has now come to love itself rightly and not
perversely when it loves God, by partaking of whom that image not only
exists, but is also renewed so as to be no longer old, and restored so
as to be no longer defaced, and beatified so as to be no longer
unhappy. For although it so love itself, that, supposing the
alternative to be proposed to it, it would lose all things which it
loves less than itself rather than perish; still, by abandoning Him who
is above it, in dependence upon whom alone it could guard its own
strength, and enjoy Him as its light, to whom it is sung in the Psalm,
"I will guard my strength in dependence upon Thee," [894] and again,
"Draw near to Him, and be enlightened," [895] --it has been made so
weak and so dark, that it has fallen away unhappily from itself too, to
those things that are not what itself is, and which are beneath itself,
by affections that it cannot conquer, and delusions from which it sees
no way to return. And hence, when by God's mercy now penitent, it cries
out in the Psalms, "My strength faileth me; as for the light of mine
eyes, it also is gone from me." [896]
19. Yet, in the midst of these evils of weakness and delusion, great as
they are, it could not lose its natural memory, understanding and love
of itself. And therefore what I quoted above [897] can be rightly said,
"Although man walketh in an image, surely he is disquieted in vain: he
heapeth up treasures, and knoweth not who shall gather them." [898] For
why does he heap up treasures, unless because his strength has deserted
him, through which he would have God, and so lack nothing? And why
cannot he tell for whom he shall gather them, unless because the light
of his eyes is taken from him? And so he does not see what the Truth
saith, "Thou fool, this night thy soul shall be required of thee. Then
whose shall those things be which thou hast provided?" [899] Yet
because even such a man walketh in an image, and the man's mind has
remembrance, understanding, and love of itself; if it were made plain
to it that it could not have both, while it was permitted to choose one
and lose the other, viz. either the treasures it has heaped up, or the
mind; who is so utterly without mind, as to prefer to have the
treasures rather than the mind? For treasures commonly are able to
subvert the mind, but the mind that is not subverted by treasures can
live more easily and unencumberedly without any treasures. But who will
be able to possess treasures unless it be by means of the mind? For if
an infant, born as rich as you please, although lord of everything that
is rightfully his, yet possesses nothing if his mind be unconscious,
how can any one possibly possess anything whose mind is wholly lost?
But why say of treasures, that anybody, if the choice be given him,
prefers going without them to going without a mind; when there is no
one that prefers, nay, no one that compares them, to those lights of
the body, by which not one man only here and there, as in the case of
gold, but every man, possesses the very heaven? For every one possesses
by the eyes of the body whatever he gladly sees. Who then is there,
who, if he could not keep both, but must lose one, would not rather
lose his treasures than his eyes? And yet if it were put to him on the
same condition, whether he would rather lose eyes than mind, who is
there with a mind that does not see that he would rather lose the
former than the latter? For a mind without the eyes of the flesh is
still human, but the eyes of the flesh without a mind are bestial. And
who would not rather be a man, even though blind in fleshly sight, than
a beast that can see?
20. I have said thus much, that even those who are slower of
understanding, to whose eyes or ears this book may come, might be
admonished, however briefly, how greatly even a weak and erring mind
loves itself, in wrongly loving and pursuing things beneath itself. Now
it could not love itself if it were altogether ignorant of itself, i.e.
if it did not remember itself, nor understand itself by which image of
God within itself it has such power as to be able to cleave to Him
whose image it is. For it is so reckoned in the order, not of place,
but of natures, as that there is none above it save Him. When, finally,
it shall altogether cleave to Him, then it will be one spirit, as the
apostle testifies, saying, "But he who cleaves to the Lord is one
spirit." [900] And this by its drawing near to partake of His nature,
truth, and blessedness, yet not by His increasing in His own nature,
truth and blessedness. In that nature, then, when it happily has
cleaved to it, it will live unchangeably, and will see as unchangeable
all that it does see. Then, as divine Scripture promises, "His desire
will be satisfied with good things," [901] good things
unchangeable,--the very Trinity itself, its own God, whose image it is.
And that it may not ever thenceforward suffer wrong, it will be in the
hidden place of His presence, [902] filled with so great fullness of
Him, that sin thenceforth will never delight it. But now, when it sees
itself, it sees something not unchangeable.
__________________________________________________________________
[891] Deut. vi. 5
[892] Ps. xi. 5
[893] Virg. Georg. iii. 513-514.
[894] Ps. lix. 9
[895] Ps. xxxiv. 5
[896] Ps. xxxviii. 10
[897] C. 4.
[898] Ps. xxxix. 6
[899] Luke xii. 20
[900] 1 Cor. vi. 17
[901] Ps. ciii. 5
[902] Ps. xxxi. 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 15.--Although the Soul Hopes for Blessedness, Yet It Does Not
Remember Lost Blessedness, But Remembers God and the Rules of
Righteousness. The Unchangeable Rules of Right Living are Known Even to
the Ungodly.
21. And of this certainly it feels no doubt, that it is wretched, and
longs to be blessed nor can it hope for the possibility of this on any
other ground than its own changeableness for if it were not changeable,
then, as it could not become wretched after being blessed, so neither
could it become blessed after being wretched. And what could have made
it wretched under an omnipotent and good God, except its own sin and
the righteousness of its Lord? And what will make it blessed, unless
its own merit, and its Lord's reward? But its merit, too, is His grace,
whose reward will be its blessedness; for it cannot give itself the
righteousness it has lost, and so has not. For this it received when
man was created, and assuredly lost it by sinning. Therefore it
receives righteousness, that on account of this it may deserve to
receive blessedness; and hence the apostle truly says to it, when
beginning to be proud as it were of its own good, "For what hast thou
that thou didst not receive? Now if thou didst receive it, why dost
thou glory as if thou hadst not received it?" [903] But when it rightly
remembers its own Lord, having received His Spirit, then, because it is
so taught by an inward teaching, it feels wholly that it cannot rise
save by His affection freely given, nor has been able to fall save by
its own defection freely chosen. Certainly it does not remember its own
blessedness; since that has been, but is not, and it has utterly
forgotten it, and therefore cannot even be reminded of it. [904] But it
believes what the trustworthy Scriptures of its God tell of that
blessedness, which were written by His prophet, and tell of the
blessedness of Paradise, and hand down to us historical information of
that first both good and ill of man. And it remembers the Lord its God;
for He always is, nor has been and is not, nor is but has not been; but
as He never will not be, so He never was not. And He is whole
everywhere. And hence it both lives, and is moved, and is in Him; [905]
and so it can remember Him. Not because it recollects the having known
Him in Adam or anywhere else before the life of this present body, or
when it was first made in order to be implanted in this body; for it
remembers nothing at all of all this. Whatever there is of this, it has
been blotted out by forgetfulness. But it is reminded, that it may be
turned to God, as though to that light by which it was in some way
touched, even when turned away from Him. For hence it is that even the
ungodly think of eternity, and rightly blame and rightly praise many
things in the morals of men. And by what rules do they thus judge,
except by those wherein they see how men ought to live, even though
they themselves do not so live? And where do they see these rules? For
they do not see them in their own [moral] nature; since no doubt these
things are to be seen by the mind, and their minds are confessedly
changeable, but these rules are seen as unchangeable by him who can see
them at all; nor yet in the character of their own mind, since these
rules are rules of righteousness, and their minds are confessedly
unrighteous. Where indeed are these rules written, wherein even the
unrighteous recognizes what is righteous, wherein he discerns that he
ought to have what he himself has not? Where, then, are they written,
unless in the book of that Light which is called Truth? whence every
righteous law is copied and transferred (not by migrating to it, but by
being as it were impressed upon it) to the heart of the man that
worketh righteousness; as the impression from a ring passes into the
wax, yet does not leave the ring. But he who worketh not, and yet sees
how he ought to work, he is the man that is turned away from that
light, which yet touches him. But he who does not even see how he ought
to live, sins indeed with more excuse, because he is not a transgressor
of a law that he knows; but even he too is just touched sometimes by
the splendor of the everywhere present truth, when upon admonition he
confesses.
__________________________________________________________________
[903] 1 Cor. iv. 7
[904] [In the case of knowledge that is remembered, there is something
latent and potential--as when past acquisitions are recalled by a
voluntary act of recollection. The same is true of innate ideas--these
also are latent, and brought into consciousness by reflection. But no
man can either remember, or elicit, his original holiness and
blessedness, because this is not latent and potential, but wholly lost
by the fall.--W.G.T.S.]
[905] Acts xvii. 28
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 16.--How the Image of God is Formed Anew in Man.
22. But those who, by being reminded, are turned to the Lord from that
deformity whereby they were through worldly lusts conformed to this
world, are formed anew from the world, when they hearken to the
apostle, saying, "Be not conformed to this world, but be ye formed
again in the renewing of your mind;" [906] that that image may begin to
be formed again by Him by whom it had been formed at first. For that
image cannot form itself again, as it could deform itself. He says
again elsewhere: "Be ye renewed in the spirit of your mind; and put ye
on the new man, which after God is created in righteousness and true
holiness." [907] That which is meant by "created after God," is
expressed in another place by "after the image of God." [908] But it
lost righteousness and true holiness by sinning, through which that
image became defaced and tarnished; and this it recovers when it is
formed again and renewed. But when he says, "In the spirit of your
mind," he does not intend to be understood of two things, as though
mind were one, and the spirit of the mind another; but he speaks thus,
because all mind is spirit, but all spirit is not mind. For there is a
Spirit also that is God, [909] which cannot be renewed, because it
cannot grow old. And we speak also of a spirit in man distinct from the
mind, to which spirit belong the images that are formed after the
likeness of bodies; and of this the apostle speaks to the Corinthians,
where he says, "But if I shall have prayed with a tongue, my spirit
prayeth, but my understanding is unfruitful." [910] For he speaks thus,
when that which is said is not understood; since it cannot even be
said, unless the images of the corporeal articulate sounds anticipate
the oral sound by the thought of the spirit. The soul of man is also
called spirit, whence are the words in the Gospel, "And He bowed His
head, and gave up His spirit;" [911] by which the death of the body,
through the spirit's leaving it, is signified. We speak also of the
spirit of a beast, as it is expressly written in the book of Solomon
called Ecclesiastes; "Who knoweth the spirit of man that goeth upward,
and the spirit of the beast that goeth downward to the earth?" [912] It
is written too in Genesis, where it is said that by the deluge all
flesh died which "had in it the spirit of life." [913] We speak also of
the spirit, meaning the wind, a thing most manifestly corporeal; whence
is that in the Psalms, "Fire and hail, snow and ice, the spirit of the
storm." [914] Since spirit, then, is a word of so many meanings, the
apostle intended to express by "the spirit of the mind" that spirit
which is called the mind. As the same apostle also, when he says, "In
putting off the body of the flesh," [915] certainly did not intend two
things, as though flesh were one, and the body of the flesh another;
but because body is the name of many things that have no flesh (for
besides the flesh, there are many bodies celestial and bodies
terrestrial), he expressed by the body of the flesh that body which is
flesh. In like manner, therefore, by the spirit of the mind, that
spirit which is mind. Elsewhere, too, he has even more plainly called
it an image, while enforcing the same thing in other words. "Do you,"
he says, "putting off the old man with his deeds, put on the new man,
which is renewed in the knowledge of God after the image of Him that
created him." [916] Where the one passage reads, "Put ye on the new
man, which is created after God," the other has, "Put ye on the new
man, which is renewed after the image of Him that created him."
In the one place he says, "After God;" in the other, "After the image
of Him that created him." But instead of saying, as in the former
passages "In righteousness and true holiness," he has put in the
latter, "In the knowledge of God." This renewal, then, and forming
again of the mind, is wrought either after God, or after the image of
God. But it is said to be after God, in order that it may not be
supposed to be after another creature; and to be after the image of
God, in order that this renewing may be understood to take place in
that wherein is the image of God, i.e. in the mind. Just as we say,
that he who has departed from the body a faithful and righteous man, is
dead after the body, not after the spirit. For what do we mean by dead
after the body, unless as to the body or in the body, and not dead as
to the soul or in the soul? Or if we want to say he is handsome after
the body, or strong after the body, not after the mind; what else is
this, than that he is handsome or strong in body, not in mind? And the
same is the case with numberless other instances. Let us not therefore
so understand the words, "After the image of Him that created him," as
though it were a different image after which he is renewed, and not the
very same which is itself renewed.
__________________________________________________________________
[906] Rom. xii. 2
[907] Eph. iv. 23, 24
[908] Gen. i. 27
[909] John iv. 24
[910] 1 Cor. xiv. 14
[911] John xix. 30
[912] Eccles. iii. 21
[913] Gen. vii. 22
[914] Ps. cxlviii. 8
[915] Col. ii. 11
[916] Col. iii. 9, 10
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 17.--How the Image of God in the Mind is Renewed Until the
Likeness of God is Perfected in It in Blessedness.
23. Certainly this renewal does not take place in the single moment of
conversion itself, as that renewal in baptism takes place in a single
moment by the remission of all sins; for not one, be it ever so small,
remains unremitted. But as it is one thing to be free from fever, and
another to grow strong again from the infirmity which the fever
produced; and one thing again to pluck out of the body a weapon thrust
into it, and another to heal the wound thereby made by a prosperous
cure; so the first cure is to remove the cause of infirmity, and this
is wrought by the forgiving of all sins; but the second cure is to heal
the infirmity itself, and this takes place gradually by making progress
in the renewal of that image: which two things are plainly shown in the
Psalm, where we read, "Who forgiveth all thine iniquities," which takes
place in baptism; and then follows, "and healeth all thine
infirmities;" [917] and this takes place by daily additions, while this
image is being renewed. [918] And the apostle has spoken of this most
expressly, saying, "And though our outward man perish, yet the inner
man is renewed day by day." [919] And "it is renewed in the knowledge
of God, i.e. in righteousness and true holiness," according to the
testimonies of the apostle cited a little before. He, then, who is day
by day renewed by making progress in the knowledge of God, and in
righteousness and true holiness, transfers his love from things
temporal to things eternal, from things visible to things intelligible,
from things carnal to things spiritual; and diligently perseveres in
bridling and lessening his desire for the former, and in binding
himself by love to the latter. And he does this in proportion as he is
helped by God. For it is the sentence of God Himself, "Without me ye
can do nothing." [920] And when the last day of life shall have found
any one holding fast faith in the Mediator in such progress and growth
as this, he will be welcomed by the holy angels, to be led to God, whom
he has worshipped, and to be made perfect by Him; and so will receive
in the end of the world an incorruptible body, in order not to
punishment, but to glory. For the likeness of God will then be
perfected in this image, when the sight of God shall be perfected. And
of this the Apostle Paul speaks: "Now we see through a glass, in an
enigma, but then face to face." [921] And again: "But we with open
face, beholding as in a glass the glory of the Lord, are changed into
the same image, from glory to glory, even as by the spirit of the
Lord." [922] And this is what happens from day to day in those that
make good progress.
__________________________________________________________________
[917] Ps. ciii. 3
[918] [Justification is instantaneous: sanctification is gradual.
Baptism is the sign, not the cause, of the former. "As many of us as
were baptized into Jesus Christ, were baptized with reference to (eis)
his death;" and "are intombed with him by the baptism that has
reference to (eis) his death." Rom. vi. 3, 4. According to St. Paul,
baptism supposes a trust in the atonement of Christ, and is a seal of
it. In saying that "the forgiveness of all thine iniquity takes place
in baptism," Augustin is liable to be understood as teaching the
efficiency of baptism in producing forgiveness. This is the weak side
of the Post Nicene soteriology.--W.G.T.S.]
[919] 2 Cor. iv. 16
[920] John xv. 5
[921] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[922] 2 Cor. iii. 18
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 18.--Whether the Sentence of John is to Be Understood of Our
Future Likeness with the Son of God in the Immortality Itself Also of
the Body.
24. But the Apostle John says, "Beloved, now are we the sons of God;
and it doth not yet appear what we shall be: but we know that, when He
shall appear, we shall be like Him, for we shall see Him as He is."
[923] Hence it appears, that the full likeness of God is to take place
in that image of God at that time when it shall receive the full sight
of God. And yet this may also possibly seem to be said by the Apostle
John of the immortality of the body. For we shall be like to God in
this too, but only to the Son, because He only in the Trinity took a
body, in which He died and rose again, and which He carried with Him to
heaven above. For this, too, is called an image of the Son of God, in
which we shall have, as He has, an immortal body, being conformed in
this respect not to the image of the Father or of the Holy Spirit, but
only of the Son, because of Him alone is it read and received by a
sound faith, that "the Word was made flesh." [924] And for this reason
the apostle says, "Whom He did foreknow, He also did predestinate to be
conformed to the image of His Son, that He might be the first-born
among many brethren." [925] "The first-born" certainly "from the dead,"
[926] according to the same apostle; by which death His flesh was sown
in dishonor, and rose again in glory. According to this image of the
Son, to which we are conformed in the body by immortality, we also do
that of which the same apostle speaks, "As we have borne the image of
the earthy, so shall we also bear the image of the heavenly;" [927] to
wit, that we who are mortal after Adam, may hold by a true faith, and a
sure and certain hope, that we shall be immortal after Christ. For so
can we now bear the same image, not yet in sight, but in faith; not yet
in fact, but in hope. For the apostle, when he said this, was speaking
of the resurrection of the body.
__________________________________________________________________
[923] 1 John iii. 2
[924] John i. 14
[925] Rom. viii. 29
[926] Col. i. 18
[927] 1 Cor. xv. 43, 49
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 19.--John is Rather to Be Understood of Our Perfect Likeness
with the Trinity in Life Eternal. Wisdom is Perfected in Happiness.
25. But in respect to that image indeed, of which it is said, "Let us
make man after our image and likeness," [928] we believe,--and, after
the utmost search we have been able to make, understand,--that man was
made after the image of the Trinity, because it is not said, After my,
or After thy image. And therefore that place too of the Apostle John
must be understood rather according to this image, when he says, "We
shall be like Him, for we shall see Him as He is;" because he spoke too
of Him of whom he had said, "We are the sons of God." [929] And the
immortality of the flesh will be perfected in that moment of the
resurrection, of which the Apostle Paul says, "In the twinkling of an
eye, at the last trump; and the dead shall be raised incorruptible, and
we shall be changed." [930] For in that very twinkling of an eye,
before the judgment, the spiritual body shall rise again in power, in
incorruption, in glory, which is now sown a natural body in weakness,
in corruption, in dishonor. But the image which is renewed in the
spirit of the mind in the knowledge of God, not outwardly, but
inwardly, from day to day, shall be perfected by that sight itself;
which then after the judgment shall be face to face, but now makes
progress as through a glass in an enigma. [931] And we must understand
it to be said on account of this perfection, that "we shall be like
Him, for we shall see Him as He is." For this gift will be given to us
at that time, when it shall have been said, "Come, ye blessed of my
Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you." [932] For then will the
ungodly be taken away, so that he shall not see the glory of the Lord,
[933] when those on the left hand shall go into eternal punishment,
while those on the right go into life eternal. [934] But "this is
eternal life," as the Truth tells us; "to know Thee," He says, "the one
true God, and Jesus Christ whom Thou hast sent." [935]
26. This contemplative wisdom, which I believe is properly called
wisdom as distinct from knowledge in the sacred writings; but wisdom
only of man, which yet man has not except from Him, by partaking of
whom a rational and intellectual mind can be made truly wise;--this
contemplative wisdom, I say, it is that Cicero commends, in the end of
the dialogue Hortensius, when he says: "While, then, we consider these
things night and day, and sharpen our understanding, which is the eye
of the mind, taking care that it be not ever dulled, that is, while we
live in philosophy; we, I say, in so doing, have great hope that, if,
on the one hand, this sentiment and wisdom of ours is mortal and
perishable, we shall still, when we have discharged our human offices,
have a pleasant setting, and a not painful extinction, and as it were a
rest from life: or if, on the other, as ancient philosophers
thought,--and those, too, the greatest and far the most celebrated,--we
have souls eternal and divine, then must we needs think, that the more
these shall have always kept in their own proper course, i.e. in reason
and in the desire of inquiry, and the less they shall have mixed and
entangled themselves in the vices and errors of men, the more easy
ascent and return they will have to heaven." And then he says, adding
this short sentence, and finishing his discourse by repeating it:
"Wherefore, to end my discourse at last, if we wish either for a
tranquil extinction, after living in the pursuit of these subjects, or
if to migrate without delay from this present home to another in no
little measure better, we must bestow all our labor and care upon these
pursuits." And here I marvel, that a man of such great ability should
promise to men living in philosophy, which makes man blessed by
contemplation of truth, "a pleasant setting after the discharge of
human offices, if this our sentiment and wisdom is mortal and
perishable;" as if that which we did not love, or rather which we
fiercely hated, were then to die and come to nothing, so that its
setting would be pleasant to us! But indeed he had not learned this
from the philosophers, whom he extols with great praise; but this
sentiment is redolent of that New Academy, wherein it pleased him to
doubt of even the plainest things. But from the philosophers that were
greatest and far most celebrated, as he himself confesses, he had
learned that souls are eternal. For souls that are eternal are not
unsuitably stirred up by the exhortation to be found in "their own
proper course," when the end of this life shall have come, i.e. "in
reason and in the desire of inquiry," and to mix and entangle
themselves the less in the vices and errors of men, in order that they
may have an easier return to God. But that course which consists in the
love and investigation of truth does not suffice for the wretched, i.e.
for all mortals who have only this kind of reason, and are without
faith in the Mediator; as I have taken pains to prove, as much as I
could, in former books of this work, especially in the fourth and
thirteenth.
__________________________________________________________________
[928] Gen. i. 26
[929] John iii. 2
[930] 1 Cor. xv. 52
[931] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[932] Matt. xxv. 34
[933] Isa. xxvi. 10
[934] Matt. xxv. 46
[935] John xvii. 3
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
Book XV.
------------------------
Begins by setting forth briefly and in sum the contents of the previous
fourteen books. The argument is then shown to have reached so far as to
allow of our now inquiring concerning the Trinity, which is God, in
those eternal, incorporeal, and unchangeable things themselves, in the
perfect contemplation of which a blessed life is promised to us. But
this Trinity, as he shows, is here seen by us as by a mirror and in an
enigma, in that it is seen by means of the image of God, which we are,
as in a likeness that is obscure and hard of discernment. In like
manner, it is shown, that some kind of conjecture and explanation may
be gathered respecting the generation of the divine Word, from the word
of our own mind, but only with difficulty, on account of the exceeding
disparity which is discernible between the two words; and, again,
respecting the procession of the Holy Spirit, from the love that is
joined thereto by the will.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--God is Above the Mind.
1. Desiring to exercise the reader in the things that are made, in
order that he may know Him by whom they are made, we have now advanced
so far as to His image, which is man, in that wherein he excels the
other animals, i.e. in reason or intelligence, and whatever else can be
said of the rational or intellectual soul that pertains to what is
called the mind. [936] For by this name some Latin writers, after their
own peculiar mode of speech, distinguish that which excels in man, and
is not in the beast, from the soul, [937] which is in the beast as
well. If, then, we seek anything that is above this nature, and seek
truly, it is God,--namely, a nature not created, but creating. And
whether this is the Trinity, it is now our business to demonstrate not
only to believers, by authority of divine Scripture, but also to such
as understand, by some kind of reason, if we can. And why I say, if we
can, the thing itself will show better when we have begun to argue
about it in our inquiry.
__________________________________________________________________
[936] Mens or animus.
[937] Anima
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--God, Although Incomprehensible, is Ever to Be Sought. The
Traces of the Trinity are Not Vainly Sought in the Creature.
2. For God Himself, whom we seek, will, as I hope, help our labors,
that they may not be unfruitful, and that we may understand how it is
said in the holy Psalm, "Let the heart of them rejoice that seek the
Lord. Seek the Lord, and be strengthened: seek His face evermore."
[938] For that which is always being sought seems as though it were
never found; and how then will the heart of them that seek rejoice, and
not rather be made sad, if they cannot find what they seek? For it is
not said, The heart shall rejoice of them that find, but of them that
seek, the Lord. And yet the prophet Isaiah testifies, that the Lord God
can be found when He is sought, when he says: "Seek ye the Lord; and as
soon as ye have found Him, call upon Him: and when He has drawn near to
you, let the wicked man forsake his ways, and the unrighteous man his
thoughts." [939] If, then, when sought, He can be found, why is it
said, "Seek ye His face evermore?" Is He perhaps to be sought even when
found? For things incomprehensible must so be investigated, as that no
one may think he has found nothing, when he has been able to find how
incomprehensible that is which he was seeking. Why then does he so
seek, if he comprehends that which he seeks to be incomprehensible,
unless because he may not give over seeking so long as he makes
progress in the inquiry itself into things incomprehensible, and
becomes ever better and better while seeking so great a good, which is
both sought in order to be found, and found in order to be sought? For
it is both sought in order that it may be found more sweetly, and found
in order that it may be sought more eagerly. The words of Wisdom in the
book of Ecclesiasticus may be taken in this meaning: "They who eat me
shall still be hungry, and they who drink me shall still be thirsty."
[940] For they eat and drink because they find; and they still continue
seeking because they are hungry and thirst. Faith seeks, understanding
finds; whence the prophet says, "Unless ye believe, ye shall not
understand." [941] And yet, again, understanding still seeks Him, whom
it finds; for "God looked down upon the sons of men," as it is sung in
the holy Psalm, "to see if there were any that would understand, and
seek after God." [942] And man, therefore, ought for this purpose to
have understanding, that he may seek after God.
3. We shall have tarried then long enough among those things that God
has made, in order that by them He Himself may be known that made them.
"For the invisible things of Him from the creation of the world are
clearly seen, being understood by the things that are made." [943] And
hence they are rebuked in the book of Wisdom, "who could not out of the
good things that are seen know Him that is: neither by considering the
works did they acknowledge the workmaster; but deemed either fire, or
wind, or the swift air or the circle of the stars, or the violent
water, or the lights of heaven, to be the gods which govern the world:
with whose beauty if they, being delighted, took them to be gods, let
them know how much better the Lord of them is; for the first Author of
beauty hath created them. But if they were astonished at their power
and virtue, let them understand by them how much mightier He is that
made them. For by the greatness and beauty of the creatures
proportionably the Maker of them is seen." [944] I have quoted these
words from the book of Wisdom for this reason, that no one of the
faithful may think me vainly and emptily to have sought first in the
creature, step by step through certain trinities, each of their own
appropriate kind, until I came at last to the mind of man, traces of
that highest Trinity which we seek when we seek God.
__________________________________________________________________
[938] Ps. cv. 3, 4
[939] Isa. lv. 6, 7
[940] Ecclus. xxiv. 29
[941] Isa. vii. 9
[942] Ps. xiv. 2
[943] Rom. i. 20
[944] Wisd. xiii. 1-5
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--A Brief Recapitulation of All the Previous Books.
4. But since the necessities of our discussion and argument have
compelled us to say a great many things in the course of fourteen
books, which we cannot view at once in one glance, so as to be able to
refer them quickly in thought to that which we desire to grasp, I will
attempt, by the help of God, to the best of my power, to put briefly
together, without arguing, whatever I have established in the several
books by argument as known, and to place, as it were, under one mental
view, not the way in which we have been convinced of each point, but
the points themselves of which we have been convinced; in order that
what follows may not be so far separated from that which precedes, as
that the perusal of the former shall produce forgetfulness of the
latter; or at any rate, if it have produced such forgetfulness, that
what has escaped the memory may be speedily recalled by re-perusal.
5. In the first book, the unity and equality of that highest Trinity is
shown from Holy Scripture. In the second, and third, and fourth, the
same: but a careful handling of the question respecting the sending of
the Son and of the Holy Spirit has resulted in three books; and we have
demonstrated, that He who is sent is not therefore less than He who
sends because the one sent, the other was sent; since the Trinity,
which is in all things equal, being also equally in its own nature
unchangeable, and invisible, and everywhere present, works indivisibly.
In the fifth,--with a view to those who think that the substance of the
Father and of the Son is therefore not the same, because they suppose
everything that is predicated of God to be predicated according to
substance, and therefore contend that to beget and to be begotten, or
to be begotten and unbegotten, as being diverse, are diverse
substances,--it is demonstrated that not everything that is predicated
of God is predicated according to substance, as He is called good and
great according to substance, or anything else that is predicated of
Him in respect to Himself, but that some things also are predicated
relatively, i.e. not in respect to Himself, but in respect to something
which is not Himself; as He is called the Father in respect to the Son,
or the Lord in respect to the creature that serves Him; and that here,
if anything thus relatively predicated, i.e. predicated in respect to
something that is not Himself, is predicated also as in time, as, e.g.,
"Lord, Thou hast become our refuge," [945] then nothing happens to Him
so as to work a change in Him, but He Himself continues altogether
unchangeable in His own nature or essence. In the sixth, the question
how Christ is called by the mouth of the apostle "the power of God and
the wisdom of God," [946] is so far argued that the more careful
handling of that question is deferred, viz. whether He from whom Christ
is begotten is not wisdom Himself, but only the father of His own
wisdom, or whether wisdom begat wisdom. But be it which it may, the
equality of the Trinity became apparent in this book also, and that God
was not triple, but a Trinity; and that the Father and the Son are not,
as it were, a double as opposed to the single Holy Spirit: for therein
three are not anything more than one. We considered, too, how to
understand the words of Bishop Hilary, "Eternity in the Father, form in
the Image, use in the Gift." In the seventh, the question is explained
which had been deferred: in what way that God who begat the Son is not
only Father of His own power and wisdom, but is Himself also power and
wisdom; so, too, the Holy Spirit; and yet that they are not three
powers or three wisdoms, but one power and one wisdom, as one God and
one essence. It was next inquired, in what way they are called one
essence, three persons, or by some Greeks one essence, three
substances; and we found that the words were so used through the needs
of speech, that there might be one term by which to answer, when it is
asked what the three are, whom we truly confess to be three, viz.
Father, and Son, and Holy Spirit. In the eighth, it is made plain by
reason also to those who understand, that not only the Father is not
greater than the Son in the substance of truth, but that both together
are not anything greater than the Holy Spirit alone, nor that any two
at all in the same Trinity are anything greater than one, nor all three
together anything greater than each severally. Next, I have pointed
out, that by means of the truth, which is beheld by the understanding,
and by means of the highest good, from which is all good, and by means
of the righteousness for which a righteous mind is loved even by a mind
not yet righteous, we might understand, so far as it is possible to
understand, that not only incorporeal but also unchangeable nature
which is God; and by means, too, of love, which in the Holy Scriptures
is called God, [947] by which, first of all, those who have
understanding begin also, however feebly, to discern the Trinity, to
wit, one that loves, and that which is loved, and love. In the ninth,
the argument advances as far as to the image of God, viz. man in
respect to his mind; and in this we found a kind of trinity, i.e. the
mind, and the knowledge whereby the mind knows itself, and the love
whereby it loves both itself and its knowledge of itself; and these
three are shown to be mutually equal, and of one essence. In the tenth,
the same subject is more carefully and subtly handled, and is brought
to this point, that we found in the mind a still more manifest trinity
of the mind, viz. in memory, and understanding, and will. But since it
turned out also, that the mind could never be in such a case as not to
remember, understand, and love itself, although it did not always think
of itself; but that when it did think of itself, it did not in the same
act of thought distinguish itself from things corporeal; the argument
respecting the Trinity, of which this is an image, was deferred, in
order to find a trinity also in the things themselves that are seen
with the body, and to exercise the reader's attention more distinctly
in that. Accordingly, in the eleventh, we chose the sense of sight,
wherein that which should have been there found to hold good might be
recognized also in the other four bodily senses, although not expressly
mentioned; and so a trinity of the outer man first showed itself in
those things which are discerned from without, to wit, from the bodily
object which is seen, and from the form which is thence impressed upon
the eye of the beholder, and from the purpose of the will combining the
two. But these three things, as was patent, were not mutually equal and
of one substance. Next, we found yet another trinity in the mind
itself, introduced into it, as it were, by the things perceived from
without; wherein the same three things, as it appeared, were of one
substance: the image of the bodily object which is in the memory, and
the form thence impressed when the mind's eye of the thinker is turned
to it, and the purpose of the will combining the two. But we found this
trinity to pertain to the outer man, on this account, that it was
introduced into the mind from bodily objects which are perceived from
without. In the twelfth, we thought good to distinguish wisdom from
knowledge, and to seek first, as being the lower of the two, a kind of
appropriate and special trinity in that which is specially called
knowledge; but that although we have got now in this to something
pertaining to the inner man, yet it is not yet to be either called or
thought an image of God. And this is discussed in the thirteenth book
by the commendation of Christian faith. In the fourteenth we discuss
the true wisdom of man, viz. that which is granted him by God's gift in
the partaking of that very God Himself, which is distinct from
knowledge; and the discussion reached this point, that a trinity is
discovered in the image of God, which is man in respect to his mind,
which mind is "renewed in the knowledge" of God, "after the image of
Him that created" man; [948] "after His own image;" [949] and so
obtains wisdom, wherein is the contemplation of things eternal.
__________________________________________________________________
[945] Ps. xc. 1
[946] 1 Cor. i. 24
[947] 1 John iv. 16
[948] Col. iii. 10
[949] Gen. i. 27
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--What Universal Nature Teaches Us Concerning God.
6. Let us, then, now seek the Trinity which is God, in the things
themselves that are eternal, incorporeal, and unchangeable; in the
perfect contemplation of which a blessed life is promised us, which
cannot be other than eternal. For not only does the authority of the
divine books declare that God is; but the whole nature of the universe
itself which surrounds us, and to which we also belong, proclaims that
it has a most excellent Creator, who has given to us a mind and natural
reason, whereby to see that things living are to be preferred to things
that are not living; things that have sense to things that have not;
things that have understanding to things that have not; things immortal
to things mortal; things powerful to things impotent; things righteous
to things unrighteous; things beautiful to things deformed; things good
to things evil; things incorruptible to things corruptible; things
unchangeable to things changeable; things invisible to things visible;
things incorporeal to things corporeal; things blessed to things
miserable. And hence, since without doubt we place the Creator above
things created, we must needs confess that the Creator both lives in
the highest sense, and perceives and understands all things, and that
He cannot die, or suffer decay, or be changed; and that He is not a
body, but a spirit, of all the most powerful, most righteous, most
beautiful, most good, most blessed.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--How Difficult It is to Demonstrate the Trinity by Natural
Reason.
7. But all that I have said, and whatever else seems to be worthily
said of God after the like fashion of human speech, applies to the
whole Trinity, which is one God, and to the several Persons in that
Trinity. For who would dare to say either of the one God, which is the
Trinity itself, or of the Father, or Son, or Holy Spirit, either that
He is not living, or is without sense or intelligence; or that, in that
nature in which they are affirmed to be mutually equal, any one of them
is mortal, or corruptible, or changeable, or corporeal? Or is there any
one who would deny that any one in the Trinity is most powerful, most
righteous, most beautiful, most good, most blessed? If, then, these
things, and all others of the kind, can be predicated both of the
Trinity itself, and of each several one in that Trinity, where or how
shall the Trinity manifest itself? Let us therefore first reduce these
numerous predicates to some limited number. For that which is called
life in God, is itself His essence and nature. God, therefore, does not
live, unless by the life which He is to Himself. And this life is not
such as that which is in a tree, wherein is neither understanding nor
sense; nor such as is in a beast, for the life of a beast possesses the
fivefold sense, but has no understanding. But the life which is God
perceives and understands all things, and perceives by mind, not by
body, because "God is a spirit." [950] And God does not perceive
through a body, as animals do, which have bodies, for He does not
consist of soul and body. And hence that single nature perceives as it
understands, and understands as it perceives, and its sense and
understanding are one and the same. Nor yet so, that at any time He
should either cease or begin to be; for He is immortal. And it is not
said of Him in vain, that "He only hath immortality." [951] For
immortality is true immortality in His case whose nature admits no
change. That is also true eternity by which God is unchangeable,
without beginning, without end; consequently also incorruptible. It is
one and the same thing, therefore, to call God eternal, or immortal, or
incorruptible, or unchangeable; and it is likewise one and the same
thing to say that He is living, and that He is intelligent, that is, in
truth, wise. For He did not receive wisdom whereby to be wise, but He
is Himself wisdom. And this is life, and again is power or might, and
yet again beauty, whereby He is called powerful and beautiful. For what
is more powerful and more beautiful than wisdom, "which reaches from
end to end mightily, and sweetly disposes all things"? [952] Or do
goodness, again, and righteousness, differ from each other in the
nature of God, as they differ in His works, as though they were two
diverse qualities of God--goodness one, and righteousness another?
Certainly not; but that which is righteousness is also itself goodness;
and that which is goodness is also itself blessedness. And God is
therefore called incorporeal, that He may be believed and understood to
be a spirit, not a body.
8. Further, if we say, Eternal, immortal, incorruptible, unchangeable,
living, wise, powerful, beautiful, righteous, good, blessed spirit;
only the last of this list as it were seems to signify substance, but
the rest to signify qualities of that substance; but it is not so in
that ineffable and simple nature. For whatever seems to be predicated
therein according to quality, is to be understood according to
substance or essence. For far be it from us to predicate spirit of God
according to substance, and good according to quality; but both
according to substance. [953] And so in like manner of all those we
have mentioned, of which we have already spoken at length in the former
books. Let us choose, then, one of the first four of those in our
enumeration and arrangement, i.e. eternal, immortal, incorruptible,
unchangeable; since these four, as I have argued already, have one
meaning; in order that our aim may not be distracted by a multiplicity
of objects. And let it be rather that which was placed first, viz.
eternal. Let us follow the same course with the four that come next,
viz. living, wise, powerful, beautiful. And since life of some sort
belongs also to the beast, which has not wisdom; while the next two,
viz. wisdom and might, are so compared to one another in the case of
man, as that Scripture says, "Better is he that is wise than he that is
strong;" [954] and beauty, again, is commonly attributed to bodily
objects also: out of these four that we have chosen, let Wise be the
one we take. Although these four are not to be called unequal in
speaking of God; for they are four names, but one thing. But of the
third and last four,--although it is the same thing in God to be
righteous that it is to be good or to be blessed; and the same thing to
be a spirit that it is to be righteous, and good, and blessed; yet,
because in men there can be a spirit that is not blessed, and there can
be one both righteous and good, but not yet blessed; but that which is
blessed is doubtless both just, and good, and a spirit,--let us rather
choose that one which cannot exist even in men without the three
others, viz. blessed.
__________________________________________________________________
[950] John iv. 24
[951] 1 Tim. vi. 16
[952] Wisd. viii. 1
[953] [In the Infinite Being, qualities are inseparable from essence;
in the finite being, they are separable. If man or angel ceases to be
good, or wise, or righteous, he does not thereby cease to be man or
angel. But if God should lose goodness, wisdom or righteousness, he
would no longer be God. This is the meaning of Augustin, when he says
that "goodness" as well as "spirit" must be predicated of God,
"according to substance"--that is, that qualities in God are essential
qualities. They are so one with the essence, that they are
inseparable.--W.G.T.S.]
[954] Wisd. vi. 1
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--How There is a Trinity in the Very Simplicity of God.
Whether and How the Trinity that is God is Manifested from the
Trinities Which Have Been Shown to Be in Men.
9. When, then, we say, Eternal, wise, blessed, are these three the
Trinity that is called God? We reduce, indeed, those twelve to this
small number of three; but perhaps we can go further, and reduce these
three also to one of them. For if wisdom and might, or life and wisdom,
can be one and the same thing in the nature of God, why cannot eternity
and wisdom, or blessedness and wisdom, be one and the same thing in the
nature of God? And hence, as it made no difference whether we spoke of
these twelve or of those three when we reduced the many to the small
number; so does it make no difference whether we speak of those three,
or of that one, to the singularity of which we have shown that the
other two of the three may be reduced. What fashion, then, of argument,
what possible force and might of understanding, what liveliness of
reason, what sharp-sightedness of thought, will set forth how (to pass
over now the others) this one thing, that God is called wisdom, is a
trinity? For God does not receive wisdom from any one as we receive it
from Him, but He is Himself His own wisdom; because His wisdom is not
one thing, and His essence another, seeing that to Him to be wise is to
be. Christ, indeed, is called in the Holy Scriptures, "the power of
God, and the wisdom of God." [955] But we have discussed in the seventh
book how this is to be understood, so that the Son may not seem to make
the Father wise; and our explanation came to this, that the Son is
wisdom of wisdom, in the same way as He is light of light, God of God.
Nor could we find the Holy Spirit to be in any other way than that He
Himself also is wisdom, and altogether one wisdom, as one God, one
essence. How, then, do we understand this wisdom, which is God, to be a
trinity? I do not say, How do we believe this? For among the faithful
this ought to admit no question. But supposing there is any way by
which we can see with the understanding what we believe, what is that
way?
10. For if we recall where it was in these books that a trinity first
began to show itself to our understanding, the eighth book is that
which occurs to us; since it was there that to the best of our power we
tried to raise the aim of the mind to understand that most excellent
and unchangeable nature, which our mind is not. And we so contemplated
this nature as to think of it as not far from us, and as above us, not
in place, but by its own awful and wonderful excellence, and in such
wise that it appeared to be with us by its own present light. Yet in
this no trinity was yet manifest to us, because in that blaze of light
we did not keep the eye of the mind steadfastly bent upon seeking it;
only we discerned it in a sense, because there was no bulk wherein we
must needs think the magnitude of two or three to be more than that of
one. But when we came to treat of love, which in the Holy Scriptures is
called God, [956] then a trinity began to dawn upon us a little, i.e.
one that loves, and that which is loved, and love. But because that
ineffable light beat back our gaze, and it became in some degree plain
that the weakness of our mind could not as yet be tempered to it, we
turned back in the midst of the course we had begun, and planned
according to the (as it were) more familiar consideration of our own
mind, according to which man is made after the image of God, [957] in
order to relieve our overstrained attention; and thereupon we dwelt
from the ninth to the fourteenth book upon the consideration of the
creature, which we are, that we might be able to understand and behold
the invisible things of God by those things which are made. And now
that we have exercised the understanding, as far as was needful, or
perhaps more than was needful, in lower things, lo! we wish, but have
not strength, to raise ourselves to behold that highest Trinity which
is God. For in such manner as we see most undoubted trinities, whether
those which are wrought from without by corporeal things, or when these
same things are thought of which were perceived from without; or when
those things which take their rise in the mind, and do not pertain to
the senses of the body, as faith, or as the virtues which comprise the
art of living, are discerned by manifest reason, and, held fast by
knowledge; or when the mind itself, by which we know whatever we truly
say that we know, is known to itself, or thinks of itself; or when that
mind beholds anything eternal and unchangeable, which itself is
not;--in such way, then, I say, as we see in all these instances most
undoubted trinities, because they are wrought in ourselves, or are in
ourselves, when we remember, look at, or desire these things;--do we, I
say, in such manner also see the Trinity that is God; because there
also, by the understanding, we behold both Him as it were speaking, and
His Word, i.e. the Father and the Son; and then, proceeding thence, the
love common to both, namely, the Holy Spirit? These trinities that
pertain to our senses or to our mind, do we rather see than believe
them, but rather believe than see that God is a trinity? But if this is
so, then doubtless we either do not at all understand and behold the
invisible things of God by those things that are made, or if we behold
them at all, we do not behold the Trinity in them; and there is therein
somewhat to behold, and somewhat also which we ought to believe, even
though not beheld. And as the eighth book showed that we behold the
unchangeable good which we are not, so the fourteenth reminded us
thereof, when we spoke of the wisdom that man has from God. Why, then,
do we not recognize the Trinity therein? Does that wisdom which God is
said to be, not perceive itself, and not love itself? Who would say
this? Or who is there that does not see, that where there is no
knowledge, there in no way is there wisdom? Or are we, in truth, to
think that the Wisdom which is God knows other things, and does not
know itself; or loves other things, and does not love itself? But if
this is a foolish and impious thing to say or believe, then behold we
have a trinity,--to wit, wisdom, and the knowledge wisdom has of
itself, and its love of itself. For so, too, we find a trinity in man
also, i.e. mind, and the knowledge wherewith mind knows itself, and the
love wherewith it loves itself.
__________________________________________________________________
[955] 1 Cor. i. 24
[956] 1 John iv. 16
[957] Gen. i. 27
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--That It is Not Easy to Discover the Trinity that is God
from the Trinities We Have Spoken of.
11. But these three are in such way in man, that they are not
themselves man. For man, as the ancients defined him, is a rational
mortal animal. These things, therefore, are the chief things in man,
but are not man themselves. And any one person, i.e. each individual
man, has these three things in his mind. But if, again, we were so to
define man as to say, Man is a rational substance consisting of mind
and body, then without doubt man has a soul that is not body, and a
body that is not soul. And hence these three things are not man, but
belong to man, or are in man. If, again, we put aside the body, and
think of the soul by itself, the mind is somewhat belonging to the
soul, as though its head, or eye, or countenance; but these things are
not to be regarded as bodies. It is not then the soul, but that which
is chief in the soul, that is called the mind. But can we say that the
Trinity is in such way in God, as to be somewhat belonging to God, and
not itself God? And hence each individual man, who is called the image
of God, not according to all things that pertain to his nature, but
according to his mind alone, is one person, and is an image of the
Trinity in his mind. But that Trinity of which he is the image is
nothing else in its totality than God, is nothing else in its totality
than the Trinity. Nor does anything pertain to the nature of God so as
not to pertain to that Trinity; and the Three Persons are of one
essence, not as each individual man is one person.
12. There is, again, a wide difference in this point likewise, that
whether we speak of the mind in a man, and of its knowledge and love;
or of memory, understanding, will,--we remember nothing of the mind
except by memory, nor understand anything except by understanding, nor
love anything except by will. But in that Trinity, who would dare to
say that the Father understands neither Himself, nor the Son, nor the
Holy Spirit, except by the Son, or loves them except by the Holy
Spirit; and that He remembers only by Himself either Himself, or the
Son, or the Holy Spirit; and in the same way that the Son remembers
neither Himself nor the Father, except by the Father, nor loves them
except by the Holy Spirit; but that by Himself He only understands both
the Father and Son and Holy Spirit: and in like manner, that the Holy
Spirit by the Father remembers both the Father and the Son and Himself,
and by the Son understands both the Father and the Son and Himself; but
by Himself only loves both Himself and the Father and the Son;--as
though the Father were both His own memory, and that of the Son and of
the Holy Spirit; and the Son were the understanding of both Himself,
and the Father and the Holy Spirit; but the Holy Spirit were the love
both of Himself, and of the Father and of the Son? Who would presume to
think or affirm this of that Trinity? For if therein the Son alone
understands both for Himself and for the Father and for the Holy
Spirit, we have returned to the old absurdity, that the Father is not
wise from Himself, but from the Son, and that wisdom has not begotten
wisdom, but that the Father is said to be wise by that wisdom which He
begat. For where there is no understanding there can be no wisdom; and
hence, if the Father does not understand Himself for Himself, but the
Son understands for the Father, assuredly the Son makes the Father
wise. But if to God to be is to be wise, and essence is to Him the same
as wisdom, then it is not the Son that has His essence from the Father,
which is the truth, but rather the Father from the Son, which is a most
absurd falsehood. And this absurdity, beyond all doubt, we have
discussed, disproved, and rejected, in the seventh book. Therefore God
the Father is wise by that wisdom by which He is His own wisdom, and
the Son is the wisdom of the Father from the wisdom which is the
Father, from whom the Son is begotten; whence it follows that the
Father understands also by that understanding by which He is His own
understanding (for he could not be Wise that did not understand); and
that the Son is the understanding of the Father, begotten of the
understanding which is the Father. And this same may not be unfitly
said of memory also. For how is he wise, that remembers nothing, or
does not remember himself? Accordingly, since the Father is wisdom, and
the Son is wisdom, therefore, as the Father remembers Himself, so does
the Son also remember Himself; and as the Father remembers both Himself
and the Son, not by the memory of the Son, but by His own, so does the
Son remember both Himself and the Father, not by the memory of the
Father, but by His own. Where, again, there is no love, who would say
there was any wisdom? And hence we must infer that the Father is in
such way His own love, as He is His own understanding and memory. And
therefore these three, i.e. memory, understanding, love or will in that
highest and unchangeable essence which is God, are, we see, not the
Father and the Son and the Holy Spirit, but the Father alone. And
because the Son too is wisdom begotten of wisdom, as neither the Father
nor the Holy Spirit understands for Him, but He understands for
Himself; so neither does the Father remember for Him, nor the Holy
Spirit love for Him, but He remembers and loves for Himself: for He is
Himself also His own memory, His own understanding, and His own love.
But that He is so comes to Him from the Father, of whom He is born. And
because the Holy Spirit also is wisdom proceeding from wisdom, He too
has not the Father for a memory, and the Son for an understanding, and
Himself for love: for He would not be wisdom if another remembered for
Him, and yet another understood for Him, and He only loved for Himself;
but Himself has all three things, and has them in such way that they
are Himself. But that He is so comes to Him thence, whence He proceeds.
13. What man, then, is there who can comprehend that wisdom by which
God knows all things, in such wise that neither what we call things
past are past therein, nor what we call things future are therein
waited for as coming, as though they were absent, but both past and
future with things present are all present; nor yet are things thought
severally, so that thought passes from one to another, but all things
simultaneously are at hand in one glance;--what man, I say, is there
that comprehends that wisdom, and the like prudence, and the like
knowledge, since in truth even our own wisdom is beyond our
comprehension? For somehow we are able to behold the things that are
present to our senses or to our understanding; but the things that are
absent, and yet have once been present, we know by memory, if we have
not forgotten them. And we conjecture, too, not the past from the
future, but the future from the past, yet by all unstable knowledge.
For there are some of our thoughts to which, although future, we, as it
were, look onward with greater plainness and certainty as being very
near; and we do this by the means of memory when we are able to do it,
as much as we ever are able, although memory seems to belong not to the
future, but to the past. And this may be tried in the case of any words
or songs, the due order of which we are rendering by memory; for we
certainly should not utter each in succession, unless we foresaw in
thought what came next. And yet it is not foresight, but memory, that
enables us to foresee it; for up to the very end of the words or the
song, nothing is uttered except as foreseen and looked forward to. And
yet in doing this, we are not said to speak or sing by foresight, but
by memory; and if any one is more than commonly capable of uttering
many pieces in this way, he is usually praised, not for his foresight,
but for his memory. We know, and are absolutely certain, that all this
takes place in our mind or by our mind; but how it takes place, the
more attentively we desire to scrutinize, the more do both our very
words break down, and our purpose itself fails, when by our
understanding, if not our tongue, we would reach to something of
clearness. And do such as we are, think, that in so great infirmity of
mind we can comprehend whether the foresight of God is the same as His
memory and His understanding, who does not regard in thought each
several thing, but embraces all that He knows in one eternal and
unchangeable and ineffable vision? In this difficulty, then, and
strait, we may well cry out to the living God, "Such knowledge is too
wonderful for me: it is high, I cannot attain unto it." [958] For I
understand by myself how wonderful and incomprehensible is Thy
knowledge, by which Thou madest me, when I cannot even comprehend
myself whom Thou hast made! And yet, "while I was musing, the fire
burned," [959] so that "I seek Thy face evermore." [960]
__________________________________________________________________
[958] Ps. cxxxix. 6
[959] Ps. xxxix. 3
[960] Ps. cv. 4
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--How the Apostle Says that God is Now Seen by Us Through a
Glass.
14. I know that wisdom is an incorporeal substance, and that it is the
light by which those things are seen that are not seen by carnal eyes;
and yet a man so great and so spiritual [as Paul] says, "We see now
through a glass, in an enigma, but then face to face." [961] If we ask
what and of what sort is this "glass," this assuredly occurs to our
minds, that in a glass nothing is discerned but an image. We have
endeavored, then, so to do; in order that we might see in some way or
other by this image which we are, Him by whom we are made, as by a
glass. And this is intimated also in the words of the same apostle:
"But we with open face, beholding as in a glass the glory of the Lord,
are transformed into the same image, from glory to glory, even as by
the Spirit of the Lord." [962] "Beholding as in a glass," [963] he has
said, i.e. seeing by means of a glass, not looking from a watch-tower:
an ambiguity that does not exist in the Greek language, whence the
apostolic epistles have been rendered into Latin. For in Greek, a
glass, [964] in which the images of things are visible, is wholly
distinct in the sound of the word also from a watch-tower, [965] from
the height of which we command a more distant view. And it is quite
plain that the apostle, in using the word "speculantes" in respect to
the glory of the Lord, meant it to come from "speculum," not from
"specula." But where he says, "We are transformed into the same image,"
he assuredly means to speak of the image of God; and by calling it "the
same," he means that very image which we see in the glass, because that
same image is also the glory of the Lord; as he says elsewhere, "For a
man indeed ought not to cover his head, forasmuch as he is the image
and glory of God," [966] --a text already discussed in the twelfth
book. He means, then, by "We are transformed," that we are changed from
one form to another, and that we pass from a form that is obscure to a
form that is bright: since the obscure form, too, is the image of God;
and if an image, then assuredly also "glory," in which we are created
as men, being better than the other animals. For it is said of human
nature in itself, "The man ought not to cover his head, because he is
the image and glory of God." And this nature, being the most excellent
among things created, is transformed from a form that is defaced into a
form that is beautiful, when it is justified by its own Creator from
ungodliness. Since even in ungodliness itself, the more the faultiness
is to be condemned, the more certainly is the nature to be praised. And
therefore he has added, "from glory to glory:" from the glory of
creation to the glory of justification. Although these words, "from
glory to glory," may be understood also in other ways;--from the glory
of faith to the glory of sight, from the glory whereby we are sons of
God to the glory whereby we shall be like Him, because "we shall see
Him as He is." [967] But in that he has added "as from the Spirit of
the Lord," he declares that the blessing of so desirable a
transformation is conferred upon us by the grace of God.
__________________________________________________________________
[961] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[962] 2 Cor. iii. 18
[963] Speculantes
[964] Speculum
[965] Specula
[966] 1 Cor. xi. 7
[967] 1 John iii. 2
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--Of the Term "Enigma," And of Tropical Modes of Speech.
15. What has been said relates to the words of the apostle, that "we
see now through a glass;" but whereas he has added, "in an enigma," the
meaning of this addition is unknown to any who are unacquainted with
the books that contain the doctrine of those modes of speech, which the
Greeks call Tropes, which Greek word we also use in Latin. For as we
more commonly speak of schemata than of figures, so we more commonly
speak of tropes than of modes. And it is a very difficult and uncommon
thing to express the names of the several modes or tropes in Latin, so
as to refer its appropriate name to each. And hence some Latin
translators, through unwillingness to employ a Greek word, where the
apostle says, "Which things are an allegory," [968] have rendered it by
a circumlocution--Which things signify one thing by another. But there
are several species of this kind of trope that is called allegory, and
one of them is that which is called enigma. Now the definition of the
generic term must necessarily embrace also all its species; and hence,
as every horse is an animal, but not every animal is a horse, so every
enigma is an allegory, but every allegory is not an enigma. What then
is an allegory, but a trope wherein one thing is understood from
another? as in the Epistle to the Thessalonians, "Let us not therefore
sleep, as do others; but let us watch and be sober: for they who sleep,
sleep in the night; and they who are drunken, are drunken in the night:
but let us who are of the day, be sober." [969] But this allegory is
not an enigma. for here the meaning is patent to all but the very dull;
but an enigma is, to explain it briefly, an obscure allegory, as, e.g.,
"The horseleech had three daughters," [970] and other like instances.
But when the apostle spoke of an allegory, he does not find it in the
words, but in the fact; since he has shown that the two Testaments are
to be understood by the two sons of Abraham, one by a bondmaid, and the
other by a free woman, which was a thing not said, but also done. And
before this was explained, it was obscure; and accordingly such an
allegory, which is the generic name, could be specifically called an
enigma.
16. But because it is not only those that are ignorant of the books
that contain the doctrine of tropes, who inquire the apostle's meaning,
when he said that we "see now in an enigma," but those, too, who are
acquainted with the doctrine, but yet desire to know what that enigma
is in which "we now see;" we must find a single meaning for the two
phrases, viz. for that which says, "we see now through a glass," and
for that which adds, "in an enigma." For it makes but one sentence,
when the whole is so uttered, "We see now through a glass in an
enigma." Accordingly, as far as my judgment goes, as by the word glass
he meant to signify an image, so by that of enigma any likeness you
will, but yet one obscure, and difficult to see through. While,
therefore, any likenesses whatever may be understood as signified by
the apostle when he speaks of a glass and an enigma, so that they are
adapted to the understanding of God, in such way as He can be
understood; yet nothing is better adapted to this purpose than that
which is not vainly called His image. Let no one, then, wonder, that we
labor to see in any way at all, even in that fashion of seeing which is
granted to us in this life, viz. through a glass, in an enigma. For we
should not hear of an enigma in this place if sight were easy. And this
is a yet greater enigma, that we do not see what we cannot but see. For
who does not see his own thought? And yet who does see his own thought,
I do not say with the eye of the flesh, but with the inner sight
itself? Who does not see it, and who does see it? Since thought is a
kind of sight of the mind; whether those things are present which are
seen also by the bodily eyes, or perceived by the other senses; or
whether they are not present, but their likenesses are discerned by
thought; or whether neither of these is the case, but things are
thought of that are neither bodily things nor likenesses of bodily
things, as the virtues and vices; or as, indeed, thought itself is
thought of; or whether it be those things which are the subjects of
instruction and of liberal sciences; or whether the higher causes and
reasons themselves of all these things in the unchangeable nature are
thought of; or whether it be even evil, and vain, and false things that
we are thinking of, with either the sense not consenting, or erring in
its consent.
__________________________________________________________________
[968] Gal. iv. 24
[969] 1 Thess. v. 6-8
[970] Prov. xxx. 15
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--Concerning the Word of the Mind, in Which We See the Word
of God, as in a Glass and an Enigma.
17. But let us now speak of those things of which we think as known,
and have in our knowledge even if we do not think of them; whether they
belong to the contemplative knowledge, which, as I have argued, is
properly to be called wisdom, or to the active which is properly to be
called knowledge. For both together belong to one mind, and are one
image of God. But when we treat of the lower of the two distinctly and
separately, then it is not to be called an image of God, although even
then, too, some likeness of that Trinity may be found in it; as we
showed in the thirteenth book. We speak now, therefore, of the entire
knowledge of man altogether, in which whatever is known to us is known;
that, at any rate, which is true; otherwise it would not be known. For
no one knows what is false, except when he knows it to be false; and if
he knows this, then he knows what is true: for it is true that that is
false. We treat, therefore, now of those things which we think as
known, and which are known to us even if they are not being thought of.
But certainly, if we would utter them in words, we can only do so by
thinking them. For although there were no words spoken, at any rate, he
who thinks speaks in his heart. And hence that passage in the book of
Wisdom: "They said within themselves, thinking not aright." [971] For
the words, "They said within themselves," are explained by the addition
of "thinking." A like passage to this is that in the Gospel,--that
certain scribes, when they heard the Lord's words to the paralytic man,
"Be of good cheer, my son, thy sins are forgiven thee," said within
themselves, "This man blasphemeth." For how did they "say within
themselves," except by thinking? Then follows, "And when Jesus saw
their thoughts, He said, Why think ye evil in your thoughts?" [972] So
far Matthew. But Luke narrates the same thing thus: "The scribes and
Pharisees began to think, saying, Who is this that speaketh
blasphemies? Who can forgive sins but God alone? But when Jesus
perceived their thoughts, He, answering, said unto them, What think ye
in your hearts?" [973] That which in the book of Wisdom is, "They said,
thinking," is the same here with, "They thought, saying." For both
there and here it is declared, that they spake within themselves, and
in their own heart, i.e. spake by thinking. For they "spake within
themselves," and it was said to them, "What think ye?" And the Lord
Himself says of that rich man whose ground brought forth plentifully,
"And he thought within himself, saying." [974]
18. Some thoughts, then, are speeches of the heart, wherein the Lord
also shows that there is a mouth, when He says, "Not that which
entereth into the mouth defileth a man; but that which proceedeth out
of the mouth, that defileth a man." In one sentence He has comprised
two diverse mouths of the man, one of the body, one of the heart. For
assuredly, that from which they thought the man to be defiled, enters
into the mouth of the body; but that from which the Lord said the man
was defiled, proceedeth out of the mouth of the heart. So certainly He
Himself explained what He had said. For a little after, He says also to
His disciples concerning the same thing: "Are ye also yet without
understanding? Do ye not understand, that whatsoever entereth in at the
mouth goeth into the belly, and is cast out into the draught?" Here He
most certainly pointed to the mouth of the body. But in that which
follows He plainly speaks of the mouth of the heart, where He says,
"But those things which proceed out of the mouth come forth from the
heart; and they defile the man. For out of the heart proceed evil
thoughts," [975] etc. What is clearer than this explanation? And yet,
when we call thoughts speeches of the heart, it does not follow that
they are not also acts of sight, arising from the sight of knowledge,
when they are true. For when these things are done outwardly by means
of the body, then speech and sight are different things; but when we
think inwardly, the two are one,--just as sight and hearing are two
things mutually distinct in the bodily senses, but to see and hear are
the same thing in the mind; and hence, while speech is not seen but
rather heard outwardly, yet the inward speeches, i.e. thoughts, are
said by the holy Gospel to have been seen, not heard, by the Lord.
"They said within themselves, This man blasphemeth," says the Gospel;
and then subjoined, "And when Jesus saw their thoughts." Therefore He
saw, what they said. For by His own thought He saw their thoughts,
which they supposed no one saw but themselves.
19. Whoever, then, is able to understand a word, not only before it is
uttered in sound, but also before the images of its sounds are
considered in thought,--for this it is which belongs to no tongue, to
wit, of those which are called the tongues of nations, of which our
Latin tongue is one;--whoever, I say, is able to understand this, is
able now to see through this glass and in this enigma some likeness of
that Word of whom it is said, "In the beginning was the Word, and the
Word was with God, and the Word was God." [976] For of necessity, when
we speak what is true, i.e. speak what we know, there is born from the
knowledge itself which the memory retains, a word that is altogether of
the same kind with that knowledge from which it is born. For the
thought that is formed by the thing which we know, is the word which we
speak in the heart: which word is neither Greek nor Latin, nor of any
other tongue. But when it is needful to convey this to the knowledge of
those to whom we speak, then some sign is assumed whereby to signify
it. And generally a sound, sometimes a nod, is exhibited, the former to
the ears, the latter to the eyes, that the word which we bear in our
mind may become known also by bodily signs to the bodily senses. For
what is to nod or beckon, except to speak in some way to the sight? And
Holy Scripture gives its testimony to this; for we read in the Gospel
according to John: "Verily, verily, I say unto you, that one of you
shall betray me. Then the disciples looked one upon another, doubting
of whom He spake. Now there was leaning on Jesus' breast one of His
disciples whom Jesus loved. Simon Peter therefore beckons to him, and
says to him, Who is it of whom He speaks?" [977] Here he spoke by
beckoning what he did not venture to speak by sounds. But whereas we
exhibit these and the like bodily signs either to ears or eyes of
persons present to whom we speak, letters have been invented that we
might be able to converse also with the absent; but these are signs of
words, as words themselves are signs in our conversation of those
things which we think.
__________________________________________________________________
[971] Wisd. ii. 1
[972] Matt. ix. 2-4
[973] Luke v. 21, 22
[974] Luke xii. 17
[975] Matt. xv. 10-20
[976] John i. 1
[977] John xiii. 21-24
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 11.--The Likeness of the Divine Word, Such as It Is, is to Be
Sought, Not in Our Own Outer and Sensible Word, But in the Inner and
Mental One. There is the Greatest Possible Unlikeness Between Our Word
and Knowledge and the Divine Word and Knowledge.
20. Accordingly, the word that sounds outwardly is the sign of the word
that gives light inwardly; which latter has the greater claim to be
called a word. For that which is uttered with the mouth of the flesh,
is the articulate sound of a word; and is itself also called a word, on
account of that to make which outwardly apparent it is itself assumed.
For our word is so made in some way into an articulate sound of the
body, by assuming that articulate sound by which it may be manifested
to men's senses, as the Word of God was made flesh, by assuming that
flesh in which itself also might be manifested to men's senses. And as
our word becomes an articulate sound, yet is not changed into one; so
the Word of God became flesh, but far be it from us to say He was
changed into flesh. For both that word of ours became an articulate
sound, and that other Word became flesh, by assuming it, not by
consuming itself so as to be changed into it. And therefore whoever
desires to arrive at any likeness, be it of what sort it may, of the
Word of God, however in many respects unlike, must not regard the word
of ours that sounds in the ears, either when it is uttered in an
articulate sound or when it is silently thought. For the words of all
tongues that are uttered in sound are also silently thought, and the
mind runs over verses while the bodily mouth is silent. And not only
the numbers of syllables, but the tunes also of songs, since they are
corporeal, and pertain to that sense of the body which is called
hearing, are at hand by certain incorporeal images appropriate to them,
to those who think of them, and who silently revolve all these things.
But we must pass by this, in order to arrive at that word of man, by
the likeness of which, be it of what sort it may, the Word of God may
be somehow seen as in an enigma. Not that word which was spoken to this
or that prophet, and of which it is said, "Now the word of God grew and
multiplied;" [978] and again, "Faith then cometh by hearing, and
hearing by the word of Christ;" [979] and again, "When ye received the
word of God which ye heard of us, ye received it not as the word of men
but, as it is in truth, the word of God" [980] (and there are countless
other like sayings in the Scriptures respecting the word of God, which
is disseminated in the sounds of many and diverse languages through the
hearts and mouths of men; and which is therefore called the word of
God, because the doctrine that is delivered is not human, but
divine);--but we are now seeking to see, in whatsoever way we can, by
means of this likeness, that Word of God of which it is said, "The Word
was God;" of which it is said, "All things were made by Him;" of which
it is said, "The Word became flesh;" of which it is said "The Word of
God on high is the fountain of wisdom." [981] We must go on, then, to
that word of man, to the word of the rational animal, to the word of
that image of God, that is not born of God, but made by God; which is
neither utterable in sound nor capable of being thought under the
likeness of sound such as must needs be with the word of any tongue;
but which precedes all the signs by which it is signified, and is
begotten from the knowledge that continues in the mind, when that same
knowledge is spoken inwardly according as it really is. For the sight
of thinking is exceedingly like the sight of knowledge. For when it is
uttered by sound, or by any bodily sign, it is not uttered according as
it really is, but as it can be seen or heard by the body. When,
therefore, that is in the word which is in the knowledge, then there is
a true word, and truth, such as is looked for from man; such that what
is in the knowledge is also in the word, and what is not in the
knowledge is also not in the word. Here may be recognized, "Yea, yea;
nay, nay." [982] And so this likeness of the image that is made,
approaches as nearly as is possible to that likeness of the image that
is born, by which God the Son is declared to be in all things like in
substance to the Father. We must notice in this enigma also another
likeness of the word of God; viz. that, as it is said of that Word,
"All things were made by Him," where God is declared to have made the
universe by His only-begotten Son, so there are no works of man that
are not first spoken in his heart: whence it is written, "A word is the
beginning of every work." [983] But here also, it is when the word is
true, that then it is the beginning of a good work. And a word is true
when it is begotten from the knowledge of working good works, so that
there too may be preserved the "yea yea, nay nay;" in order that
whatever is in that knowledge by which we are to live, may be also in
the word by which we are to work, and whatever is not in the one may
not be in the other. Otherwise such a word will be a lie, not truth;
and what comes thence will be a sin, and not a good work. There is yet
this other likeness of the Word of God in this likeness of our word,
that there can be a word of ours with no work following it, but there
cannot be any work unless a word precedes; just as the Word of God
could have existed though no creature existed, but no creature could
exist unless by that Word by which all things are made. And therefore
not God the Father, not the Holy Spirit, not the Trinity itself, but
the Son only, which is the Word of God, was made flesh; although the
Trinity was the maker: in order that we might live rightly through our
word following and imitating His example, i.e. by having no lie in
either the thought or the work of our word. But this perfection of this
image is one to be at some time hereafter. In order to attain this it
is that the good master teaches us by Christian faith, and by pious
doctrine, that "with face unveiled" from the veil of the law, which is
the shadow of things to come, "beholding as in a glass the glory of the
Lord," i.e. gazing at it through a glass, "we may be transformed into
the same image from glory to glory, as by the Spirit of the Lord;"
[984] as we explained above.
21. When, therefore, this image shall have been renewed to perfection
by this transformation, then we shall be like God, because we shall see
Him, not through a glass, but "as He is;" [985] which the Apostle Paul
expresses by "face to face." [986] But now, who can explain how great
is the unlikeness also, in this glass, in this enigma, in this likeness
such as it is? Yet I will touch upon some points, as I can, by which to
indicate it.
__________________________________________________________________
[978] Acts vi. 7
[979] Rom. x. 17
[980] 1 Thess. ii. 13
[981] Ecclus. i. 5
[982] Matt. v. 37
[983] Ecclus. xxxvii. 20
[984] 2 Cor. iii. 17
[985] 1 John iii. 4
[986] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 12.--The Academic Philosophy.
First, of what sort and how great is the very knowledge itself that a
man can attain, be he ever so skillful and learned, by which our
thought is formed with truth, when we speak what we know? For to pass
by those things that come into the mind from the bodily senses, among
which so many are otherwise than they seem to be, that he who is
overmuch pressed down by their resemblance to truth, seems sane to
himself, but really is not sane;--whence it is that the Academic [987]
philosophy has so prevailed as to be still more wretchedly insane by
doubting all things;--passing by, then, those things that come into the
mind by the bodily senses, how large a proportion is left of things
which we know in such manner as we know that we live? In regard to
this, indeed, we are absolutely without any fear lest perchance we are
being deceived by some resemblance of the truth; since it is certain,
that he who is deceived, yet lives. And this again is not reckoned
among those objects of sight that are presented from without, so that
the eye may be deceived in it; in such way as it is when an oar in the
water looks bent, and towers seem to move as you sail past them, and a
thousand other things that are otherwise than they seem to be: for this
is not a thing that is discerned by the eye of the flesh. The knowledge
by which we know that we live is the most inward of all knowledge, of
which even the Academic cannot insinuate: Perhaps you are asleep, and
do not know it, and you see things in your sleep. For who does not know
that what people see in dreams is precisely like what they see when
awake? But he who is certain of the knowledge of his own life, does not
therein say, I know I am awake, but, I know I am alive; therefore,
whether he be asleep or awake, he is alive. Nor can he be deceived in
that knowledge by dreams; since it belongs to a living man both to
sleep and to see in sleep. Nor can the Academic again say, in
confutation of this knowledge: Perhaps you are mad, and do not know it:
for what madmen see is precisely like what they also see who are sane;
but he who is mad is alive. Nor does he answer the Academic by saying,
I know I am not mad, but, I know I am alive. Therefore he who says he
knows he is alive, can neither be deceived nor lie. Let a thousand
kinds, then, of deceitful objects of sight be presented to him who
says, I know I am alive; yet he will fear none of them, for he who is
deceived yet is alive. But if such things alone pertain to human
knowledge, they are very few indeed; unless that they can be so
multiplied in each kind, as not only not to be few, but to reach in the
result to infinity. For he who says, I know I am alive, says that he
knows one single thing. Further, if he says, I know that I know I am
alive, now there are two; but that he knows these two is a third thing
to know. And so he can add a fourth and a fifth, and innumerable
others, if he holds out. But since he cannot either comprehend an
innumerable number by additions of units, or say a thing innumerable
times, he comprehends this at least, and with perfect certainty, viz.
that this is both true and so innumerable that he cannot truly
comprehend and say its infinite number. This same thing may be noticed
also in the case of a will that is certain. For it would be an impudent
answer to make to any one who should say, I will to be happy, that
perhaps you are deceived. And if he should say, I know that I will
this, and I know that I know it, he can add yet a third to these two,
viz. that he knows these two; and a fourth, that he knows that he knows
these two; and so on ad infinitum. Likewise, if any one were to say, I
will not to be mistaken; will it not be true, whether he is mistaken or
whether he is not, that nevertheless he does will not to be mistaken?
Would it not be most impudent to say to him, Perhaps you are deceived?
when beyond doubt, whereinsoever he may be deceived, he is nevertheless
not deceived in thinking that he wills not to be deceived. And if he
says he knows this, he adds any number he chooses of things known, and
perceives that number to be infinite. For he who says, I will not to be
deceived, and I know that I will not to be so, and I know that I know
it, is able now to set forth an infinite number here also, however
awkward may be the expression of it. And other things too are to be
found capable of refuting the Academics, who contend that man can know
nothing. But we must restrict ourselves, especially as this is not the
subject we have undertaken in the present work. There are three books
of ours on that subject, [988] written in the early time of our
conversion, which he who can and will read, and who understands them,
will doubtless not be much moved by any of the many arguments which
they have found out against the discovery of truth. For whereas there
are two kinds of knowable things,--one, of those things which the mind
perceives by the bodily senses; the other, of those which it perceives
by itself,--these philosophers have babbled much against the bodily
senses, but have never been able to throw doubt upon those most certain
perceptions of things true, which the mind knows by itself, such as is
that which I have mentioned, I know that I am alive. But far be it from
us to doubt the truth of what we have learned by the bodily senses;
since by them we have learned to know the heaven and the earth, and
those things in them which are known to us, so far as He who created
both us and them has willed them to be within our knowledge. Far be it
from us too to deny, that we know what we have learned by the testimony
of others: otherwise we know not that there is an ocean; we know not
that the lands and cities exist which most copious report commends to
us; we know not that those men were, and their works, which we have
learned by reading history; we know not the news that is daily brought
us from this quarter or that, and confirmed by consistent and
conspiring evidence; lastly, we know not at what place or from whom we
have been born: since in all these things we have believed the
testimony of others. And if it is most absurd to say this, then we must
confess, that not only our own senses, but those of other persons also,
have added very much indeed to our knowledge.
22. All these things, then, both those which the human mind knows by
itself, and those which it knows by the bodily senses, and those which
it has received and knows by the testimony of others, are laid up and
retained in the storehouse of the memory; and from these is begotten a
word that is true when we speak what we know, but a word that is before
all sound, before all thought of a sound. For the word is then most
like to the thing known, from which also its image is begotten, since
the sight of thinking arises from the sight of knowledge; when it is a
word belonging to no tongue, but is a true word concerning a true
thing, having nothing of its own, but wholly derived from that
knowledge from which it is born. Nor does it signify when he learned
it, who speaks what he knows; for sometimes he says it immediately upon
learning it; provided only that the word is true, i.e. sprung from
things that are known.
__________________________________________________________________
[987] [Not the Old Academy of Plato and his immediate disciples, who
were anti-skeptical; but the new Academy, to which Augustin has
previously referred (XIV. xix. 26). This was skeptical--W.G.T.S.]
[988] Libri Tres contra Academicos
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 13.--Still Further of the Difference Between the Knowledge and
Word of Our Mind, and the Knowledge and Word of God.
But is it so, that God the Father, from whom is born the Word that is
God of God,--is it so, then, that God the Father, in respect to that
wisdom which He is to Himself, has learned some things by His bodily
senses, and others by Himself? Who could say this, who thinks of God,
not as a rational animal, but as One above the rational soul? So far at
least as He can be thought of, by those who place Him above all animals
and all souls, although they see Him by conjecture through a glass and
in an enigma, not yet face to face as He is. Is it that God the Father
has learned those very things which He knows, not by the body, for He
has none, but by Himself, from elsewhere from some one? or has stood in
need of messengers or witnesses that He might know them? Certainly not;
since His own perfection enables Him to know all things that He knows.
No doubt He has messengers, viz. the angels; but not to announce to Him
things that He knows not, for there is nothing He does not know. But
their good lies in consulting the truth about their own works. And this
it is which is meant by saying that they bring Him word of some things,
not that He may learn of them, but they of Him by His word without
bodily sound. They bring Him word, too, of that which He wills, being
sent by Him to whomever He wills, and hearing all from Him by that word
of His, i.e. finding in His truth what themselves are to do: what, to
whom, and when, they are to bring word. For we too pray to Him, yet do
not inform Him what our necessities are. "For your Father knoweth,"
says His Word, "what things ye have need of, before you ask Him." [989]
Nor did He become acquainted with them, so as to know them, at any
definite time; but He knew beforehand, without any beginning, all
things to come in time, and among them also both what we should ask of
Him, and when; and to whom He would either listen or not listen, and on
what subjects. And with respect to all His creatures, both spiritual
and corporeal, He does not know them because they are, but they are
because He knows them. For He was not ignorant of what He was about to
create; therefore He created because He knew; He did not know because
He created. Nor did He know them when created in any other way than He
knew them when still to be created, for nothing accrued to His wisdom
from them; but that wisdom remained as it was, while they came into
existence as it was fitting and when it was fitting. So, too, it is
written in the book of Ecclesiasticus: "All things are known to Him ere
ever they were created: so also after they were perfected." [990] "So,"
he says, not otherwise; so were they known to Him, both ere ever they
were created, and after they were perfected. This knowledge, therefore,
is far unlike our knowledge. And the knowledge of God is itself also
His wisdom, and His wisdom is itself His essence or substance. Because
in the marvellous simplicity of that nature, it is not one thing to be
wise and another to be, but to be wise is to be; as we have often said
already also in the earlier books. But our knowledge is in most things
capable both of being lost and of being recovered, because to us to be
is not the same as to know or to be wise; since it is possible for us
to be, even although we know not, neither are wise in that which we
have learned from elsewhere. Therefore, as our knowledge is unlike that
knowledge of God, so is our word also, which is born from our
knowledge, unlike that Word of God which is born from the essence of
the Father. And this is as if I should say, born from the Father's
knowledge, from the Father's wisdom; or still more exactly, from the
Father who is knowledge, from the Father who is wisdom.
__________________________________________________________________
[989] Matt. vi. 8
[990] Ecclus. xxiii. 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 14.--The Word of God is in All Things Equal to the Father, from
Whom It is.
23. The Word of God, then, the only-begotten Son of the Father, in all
things like and equal to the Father, God of God, Light of Light, Wisdom
of Wisdom, Essence of Essence, is altogether that which the Father is,
yet is not the Father, because the one is Son, the other is Father. And
hence He knows all that the Father knows; but to Him to know, as to be,
is from the Father, for to know and to be is there one. And therefore,
as to be is not to the Father from the Son, so neither is to know.
Accordingly, as though uttering Himself, the Father begat the Word
equal to Himself in all things; for He would not have uttered Himself
wholly and perfectly, if there were in His Word anything more or less
than in Himself. And here that is recognized in the highest sense,
"Yea, yea; nay, nay." [991] And therefore this Word is truly truth,
since whatever is in that knowledge from which it is born is also in
itself and whatever is not in that knowledge is not in the Word. And
this Word can never have anything false, because it is unchangeable, as
He is from whom it is. For "the Son can do nothing of Himself, but what
He seeth the Father do." [992] Through power He cannot do this; nor is
it infirmity, but strength, by which truth cannot be false. Therefore
God the Father knows all things in Himself, knows all things in the
Son; but in Himself as though Himself, in the Son as though His own
Word which Word is spoken concerning all those things that are in
Himself. Similarly the Son knows all things, viz. in Himself, as things
which are born of those which the Father knows in Himself, and in the
Father, as those of which they are born, which the Son Himself knows in
Himself. The Father then, and the Son know mutually; but the one by
begetting, the other by being born. And each of them sees
simultaneously all things that are in their knowledge, in their wisdom,
in their essence: not by parts or singly, as though by alternately
looking from this side to that, and from that side to this, and again
from this or that object to this or that object, so as not to be able
to see some things without at the same time not seeing others; but, as
I said, sees all things simultaneously, whereof there is not one that
He does not always see.
24. And that word, then, of ours which has neither sound nor thought of
sound, but is of that thing in seeing which we speak inwardly, and
which therefore belongs to no tongue; and hence is in some sort like,
in this enigma, to that Word of God which is also God; since this too
is born of our knowledge, in such manner as that also is born of the
knowledge of the Father: such a word, I say, of ours, which we find to
be in some way like that Word, let us not be slow to consider how
unlike also it is, as it may be in our power to utter it.
__________________________________________________________________
[991] Matt. v. 37
[992] John v. 19
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 15.--How Great is the Unlikeness Between Our Word and the
Divine Word. Our Word Cannot Be or Be Called Eternal.
Is our word, then, born of our knowledge only? Do we not say many
things also that we do not know? And say them not with doubt, but
thinking them to be true; while if perchance they are true in respect
to the things themselves of which we speak, they are yet not true in
respect to our word, because a word is not true unless it is born of a
thing that is known. In this sense, then, our word is false, not when
we lie, but when we are deceived. And when we doubt, our word is not
yet of the thing of which we doubt, but it is a word concerning the
doubt itself. For although we do not know whether that is true of which
we doubt, yet we do know that we doubt; and hence, when we say we
doubt, we say a word that is true, for we say what we know. And what,
too, of its being possible for us to lie? And when we do, certainly we
both willingly and knowingly have a word that is false, wherein there
is a word that is true, viz. that we lie, for this we know. And when we
confess that we have lied, we speak that which is true; for we say what
we know, for we know that we lied. But that Word which is God, and can
do more than we, cannot do this. For it "can do nothing except what it
sees the Father do;" and it "speaks not of itself," but it has from the
Father all that it speaks, since the Father speaks it in a special way;
and the great might of that Word is that it cannot lie, because there
cannot be there "yea and nay," [993] but "yea yea, nay nay." Well, but
that is not even to be called a word, which is not true. I willingly
assent, if so it be. What, then, if our word is true and therefore is
rightly called a word? Is it the case that, as we can speak of sight of
sight, and knowledge of knowledge, so we can speak of essence of
essence, as that Word of God is especially spoken of, and is especially
to be spoken of? Why so? Because to us, to be is not the same as to
know; since we know many things which in some sense live by memory, and
so in some sense die by being forgotten: and so, when those things are
no longer in our knowledge, yet we still are: and while our knowledge
has slipped away and perished out of our mind, we are still alive.
25. In respect to those things also which are so known that they can
never escape the memory, because they are present, and belong to the
nature of the mind itself,--as, e.g., the knowing that we are alive
(for this continues so long as the mind continues; and because the mind
continues always, this also continues always);--I say, in respect to
this and to any other like instances, in which we are the rather to
contemplate the image of God, it is difficult to make out in what way,
although they are always known, yet because they are not always also
thought of, an eternal word can be spoken respecting them, when our
word is spoken in our thought. For it is eternal to the soul to live;
it is eternal to know that it lives. Yet it is not eternal to it to be
thinking of its own life, or to be thinking of its own knowledge of its
own life; since, in entering upon this or that occupation, it will
cease to think of this, although it does not cease from knowing it. And
hence it comes to pass, that if there can be in the mind any knowledge
that is eternal, while the thought of that knowledge cannot be eternal,
and any inner and true word of ours is only said by our thought, then
God alone can be understood to have a Word that is eternal, and
co-eternal with Himself. Unless, perhaps, we are to say that the very
possibility of thought--since that which is known is capable of being
truly thought, even at the time when it is not being
thought--constitutes a word as perpetual as the knowledge itself is
perpetual. But how is that a word which is not yet formed in the vision
of the thought? How will it be like the knowledge of which it is born,
if it has not the form of that knowledge, and is only now called a word
because it can have it? For it is much as if one were to say that a
word is to be so called because it can be a word. But what is this that
can be a word, and is therefore already held worthy of the name of a
word? What, I say, is this thing that is formable, but not yet formed,
except a something in our mind, which we toss to and fro by revolving
it this way or that, while we think of first one thing and then
another, according as they are found by or occur to us? And the true
word then comes into being, when, as I said, that which we toss to and
fro by revolving it arrives at that which we know, and is formed by
that, in taking its entire likeness; so that in what manner each thing
is known, in that manner also it is thought, i.e. is said in this
manner in the heart, without articulate sound, without thought of
articulate sound, such as no doubt belongs to some particular tongue.
And hence if we even admit, in order not to dispute laboriously about a
name, that this something of our mind, which can be formed from our
knowledge, is to be already called a word, even before it is so formed,
because it is, so to say, already formable, who would not see how great
would be the unlikeness between it and that Word of God, which is so in
the form of God, as not to have been formable before it was formed, or
to have been capable at any time of being formless, but is a simple
form, and simply equal to Him from whom it is, and with whom it is
wonderfully co-eternal?
__________________________________________________________________
[993] 2 Cor. i. 19
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 16.--Our Word is Never to Be Equalled to the Divine Word, Not
Even When We Shall Be Like God.
Wherefore that Word of God is in such wise so called, as not to be
called a thought of God, lest we believe that there is anything in God
which can be revolved, so that it at one time receives and at another
recovers a form, so as to be a word, and again can lose that form and
be revolved in some sense formlessly. Certainly that excellent master
of speech knew well the force of words, and had looked into the nature
of thought, who said in his poem, "And revolves with himself the
varying issues of war," [994] i.e. thinks of them. That Son of God,
then, is not called the Thought of God, but the Word of God. For our
own thought, attaining to what we know, and formed thereby, is our true
word. And so the Word of God ought to be understood without any thought
on the part of God, so that it be understood as the simple form itself,
but containing nothing formable that can be also unformed. There are,
indeed, passages of Holy Scripture that speak of God's thoughts; but
this is after the same mode of speech by which the forgetfulness of God
is also there spoken of, whereas in strict propriety of language there
is in Him certainly no forgetfulness.
26. Wherefore, since we have found now in this enigma so great an
unlikeness to God and the Word of God, wherein yet there was found
before some likeness, this, too, must be admitted, that even when we
shall be like Him, when "we shall see Him as He is" [995] (and
certainly he who said this was aware beyond doubt of our present
unlikeness), not even then shall we be equal to Him in nature. For that
nature which is made is ever less than that which makes. And at that
time our word will not indeed be false, because we shall neither lie
nor be deceived. Perhaps, too, our thoughts will no longer revolve by
passing and repassing from one thing to another, but we shall see all
our knowledge at once, and at one glance. Still, when even this shall
have come to pass, if indeed it shall come to pass, the creature which
was formable will indeed have been formed, so that nothing will be
wanting of that form to which it ought to attain; yet nevertheless it
will not be to be equalled to that simplicity wherein there is not
anything formable, which has been formed or reformed, but only form;
and which being neither formless nor formed, itself is eternal and
unchangeable substance.
__________________________________________________________________
[994] AEn. x. 159, 160.
[995] 1 John iii. 2
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 17.--How the Holy Spirit is Called Love, and Whether He Alone
is So Called. That the Holy Spirit is in the Scriptures Properly Called
by the Name of Love.
27. We have sufficiently spoken of the Father and of the Son, so far as
was possible for us to see through this glass and in this enigma. We
must now treat of the Holy Spirit, so far as by God's gift it is
permitted to see Him. And the Holy Spirit, according to the Holy
Scriptures, is neither of the Father alone, nor of the Son alone, but
of both; and so intimates to us a mutual love, wherewith the Father and
the Son reciprocally love one another. But the language of the Word of
God, in order to exercise us, has caused those things to be sought into
with the greater zeal, which do not lie on the surface, but are to be
scrutinized in hidden depths, and to be drawn out from thence. The
Scriptures, accordingly, have not said, The Holy Spirit is Love. If
they had said so, they would have done away with no small part of this
inquiry. But they have said, "God is love;" [996] so that it is
uncertain and remains to be inquired whether God the Father is love, or
God the Son, or God the Holy Ghost, or the Trinity itself which is God.
For we are not going to say that God is called Love because love itself
is a substance worthy of the name of God, but because it is a gift of
God, as it is said to God, "Thou art my patience." [997] For this is
not said because our patience is God's substance, but in that He
Himself gives it to us; as it is elsewhere read, "Since from Him is my
patience." [998] For the usage of words itself in Scripture
sufficiently refutes this interpretation; for "Thou art my patience" is
of the same kind as "Thou, Lord, art my hope," [999] and "The Lord my
God is my mercy," [1000] and many like texts. And it is not said, O
Lord my love, or, Thou art my love, or, God my love; but it is said
thus, "God is love," as it is said, "God is a Spirit." [1001] And he
who does not discern this, must ask understanding from the Lord, not an
explanation from us; for we cannot say anything more clearly.
28. "God," then, "is love;" but the question is, whether the Father, or
the Son, or the Holy Spirit, or the Trinity itself: because the Trinity
is not three Gods, but one God. But I have already argued above in this
book, that the Trinity, which is God, is not so to be understood from
those three things which have been set forth in the trinity of our
mind, as that the Father should be the memory of all three, and the Son
the understanding of all three, and the Holy Spirit the love of all
three; as though the Father should neither understand nor love for
Himself, but the Son should understand for Him, and the Holy Spirit
love for Him, but He Himself should remember only both for Himself and
for them; nor the Son remember nor love for Himself, but the Father
should remember for Him, and the Holy Spirit love for Him, but He
Himself understand only both for Himself and them; nor likewise that
the Holy Spirit should neither remember nor understand for Himself, but
the Father should remember for Him, and the Son understand for Him,
while He Himself should love only both for Himself and for them; but
rather in this way, that both all and each have all three each in His
own nature. Nor that these things should differ in them, as in us
memory is one thing, understanding another, love or charity another,
but should be some one thing that is equivalent to all, as wisdom
itself; and should be so contained in the nature of each, as that He
who has it is that which He has, as being an unchangeable and simple
substance. If all this, then, has been understood, and so far as is
granted to us to see or conjecture in things so great, has been made
patently true, I know not why both the Father and the Son and the Holy
Spirit should not be called Love, and all together one love, just as
both the Father and the Son and the Holy Spirit is called Wisdom, and
all together not three, but one wisdom. For so also both the Father is
God, and the Son God, and the Holy Ghost God, and all three together
one God.
29. And yet it is not to no purpose that in this Trinity the Son and
none other is called the Word of God, and the Holy Spirit and none
other the Gift of God, and God the Father alone is He from whom the
Word is born, and from whom the Holy Spirit principally proceeds. And
therefore I have added the word principally, because we find that the
Holy Spirit proceeds from the Son also. But the Father gave Him this
too, not as to one already existing, and not yet having it; but
whatever He gave to the only-begotten Word, He gave by begetting Him.
Therefore He so begat Him as that the common Gift should proceed from
Him also, and the Holy Spirit should be the Spirit of both. This
distinction, then, of the inseparable Trinity is not to be merely
accepted in passing, but to be carefully considered; for hence it was
that the Word of God was specially called also the Wisdom of God,
although both Father and Holy Spirit are wisdom. If, then, any one of
the three is to be specially called Love, what more fitting than that
it should be the Holy Spirit?--namely, that in that simple and highest
nature, substance should not be one thing and love another, but that
substance itself should be love, and love itself should be substance,
whether in the Father, or in the Son, or in the Holy Spirit; and yet
that the Holy Spirit should be specially called Love.
30. Just as sometimes all the utterances of the Old Testament together
in the Holy Scriptures are signified by the name of the Law. For the
apostle, in citing a text from the prophet Isaiah, where he says, "With
divers tongues and with divers lips will I speak to this people," yet
prefaced it by, "It is written in the Law." [1002] And the Lord Himself
says, "It is written in their Law, They hated me without a cause,"
[1003] whereas this is read in the Psalm. [1004] And sometimes that
which was given by Moses is specially called the Law: as it is said,
"The Law and the Prophets were until John;" [1005] and, "On these two
commandments hang all the Law and the Prophets." [1006] Here,
certainly, that is specially called the Law which was from Mount Sinai.
And the Psalms, too, are signified under the name of the Prophets; and
yet in another place the Saviour Himself says, "All things must needs
be fulfilled, which are written in the Law, and the Prophets, and the
Psalms concerning me." [1007] Here, on the other side, He meant the
name of Prophets to be taken as not including the Psalms. Therefore the
Law with the Prophets and the Psalms taken together is called the Law
universally, and the Law is also specially so called which was given by
Moses. Likewise the Prophets are so called in common together with the
Psalms, and they are also specially so called exclusive of the Psalms.
And many other instances might be adduced to teach us, that many names
of things are both put universally, and also specially applied to
particular things, were it not that a long discourse is to be avoided
in a plain case. I have said so much, lest any one should think that it
was therefore unsuitable for us to call the Holy Spirit Love, because
both God the Father and God the Son can be called Love.
31. As, then, we call the only Word of God specially by the name of
Wisdom, although universally both the Holy Spirit and the Father
Himself is wisdom; so the Holy Spirit is specially called by the name
of Love, although universally both the Father and the Son are love. But
the Word of God, i.e. the only-begotten Son of God, is expressly called
the Wisdom of God by the mouth of the apostle, where he says, "Christ
the power of God, and the wisdom of God." [1008] But where the Holy
Spirit is called Love, is to be found by careful scrutiny of the
language of John the apostle, who, after saying, "Beloved, let us love
one another, for love is of God," has gone on to say, "And every one
that loveth is born of God, and knoweth God. He that loveth not,
knoweth not God; for God is love." Here, manifestly, he has called that
love God, which he said was of God; therefore God of God is love. But
because both the Son is born of God the Father, and the Holy Spirit
proceeds from God the Father, it is rightly asked which of them we
ought here to think is the rather called the love that is God. For the
Father only is so God as not to be of God; and hence the love that is
so God as to be of God, is either the Son or the Holy Spirit. But when,
in what follows, the apostle had mentioned the love of God, not that by
which we love Him, but that by which He "loved us, and sent His Son to
be a propitiator for our sins," [1009] and thereupon had exhorted us
also to love one another, and that so God would abide in us,--because,
namely, he had called God Love; immediately, in his wish to speak yet
more expressly on the subject, "Hereby," he says, "know we that we
dwell in Him, and He in us, because He hath given us of His Spirit."
Therefore the Holy Spirit, of whom He hath given us, makes us to abide
in God, and Him in us; and this it is that love does. Therefore He is
the God that is love. Lastly, a little after, when he had repeated the
same thing, and had said "God is love," he immediately subjoined, "And
he who abideth in love, abideth in God, and God abideth in him;" whence
he had said above, "Hereby we know that we abide in Him, and He in us,
because He hath given us of His Spirit." He therefore is signified,
where we read that God is love. Therefore God the Holy Spirit, who
proceedeth from the Father, when He has been given to man, inflames him
to the love of God and of his neighbor, and is Himself love. For man
has not whence to love God, unless from God; and therefore he says a
little after, "Let us love Him, because He first loved us." [1010] The
Apostle Paul, too, says, "The love of God is shed abroad in our hearts
by the Holy Ghost, which is given unto us." [1011]
__________________________________________________________________
[996] 1 John iv. 16
[997] Ps. lxxi. 5
[998] Ps. lxii. 5
[999] Ps. xci. 9
[1000] Ps. lix. 17
[1001] John iv. 24
[1002] Isa. xxviii. 11 and 1 Cor. xiv. 21
[1003] John xv. 25
[1004] Ps. xxxv. 19
[1005] Matt. xi. 13
[1006] Matt. xxii. 40
[1007] Luke xxiv. 44
[1008] 1 Cor. i. 24
[1009] John iv. 10
[1010] 1 John iv. 7-19
[1011] Rom. v. 5
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 18.--No Gift of God is More Excellent Than Love.
32. There is no gift of God more excellent than this. It alone
distinguishes the sons of the eternal kingdom and the sons of eternal
perdition. Other gifts, too, are given by the Holy Spirit; but without
love they profit nothing. Unless, therefore, the Holy Spirit is so far
imparted to each, as to make him one who loves God and his neighbor, he
is not removed from the left hand to the right. Nor is the Spirit
specially called the Gift, unless on account of love. And he who has
not this love, "though he speak with the tongues of men and angels, is
sounding brass and a tinkling cymbal; and though he have the gift of
prophecy, and know all mysteries and all knowledge, and though he have
all faith, so that he can remove mountains, he is nothing; and though
he bestow all his goods to feed the poor, and though he give his body
to be burned, it profiteth him nothing." [1012] How great a good, then,
is that without which goods so great bring no one to eternal life! But
love or charity itself,--for they are two names for one thing,--if he
have it that does not speak with tongues, nor has the gift of prophecy,
nor knows all mysteries and all knowledge, nor gives all his goods to
the poor, either because he has none to give or because some necessity
hinders, nor delivers his body to be burned, if no trial of such a
suffering overtakes him, brings that man to the kingdom, so that faith
itself is only rendered profitable by love, since faith without love
can indeed exist, but cannot profit. And therefore also the Apostle
Paul says, "In Christ Jesus neither circumcision availeth anything, nor
uncircumcision, but faith that worketh by love:" [1013] so
distinguishing it from that faith by which even "the devils believe and
tremble." [1014] Love, therefore, which is of God and is God, is
specially the Holy Spirit, by whom the love of God is shed abroad in
our hearts, by which love the whole Trinity dwells in us. And therefore
most rightly is the Holy Spirit, although He is God, called also the
gift of God. [1015] And by that gift what else can properly be
understood except love, which brings to God, and without which any
other gift of God whatsoever does not bring to God?
__________________________________________________________________
[1012] 1 Cor. xiii. 1-3
[1013] Gal. v. 6
[1014] Jas. ii. 19
[1015] Acts viii. 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 19.--The Holy Spirit is Called the Gift of God in the
Scriptures. By the Gift of the Holy Spirit is Meant the Gift Which is
the Holy Spirit. The Holy Spirit is Specially Called Love, Although Not
Only the Holy Spirit in the Trinity is Love.
33. Is this too to be proved, that the Holy Spirit is called in the
sacred books the gift of God? If people look for this too, we have in
the Gospel according to John the words of our Lord Jesus Christ, who
says, "If any one thirst, let him come to me and drink: he that
believeth on me, as the Scripture saith, out of his belly shall flow
rivers of living water." And the evangelist has gone on further to add,
"And this He spake of the Spirit, which they should receive who believe
in Him." [1016] And hence Paul the apostle also says, "And we have all
been made to drink into one Spirit." [1017] The question then is,
whether that water is called the gift of God which is the Holy Spirit.
But as we find here that this water is the Holy Spirit, so we find
elsewhere in the Gospel itself that this water is called the gift of
God. For when the same Lord was talking with the woman of Samaria at
the well, to whom He had said, "Give me to drink," and she had answered
that the Jews "have no dealings" with the Samaritans, Jesus answered
and said unto her, "If thou hadst known the gift of God, and who it is
that says to thee, Give me to drink, thou wouldest have asked of Him,
and He would have given thee living water. The woman saith unto Him,
Sir, thou hast nothing to draw with, and the well is deep: whence then
hast thou this living water, etc.? Jesus answered and said unto her,
Every one that drinketh of this water shall thirst again; but whose
shall drink of the water that I shall give him, shall never thirst; but
the water that I shall give him, shall be in him a fountain of water
springing up unto eternal life." [1018] Because this living water,
then, as the evangelist has explained to us, is the Holy Spirit,
without doubt the Spirit is the gift of God, of which the Lord says
here, "If thou hadst known the gift of God, and who it is that saith
unto thee, Give me to drink, thou wouldest have asked of Him, and He
would have given thee living water." For that which is in the one
passage, "Out of his belly shall flow rivers of living water," is in
the other, "shall be in him a fountain of water springing up unto
eternal life."
34. Paul the apostle also says, "To each of us is given grace according
to the measure of the gift of Christ;" and then, that he might show
that by the gift of Christ he meant the Holy Spirit, he has gone on to
add, "Wherefore He saith, He hath ascended up on high, He hath led
captivity captive, and hath given gifts to men." [1019] And every one
knows that the Lord Jesus, when He had ascended into heaven after the
resurrection from the dead, gave the Holy Spirit, with whom they who
believed were filled, and spake with the tongues of all nations. And
let no one object that he says gifts, not gift: for he quoted the text
from the Psalm. And in the Psalm it is read thus, "Thou hast ascended
up on high, Thou hast led captivity captive, Thou hast received gifts
in men." [1020] For so it stands in many mss., especially in the Greek
mss., and so we have it translated from the Hebrew. The apostle
therefore said gifts, as the prophet did, not gift. But whereas the
prophet said, "Thou hast received gifts in men," the apostle has
preferred saying, "He gave gifts to men:" and this in order that the
fullest sense may be gathered from both expressions, the one prophetic,
the other apostolic; because both possess the authority of a divine
utterance. For both are true, as well that He gave to men, as that He
received in men. He gave to men, as the head to His own members: He
Himself that gave, received in men, no doubt as in His own members; on
account of which, namely, His own members, He cried from heaven, "Saul,
Saul, why persecutest thou me?" [1021] And of which, namely, His own
members, He says, "Since ye have done it to one of the least of these
that are mine, ye have done it unto me." [1022] Christ Himself,
therefore, both gave from heaven and received on earth. And further,
both prophet and apostle have said gifts for this reason, because many
gifts, which are proper to each, are divided in common to all the
members of Christ, by the Gift, which is the Holy Spirit. For each
severally has not all, but some have these and some have those;
although all have the Gift itself by which that which is proper to each
is divided to Him, i.e. the Holy Spirit. For elsewhere also, when he
had mentioned many gifts, "All these," he says, "worketh that one and
the self-same Spirit, dividing to each severally as He will." [1023]
And this word is found also in the Epistle to the Hebrews, where it is
written, "God also bearing witness both with signs and wonders, and
with divers miracles, and gifts [1024] of the Holy Ghost." [1025] And
so here, when he had said, "He ascended up on high, He led captivity
captive, He gave gifts to men," he says further, "But that He ascended,
what is it but that He also first descended into the lower parts of the
earth? He who descended is the same also that ascended up far above all
heavens, that He might fill all things. And He gave some apostles, some
prophets, and some evangelists, and some pastors and doctors." (This we
see is the reason why gifts are spoken of; because, as he says
elsewhere, "Are all apostles? are all prophets?" [1026] etc.) And here
he has added, "For the perfecting of the saints, for the work of the
ministry, for the building up of the body of Christ." [1027] This is
the house which, as the Psalm sings, is built up after the captivity;
[1028] since the house of Christ, which house is called His Church, is
built up of those who have been rescued from the devil, by whom they
were held captive. But He Himself led this captivity captive, who
conquered the devil. And that he might not draw with him into eternal
punishment those who were to become the members of the Holy Head, He
bound him first by the bonds of righteousness, and then by those of
might. The devil himself, therefore, is called captivity, which He led
captive who ascended up on high, and gave gifts to men, or received
gifts in men.
35. And Peter the apostle, as we read in that canonical book, wherein
the Acts of the Apostles are recorded,--when the hearts of the Jews
were troubled as he spake of Christ, and they said, "Brethren, what
shall we do? tell us,"--said to them, "Repent, and be baptized every
one of you in the name of the Lord Jesus Christ, for the remission of
sins: and ye shall receive the gift of the Holy Spirit." [1029] And we
read likewise in the same book, that Simon Magus desired to give money
to the apostles, that he might receive power from them, whereby the
Holy Spirit might be given by the laying on of his hands. And the same
Peter said to him, "Thy money perish with thee: because thou hast
thought to purchase for money the gift of God." [1030] And in another
place of the same book, when Peter was speaking to Cornelius, and to
those who were with him, and was announcing and preaching Christ, the
Scripture says, "While Peter was still speaking these words, the Holy
Spirit fell upon all them that heard the word; and they of the
circumcision that believed, as many as came with Peter, were
astonished, because that upon the Gentiles also the gift of the Holy
Spirit was poured out. For they heard them speak with tongues, and
magnify God." [1031] And when Peter afterwards was giving an account to
the brethren that were at Jerusalem of this act of his, that he had
baptized those who were not circumcised, because the Holy Spirit, to
cut the knot of the question, had come upon them before they were
baptized, and the brethren at Jerusalem were moved when they heard it,
he says, after the rest of his words, "And when I began to speak to
them, the Holy Spirit fell upon them, as upon us in the beginning. And
I remembered the word of the Lord, how He said, that John indeed
baptized with water, but ye shall be baptized with the Holy Spirit. If,
therefore, He gave a like gift to them, as also to us who believed in
the Lord Jesus Christ, who was I, that I could hinder God from giving
to them the Holy Spirit?" [1032] And there are many other testimonies
of the Scriptures, which unanimously attest that the Holy Spirit is the
gift of God, in so far as He is given to those who by Him love God. But
it is too long a task to collect them all. And what is enough to
satisfy those who are not satisfied with those we have alleged?
36. Certainly they must be warned, since they now see that the Holy
Spirit is called the gift of God, that when they hear of "the gift of
the Holy Spirit," they should recognize therein that mode of speech
which is found in the words, "In the spoiling of the body of the
flesh." [1033] For as the body of the flesh is nothing else but the
flesh, so the gift of the Holy Spirit is nothing else but the Holy
Spirit. He is then the gift of God, so far as He is given to those to
whom He is given. But in Himself He is God, although He were given to
no one, because He was God co-eternal with the Father and the Son
before He was given to any one. Nor is He less than they, because they
give, and He is given. For He is given as a gift of God in such way
that He Himself also gives Himself as being God. For He cannot be said
not to be in His own power, of whom it is said, "The Spirit bloweth
where it listeth;" [1034] and the apostle says, as I have already
mentioned above, "All these things worketh that selfsame Spirit,
dividing to every man severally as He will." We have not here the
creating of Him that is given, and the rule of them that give, but the
concord of the given and the givers.
37. Wherefore, if Holy Scripture proclaims that God is love, and that
love is of God, and works this in us that we abide in God and He in us,
and that hereby we know this, because He has given us of His Spirit,
then the Spirit Himself is God, who is love. Next, if there be among
the gifts of God none greater than love, and there is no greater gift
of God than the Holy Spirit, what follows more naturally than that He
is Himself love, who is called both God and of God? And if the love by
which the Father loves the Son, and the Son loves the Father, ineffably
demonstrates the communion of both, what is more suitable than that He
should be specially called love, who is the Spirit common to both? For
this is the sounder thing both to believe and to understand, that the
Holy Spirit is not alone love in that Trinity, yet is not specially
called love to no purpose, for the reasons we have alleged; just as He
is not alone in that Trinity either a Spirit or holy, since both the
Father is a Spirit, and the Son is a Spirit; and both the Father is
holy, and the Son is holy,--as piety doubts not. And yet it is not to
no purpose that He is specially called the Holy Spirit; for because He
is common to both, He is specially called that which both are in
common. Otherwise, if in that Trinity the Holy Spirit alone is love,
then doubtless the Son too turns out to be the Son, not of the Father
only, but also of the Holy Spirit. For He is both said and read in
countless places to be so,--the only-begotten Son of God the Father; as
that what the apostle says of God the Father is true too: "Who hath
delivered us from the power of darkness and hath translated us into the
kingdom of the Son of His own love." [1035] He did not say, "of His own
Son." If He had so said, He would have said it most truly, just as He
did say it most truly, because He has often said it; but He says, "the
Son of His own love." Therefore He is the Son also of the Holy Spirit,
if there is in that Trinity no love in God except the Holy Spirit. And
if this is most absurd, it remains that the Holy Spirit is not alone
therein love, but is specially so called for the reasons I have
sufficiently set forth; and that the words, "Son of His own love," mean
nothing else than His own beloved Son,--the Son, in short, of His own
substance. For the love in the Father, which is in His ineffably simple
nature, is nothing else than His very nature and substance itself,--as
we have already often said, and are not ashamed of often repeating. And
hence the "Son of His love," is none other than He who is born of His
substance.
__________________________________________________________________
[1016] John vii. 37-39
[1017] 1 Cor. xii. 13
[1018] John iv. 7-14
[1019] Eph. iv. 7, 8
[1020] Ps. lxviii. 18
[1021] Acts ix. 4
[1022] Matt. xxv. 40
[1023] 1 Cor. xii. 11
[1024] Distributionibus
[1025] Heb. ii. 4
[1026] 1 Cor. xii. 29
[1027] Eph. iv. 7-12
[1028] Ps. cxxvi. 1
[1029] Acts ii. 37, 38
[1030] Acts viii. 18-20
[1031] Acts x. 44, 46
[1032] Acts xi. 15-17
[1033] Col. ii. 11
[1034] John iii. 6
[1035] Col. i. 13
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 20.--Against Eunomius, Saying that the Son of God is the Son,
Not of His Nature, But of His Will. Epilogue to What Has Been Said
Already.
38. Wherefore the logic of Eunomius, from whom the Eunomian heretics
sprang, is ridiculous. For when he could not understand, and would not
believe, that the only-begotten Word of God, by which all things were
made is the Son of God by nature,--i.e. born of the substance of the
Father,--he alleged that He was not the Son of His own nature or
substance or essence, but the Son of the will of God; so as to mean to
assert that the will by which he begot the Son was something accidental
[and optional] to God,--to wit, in that way that we ourselves sometimes
will something which before we did not will, as though it was not for
these very things that our nature is perceived to be changeable,--a
thing which far be it from us to believe of God. For it is written,
"Many are the thoughts in the heart of man, but the counsel of the Lord
abideth for ever," [1036] for no other reason except that we may
understand or believe that as God is eternal, so is His counsel for
eternity, and therefore unchangeable, as He himself is. And what is
said of thoughts can most truly be said also of the will: there are
many wills in the heart of man, but the will of the Lord abideth for
ever. Some, again, to escape saying that the only-begotten Word is the
Son of the counsel or will of God, have affirmed the same Word to be
the counsel or will itself of the Father. But it is better in my
judgment to say counsel of counsel, and will of will, as substance of
substance, wisdom of wisdom, that we may not be led into that
absurdity, which we have refuted already, and say that the Son makes
the Father wise or willing, if the Father has not in His own substance
either counsel or will. It was certainly a sharp answer that somebody
gave to the heretic, who most subtly asked him whether God begat the
Son willingly or unwillingly, in order that if he said unwillingly, it
would follow most absurdly that God was miserable; but if willingly, he
would forthwith infer, as though by an invincible reason, that at which
he was aiming, viz. that He was the Son, not of His nature, but of His
will. But that other, with great wakefulness, demanded of him in turn,
whether God the Father was God willingly or unwillingly; in order that
if he answered unwillingly, that misery would follow, which to believe
of God is sheer madness; and if he said willingly, it would be replied
to him, Then He is God too by His own will, not by His nature. What
remained, then, except that he should hold his peace, and discern that
he was himself bound by his own question in an insoluble bond? But if
any person in the Trinity is also to be specially called the will of
God, this name, like love, is better suited to the Holy Spirit; for
what else is love, except will?
39. I see that my argument in this book respecting the Holy Spirit,
according to the Holy Scripture, is quite enough for faithful men who
know already that the Holy Spirit is God, and not of another substance,
nor less than the Father and the Son,--as we have shown to be true in
the former books, according to the same Scriptures. We have reasoned
also from the creature which God made, and, as far as we could, have
warned those who demand a reason on such subjects to behold and
understand His invisible things, so far as they could, by those things
which are made [1037] and especially by the rational or intellectual
creature which is made after the image of God; through which glass, so
to say, they might discern as far as they could, if they could, the
Trinity which is God, in our own memory, understanding, will. Which
three things, if any one intelligently regards as by nature divinely
appointed in his own mind, and remembers by memory, contemplates by
understanding, embraces by love, how great a thing that is in the mind,
whereby even the eternal and unchangeable nature can be recollected,
beheld, desired, doubtless that man finds an image of that highest
Trinity. And he ought to refer the whole of his life to the
remembering, seeing, loving that highest Trinity, in order that he may
recollect, contemplate, be delighted by it. But I have warned him, so
far as seemed sufficient, that he must not so compare this image thus
wrought by that Trinity, and by his own fault changed for the worse, to
that same Trinity as to think it in all points like to it, but rather
that he should discern in that likeness, of whatever sort it be, a
great unlikeness also.
__________________________________________________________________
[1036] Prov. xix. 21
[1037] Rom. i. 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 21.--Of the Likeness of the Father and of the Son Alleged to Be
in Our Memory and Understanding. Of the Likeness of the Holy Spirit in
Our Will or Love.
40. I have undoubtedly taken pains so far as I could, not indeed so
that the thing might be seen face to face, but that it might be seen by
this likeness in an enigma, [1038] in how small a degree soever, by
conjecture, in our memory and understanding, to intimate God the Father
and God the Son: i.e. God the begetter, who has in some way spoken by
His own co-eternal Word all things that He has in His substance; and
God His Word Himself, who Himself has nothing either more or less in
substance than is in Him, who, not lyingly but truly, hath begotten the
Word; and I have assigned to memory everything that we know, even if we
were not thinking of it, but to understanding the formation after a
certain special mode of the thought. For we are usually said to
understand what, by thinking of it, we have found to be true; and this
it is again that we leave in the memory. But that is a still more
hidden depth of our memory, wherein we found this also first when we
thought of it, and wherein an inner word is begotten such as belongs to
no tongue,--as it were, knowledge of knowledge, vision of vision, and
understanding which appears in [reflective] thought; of understanding
which had indeed existed before in the memory, but was latent there,
although, unless the thought itself had also some sort of memory of its
own, it would not return to those things which it had left in the
memory while it turned to think of other things.
41. But I have shown nothing in this enigma respecting the Holy Spirit
such as might appear to be like Him, except our own will, or love, or
affection, which is a stronger will, since our will which we have
naturally is variously affected, according as various objects are
adjacent or occur to it, by which we are attracted or offended. What,
then, is this? Are we to say that our will, when it is right, knows not
what to desire, what to avoid? Further, if it knows, doubtless then it
has a kind of knowledge of its own, such as cannot be without memory
and understanding. Or are we to listen to any one who should say that
love knows not what it does, which does not do wrongly? As, then, there
are both understanding and love in that primary memory wherein we find
provided and stored up that to which we can come in thought, because we
find also those two things there, when we find by thinking that we both
understand and love anything; which things were there too when we were
not thinking of them: and as there are memory and love in that
understanding, which is formed by thought, which true word we say
inwardly without the tongue of any nation when we say what we know; for
the gaze of our thought does not return to anything except by
remembering it, and does not care to return unless by loving it: so
love, which combines the vision brought about in the memory, and the
vision of the thought formed thereby, as if parent and offspring, would
not know what to love rightly unless it had a knowledge of what it
desired, which it cannot have without memory and understanding.
__________________________________________________________________
[1038] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 22.--How Great the Unlikeness is Between the Image of the
Trinity Which We Have Found in Ourselves, and the Trinity Itself.
42. But since these are in one person, as man is, some one may say to
us, These three things, memory, understanding, and love, are mine, not
their own; neither do they do that which they do for themselves, but
for me, or rather I do it by them. For it is I who remember by memory,
and understand by understanding, and love by love: and when I direct
the mind's eye to my memory, and so say in my heart the thing I know,
and a true word is begotten of my knowledge, both are mine, both the
knowledge certainly and the word. For it is I who know, and it is I who
say in my heart the thing I know. And when I come to find in my memory
by thinking that I understand and love anything, which understanding
and love were there also before I thought thereon, it is my own
understanding and my own love that I find in my own memory, whereby it
is I that understand, and I that love, not those things themselves.
Likewise, when my thought is mindful, and wills to return to those
things which it had left in the memory, and to understand and behold
them, and say them inwardly, it is my own memory that is mindful, and
it is my own, not its will, wherewith it wills. When my very love
itself, too, remembers and understands what it ought to desire and what
to avoid, it remembers by my, not by its own memory; and understands
that which it intelligently loves by my, not by its own, understanding.
In brief, by all these three things, it is I that remember, I that
understand, I that love, who am neither memory, nor understanding, nor
love, but who have them. These things, then, can be said by a single
person, which has these three, but is not these three. But in the
simplicity of that Highest Nature, which is God, although there is one
God, there are three persons, the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 23.--Augustin Dwells Still Further on the Disparity Between the
Trinity Which is in Man, and the Trinity Which is God. The Trinity is
Now Seen Through a Glass by the Help of Faith, that It May Hereafter Be
More Clearly Seen in the Promised Sight Face to Face.
43. A thing itself, then, which is a trinity is different from the
image of a trinity in some other thing; by reason of which image, at
the same time that also in which these three things are is called an
image; just as both the panel, and the picture painted on it, are at
the same time called an image; but by reason of the picture painted on
it, the panel also is called by the name of image. But in that Highest
Trinity, which is incomparably above all things, there is so great an
indivisibility, that whereas a trinity of men cannot be called one man,
in that, there both is said to be and is one God, nor is that Trinity
in one God, but it is one God. Nor, again, as that image in the case of
man has these three things but is one person, so is it with the
Trinity; but therein are three persons, the Father of the Son, and the
Son of the Father, and the Spirit of both Father and Son. For although
the memory in the case of man, and especially that memory which beasts
have not--viz. the memory by which things intelligible are so contained
as that they have not entered that memory through the bodily senses
[1039] --has in this image of the Trinity, in proportion to its own
small measure, a likeness of the Father, incomparably unequal, yet of
some sort, whatever it be: and likewise the understanding in the case
of man, which by the purpose of the thought is formed thereby, when
that which is known is said, and there is a word of the heart belonging
to no tongue, has in its own great disparity some likeness of the Son;
and love in the case of man proceeding from knowledge, and combining
memory and understanding, as though common to parent and offspring,
whereby it is understood to be neither parent nor offspring, has in
that image, some, however exceedingly unequal, likeness of the Holy
Spirit: it is nevertheless not the case, that, as in that image of the
Trinity, these three are not one man, but belong to one man, so in the
Highest Trinity itself, of which this is an image, these three belong
to one God, but they are one God, and these are three persons, not one.
A thing certainly wonderfully ineffable, or ineffably wonderful, that
while this image of the Trinity is one person, but the Highest Trinity
itself is three persons, yet that Trinity of three persons is more
indivisible than this of one. For that [Trinity], in the nature of the
Divinity, or perhaps better Deity, is that which it is, and is mutually
and always unchangeably equal: and there was no time when it was not,
or when it was otherwise; and there will be no time when it will not
be, or when it will be otherwise. But these three that are in the
inadequate image, although they are not separate in place, for they are
not bodies, yet are now in this life mutually separate in magnitude.
For that there are therein no several bulks, does not hinder our seeing
that memory is greater than understanding in one man, but the contrary
in another; and that in yet another these two are overpassed by the
greatness of love; and this whether the two themselves are or are not
equal to one another. And so each two by each one, and each one by each
two, and each one by each one: the less are surpassed by the greater.
And when they have been healed of all infirmity, and are mutually
equal, not even then will that thing which by grace will not be
changed, be made equal to that which by nature cannot change, because
the creature cannot be equalled to the Creator, and when it shall be
healed from all infirmity, will be changed.
44. But when the sight shall have come which is promised anew to us
face to face, we shall see this not only incorporeal but also
absolutely indivisible and truly unchangeable Trinity far more clearly
and certainly than we now see its image which we ourselves are: and yet
they who see through this glass and in this enigma, as it is permitted
in this life to see, are not those who behold in their own mind the
things which we have set in order and pressed upon them; but those who
see this as if an image, so as to be able to refer what they see, in
some way be it what it may, to Him whose image it is, and to see that
also by conjecturing, which they see through the image by beholding,
since they cannot yet see face to face. For the apostle does not say,
We see now a glass, but, We see now through a glass. [1040]
__________________________________________________________________
[1039] [The reader will observe that Augustin has employed the term
"memory" in a wider sense than in the modern ordinary use. With him, it
is the mind as including all that is potential or latent in it. The
innate ideas, in this use, are laid up in the "memory," and called into
consciousness or "remembered" by reflection. The idea of God, for
example, is not in the "memory" when not elicited by reflection. The
same is true of the ideas of space and time, etc.--W.G.T.S.]
[1040] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 24.--The Infirmity of the Human Mind.
They, then, who see their own mind, in whatever way that is possible,
and in it that Trinity of which I have treated as I could in many ways,
and yet do not believe or understand it to be an image of God, see
indeed a glass, but do not so far see through the glass Him who is now
to be seen through the glass, that they do not even know the glass
itself which they see to be a glass, i.e. an image. And if they knew
this, perhaps they would feel that He too whose glass this is, should
by it be sought, and somehow provisionally be seen, an unfeigned faith
purging their hearts, [1041] that He who is now seen through a glass
may be able to be seen face to face. And if they despise this faith
that purifies the heart, what do they accomplish by understanding the
most subtle disputes concerning the nature of the human mind, unless
that they be condemned also by the witness of their own understanding?
And they would certainly not so fail in understanding, and hardly
arrive at anything certain, were they not involved in penal darkness,
and burdened with the corruptible body that presses down the soul.
[1042] And for what demerit save that of sin is this evil inflicted on
them? Wherefore, being warned by the magnitude of so great an evil,
they ought to follow the Lamb that taketh away the sins of the world.
[1043]
__________________________________________________________________
[1041] 1 Tim. i. 5
[1042] Wisd. ix. 15
[1043] John i. 29
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 25.--The Question Why the Holy Spirit is Not Begotten, and How
He Proceeds from the Father and the Son, Will Only Be Understood When
We are in Bliss.
For if any belong to Him, although far duller in intellect than those,
yet when they are freed from the body at the end of this life, the
envious powers have no right to hold them. For that Lamb that was slain
by them without any debt of sin has conquered them; but not by the
might of power before He had done so by the righteousness of blood. And
free accordingly from the power of the devil, they are borne up by holy
angels, being set free from all evils by the mediator of God and men,
the man Christ Jesus. [1044] Since by the harmonious testimony of the
Divine Scriptures, both Old and New, both those by which Christ was
foretold, and those by which He was announced, there is no other name
under heaven whereby men must be saved. [1045] And when purged from all
contagion of corruption, they are placed in peaceful abodes until they
take their bodies again, their own, but now incorruptible, to adorn,
not to burden them. For this is the will of the best and most wise
Creator, that the spirit of a man, when piously subject to God, should
have a body happily subject, and that this happiness should last for
ever.
45. There we shall see the truth without any difficulty, and shall
enjoy it to the full, most clear and most certain. Nor shall we be
inquiring into anything by a mind that reasons, but shall discern by a
mind that contemplates, why the Holy Spirit is not a Son, although He
proceeds from the Father. In that light there will be no place for
inquiry: but here, by experience itself it has appeared to me so
difficult,--as beyond doubt it will likewise appear to them also who
shall carefully and intelligently read what I have written,--that
although in the second book [1046] I promised that I would speak
thereof in another place, yet as often as I have desired to illustrate
it by the creaturely image of it which we ourselves are, so often, let
my meaning be of what sort it might, did adequate utterance entirely
fail me; nay, even in my very meaning I felt that I had attained to
endeavor rather than accomplishment. I had indeed found in one person,
such as is a man, an image of that Highest Trinity, and had desired,
especially in the ninth book, to illustrate and render more
intelligible the relation of the Three Persons by that which is subject
to time and change. But three things belonging to one person cannot
suit those Three Persons, as man's purpose demands; and this we have
demonstrated in this fifteenth book.
__________________________________________________________________
[1044] 1 Tim. ii. 5
[1045] Acts iv. 12
[1046] C. 3.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 26.--The Holy Spirit Twice Given by Christ. The Procession of
the Holy Spirit from the Father and from the Son is Apart from Time,
Nor Can He Be Called the Son of Both.
Further, in that Highest Trinity which is God, there are no intervals
of time, by which it could be shown, or at least inquired, whether the
Son was born of the Father first and then afterwards the Holy Spirit
proceeded from both; since Holy Scripture calls Him the Spirit of both.
For it is He of whom the apostle says, "But because ye are sons, God
hath sent forth the Spirit of His Son into your hearts:" [1047] and it
is He of whom the same Son says, "For it is not ye who speak, but the
Spirit of your Father who speaketh in you." [1048] And it is proved by
many other testimonies of the Divine Word, that the Spirit, who is
specially called in the Trinity the Holy Spirit, is of the Father and
of the Son: of whom likewise the Son Himself says, "Whom I will send
unto you from the Father;" [1049] and in another place, "Whom the
Father will send in my name." [1050] And we are so taught that He
proceeds from both, because the Son Himself says, He proceeds from the
Father. And when He had risen from the dead, and had appeared to His
disciples, "He breathed upon them, and said, Receive the Holy Ghost,"
[1051] so as to show that He proceeded also from Himself. And Itself is
that very "power that went out from Him," as we read in the Gospel,
"and healed them all." [1052]
46. But the reason why, after His resurrection, He both gave the Holy
Spirit, first on earth, [1053] and afterwards sent Him from heaven,
[1054] is in my judgment this: that "love is shed abroad in our
hearts," [1055] by that Gift itself, whereby we love God and our
neighbors, according to those two commandments, "on which hang all the
law and the prophets." [1056] And Jesus Christ, in order to signify
this, gave to them the Holy Spirit, once upon earth, on account of the
love of our neighbor, and a second time from heaven, on account of the
love of God. And if some other reason may perhaps be given for this
double gift of the Holy Spirit, at any rate we ought not to doubt that
the same Holy Spirit was given when Jesus breathed upon them, of whom
He by and by says, "Go, baptize all nations in the name of the Father,
and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit," where this Trinity is
especially commended to us. It is therefore He who was also given from
heaven on the day of Pentecost, i.e. ten days after the Lord ascended
into heaven. How, therefore, is He not God, who gives the Holy Spirit?
Nay, how great a God is He who gives God! For no one of His disciples
gave the Holy Spirit, since they prayed that He might come upon those
upon whom they laid their hands: they did not give Him themselves. And
the Church preserves this custom even now in the case of her rulers.
Lastly, Simon Magus also, when he offered the apostles money, does not
say, "Give me also this power, that I may give" the Holy Spirit; but,
"that on whomsoever I may lay my hands, he may receive the Holy
Spirit." Because neither had the Scriptures said before, And Simon,
seeing that the apostles gave the Holy Spirit; but it had said, "And
Simon, seeing that the Holy Spirit was given by the laying on of the
apostles' hands." [1057] Therefore also the Lord Jesus Christ Himself
not only gave the Holy Spirit as God, but also received it as man, and
therefore He is said to be full of grace, [1058] and of the Holy
Spirit. [1059] And in the Acts of the Apostles it is more plainly
written of Him, "Because God anointed Him with the Holy Spirit." [1060]
Certainly not with visible oil but with the gift of grace which is
signified by the visible ointment wherewith the Church anoints the
baptized. And Christ was certainly not then anointed with the Holy
Spirit, when He, as a dove, descended upon Him at His baptism. [1061]
For at that time He deigned to prefigure His body, i.e. His Church, in
which especially the baptized receive the Holy Spirit. But He is to be
understood to have been then anointed with that mystical and invisible
unction, when the Word of God was made flesh, [1062] i.e. when human
nature, without any precedent merits of good works, was joined to God
the Word in the womb of the Virgin, so that with it it became one
person. Therefore it is that we confess Him to have been born of the
Holy Spirit and of the Virgin Mary. For it is most absurd to believe
Him to have received the Holy Spirit when He was near thirty years old:
for at that age He was baptized by John; [1063] but that He came to
baptism as without any sin at all, so not without the Holy Spirit. For
if it was written of His servant and forerunner John himself, "He shall
be filled with the Holy Spirit, even from his mother's womb," [1064]
because, although generated by his father, yet he received the Holy
Spirit when formed in the womb; what must be understood and believed of
the man Christ, of whose flesh the very conception was not carnal, but
spiritual? Both natures, too, as well the human as the divine, are
shown in that also that is written of Him, that He received of the
Father the promise of the Holy Spirit, and shed forth the Holy Spirit:
[1065] seeing that He received as man, and shed forth as God. And we
indeed can receive that gift according to our small measure, but
assuredly we cannot shed it forth upon others; but, that this may be
done, we invoke over them God, by whom this is accomplished.
47. Are we therefore able to ask whether the Holy Spirit had already
proceeded from the Father when the Son was born, or had not yet
proceeded; and when He was born, proceeded from both, wherein there is
no such thing as distinct times: just as we have been able to ask, in a
case where we do find times, that the will proceeds from the human mind
first, in order that that may be sought which, when found, may be
called offspring; which offspring being already brought forth or born,
that will is made perfect, resting in this end, so that what had been
its desire when seeking, is its love when enjoying; which love now
proceeds from both, i.e. from the mind that begets, and from the notion
that is begotten, as if from parent and offspring? These things it is
absolutely impossible to ask in this case, where nothing is begun in
time, so as to be perfected in a time following. Wherefore let him who
can understand the generation of the Son from the Father without time,
understand also the procession of the Holy Spirit from both without
time. And let him who can understand, in that which the Son says, "As
the Father hath life in Himself, so hath He given to the Son to have
life in Himself," [1066] not that the Father gave life to the Son
already existing without life, but that He so begat Him apart from
time, that the life which the Father gave to the Son by begetting Him
is co-eternal with the life of the Father who gave it: [1067] let him,
I say, understand, that as the Father has in Himself that the Holy
Spirit should proceed from Him, so has He given to the Son that the
same Holy Spirit should proceed from Him, and be both apart from time:
and that the Holy Spirit is so said to proceed from the Father as that
it be understood that His proceeding also from the Son, is a property
derived by the Son from the Father. For if the Son has of the Father
whatever He has, then certainly He has of the Father, that the Holy
Spirit proceeds also from Him. But let no one think of any times
therein which imply a sooner and a later; because these things are not
there at all. How, then, would it not be most absurd to call Him the
Son of both: when, just as generation from the Father, without any
changeableness of nature, gives to the Son essence, without beginning
of time; so procession from both, without any changeableness of nature,
gives to the Holy Spirit essence without beginning of time? For while
we do not say that the Holy Spirit is begotten, yet we do not therefore
dare to say that He is unbegotten, lest any one suspect in this word
either two Fathers in that Trinity, or two who are not from another.
For the Father alone is not from another, and therefore He alone is
called unbegotten, not indeed in the Scriptures, [1068] but in the
usage of disputants, who employ such language as they can on so great a
subject. And the Son is born of the Father; and the Holy Spirit
proceeds from the Father principally, the Father giving the procession
without any interval of time, yet in common from both [Father and Son].
[1069] But He would be called the Son of the Father and of the Son,
if--a thing abhorrent to the feeling of all sound minds--both had
begotten Him. Therefore the Spirit of both is not begotten of both, but
proceeds from both.
__________________________________________________________________
[1047] Gal. iv. 6
[1048] Matt. x. 20
[1049] John xv. 26
[1050] John xiv. 26
[1051] John xx. 23
[1052] Luke vi. 19
[1053] John xx. 22
[1054] Acts. ii. 4
[1055] Rom. v. 5
[1056] Matt. xxii. 37-40
[1057] Acts viii. 18, 19
[1058] John i. 14
[1059] Luke ii. 52 and iv. 1
[1060] Acts x. 38
[1061] Matt. iii. 16
[1062] John i.14
[1063] Luke iii. 21-23
[1064] Luke i. 15
[1065] Acts ii. 33
[1066] John v. 26
[1067] [Says Turrettin, III. xxix. 21. "The Father does not generate
the Son either as previously existing, for in this case there would be
no need of generation; nor yet as not yet existing, for in this case
the Son would not be eternal; but as co-existing, because he is from
eternity in the God-head."--W.G.T.S.]
[1068] [The term "unbegotten" is not found in Scripture, but it is
implied in the terms "begotten" and "only-begotten," which are found.
The term "unity" is not applied to God in Scripture, but it is implied
in the term "one" which is so applied.--W.G.T.S.]
[1069] [The spiration and procession of the Holy Spirit is not by two
separate acts, one of the Father, and one of the Son--as perhaps might
be inferred from Augustin's remark that "the Holy Spirit proceeds from
the Father principally." As Turrettin says: "The Father and Son spirate
the Spirit, not as two different essences in each of which resides a
spirative energy, but as two personal subsistences of one essence, who
concur in one act of spiration." Institutio III. xxxi. 6.--W.G.T.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 27.--What It is that Suffices Here to Solve the Question Why
the Spirit is Not Said to Be Begotten, and Why the Father Alone is
Unbegotten. What They Ought to Do Who Do Not Understand These Things.
48. But because it is most difficult to distinguish generation from
procession in that co-eternal, and equal, and incorporeal, and
ineffably unchangeable and indivisible Trinity, let it suffice
meanwhile to put before those who are not able to be drawn on further,
what we said upon this subject in a sermon to be delivered in the ears
of Christian people, and after saying wrote it down. For when, among
other things, I had taught them by testimonies of the Holy Scriptures
that the Holy Spirit proceeds from both, I continue: "If, then, the
Holy Spirit proceeds both from the Father and from the Son, why did the
Son say, `He proceedeth from the Father?' [1070] Why, think you, except
as He is wont to refer to Him, that also which is His own, from whom
also He Himself is? Whence also is that which He saith, `My doctrine is
not mine own, but His that sent me?' [1071] If, therefore, it is His
doctrine that is here understood, which yet He said was not His own,
but His that sent Him, how much more is it there to be understood that
the Holy Spirit proceeds also from Himself, where He so says, He
proceedeth from the Father, as not to say, He proceedeth not from me?
From Him, certainly, from whom the Son had his Divine nature, for He is
God of God, He has also, that from Him too proceeds the Holy Spirit;
and hence the Holy Spirit has from the Father Himself, that He should
proceed from the Son also, as He proceeds from the Father. Here, too,
in some way may this also be understood, so far as it can be understood
by such as we are, why the Holy Spirit is not said to be born, but
rather to proceed; [1072] since if He, too, was called a Son, He would
certainly be called the Son of both, which is most absurd, since no one
is son of two, save of father and mother. But far be it from us to
surmise any such thing as this between God the Father and God the Son.
Because not even the son of men proceeds at the same time from both
father and mother; but when he proceeds from the father into the
mother, he does not at that time proceed from the mother; and when he
proceeds from the mother into this present light, he does not at that
time proceed from the father. But the Holy Spirit does not proceed from
the Father into the Son, and from the Son proceed to sanctify the
creature, but proceeds at once from both; although the Father has given
this to the Son, that He should proceed, as from Himself, so also from
Him. For we cannot say that the Holy Spirit is not life, while the
Father is life, and the Son is life: and hence as the Father, while He
has life in Himself, has given also to the Son to have life in Himself;
so has He given also to Him that life should proceed from Him, as it
also proceeds from Himself." [1073] I have transferred this from that
sermon into this book, but I was speaking to believers, not to
unbelievers.
49. But if they are not competent to gaze upon this image, and to see
how true these things are which are in their mind, and yet which are
not so three as to be three persons, but all three belong to a man who
is one person; why do they not believe what they find in the sacred
books respecting that highest Trinity which is God, rather than insist
on the clearest reason being rendered them, which cannot be
comprehended by the human mind, dull and infirm as it is? And to be
sure, when they have steadfastly believed the Holy Scriptures as most
true witnesses, let them strive, by praying and seeking and living
well, that they may understand, i.e. that so far as it can be seen,
that may be seen by the mind which is held fast by faith. Who would
forbid this? Nay, who would not rather exhort them to it? But if they
think they ought to deny that these things are, because they, with
their blind minds, cannot discern them, they, too, who are blind from
their birth, ought to deny that there is a sun. The light then shineth
in darkness; but if the darkness comprehend it not, [1074] let them
first be illuminated by the gift of God, that they may be believers,
and let them begin to be light in comparison with the unbelievers; and
when this foundation is first laid, let them be built up to see what
they believe, that at some time they may be able to see. For some
things are so believed, that they cannot be seen at all. For Christ is
not to be seen a second time on the cross; but unless this be believed
which has been so done and seen, that it is not now to be hoped for as
about to be and to be seen, there is no coming to Christ, such as
without end He is to be seen. But as far as relates to the discerning
in some way by the understanding that highest, ineffable, incorporeal,
and unchangeable nature the sight of the human mind can nowhere better
exercise itself, so only that the rule of faith govern it, than in that
which man himself has in his own nature better than the other animals,
better also than the other parts of his own soul, which is the mind
itself, to which has been assigned a certain sight of things invisible,
and to which, as though honorably presiding in a higher and inner
place, the bodily senses also bring word of all things, that they may
be judged, and than which there is no higher, to which it is to be
subject, and by which it is to be governed, except God.
50. But among these many things which I have now said, and of which
there is nothing that I dare to profess myself to have said worthy of
the ineffableness of that highest Trinity, but rather to confess that
the wonderful knowledge of Him is too great for me, and that I cannot
attain [1075] to it: O thou, my soul, where dost thou feel thyself to
be? where dost thou lie? where dost thou stand? until all thy
infirmities be healed by Him who has forgiven all thy iniquities.
[1076] Thou perceivest thyself assuredly to be in that inn whither that
Samaritan brought him whom he found with many wounds inflicted by
thieves, half-dead. [1077] And yet thou hast seen many things that are
true, not by those eyes by which colored objects are seen, but by those
for which he prayed who said, "Let mine eyes behold the things that are
equal." [1078] Certainly, then, thou hast seen many things that are
true, and hast distinguished them from that light by the light of which
thou hast seen them. Lift up thine eyes to the light itself, and fix
them upon it if thou canst. For so thou wilt see how the birth of the
Word of God differs from the procession of the Gift of God, on account
of which the only-begotten Son did not say that the Holy Spirit is
begotten of the Father, otherwise He would be His brother, but that lie
proceeds from Him. Whence, since the Spirit of both is a kind of
consubstantial communion of Father and Son, He is not called, far be it
from us to say so, the Son of both. But thou canst not fix thy sight
there, so as to discern this lucidly and clearly; I know thou canst
not. I say the truth, I say to myself, I know what I cannot do; yet
that light itself shows to thee these three things in thyself, wherein
thou mayest recognize an image of the highest Trinity itself, which
thou canst not yet contemplate with steady eye. Itself shows to thee
that there is in thee a true word, when it is born of thy knowledge,
i.e. when we say what we know: although we neither utter nor think of
any articulate word that is significant in any tongue of any nation,
but our thought is formed by that which we know; and there is in the
mind's eye of the thinker an image resembling that thought which the
memory contained, will or love as a third combining these two as parent
and offspring. And he who can, sees and discerns that this will
proceeds indeed from thought (for no one wills that of which he is
absolutely ignorant what or of what sort it is), yet is not an image of
the thought: and so that there is insinuated in this intelligible thing
a sort of difference between birth and procession, since to behold by
thought is not the same as to desire, or even to enjoy will. Thou, too,
hast been able [to discern this], although thou hast not been, neither
art, able to unfold with adequate speech what, amidst the clouds of
bodily likenesses, which cease not to flit up and down before human
thoughts, thou hast scarcely seen. But that light which is not thyself
shows thee this too, that these incorporeal likenesses of bodies are
different from the truth, which, by rejecting them, we contemplate with
the understanding. These, and other things similarly certain, that
light hath shown to thine inner eyes. What reason, then, is there why
thou canst not see that light itself with steady eye, except certainly
infirmity? And what has produced this in thee, except iniquity? Who,
then, is it that healeth all thine infirmities, unless it be He that
forgiveth all thine iniquities? And therefore I will now at length
finish this book by a prayer better than by an argument.
__________________________________________________________________
[1070] John xv. 26
[1071] John vii. 16
[1072] [Generation and procession are each an emanation of the essence
by which it is modified. Neither of them is a creation ex nihilo. The
school-men attempted to explain the difference between the two
emanations, by saying that the generation of the Son is by the mode of
the intellect--hence the Son is called Wisdom, or Word (Logos); but the
procession of the Spirit is by the mode of the will--hence the Spirit
is called Love. Turrettin distinguishes the difference by the following
particulars: 1. In respect to the source. Generation is from the Father
alone; procession is from Father and Son. 2. In respect to effects.
Generation yields not only personality, but resemblance. The Son is the
"image" of the Father, but the Spirit is not the image of the Father
and Son. Generation is accompanied with the power to communicate the
essence; procession is not. 3. In respect to order of relationship.
Generation is second, procession is third. In the order of nature, not
of time (for both generation and procession are eternal, therefore
simultaneous), procession is after generation. Institutio III. xxxi.
3.--W.G.T.S.]
[1073] Serm. in Joh. Evang. tract.. 99, n. 8, 9.
[1074] John i. 5
[1075] Ps. cxxxix. 5
[1076] Ps. ciii. 3
[1077] Luke x. 30, 34
[1078] Ps. xvii. 2
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 28.--The Conclusion of the Book with a Prayer, and an Apology
for Multitude of Words.
51. O Lord our God, we believe in Thee, the Father and the Son and the
Holy Spirit. For the Truth would not say, Go, baptize all nations in
the name of the Father and of the Son and of the Holy Spirit, unless
Thou wast a Trinity. Nor wouldest thou, O Lord God, bid us to be
baptized in the name of Him who is not the Lord God. Nor would the
divine voice have said, Hear, O Israel, the Lord thy God is one God,
unless Thou wert so a Trinity as to be one Lord God. And if Thou, O
God, wert Thyself the Father, and wert Thyself the Son, Thy Word Jesus
Christ, and the Holy Spirit your gift, we should not read in the book
of truth, "God sent His Son;" [1079] nor wouldest Thou, O
Only-begotten, say of the Holy Spirit, "Whom the Father will send in my
name;" [1080] and, "Whom I will send to you from the Father." [1081]
Directing my purpose by this rule of faith, so far as I have been able,
so far as Thou hast made me to be able, I have sought Thee, and have
desired to see with my understanding what I believed; and I have argued
and labored much. O Lord my God, my one hope, hearken to me, lest
through weariness I be unwilling to seek Thee, "but that I may always
ardently seek Thy face." [1082] Do Thou give strength to seek, who hast
made me find Thee, and hast given the hope of finding Thee more and
more. My strength and my infirmity are in Thy sight: preserve the one,
and heal the other. My knowledge and my ignorance are in Thy sight;
where Thou hast opened to me, receive me as I enter; where Thou hast
closed, open to me as I knock. May I remember Thee, understand Thee,
love Thee. Increase these things in me, until Thou renewest me wholly.
I know it is written, "In the multitude of speech, thou shalt not
escape sin." [1083] But O that I might speak only in preaching Thy
word, and in praising Thee! Not only should I so flee from sin, but I
should earn good desert, however much I so spake. For a man blessed of
Thee would not enjoin a sin upon his own true son in the faith, to whom
he wrote, "Preach the word: be instant in season, out of season."
[1084] Are we to say that he has not spoken much, who was not silent
about Thy word, O Lord, not only in season, but out of season? But
therefore it was not much, because it was only what was necessary. Set
me free, O God, from that multitude of speech which I suffer inwardly
in my soul, wretched as it is in Thy sight, and flying for refuge to
Thy mercy; for I am not silent in thoughts, even when silent in words.
And if, indeed, I thought of nothing save what pleased Thee, certainly
I would not ask Thee to set me free from such multitude of speech. But
many are my thoughts, such as Thou knowest, "thoughts of man, since
they are vain." [1085] Grant to me not to consent to them; and if ever
they delight me, nevertheless to condemn them, and not to dwell in
them, as though I slumbered. Nor let them so prevail in me, as that
anything in my acts should proceed from them; but at least let my
opinions, let my conscience, be safe from them, under Thy protection.
When the wise man spake of Thee in his book, which is now called by the
special name of Ecclesiasticus, "We speak," he said, "much, and yet
come short; and in sum of words, He is all." [1086] When, therefore, we
shall have come to Thee, these very many things that we speak, and yet
come short, will cease; and Thou, as One, wilt remain "all in all."
[1087] And we shall say one thing without end, in praising Thee in One,
ourselves also made one in Thee. O Lord the one God, God the Trinity,
whatever I have said in these books that is of Thine, may they
acknowledge who are Thine; if anything of my own, may it be pardoned
both by Thee and by those who are Thine. Amen.
__________________________________________________________________
[1079] Gal. iv. 5 and John iii. 17
[1080] John xiv. 26
[1081] John xv. 26
[1082] Ps. cv. 4
[1083] Prov. x. 19
[1084] 2 Tim. iv. 2
[1085] Ps. xciv. 11
[1086] Ecclus. xliii. 29
[1087] 1 Cor. xv. 28
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
The Enchiridion,
Addressed to Laurentius;
Being a Treatise on Faith, Hope and Love.
Translated by Professor J. F. Shaw, Londonderry.
__________________________________________________________________
Introductory Notice
By the Editor.
St. Augustin speaks of this book in his Retractations, l. ii. c. 63, as
follows:
"I also wrote a book on Faith, Hope, and Charity, at the request of the
person to whom I addressed it, that he might have a work of mine which
should never be out of his hands, such as the Greeks call an
Enchiridion (Hand-Book). There I think I have pretty carefully treated
of the manner in which God is to be worshipped, which knowledge divine
Scripture defines to be the true wisdom of man. The book begins: `I
cannot express,'" etc. [1088]
The Enchiridion is among the latest books of Augustin. It was written
after the death of Jerome, which occurred Sept. 30, 420; for he alludes
in ch. 87 to Jerome "of blessed memory" (sanctae memoriae Hieronymus
presbyter).
It is addressed to Laurentius, in answer to his questions. This person
is otherwise unknown. One ms. calls him a deacon, another a notary of
the city of Rome. He was probably a layman.
The author usually calls the book "On Faith, Hope and Love," because he
treats the subject under these three heads (comp. (I Cor. xiii. 13). He
follows under the first head the order of the Apostles' Creed, and
refutes, without naming them, the Manichaean, Apollinarian, Arian, and
Pelagian heresies. Under the second head he gives a brief exposition of
the Lord's Prayer. The third part is a discourse on Christian love.
The original is in the sixth volume of the Benedictine edition. A neat
edition of the Latin text, with three other small tracts of Augustin,
(De Catechizandis Rudibus; De Fide Rerum quae non creduntur; De
Utilitate Credendi), is also published in C. Marriott's S. Aurelius
Augustinus, 4th ed. by H. de Romestin, Oxford and London (Parker and
Comp.), 1885 (pp. 150-251.) An English edition of the same tracts by H.
de Romestin, Oxford and London, 1885 (pp. 151-251). His English
translation is based on that of C. L. Cornish, M.A., which appeared in
the Oxford "Library of the Fathers," Oxford 1847 ("Seventeen Short
Treatises of St. Aug." pp. 85-158).
The present translation by Professor Shaw was first published in Dr.
Dods's series of Augustin's works, Edinburgh, (T. and T. Clark,) 3d ed.
1883. It is more free and idiomatic than that of Cornish. I have in a
few cases conformed it more closely to the original.
P.S.
__________________________________________________________________
[1088] "Scripsi etiam librum `de Fide, Spe et Charitate' cum a me ad
quem scriptus est postulasset ut aliquod opusculum haberet meum de suis
manibus nunquam recessurum, quod genus Graeci Enchiridion vocant. Ubi
satis diligenter mihi videor esse complexus quomodo sit colendus Deus
quam sapientiam esse hominis utique veram Divina Scriptura definit. Hic
liber sic incipit, `Dici non potest, dilectissime fili Laurenti,
quantum tua eruditione delecter.'"
__________________________________________________________________
The Enchiridion.
------------------------
Argument.
Laurentius having asked Augustin to furnish him with a handbook of
Christian doctrine, containing in brief compass answers to several
questions which he had proposed, Augustin shows him that these
questions can be fully answered by any one who knows the proper objects
of faith, hope, and love. He then proceeds, in the first part of the
work (Chap. ix.--cxiii.), to expound the objects of faith, taking as
his text the Apostles' Creed; and in the course of this exposition,
besides refuting divers heresies, he throws out many observations on
the conduct of life. The second part of the work (Chap. cxiv.--cxvi.)
treats of the objects of hope, and consists of a very brief exposition
of the several petitions in the Lord's Prayer. The third and concluding
part (Chap. cxvii.-cxxii.) treats of the objects of love, showing the
pre-eminence of this grace in the gospel system, that it is the end of
the commandment and the fulfilling of the law, and that God himself is
love.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--The Author Desires the Gift of True Wisdom for Laurentius.
I Cannot express, my beloved son Laurentius, the delight with which I
witness your progress in knowledge, and the earnest desire I have that
you should be a wise man: not one of those of whom it is said, "Where
is the wise? where is the scribe? where is the disputer of this world?
hath not God made foolish the wisdom of this world?" [1089] but one of
those of whom it is said, "The multitude of the wise is the welfare of
the world," [1090] and such as the apostles wishes those to become,
whom he tells," I would have you wise unto that which is good, and
simple concerning evil." [1091] Now, just as no one can exist of
himself, so no one can be wise of himself, but only by the enlightening
influence of Him of whom it is written," All wisdom cometh from the
Lord." [1092]
__________________________________________________________________
[1089] 1 Cor. i. 20
[1090] Wisd. vi. 24. [Greek text, ver. 25: plethos sophon soteria
kosmou.--P.S.]
[1091] Rom. xvi. 19
[1092] Ecclus. i. 1
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--The Fear of God is Man's True Wisdom.
The true wisdom of man is piety. You find this in the book of holy Job.
For we read there what wisdom itself has said to man: "Behold, the fear
of the Lord [pietas], that is wisdom." [1093] If you ask further what
is meant in that place by pietas, the Greek calls it more definitely
theosebeia, that is, the worship of God. The Greeks sometimes call
piety eusebeia, which signifies right worship, though this, of course,
refers specially to the worship of God. But when we are defining in
what man's true wisdom consists, the most convenient word to use is
that which distinctly expresses the fear of God. And can you, who are
anxious that I should treat of great matters in few words, wish for a
briefer form of expression? Or perhaps you are anxious that this
expression should itself be briefly explained, and that I should unfold
in a short discourse the proper mode of worshipping God?
__________________________________________________________________
[1093] Job xxviii. 28
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--God is to Be Worshipped Through Faith, Hope, and Love.
Now if I should answer, that God is to be worshipped with faith, hope,
and love, you will at once say that this answer is too brief, and will
ask me briefly to unfold the objects of each of these three graces,
viz., what we are to believe, what we are to hope for, and what we are
to love. And when I have done this, you will have an answer to all the
questions you asked in your letter. If you have kept a copy of your
letter, you can easily turn it up and read it over again: if you have
not, you will have no difficulty in recalling it when I refresh your
memory.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--The Questions Propounded by Laurentius.
You are anxious, you say, that I should write a sort of handbook for
you, which you might always keep beside you, containing answers to the
questions you put, viz.: what ought to be man's chief end in life; what
he ought, in view of the various heresies, chiefly to avoid; to what
extent religion is supported by reason; what there is in reason that
lends no support to faith, when faith stands alone; what is the
starting-point, what the goal, of religion; what is the sum of the
whole body of doctrine; what is the sure and proper foundation of the
catholic faith. Now, undoubtedly, you will know the answers to all
these questions, if you know thoroughly the proper objects of faith,
hope, and love. For these must be the chief, nay, the exclusive objects
of pursuit in religion. He who speaks against these is either a total
stranger to the name of Christ, or is a heretic. These are to be
defended by reason, which must have its starting-point either in the
bodily senses or in the intuitions of the mind. And what we have
neither had experience of through our bodily senses, nor have been able
to reach through the intellect, must undoubtedly be believed on the
testimony of those witnesses by whom the Scriptures, justly called
divine, were written; and who by divine assistance were enabled, either
through bodily sense or intellectual perception, to see or to foresee
the things in question.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--Brief Answers to These Questions.
Moreover, when the mind has been imbued with the first elements of that
faith which worketh by love, [1094] it endeavors by purity of life to
attain unto sight, where the pure and perfect in heart know that
unspeakable beauty, the full vision of which is supreme happiness. Here
surely is an answer to your question as to what is the starting-point,
and what the goal: we begin in faith, and are made perfect by sight.
This also is the sum of the whole body of doctrine. But the sure and
proper foundation of the catholic faith is Christ. "For other
foundation," says the apostle, "can no man lay than that is laid, which
is Jesus Christ." [1095] Nor are we to deny that this is the proper
foundation of the catholic faith, because it may be supposed that some
heretics hold this in common with us. For if we carefully consider the
things that pertain to Christ, we shall find that, among those heretics
who call themselves Christians, Christ is present in name only: in deed
and in truth He is not among them. But to show this would occupy us too
long, for we should require to go over all the heresies which have
existed, which do exist, or which could exist, under the Christian
name, and to show that this is true in the case of each,--a discussion
which would occupy so many volumes as to be all but interminable.
__________________________________________________________________
[1094] Gal. v. 6
[1095] 1 Cor. iii. 11
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--Controversy Out of Place in a Handbook Like the Present.
Now you ask of me a handbook, that is, one that can be carried in the
hand, not one to load your shelves. To return, then, to the three
graces through which, as I have said, God should be worshipped--faith,
hope, and love: to state what are the true and proper objects of each
of these is easy. But to defend this true doctrine against the assaults
of those who hold an opposite opinion, requires much fuller and more
elaborate instruction. And the true way to obtain this instruction is
not to have a short treatise put into one's hands, but to have a great
zeal kindled in one's heart.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--The Creed and the Lord's Prayer Demand the Exercise of
Faith, Hope, and Love.
For you have the Creed and the Lord's Prayer. What can be briefer to
hear or to read? What easier to commit to memory? When, as the result
of sin, the human race was groaning under a heavy load of misery, and
was in urgent need of the divine compassion, one of the prophets,
anticipating the time of God's grace, declared: "And it shall come to
pass, that whosoever shall call on the name of the Lord shall be
delivered." [1096] Hence the Lord's Prayer. But the apostle, when, for
the purpose of commending this very grace, he had quoted this prophetic
testimony, immediately added: "How then shall they call on Him in whom
they have not believed?" [1097] Hence the Creed. In these two you have
those three graces exemplified: faith believes, hope and love pray. But
without faith the two last cannot exist, and therefore we may say that
faith also prays. Whence it is written: "How shall they call on Him in
whom they have not believed?"
__________________________________________________________________
[1096] Joel ii. 32
[1097] Rom. x. 14
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--The Distinction Between Faith and Hope, and the Mutual
Dependence of Faith, Hope, and Love.
Again, can anything be hoped for which is not an object of faith? It is
true that a thing which is not an object of hope may be believed. What
true Christian, for example, does not believe in the punishment of the
wicked? And yet such an one does not hope for it. And the man who
believes that punishment to be hanging over himself, and who shrinks in
horror from the prospect, is more properly said to fear than to hope.
And these two states of mind the poet carefully distinguishes, when he
says: "Permit the fearful to have hope." [1098] Another poet, who is
usually much superior to this one, makes a wrong use of the word, when
he says: "If I have been able to hope for so great a grief as this."
[1099] And some grammarians take this case as an example of impropriety
of speech, saying, "He said sperare [to hope] instead of timere [to
fear]." Accordingly, faith may have for its object evil as well as
good; for both good and evil are believed, and the faith that believes
them is not evil, but good. Faith, moreover, is concerned with the
past, the present, and the future, all three. We believe, for example,
that Christ died,--an event in the past; we believe that He is sitting
at the right hand of God,--a state of things which is present; we
believe that He will come to judge the quick and the dead,--an event of
the future. Again, faith applies both to one's own circumstances and
those of others. Every one, for example, believes that his own
existence had a beginning, and was not eternal, and he believes the
same both of other men and other things. Many of our beliefs in regard
to religious matters, again, have reference not merely to other men,
but to angels also. But hope has for its object only what is good, only
what is future, and only what affects the man who entertains the hope.
For these reasons, then, faith must be distinguished from hope, not
merely as a matter of verbal propriety, but because they are
essentially different. The fact that we do not see either what we
believe or what we hope for, is all that is common to faith and hope.
In the Epistle to the Hebrews, for example, faith is defined (and
eminent defenders of the catholic faith have used the definition as a
standard) "the evidence of things not seen." [1100] Although, should
any one say that he believes, that is, has grounded his faith, not on
words, nor on witnesses, nor on any reasoning whatever, but on the
direct evidence of his own senses, he would not be guilty of such an
impropriety of speech as to be justly liable to the criticism, "You
saw, therefore you did not believe." And hence it does not follow that
an object of faith is not an object of sight. But it is better that we
should use the word "faith" as the Scriptures have taught us, applying
it to those things which are not seen. Concerning hope, again, the
apostle says: "Hope that is seen is not hope; for what a man seeth, why
doth he yet hope for? But if we hope for that we see not, then do we
with patience wait for it." [1101] When, then, we believe that good is
about to come, this is nothing else but to hope for it. Now what shall
I say of love? Without it, faith profits nothing; and in its absence,
hope cannot exist. The Apostle James says: "The devils also believe,
and tremble." [1102] --that is, they, having neither hope nor love, but
believing that what we love and hope for is about to come, are in
terror. And so the Apostle Paul approves and commends the "faith that
worketh by love;" [1103] and this certainly cannot exist without hope.
Wherefore there is no love without hope, no hope without love, and
neither love nor hope without faith.
__________________________________________________________________
[1098] Lucan, Phars. ii. 15.
[1099] Virgil, AEneid, iv. 419.
[1100] Heb. xi. 1
[1101] Rom. viii. 24, 25
[1102] Jas. ii. 19
[1103] Gal. v. 6
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--What We are to Believe. In Regard to Nature It is Not
Necessary for the Christian to Know More Than that the Goodness of the
Creator is the Cause of All Things.
When, then, the question is asked what we are to believe in regard to
religion, it is not necessary to probe into the nature of things, as
was done by those whom the Greeks call physici; nor need we be in alarm
lest the Christian should be ignorant of the force and number of the
elements,--the motion, and order, and eclipses of the heavenly bodies;
the form of the heavens; the species and the natures of animals,
plants, stones, fountains, rivers, mountains; about chronology and
distances; the signs of coming storms; and a thousand other things
which those philosophers either have found out, or think they have
found out. For even these men themselves, endowed though they are with
so much genius, burning with zeal, abounding in leisure, tracking some
things by the aid of human conjecture, searching into others with the
aids of history and experience, have not found out all things; and even
their boasted discoveries are oftener mere guesses than certain
knowledge. It is enough for the Christian to believe that the only
cause of all created things, whether heavenly or earthly, whether
visible or invisible, is the goodness of the Creator the one true God;
and that nothing exists but Himself that does not derive its existence
from Him; and that He is the Trinity--to wit, the Father, and the Son
begotten of the Father, and the Holy Spirit proceeding from the same
Father, but one and the same Spirit of Father and Son.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--The Supremely Good Creator Made All Things Good.
By the Trinity, thus supremely and equally and unchangeably good, all
things were created; and these are not supremely and equally and
unchangeably good, but yet they are good, even taken separately. Taken
as a whole, however, they are very good, because their ensemble
constitutes the universe in all its wonderful order and beauty.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 11.--What is Called Evil in the Universe is But the Absence of
Good.
And in the universe, even that which is called evil, when it is
regulated and put in its own place, only enhances our admiration of the
good; for we enjoy and value the good more when we compare it with the
evil. For the Almighty God, who, as even the heathen acknowledge, has
supreme power over all things, being Himself supremely good, would
never permit the existence of anything evil among His works, if He were
not so omnipotent and good that He can bring good even out of evil. For
what is that which we call evil but the absence of good? In the bodies
of animals, disease and wounds mean nothing but the absence of health;
for when a cure is effected, that does not mean that the evils which
were present--namely, the diseases and wounds--go away from the body
and dwell elsewhere: they altogether cease to exist; for the wound or
disease is not a substance, but a defect in the fleshly substance,--the
flesh itself being a substance, and therefore something good, of which
those evils--that is, privations of the good which we call health--are
accidents. Just in the same way, what are called vices in the soul are
nothing but privations of natural good. And when they are cured, they
are not transferred elsewhere: when they cease to exist in the healthy
soul, they cannot exist anywhere else.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 12.--All Beings Were Made Good, But Not Being Made Perfectly
Good, are Liable to Corruption.
All things that exist, therefore, seeing that the Creator of them all
is supremely good, are themselves good. But because they are not, like
their Creator, supremely and unchangeably good, their good may be
diminished and increased. But for good to be diminished is an evil,
although, however much it may be diminished, it is necessary, if the
being is to continue, that some good should remain to constitute the
being. For however small or of whatever kind the being may be, the good
which makes it a being cannot be destroyed without destroying the being
itself. An uncorrupted nature is justly held in esteem. But if, still
further, it be incorruptible, it is undoubtedly considered of still
higher value. When it is corrupted, however, its corruption is an evil,
because it is deprived of some sort of good. For if it be deprived of
no good, it receives no injury; but it does receive injury, therefore
it is deprived of good. Therefore, so long as a being is in process of
corruption, there is in it some good of which it is being deprived; and
if a part of the being should remain which cannot be corrupted, this
will certainly be an incorruptible being, and accordingly the process
of corruption will result in the manifestation of this great good. But
if it do not cease to be corrupted, neither can it cease to possess
good of which corruption may deprive it. But if it should be thoroughly
and completely consumed by corruption, there will then be no good left,
because there will be no being. Wherefore corruption can consume the
good only by consuming the being. Every being, therefore, is a good; a
great good, if it can not be corrupted; a little good, if it can: but
in any case, only the foolish or ignorant will deny that it is a good.
And if it be wholly consumed by corruption, then the corruption itself
must cease to exist, as there is no being left in which it can dwell.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 13.--There Can Be No Evil Where There is No Good; And an Evil
Man is an Evil Good.
Accordingly, there is nothing of what we call evil, if there be nothing
good. But a good which is wholly without evil is a perfect good. A
good, on the other hand, which contains evil is a faulty or imperfect
good; and there can be no evil where there is no good. From all this we
arrive at the curious result: that since every being, so far as it is a
being, is good, when we say that a faulty being is an evil being, we
just seem to say that what is good is evil, and that nothing but what
is good can be evil, seeing that every being is good, and that no evil
can exist except in a being. Nothing, then, can be evil except
something which is good. And although this, when stated, seems to be a
contradiction, yet the strictness of reasoning leaves us no escape from
the conclusion. We must, however, beware of incurring the prophetic
condemnation: "Woe unto them that call evil good, and good evil: that
put darkness for light, and light for darkness: that put bitter for
sweet, and sweet for bitter." [1104] And yet our Lord says: "An evil
man out of the evil treasure of his heart bringeth forth that which is
evil." [1105] Now, what is evil man but an evil being? for a man is a
being. Now, if a man is a good thing because he is a being, what is an
evil man but an evil good? Yet, when we accurately distinguish these
two things, we find that it is not because he is a man that he is an
evil, or because he is wicked that he is a good; but that he is a good
because he is a man, and an evil because he is wicked. Whoever, then,
says, "To be a man is an evil," or, "To be wicked is a good," falls
under the prophetic denunciation: "Woe unto them that call evil good,
and good evil!" For he condemns the work of God, which is the man, and
praises the defect of man, which is the wickedness. Therefore every
being, even if it be a defective one, in so far as it is a being is
good, and in so far as it is defective is evil.
__________________________________________________________________
[1104] Isa. v. 20
[1105] Luke vi. 45
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 14.--Good and Evil are an Exception to the Rule that Contrary
Attributes Cannot Be Predicated of the Same Subject. Evil Springs Up in
What is Good, and Cannot Exist Except in What is Good.
Accordingly, in the case of these contraries which we call good and
evil, the rule of thelogicians, that two contraries cannot be
predicated at the same time of the same thing, does not hold. No
weather is at the same time dark and bright: no food or drink is at the
same time sweet and bitter: no body is at the same time and in the same
place black and white: none is at the same time and in the same place
deformed and beautiful. And this rule is found to hold in regard to
many, indeed nearly all, contraries, that they cannot exist at the same
time in any one thing. But although no one can doubt that good and evil
are contraries, not only can they exist at the same time, but evil
cannot exist without good, or in anything that is not good. Good,
however, can exist without evil. For a man or an angel can exist
without being wicked; but nothing can be wicked except a man or an
angel: and so far as he is a man or an angel, he is good; so far as he
is wicked, he is an evil. And these two contraries are so far
co-existent, that if good did not exist in what is evil, neither could
evil exist; because corruption could not have either a place to dwell
in, or a source to spring from, if there were nothing that could be
corrupted; and nothing can be corrupted except what is good, for
corruption is nothing else but the destruction of good. From what is
good, then, evils arose, and except in what is good they do not exist;
nor was there any other source from which any evil nature could arise.
For if there were, then, in so far as this was a being, it was
certainly a good: and a being which was incorruptible would be a great
good; and even one which was corruptible must be to some extent a good,
for only by corrupting what was good in it could corruption do it harm.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 15.--The Preceding Argument is in No Wise Inconsistent with the
Saying of Our Lord: "A Good Tree Cannot Bring Forth Evil Fruit."
But when we say that evil springs out of good, let it not be thought
that this contradicts our Lord's saying: "A good tree cannot bring
forth evil fruit." [1106] For, as He who is the Truth says, you cannot
gather grapes of thorns, [1107] because grapes do not grow on thorns.
But we see that on good soil both vines and thorns may be grown. And in
the same way, just as an evil tree cannot bring forth good fruit, so an
evil will cannot produce good works. But from the nature of man, which
is good, may spring either a good or an evil will. And certainly there
was at first no source from which an evil will could spring, except the
nature of angel or of man, which was good. And our Lord Himself clearly
shows this in the very same place where He speaks about the tree and
its fruit. For He says: "Either make the tree good, and his fruit good;
or else make the tree corrupt, and his fruit corrupt," [1108] --clearly
enough warning us that evil fruits do not grow on a good tree, nor good
fruits on an evil tree; but that nevertheless the ground itself, by
which He meant those whom He was then addressing, might grow either
kind of trees.
__________________________________________________________________
[1106] Matt. vii. 18
[1107] Matt. vii. 16
[1108] Matt. xii. 33
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 16.--It is Not Essential to Man's Happiness that He Should Know
the Causes of Physical Convulsions; But It Is, that He Should Know the
Causes of Good and Evil.
Now, in view of these considerations, when we are pleased with that
line of Maro, "Happy the man who has attained to the knowledge of the
causes of things," [1109] we should not suppose that it is necessary to
happiness to know the causes of the great physical convulsions, causes
which lie hid in the most secret recesses of nature's kingdom, "whence
comes the earthquake whose force makes the deep seas to swell and burst
their barriers, and again to return upon themselves and settle down."
[1110] But we ought to know the causes of good and evil as far as man
may in this life know them, in order to avoid the mistakes and troubles
of which this life is so full. For our aim must always be to reach that
state of happiness in which no trouble shall distress us, and no error
mislead us. If we must know the causes of physical convulsions, there
are none which it concerns us more to know than those which affect our
own health. But seeing that, in our ignorance of these, we are fain to
resort to physicians, it would seem that we might bear with
considerable patience our ignorance of the secrets that lie hid in the
earth and heavens.
__________________________________________________________________
[1109] Virgil, Georgics, ii. 490.
[1110] Ibid
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 17.--The Nature of Error. All Error is Not Hurtful, Though It
is Man's Duty as Far as Possible to Avoid It.
For although we ought with the greatest possible care to avoid error,
not only in great but even in little things, and although we cannot err
except through ignorance, it does not follow that, if a man is ignorant
of a thing, he must forthwith fall into error. That is rather the fate
of the man who thinks he knows what he does not know. For he accepts
what is false as if it were true, and that is the essence of error. But
it is a point of very great importance what the subject is in regard to
which a man makes a mistake. For on one and the same subject we rightly
prefer an instructed man to an ignorant one, and a man who is not in
error to one who is. In the case of different subjects, however,--that
is, when one man knows one thing, and another a different thing, and
when what the former knows is useful, and what the latter knows is not
so useful, or is actually hurtful,--who would not, in regard to the
things the latter knows, prefer the ignorance of the former to the
knowledge of the latter? For there are points on which ignorance is
better than knowledge. And in the same way, it has sometimes been an
advantage to depart from the right way,--in travelling, however, not in
morals. It has happened to myself to take the wrong road where two ways
met, so that I did not pass by the place where an armed band of
Donatists lay in wait for me. Yet I arrived at the place whither I was
bent, though by a roundabout route; and when I heard of the ambush, I
congratulated myself on my mistake, and gave thanks to God for it. Now,
who would not rather be the traveller who made a mistake like this,
than the highwayman who made no mistake? And hence, perhaps, it is that
the prince of poets puts these words into the mouth of a lover in
misery: [1111] "How I am undone, how I have been carried away by an
evil error!" for there is an error which is good, as it not merely does
no harm, but produces some actual advantage. But when we look more
closely into the nature of truth, and consider that to err is just to
take the false for the true, and the true for the false, or to hold
what is certain as uncertain, and what is uncertain as certain, and
that error in the soul is hideous and repulsive just in proportion as
it appears fair and plausible when we utter it, or assent to it,
saying, "Yea, yea; Nay, nay,"--surely this life that we live is
wretched indeed, if only on this account, that sometimes, in order to
preserve it, it is necessary to fall into error. God forbid that such
should be that other life, where truth itself is the life of the soul,
where no one deceives, and no one is deceived. But here men deceive and
are deceived, and they are more to be pitied when they lead others
astray than when they are themselves led astray by putting trust in
liars. Yet so much does a rational soul shrink from what is false, and
so earnestly does it struggle against error, that even those who love
to deceive are most unwilling to be deceived. For the liar does not
think that he errs, but that he leads another who trusts him into
error. And certainly he does not err in regard to the matter about
which he lies, if he himself knows the truth; but he is deceived in
this, that he thinks his lie does him no harm, whereas every sin is
more hurtful to the sinner than to the sinned against.
__________________________________________________________________
[1111] Virgil, Eclog. viii. 41.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 18.--It is Never Allowable to Tell a Lie; But Lies Differ Very
Much in Guilt, According to the Intention and the Subject.
But here arises a very difficult and very intricate question, about
which I once wrote a large book, finding it necessary to give it an
answer. The question is this: whether at any time it can become the
duty of a good man to tell a lie? For some go so far as to contend that
there are occasions on which it is a good and pious work to commit
perjury even, and to say what is false about matters that relate to the
worship of God, and about the very nature of God Himself. To me,
however, it seems certain that every lie is a sin, though it makes a
great difference with what intention and on what subject one lies. For
the sin of the man who tells a lie to help another is not so heinous as
that of the man who tells a lie to injure another; and the man who by
his lying puts a traveller on the wrong road, does not do so much harm
as the man who by false or misleading representations distorts the
whole course of a life. No one, of course, is to be condemned as a liar
who says what is false, believing it to be true, because such an one
does not consciously deceive, but rather is himself deceived. And, on
the same principle, a man is not to be accused of lying, though he may
sometimes be open to the charge of rashness, if through carelessness he
takes up what is false and holds it as true; but, on the other hand,
the man who says what is true, believing it to be false, is, so far as
his own consciousness is concerned, a liar. For in saying what he does
not believe, he says what to his own conscience is false, even though
it should in fact be true; nor is the man in any sense free from lying
who with his mouth speaks the truth without knowing it, but in his
heart wills to tell a lie. And, therefore, not looking at the matter
spoken of, but solely at the intention of the speaker, the man who
unwittingly says what is false, thinking all the time that it is true,
is a better man than the one who unwittingly says what is true, but in
his conscience intends to deceive. For the former does not think one
thing and say another; but the latter, though his statements may be
true in fact, has one thought in his heart and another on his lips: and
that is the very essence of lying. But when we come to consider truth
and falsehood in respect to the subjects spoken of, the point on which
one deceives or is deceived becomes a matter of the utmost importance.
For although, as far as a man's own conscience is concerned, it is a
greater evil to deceive than to be deceived, nevertheless it is a far
less evil to tell a lie in regard to matters that do not relate to
religion, than to be led into error in regard to matters the knowledge
and belief of which are essential to the right worship of God. To
illustrate this by example: suppose that one man should say of some one
who is dead that he is still alive, knowing this to be untrue; and that
another man should, being deceived, believe that Christ shall at the
end of some time (make the time as long as you please) die; would it
not be incomparably better to lie like the former, than to be deceived
like the latter? and would it not be a much less evil to lead some man
into the former error, than to be led by any man into the latter?
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 19.--Men's Errors Vary Very Much in the Magnitude of the Evils
They Produce; But Yet Every Error is in Itself an Evil.
In some things, then, it is a great evil to be deceived; in some it is
a small evil; in some no evil at all; and in some it is an actual
advantage. It is to his grievous injury that a man is deceived when he
does not believe what leads to eternal life, or believes what leads to
eternal death. It is a small evil for a man to be deceived, when, by
taking falsehood for truth, he brings upon himself temporal annoyances;
for the patience of the believer will turn even these to a good use, as
when, for example, taking a bad man for a good, he receives injury from
him. But one who believes a bad man to be good, and yet suffers no
injury, is nothing the worse for being deceived, nor does he fall under
the prophetic denunciation: "Woe to those who call evil good!" [1112]
For we are to understand that this is spoken not about evil men, but
about the things that make men evil. Hence the man who calls adultery
good, falls justly under that prophetic denunciation. But the man who
calls the adulterer good, thinking him to be chaste, and not knowing
him to be an adulterer, falls into no error in regard to the nature of
good and evil, but only makes a mistake as to the secrets of human
conduct. He calls the man good on the ground of believing him to be
what is undoubtedly good; he calls the adulterer evil, and the pure man
good; and he calls this man good, not knowing him to be an adulterer,
but believing him to be pure. Further, if by making a mistake one
escape death, as I have said above once happened to me, one even
derives some advantage from one's mistake. But when I assert that in
certain cases a man may be deceived without any injury to himself, or
even with some advantage to himself, I do not mean that the mistake in
itself is no evil, or is in any sense a good; I refer only to the evil
that is avoided, or the advantage that is gained, through making the
mistake. For the mistake, considered in itself, is an evil: a great
evil if it concern a great matter, a small evil if it concern a small
matter, but yet always an evil. For who that is of sound mind can deny
that it is an evil to receive what is false as if it were true, and to
reject what is true as if it were false, or to hold what is uncertain
as certain, and what is certain as uncertain? But it is one thing to
think a man good when he is really bad, which is a mistake; it is
another thing to suffer no ulterior injury in consequence of the
mistake, supposing that the bad man whom we think good inflicts no
damage upon us. In the same way, it is one thing to think that we are
on the right road when we are not; it is another thing when this
mistake of ours, which is an evil, leads to some good, such as saving
us from an ambush of wicked men.
__________________________________________________________________
[1112] Isa. v. 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 20.--Every Error is Not a Sin. An Examination of the Opinion of
the Academic Philosophers, that to Avoid Error We Should in All Cases
Suspend Belief.
I am not sure whether mistakes such as the following,--when one forms a
good opinion of a bad man, not knowing what sort of man he is; or when,
instead of the ordinary perceptions through the bodily senses, other
appearances of a similar kind present themselves, which we perceive in
the spirit, but think we perceive in the body, or perceive in the body,
but think we perceive in the spirit (such a mistake as the Apostle
Peter made when the angel suddenly freed him from his chains and
imprisonment, and he thought he saw a vision [1113] ); or when, in the
case of sensible objects themselves, we mistake rough for smooth, or
bitter for sweet, or think that putrid matter has a good smell; or when
we mistake the passing of a carriage for thunder; or mistake one man
for another, the two being very much alike, as often happens in the
case of twins (hence our great poet calls it "a mistake pleasing to
parents" [1114] ),--whether these, and other mistakes of this kind,
ought to be called sins. Nor do I now undertake to solve a very knotty
question, which perplexed those very acute thinkers, the Academic
philosophers: whether a wise man ought to give his assent to anything,
seeing that he may fall into error by assenting to falsehood: for all
things, as they assert, are either unknown or uncertain. Now I wrote
three volumes shortly after my conversion, to remove out of my way the
objections which lie, as it were, on the very threshold of faith. And
assuredly it was necessary at the very outset to remove this utter
despair of reaching truth, which seems to be strengthened by the
arguments of these philosophers. Now in their eyes every error is
regarded as a sin, and they think that error can only be avoided by
entirely suspending belief. For they say that the man who assents to
what is uncertain falls into error; and they strive by the most acute,
but most audacious arguments, to show that, even though a man's opinion
should by chance be true, yet that there is no certainty of its truth,
owing to the impossibility of distinguishing truth from falsehood. But
with us, "the just shall live by faith." [1115] Now, if assent be taken
away, faith goes too; for without assent there can be no belief. And
there are truths, whether we know them or not, which must be believed
if we would attain to a happy life, that is, to eternal life. But I am
not sure whether one ought to argue with men who not only do not know
that there is an eternal life before them, but do not know whether they
are living at the present moment; nay, say that they do not know what
it is impossible they can be ignorant of. For it is impossible that any
one should be ignorant that he is alive, seeing that if he be not alive
it is impossible for him to be ignorant; for not knowledge merely, but
ignorance too, can be an attribute only of the living. But, forsooth,
they think that by not acknowledging that they are alive they avoid
error, when even their very error proves that they are alive, since one
who is not alive cannot err. As, then, it is not only true, but
certain, that we are alive, so there are many other things both true
and certain; and God forbid that it should ever be called wisdom, and
not the height of folly, to refuse assent to these.
__________________________________________________________________
[1113] Acts xii. 9
[1114] Virgil, AEn. x. 392.
[1115] Rom. i. 17
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 21.--Error, Though Not Always a Sin, is Always an Evil.
But as to those matters in regard to which our belief or disbelief, and
indeed their truth or supposed truth or falsity, are of no importance
whatever, so far as attaining the kingdom of God is concerned: to make
a mistake in such matters is not to be looked on as a sin, or at least
as a very small and trifling sin. In short, a mistake in matters of
this kind, whatever its nature and magnitude, does not relate to the
way of approach to God, which is the faith of Christ that "worketh by
love." [1116] For the "mistake pleasing to parents" in the case of the
twin children was no deviation from this way; nor did the Apostle Peter
deviate from this way, when, thinking that he saw a vision, he so
mistook one thing for another, that, till the angel who delivered him
had departed from him, he did not distinguish the real objects among
which he was moving from the visionary objects of a dream; [1117] nor
did the patriarch Jacob deviate from this way, when he believed that
his son, who was really alive, had been slain by a beast. [1118] In the
case of these and other false impressions of the same kind, we are
indeed deceived, but our faith in God remains secure. We go astray, but
we do not leave the way that leads us to Him. But yet these errors,
though they are not sinful, are to be reckoned among the evils of this
life which is so far made subject to vanity, that we receive what is
false as if it were true, reject what is true as if it were false, and
cling to what is uncertain as if it were certain. And although they do
not trench upon that true and certain faith through which we reach
eternal blessedness, yet they have much to do with that misery in which
we are now living. And assuredly, if we were now in the enjoyment of
the true and perfect happiness that lies before us, we should not be
subject to any deception through any sense, whether of body or of mind.
__________________________________________________________________
[1116] Gal. v. 6
[1117] Acts xii. 9-11
[1118] Gen. xxxvii. 33
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 22.--A Lie is Not Allowable, Even to Save Another from Injury.
But every lie must be called a sin, because not only when a man knows
the truth, but even when, as a man may be, he is mistaken and deceived,
it is his duty to say what he thinks in his heart, whether it be true,
or whether he only think it to be true. But every liar says the
opposite of what he thinks in his heart, with purpose to deceive. Now
it is evident that speech was given to man, not that men might
therewith deceive one another, but that one man might make known his
thoughts to another. To use speech, then, for the purpose of deception,
and not for its appointed end, is a sin. Nor are we to suppose that
there is any lie that is not a sin, because it is sometimes possible,
by telling a lie, to do service to another. For it is possible to do
this by theft also, as when we steal from a rich man who never feels
the loss, to give to a poor man who is sensibly benefited by what he
gets. And the same can be said of adultery also, when, for instance,
some woman appears likely to die of love unless we consent to her
wishes, while if she lived she might purify herself by repentance; but
yet no one will assert that on this account such an adultery is not a
sin. And if we justly place so high a value upon chastity, what offense
have we taken at truth, that, while no prospect of advantage to another
will lead us to violate the former by adultery, we should be ready to
violate the latter by lying? It cannot be denied that they have
attained a very high standard of goodness who never lie except to save
a man from injury; but in the case of men who have reached this
standard, it is not the deceit, but their good intention, that is
justly praised, and sometimes even rewarded. It is quite enough that
the deception should be pardoned, without its being made an object of
laudation, especially among the heirs of the new covenant, to whom it
is said: "Let your communication be, Yea, yea; Nay, nay: for whatsoever
is more than these cometh of evil." [1119] And it is on account of this
evil, which never ceases to creep in while we retain this mortal
vesture, that the co-heirs of Christ themselves say, "Forgive us our
debts." [1120]
__________________________________________________________________
[1119] Matt. v. 37
[1120] Matt. vi. 12
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 23.--Summary of the Results of the Preceding Discussion.
As it is right that we should know the causes of good and evil, so much
of them at least as will suffice for the way that leads us to the
kingdom, where there will be life without the shadow of death, truth
without any alloy of error, and happiness unbroken by any sorrow, I
have discussed these subjects with the brevity which my limited space
demanded. And I think there cannot now be any doubt, that the only
cause of any good that we enjoy is the goodness of God, and that the
only cause of evil is the falling away from the unchangeable good of a
being made good but changeable, first in the case of an angel, and
afterwards in the case of man.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 24.--The Secondary Causes of Evil are Ignorance and Lust.
This is the first evil that befell the intelligent creation--that is,
its first privation of good. Following upon this crept in, and now even
in opposition to man's will, ignorance of duty, and lust after what is
hurtful: and these brought in their train error and suffering, which,
when they are felt to be imminent, produce that shrinking of the mind
which is called fear. Further, when the mind attains the objects of its
desire, however hurtful or empty they may be, error prevents it from
perceiving their true nature, or its perceptions are overborne by a
diseased appetite, and so it is puffed up with a foolish joy. From
these fountains of evil, which spring out of defect rather than
superfluity, flows every form of misery that besets a rational nature.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 25.--God's Judgments Upon Fallen Men and Angels. The Death of
the Body is Man's Peculiar Punishment.
And yet such a nature, in the midst of all its evils, could not lose
the craving after happiness. Now the evils I have mentioned are common
to all who for their wickedness have been justly condemned by God,
whether they be men or angels. But there is one form of punishment
peculiar to man--the death of the body. God had threatened him with
this punishment of death if he should sin, [1121] leaving him indeed to
the freedom of his own will, but yet commanding his obedience under
pain of death; and He placed him amid the happiness of Eden, as it were
in a protected nook of life, with the intention that, if he preserved
his righteousness, he should thence ascend to a better place.
__________________________________________________________________
[1121] Gen. ii. 17
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 26.--Through Adam's Sin His Whole Posterity Were Corrupted, and
Were Born Under the Penalty of Death, Which He Had Incurred.
Thence, after his sin, he was driven into exile, and by his sin the
whole race of which he was the root was corrupted in him, and thereby
subjected to the penalty of death. And so it happens that all descended
from him, and from the woman who had led him into sin, and was
condemned at the same time with him,--being the offspring of carnal
lust on which the same punishment of disobedience was visited,--were
tainted with the original sin, and were by it drawn through divers
errors and sufferings into that last and endless punishment which they
suffer in common with the fallen angels, their corrupters and masters,
and the partakers of their doom. And thus "by one man sin entered into
the world, and death by sin; and so death passed upon all men, for that
all have sinned." [1122] By "the world" the apostle, of course, means
in this place the whole human race.
__________________________________________________________________
[1122] Rom. v. 12
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 27.--The State of Misery to Which Adam's Sin Reduced Mankind,
and the Restoration Effected Through the Mercy of God.
Thus, then, matters stood. The whole mass of the human race was under
condemnation, was lying steeped and wallowing in misery, and was being
tossed from one form of evil to another, and, having joined the faction
of the fallen angels, was paying the well-merited penalty of that
impious rebellion. For whatever the wicked freely do through blind and
unbridled lust, and whatever they suffer against their will in the way
of open punishment, this all evidently pertains to the just wrath of
God. But the goodness of the Creator never fails either to supply life
and vital power to the wicked angels (without which their existence
would soon come to an end); or, in the case of mankind, who spring from
a condemned and corrupt stock, to impart form and life to their seed,
to fashion their members, and through the various seasons of their
life, and in the different parts of the earth, to quicken their senses,
and bestow upon them the nourishment they need. For He judged it better
to bring good out of evil, than not to permit any evil to exist. And if
He had determined that in the case of men, as in the case of the fallen
angels, there should be no restoration to happiness, would it not have
been quite just, that the being who rebelled against God, who in the
abuse of his freedom spurned and transgressed the command of his
Creator when he could so easily have kept it, who defaced in himself
the image of his Creator by stubbornly turning away from His light, who
by an evil use of his free-will broke away from his wholesome bondage
to the Creator's laws,--would it not have been just that such a being
should have been wholly and to all eternity deserted by God, and left
to suffer the everlasting punishment he had so richly earned? Certainly
so God would have done, had He been only just and not also merciful,
and had He not designed that His unmerited mercy should shine forth the
more brightly in contrast with the unworthiness of its objects.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 28.--When the Rebellious Angels Were Cast Out, the Rest
Remained in the Enjoyment of Eternal Happiness with God.
Whilst some of the angels, then, in their pride and impiety rebelled
against God, and were cast down from their heavenly abode into the
lowest darkness, the remaining number dwelt with God in eternal and
unchanging purity and happiness. For all were not sprung from one angel
who had fallen and been condemned, so that they were not all, like men,
involved by one original sin in the bonds of an inherited guilt, and so
made subject to the penalty which one had incurred; but when he, who
afterwards became the devil, was with his associates in crime exalted
in pride, and by that very exaltation was with them cast down, the rest
remained steadfast in piety and obedience to their Lord, and obtained,
what before they had not enjoyed, a sure and certain knowledge of their
eternal safety, and freedom from the possibility of falling.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 29.--The Restored Part of Humanity Shall, in Accordance with
the Promises of God, Succeed to the Place Which the Rebellious Angels
Lost.
And so it pleased God, the Creator and Governor of the universe, that,
since the whole body of the angels had not fallen into rebellion, the
part of them which had fallen should remain in perdition eternally, and
that the other part, which had in the rebellion remained steadfastly
loyal, should rejoice in the sure and certain knowledge of their
eternal happiness; but that, on the other hand, mankind, who
constituted the remainder of the intelligent creation, having perished
without exception under sin, both original and actual, and the
consequent punishments, should be in part restored, and should fill up
the gap which the rebellion and fall of the devils had left in the
company of the angels. For this is the promise to the saints, that at
the resurrection they shall be equal to the angels of God. [1123] And
thus the Jerusalem which is above, which is the mother of us all, the
city of God, shall not be spoiled of any of the number of her citizens,
shall perhaps reign over even a more abundant population. We do not
know the number either of the saints or of the devils; but we know that
the children of the holy mother who was called barren on earth shall
succeed to the place of the fallen angels, and shall dwell for ever in
that peaceful abode from which they fell. But the number of the
citizens, whether as it now is or as it shall be, is present to the
thoughts of the great Creator, who calls those things which are not as
though they were, [1124] and ordereth all things in measure, and
number, and weight. [1125]
__________________________________________________________________
[1123] Luke xx. 36
[1124] Rom. iv. 17
[1125] Wisd. xi. 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 30.--Men are Not Saved by Good Works, Nor by the Free
Determination of Their Own Will, But by the Grace of God Through Faith.
But this part of the human race to which God has promised pardon and a
share in His eternal kingdom, can they be restored through the merit of
their own works? God forbid. For what good work can a lost man perform,
except so far as he has been delivered from perdition? Can they do
anything by the free determination of their own will? Again I say, God
forbid. For it was by the evil use of his free-will that man destroyed
both it and himself. For, as a man who kills himself must, of course,
be alive when he kills himself, but after he has killed himself ceases
to live, and cannot restore himself to life; so, when man by his own
free-will sinned, then sin being victorious over him, the freedom of
his will was lost. "For of whom a man is overcome, of the same is he
brought in bondage." [1126] This is the judgment of the Apostle Peter.
And as it is certainly true, what kind of liberty, I ask, can the
bond-slave possess, except when it pleases him to sin? For he is freely
in bondage who does with pleasure the will of his master. Accordingly,
he who is the servant of sin is free to sin. And hence he will not be
free to do right, until, being freed from sin, he shall begin to be the
servant of righteousness. And this is true liberty, for he has pleasure
in the righteous deed; and it is at the same time a holy bondage, for
he is obedient to the will of God. But whence comes this liberty to do
right to the man who is in bondage and sold under sin, except he be
redeemed by Him who has said, "If the Son shall make you free, ye shall
be free indeed?" [1127] And before this redemption is wrought in a man,
when he is not yet free to do what is right, how can he talk of the
freedom of his will and his good works, except he be inflated by that
foolish pride of boasting which the apostle restrains when he says, "By
grace are ye saved, through faith." [1128]
__________________________________________________________________
[1126] 2 Pet. ii. 19
[1127] John viii. 36
[1128] Eph. ii. 8
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 31.--Faith Itself is the Gift of God; And Good Works Will Not
Be Wanting in Those Who Believe.
And lest men should arrogate to themselves the merit of their own faith
at least, not understanding that this too is the gift of God, this same
apostle, who says in another place that he had "obtained mercy of the
Lord to be faithful," [1129] here also adds: "and that not of
yourselves; it is the gift of God: not of works, lest any man should
boast." [1130] And lest it should be thought that good works will be
wanting in those who believe, he adds further: "For we are His
workmanship, created in Christ Jesus unto good works, which God hath
before ordained that we should walk in them." [1131] We shall be made
truly free, then, when God fashions us, that is, forms and creates us
anew, not as men--for He has done that already--but as good men, which
His grace is now doing, that we may be a new creation in Christ Jesus,
according as it is said: "Create in me a clean heart, O God." [1132]
For God had already created his heart, so far as the physical structure
of the human heart is concerned; but the psalmist prays for the renewal
of the life which was still lingering in his heart.
__________________________________________________________________
[1129] 1 Cor. vii. 25
[1130] Eph. ii. 8, 9
[1131] Eph. ii. 10
[1132] Ps. li. 10
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 32.--The Freedom of the Will is Also the Gift of God, for God
Worketh in Us Both to Will and to Do.
And further, should any one be inclined to boast, not indeed of his
works, but of the freedom of his will, as if the first merit belonged
to him, this very liberty of good action being given to him as a reward
he had earned, let him listen to this same preacher of grace, when he
says: "For it is God which worketh in you, both to will and to do of
His own good pleasure;" [1133] and in another place: "So, then, it is
not of him that willeth, nor of him that runneth, but of God that
showeth mercy." [1134] Now as, undoubtedly, if a man is of the age to
use his reason, he cannot believe, hope, love, unless he will to do so,
nor obtain the prize of the high calling of God unless he voluntarily
run for it; in what sense is it "not of him that willeth, nor of him
that runneth, but of God that showeth mercy," except that, as it is
written, "the preparation of the heart is from the Lord?" [1135]
Otherwise, if it is said, "It is not of him that willeth, nor of him
that runneth, but of God that showeth mercy," because it is of both,
that is, both of the will of man and of the mercy of God, so that we
are to understand the saying, "It is not of him that willeth, nor of
him that runneth, but of God that showeth mercy," as if it meant the
will of man alone is not sufficient, if the mercy of God go not with
it,--then it will follow that the mercy of God alone is not sufficient,
if the will of man go not with it; and therefore, if we may rightly
say, "it is not of man that willeth, but of God that showeth mercy,"
because the will of man by itself is not enough, why may we not also
rightly put it in the converse way: "It is not of God that showeth
mercy, but of man that willeth," because the mercy of God by itself
does not suffice? Surely, if no Christian will dare to say this, "It is
not of God that showeth mercy, but of man that willeth," lest he should
openly contradict the apostle, it follows that the true interpretation
of the saying, "It is not of him that willeth, nor of him that runneth,
but of God that showeth mercy," is that the whole work belongs to God,
who both makes the will of man righteous, and thus prepares it for
assistance, and assists it when it is prepared. For the man's
righteousness of will precedes many of God's gifts, but not all; and it
must itself be included among those which it does not precede. We read
in Holy Scripture, both that God's mercy "shall meet me," [1136] and
that His mercy "shall follow me." [1137] It goes before the unwilling
to make him willing; it follows the willing to make his will effectual.
Why are we taught to pray for our enemies, [1138] who are plainly
unwilling to lead a holy life, unless that God may work willingness in
them? And why are we ourselves taught to ask that we may receive,
[1139] unless that He who has created in us the wish, may Himself
satisfy the wish? We pray, then, for our enemies, that the mercy of God
may prevent them, as it has prevented us: we pray for ourselves that
His mercy may follow us.
__________________________________________________________________
[1133] Phil. ii. 13
[1134] Rom. ix. 16
[1135] Prov. xvi. 1
[1136] Ps. lix. 10
[1137] Ps. xxiii. 6
[1138] Matt. v. 44
[1139] Matt. vii. 7
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 33.--Men, Being by Nature the Children of Wrath, Needed a
Mediator. In What Sense God is Said to Be Angry.
And so the human race was lying under a just condemnation, and all men
were the children of wrath. Of which wrath it is written: "All our days
are passed away in Thy wrath; we spend our years as a tale that is
told." [1140] Of which wrath also Job says: "Man that is born of a
woman is of few days, and full of trouble." [1141] Of which wrath also
the Lord Jesus says: "He that believeth on the Son hath everlasting
life: and he that believeth not the Son shall not see life; but the
wrath of God abideth on him." [1142] He does not say it will come, but
it "abideth on him." For every man is born with it; wherefore the
apostle says: "We were by nature the children of wrath, even as
others." [1143] Now, as men were lying under this wrath by reason of
their original sin, and as this original sin was the more heavy and
deadly in proportion to the number and magnitude of the actual sins
which were added to it, there was need for a Mediator, that is, for a
reconciler, who, by the offering of one sacrifice, of which all the
sacrifices of the law and the prophets were types, should take away
this wrath. Wherefore the apostle says: "For if, when we were enemies,
we were reconciled to God by the death of His Son, much more, being
reconciled, we shall be saved by His life." [1144] Now when God is said
to be angry, we do not attribute to Him such a disturbed feeling as
exists in the mind of an angry man; but we call His just displeasure
against sin by the name "anger," a word transferred by analogy from
human emotions. But our being reconciled to God through a Mediator, and
receiving the Holy Spirit, so that we who were enemies are made sons
("For as many as are led by the Spirit of God, they are the sons of
God" [1145] ): this is the grace of God through Jesus Christ our Lord.
__________________________________________________________________
[1140] Ps. xc. 9
[1141] Job xiv.1
[1142] John iii. 36. These words, attributed by the author to Christ,
were really spoken by John the Baptist.
[1143] Eph. ii. 3
[1144] Rom. v. 10
[1145] Rom. viii. 14
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 34.--The Ineffable Mystery of the Birth of Christ the Mediator
Through the Virgin Mary.
Now of this Mediator it would occupy too much space to say anything at
all worthy of Him; and, indeed, to say what is worthy of Him is not in
the power of man. For who will explain in consistent words this single
statement, that "the Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us," [1146]
so that we may believe on the only Son of God the Father Almighty, born
of the Holy Ghost and the Virgin Mary. The meaning of the Word being
made flesh, is not that the divine nature was changed into flesh, but
that the divine nature assumed our flesh. And by "flesh" we are here to
understand "man," the part being put for the whole, as when it is said:
"By the deeds of the law shall no flesh be justified," [1147] that is,
no man. For we must believe that no part was wanting in that human
nature which He put on, save that it was a nature wholly free from
every taint of sin,--not such a nature as is conceived between the two
sexes through carnal lust, which is born in sin, and whose guilt is
washed away in regeneration; but such as it behoved a virgin to bring
forth, when the mother's faith, not her lust, was the condition of
conception. And if her virginity had been marred even in bringing Him
forth, He would not have been born of a virgin; and it would be false
(which God forbid) that He was born of the Virgin Mary, as is believed
and declared by the whole Church, which, in imitation of His mother,
daily brings forth members of His body, and yet remains a virgin. Read,
if you please, my letter on the virginity of the holy Mary which I sent
to that eminent man, whose name I mention with respect and affection,
Volusianus. [1148]
__________________________________________________________________
[1146] John i. 14
[1147] 3[1147] Rom. iii. 20
[1148] Ep. 137.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 35.--Jesus Christ, Being the Only Son of God, is at the Same
Time Man.
Wherefore Christ Jesus, the Son of God, is both God and man; God before
all worlds; man in our world: God, because the Word of God (for "the
Word was God" [1149] ); and man, because in His one person the Word was
joined with a body and a rational soul. Wherefore, so far as He is God,
He and the Father are one; so far as He is man, the Father is greater
than He. For when He was the only Son of God, not by grace, but by
nature, that He might be also full of grace, He became the Son of man;
and He Himself unites both natures in His own identity, and both
natures constitute one Christ; because, "being in the form of God, He
thought it not robbery to be," what He was by nature, "equal with God."
[1150] But He made Himself of no reputation, and took upon Himself the
form of a servant, not losing or lessening the form of God. And,
accordingly, He was both made less and remained equal, being both in
one, as has been said: but He was one of these as Word, and the other
as man. As Word, He is equal with the Father; as man, less than the
Father. One Son of God, and at the same time Son of man; one Son of
man, and at the same time Son of God; not two Sons of God, God and man,
but one Son of God: God without beginning; man with a beginning, our
Lord Jesus Christ.
__________________________________________________________________
[1149] John i. 1
[1150] Phil. ii. 6
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 36.--The Grace of God is Clearly and Remarkably Displayed in
Raising the Man Christ Jesus to the Dignity of the Son of God.
Now here the grace of God is displayed with the greatest power and
clearness. For what merit had the human nature in the man Christ
earned, that it should in this unparalleled way be taken up into the
unity of the person of the only Son of God? What goodness of will, what
goodness of desire and intention, what good works, had gone before,
which made this man worthy to become one person with God? Had He been a
man previously to this, and had He earned this unprecedented reward,
that He should be thought worthy to become God? Assuredly nay; from the
very moment that He began to be man, He was nothing else than the Son
of God, the only Son of God, the Word who was made flesh, and therefore
He was God so that just as each individual man unites in one person a
body and a rational soul, so Christ in one person unites the Word and
man. Now wherefore was this unheard of glory conferred on human
nature,--a glory which, as there was no antecedent merit, was of course
wholly of grace,--except that here those who looked at the matter
soberly and honestly might behold a clear manifestation of the power of
God's free grace, and might understand that they are justified from
their sins by the same grace which made the man Christ Jesus free from
the possibility of sin? And so the angel, when he announced to Christ's
mother the coming birth, saluted her thus: "Hail, thou that art full of
grace;" [1151] and shortly afterwards, "Thou hast found grace with
God." [1152] Now she was said to be full of grace, and to have found
grace with God, because she was to be the mother of her Lord, nay, of
the Lord of all flesh. But, speaking of Christ Himself, the evangelist
John, after saying, "The Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us,"
adds, "and we beheld His glory, the glory as of the only-begotten of
the Father, full of grace and truth." [1153] When he says, "The Word
was made flesh," this is "full of grace;" when he says, "the glory of
the only-begotten of the Father," this is "full of truth." For the
Truth Himself, who was the only-begotten of the Father, not by grace,
but by nature, by grace took our humanity upon Him, and so united it
with His own person that He Himself became also the Son of man.
__________________________________________________________________
[1151] Luke i. 28 ("thou that are highly favored," A.V.).
[1152] Luke i. 30 ("Thou hast found favor with God," A.V.).
[1153] John i. 14
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 37.--The Same Grace is Further Clearly Manifested in This, that
the Birth of Christ According to the Flesh is of the Holy Ghost.
For the same Jesus Christ who is the only-begotten, that is, the only
Son of God, our Lord, was born of the Holy Ghost and of the Virgin
Mary. And we know that the Holy Spirit is the gift of God, the gift
being Himself indeed equal to the Giver. And therefore the Holy Spirit
also is God, not inferior to the Father and the Son. The fact,
therefore, that the nativity of Christ in His human nature was by the
Holy Spirit, is another clear manifestation of grace. For when the
Virgin asked the angel how this which he had announced should be,
seeing she knew not a man, the angel answered, "The Holy Ghost shall
come upon thee, and the power of the Highest shall overshadow thee:
therefore also that holy thing which shall be born of thee shall be
called the Son of God." [1154] And when Joseph was minded to put her
away, suspecting her of adultery, as he knew she was not with child by
himself, he was told by the angel, "Fear not to take unto thee Mary thy
wife; for that which is conceived in her is of the Holy Ghost:" [1155]
that is, what thou suspectest to be begotten of another man is of the
Holy Ghost.
__________________________________________________________________
[1154] Luke i. 35
[1155] Matt. i. 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 38.--Jesus Christ, According to the Flesh, Was Not Born of the
Holy Spirit in Such a Sense that the Holy Spirit is His Father.
Nevertheless, are we on this account to say that the Holy Ghost is the
father of the man Christ, and that as God the Father begat the Word, so
God the Holy Spirit begat the man, and that these two natures
constitute the one Christ; and that as the Word He is the Son of God
the Father, and as man the Son of God the Holy Spirit, because the Holy
Spirit as His father begat Him of the Virgin Mary? Who will dare to say
so? Nor is it necessary to show by reasoning how many other absurdities
flow from this supposition, when it is itself so absurd that no
believer's ears can bear to hear it. Hence, as we confess, "Our Lord
Jesus Christ, who of God is God, and as man was born of the Holy Ghost
and of the Virgin Mary, having both natures, the divine and the human,
is the only Son of God the Father Almighty, from whom proceedeth the
Holy Spirit." [1156] Now in what sense do we say that Christ was born
of the Holy Spirit, if the Holy Spirit did not beget Him? Is it that He
made Him, since our Lord Jesus Christ, though as God "all things were
made by Him," [1157] yet as man was Himself made; as the apostle says,
"who was made of the seed of David according to the flesh?" [1158] But
as that created thing which the Virgin conceived and brought forth
though it was united only to the person of the Son, was made by the
whole Trinity (for the works of the Trinity are not separable), why
should the Holy Spirit alone be mentioned as having made it? Or is it
that, when one of the Three is mentioned as the author of any work, the
whole Trinity is to be understood as working? That is true, and can be
proved by examples. But we need not dwell longer on this solution. For
the puzzle is, in what sense it is said, "born of the Holy Ghost," when
He is in no sense the Son of the Holy Ghost? For though God made this
world, it would not be right to say that it is the Son of God, or that
it was born of God; we would say that it was created, or made, or
framed, or ordered by Him, or whatever form of expression we can
properly use. Here, then, when we make confession that Christ was born
of the Holy Ghost and of the Virgin Mary, it is difficult to explain
how it is that He is not the Son of the Holy Ghost and is the Son of
the Virgin Mary, when He was born both of Him and of her. It is clear
beyond a doubt that He was not born of the Holy Spirit as His father,
in the same sense that He was born of the Virgin as His mother.
__________________________________________________________________
[1156] A quotation from a form of the Apostles' Creed anciently in use
in the Latin Church.
[1157] John i. 3
[1158] Rom. i. 3
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 39.--Not Everything that is Born of Another is to Be Called a
Son of that Other.
We need not therefore take for granted, that whatever is born of a
thing is forthwith to be declared the son of that thing. For, to pass
over the fact that a son is born of a man in a different sense from
that in which a hair or a louse is born of him, neither of these being
a son; to pass over this, I say, as too mean an illustration for a
subject of so much importance: it is certain that those who are born of
water and of the Holy Spirit cannot with propriety be called sons of
the water though they are called sons of God the Father, and of the
Church their mother. In the same way, then, He who was born of the Holy
Spirit is the Son of God the Father, not of the Holy Spirit. For what I
have said of the hair and the other things is sufficient to show us
that not everything which is born of another can be called the son of
that of which it is born, just as it does not follow that all who are
called a man's sons were born of him, for some sons are adopted. And
some men are called sons of hell, not as being born of hell, but as
prepared for it, as the sons of the kingdom are prepared for the
kingdom.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 40.--Christ's Birth Through the Holy Spirit Manifests to Us the
Grace of God.
And, therefore, as one thing may be born of another, and yet not in
such a way as to be its son, and as not every one who is called a son
was born of him whose son he is called, it is clear that this
arrangement by which Christ was born of the Holy Spirit, but not as His
son, and of the Virgin Mary as her son, is intended as a manifestation
of the grace of God. For it was by this grace that a man, without any
antecedent merit, was at the very commencement of His existence as man,
so united in one person with the Word of God, that the very person who
was Son of man was at the same time Son of God, and the very person who
was Son of God was at the same time Son of man; and in the adoption of
His human nature into the divine, the grace itself became in a way so
natural to the man, as to leave no room for the entrance of sin.
Wherefore this grace is signified by the Holy Spirit; for He, though in
His own nature God, may also be called the gift of God. And to explain
all this sufficiently, if indeed it could be done at all, would require
a very lengthened discussion.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 41.--Christ, Who Was Himself Free from Sin, Was Made Sin for
Us, that We Might Be Reconciled to God.
Begotten and conceived, then, without any indulgence of carnal lust,
and therefore bringing with Him no original sin, and by the grace of
God joined and united in a wonderful and unspeakable way in one person
with the Word, the Only-begotten of the Father, a son by nature, not by
grace, and therefore having no sin of His own; nevertheless, on account
of the likeness of sinful flesh in which He came, He was called sin,
that He might be sacrificed to wash away sin. For, under the Old
Covenant, sacrifices for sin were called sins. [1159] And He, of whom
all these sacrifices were types and shadows, was Himself truly made
sin. Hence the apostle, after saying, "We pray you in Christ's stead,
be ye reconciled to God," forthwith adds: "for He hath made Him to be
sin for us who knew no sin; that we might be made the righteousness of
God in Him." [1160] He does not say, as some incorrect copies read, "He
who knew no sin did sin for us," as if Christ had Himself sinned for
our sakes; but he says, "Him who knew no sin," that is, Christ, God, to
whom we are to be reconciled, "hath made to be sin for us," that is,
hath made Him a sacrifice for our sins, by which we might be reconciled
to God. He, then, being made sin, just as we are made righteousness
(our righteousness being not our own, but God's, not in ourselves, but
in Him); He being made sin, not His own, but ours, not in Himself, but
in us, showed, by the likeness of sinful flesh in which He was
crucified, that though sin was not in Him, yet that in a certain sense
He died to sin, by dying in the flesh which was the likeness of sin;
and that although He Himself had never lived the old life of sin, yet
by His resurrection He typified our new life springing up out of the
old death in sin.
__________________________________________________________________
[1159] Hos. iv. 8
[1160] 2 Cor. v. 20, 21
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 42.--The Sacrament of Baptism Indicates Our Death with Christ
to Sin, and Our Resurrection with Him to Newness of Life.
And this is the meaning of the great sacrament of baptism which is
solemnized among us, that all who attain to this grace should die to
sin, as He is said to have died to sin, because He died in the flesh,
which is the likeness of sin; and rising from the font regenerate, as
He arose alive from the grave, should begin a new life in the Spirit,
whatever may be the age of the body?
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 43.--Baptism and the Grace Which It Typifies are Open to All,
Both Infants and Adults.
For from the infant newly born to the old man bent with age, as there
is none shut out from baptism, so there is none who in baptism does not
die to sin. But infants die only to original sin; those who are older
die also to all the sins which their evil lives have added to the sin
which they brought with them.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 44.--In Speaking of Sin, the Singular Number is Often Put for
the Plural, and the Plural for the Singular.
But even these latter are frequently said to die to sin, though
undoubtedly they die not to one sin, but to all the numerous actual
sins they have committed in thought, word, or deed: for the singular
number is often put for the plural, as when the poet says, "They fill
its belly with the armed soldier," [1161] though in the case here
referred to there were many soldiers concerned. And we read in our own
Scriptures: "Pray to the Lord, that He take away the serpent from us."
[1162] He does not say serpents though the people were suffering from
many; and so in other cases. When, on the other hand, the original sin
is expressed in the plural number, as when we say that infants are
baptized for the remission of sins, instead of saying for the remission
of sin, this is the converse figure of speech, by which the plural
number is put in place of the singular; as in the Gospel it is said of
the death of Herod, "for they are dead which sought the young child's
life," [1163] instead of saying, "he is dead." And in Exodus: "They
have made them," Moses says, "gods of gold," [1164] though they had
made only one calf, of which they said: "These be thy gods, O Israel,
which brought thee up out of the land of Egypt," [1165] --here, too,
putting the plural in place of the singular.
__________________________________________________________________
[1161] "Uterumque armato milite complent.".--Virgil, AEn. ii. 20.
[1162] Num. xxi. 7 ("serpents," A. and R.V.).
[1163] Matt. ii. 20
[1164] Ex. xxxii. 31
[1165] Ex. xxxii. 4
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 45.--In Adam's First Sin, Many Kinds of Sin Were Involved.
However, even in that one sin, which "by one man entered into the
world, and so passed upon all men," [1166] and on account of which
infants are baptized, a number of distinct sins may be observed, if it
be analyzed as it were into its separate elements. For there is in it
pride, because man chose to be under his own dominion, rather than
under the dominion of God; and blasphemy, because he did not believe
God; and murder, for he brought death upon himself; and spiritual
fornication, for the purity of the human soul was corrupted by the
seducing blandishments of the serpent; and theft, for man turned to his
own use the food he had been forbidden to touch; and avarice, for he
had a craving for more than should have been sufficient for him; and
whatever other sin can be discovered on careful reflection to be
involved in this one admitted sin.
__________________________________________________________________
[1166] Rom. v. 12
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 46.--It is Probable that Children are Involved in the Guilt Not
Only of the First Pair, But of Their Own Immediate Parents.
And it is said, with much appearance of probability, that infants are
involved in the guilt of the sins not only of the first pair, but of
their own immediate parents. For that divine judgment, "I shall visit
the iniquities of the fathers upon the children," [1167] certainly
applies to them before they come under the new covenant by
regeneration. And it was this new covenant that was prophesied of, when
it was said by Ezekiel, that the sons should not bear the iniquity of
the fathers, and that it should no longer be a proverb in Israel, "The
fathers have eaten sour grapes, and the children's teeth are set on
edge." [1168] Here lies the necessity that each man should be born
again, that he might be freed from the sin in which he was born. For
the sins committed afterwards can be cured by penitence, as we see is
the case after baptism. And therefore the new birth would not have been
appointed only that the first birth was sinful, so sinful that even one
who was legitimately born in wedlock says: "I was shapen in iniquities,
and in sins did my mother conceive me." [1169] He did not say in
iniquity, or in sin, though he might have said so correctly; but he
preferred to say "iniquities" and "sins," because in that one sin which
passed upon all men, and which was so great that human nature was by it
made subject to inevitable death, many sins, as I showed above, may be
discriminated; and further, because there are other sins of the
immediate parents, which though they have not the same effect in
producing a change of nature, yet subject the children to guilt unless
the divine grace and mercy interpose to rescue them.
__________________________________________________________________
[1167] Ex. xx. 5; Deut. v. 9
[1168] Ezek. xviii. 2
[1169] Ps. li. 5 (The A.V. has the singular, "iniquity" and "sin").
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 47.--It is Difficult to Decide Whether the Sins of a Man's
Other Progenitors are Imputed to Him.
But about the sins of the other progenitors who intervene between Adam
and a man's own parents, a question may very well be raised. Whether
every one who is born is involved in all their accumulated evil acts,
in all their multiplied original guilt, so that the later he is born,
so much the worse is his condition; or whether God threatens to visit
the iniquity of the fathers upon the children unto the third and fourth
generations, because in His mercy He does not extend His wrath against
the sins of the progenitors further than that, lest those who do not
obtain the grace of regeneration might be crushed down under too heavy
a burden if they were compelled to bear as original guilt all the sins
of all their progenitors from the very beginning of the human race, and
to pay the penalty due to them; or whether any other solution of this
great question may or may not be found in Scripture by a more diligent
search and a more careful interpretation, I dare not rashly affirm.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 48.--The Guilt of the First Sin is So Great that It Can Be
Washed Away Only in the Blood of the Mediator, Jesus Christ.
Nevertheless, that one sin, admitted into a place where such perfect
happiness reigned, was of so heinous a character, that in one man the
whole human race was originally, and as one may say, radically,
condemned; and it cannot be pardoned and blotted out except through the
one Mediator between God and men, the man Christ Jesus, who only has
had power to be so born as not to need a second birth.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 49.--Christ Was Not Regenerated in the Baptism of John, But
Submitted to It to Give Us an Example of Humility, Just as He Submitted
to Death, Not as the Punishment of Sin, But to Take Away the Sin of the
World.
Now, those who were baptized in the baptism of John, by whom Christ was
Himself baptized, [1170] were not regenerated; but they were prepared
through the ministry of His forerunner, who cried, "Prepare ye the way
of the Lord," [1171] for Him in whom only they could be regenerated.
For His baptism is not with water only, as was that of John, but with
the Holy Ghost also; [1172] so that whoever believes in Christ is
regenerated by that Spirit, of whom Christ being generated, He did not
need regeneration. Whence that announcement of the Father which was
heard after His baptism, "This day have I begotten Thee," [1173]
referred not to that one day of time on which He was baptized, but to
the one day of an unchangeable eternity, so as to show that this man
was one in person with the Only-begotten. For when a day neither begins
with the close of yesterday, nor ends with the beginning of to-morrow,
it is an eternal to-day. Therefore He asked to be baptized in water by
John, not that any iniquity of His might be washed away, but that He
might manifest the depth of His humility. For baptism found in Him
nothing to wash away, as death found in Him nothing to punish; so that
it was in the strictest justice, and not by the mere violence of power,
that the devil was crushed and conquered: for, as he had most unjustly
put Christ to death, though there was no sin in Him to deserve death,
it was most just that through Christ he should lose his hold of those
who by sin were justly subject to the bondage in which he held them.
Both of these, then, that is, both baptism and death, were submitted to
by Him, not through a pitiable necessity, but of His own free pity for
us, and as part of an arrangement by which, as one man brought sin into
the world, that is, upon the whole human race, so one man was to take
away the sin of the world.
__________________________________________________________________
[1170] Matt. iii. 13-15
[1171] Matt. iii. 3
[1172] Matt. iii. 11
[1173] Ps. ii. 7; Heb. i. 5, v. 5. It is by a mistake that Augustin
quotes these words as pronounced at our Lord's baptism.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 50.--Christ Took Away Not Only the One Original Sin, But All
the Other Sins that Have Been Added to It.
With this difference: the first man brought one sin into the world, but
this man took away not only that one sin, but all that He found added
to it. Hence the apostle says: "And not as it was by one that sinned,
so is the gift: for the judgment was by one to condemnation, but the
free gift is of many offenses unto justification." [1174] For it is
evident that the one sin which we bring with us by nature would, even
if it stood alone, bring us under condemnation; but the free gift
justifies man from many offenses: for each man, in addition to the one
sin which, in common with all his kind, he brings with him by nature,
has committed many sins that are strictly his own.
__________________________________________________________________
[1174] Rom. v. 16
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 51.--All Men Born of Adam are Under Condemnation, and Only If
New Born in Christ are Freed from Condemnation.
But what he says a little after, "Therefore, as by the offense of one
judgment came upon all men to condemnation; even so by the
righteousness of one the free gift came upon all men unto justification
of life," [1175] shows clearly enough that there is no one born of Adam
but is subject to condemnation, and that no one, unless he be new born
in Christ, is freed from condemnation.
__________________________________________________________________
[1175] Rom. v. 18
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 52.--In Baptism, Which is the Similitude of the Death and
Resurrection of Christ, All, Both Infants and Adults, Die to Sin that
They May Walk in Newness of Life.
And after he has said as much about the condemnation through one man,
and the free gift through one man, as he deemed sufficient for that
part of his epistle, the apostle goes on to speak of the great mystery
of holy baptism in the cross of Christ, and to clearly explain to us
that baptism in Christ is nothing else than a similitude of the death
of Christ, and that the death of Christ on the cross is nothing but a
similitude of the pardon of sin: so that just as real as is His death,
so real is the remission of our sins; and just as real as is His
resurrection, so real is our justification. He says: "What shall we
say, then? Shall we continue in sin, that grace may abound?" [1176] For
he had said previously, "But where sin, abounded, grace did much more
abound." [1177] And therefore he proposes to himself the question,
whether it would be right to continue in sin for the sake of the
consequent abounding grace. But he answers, "God forbid;" and adds,
"How shall we, that are dead to sin, live any longer therein?" Then, to
show that we are dead to sin, "Know ye not," he says, "that so many of
us as were baptized into Jesus Christ, were baptized into His death?"
If, then, the fact that we were baptized into the death of Christ
proves that we are dead to sin, it follows that even infants who are
baptized into Christ die to sin, being baptized into His death. For
there is no exception made: "So many of us as were baptized into Jesus
Christ, were baptized into His death." And this is said to prove that
we are dead to sin. Now, to what sin do infants die in their
regeneration but that sin which they bring with them at birth? And
therefore to these also applies what follows: "Therefore we are buried
with Him by baptism into death; that, like as Christ was raised up from
the dead by the glory of the Father, even so we also should walk in
newness of life. For if we have been planted together in the likeness
of His death, we shall be also in the likeness of His resurrection:
knowing this, that our old man is crucified with Him, that the body of
sin might be destroyed, that henceforth we should not serve sin. For he
that is dead is freed from sin. Now if we be dead with Christ, we
believe that we shall also live with Him: knowing that Christ, being
raised from the dead, dieth no more; death hath no more dominion over
Him. For in that He died, He died unto sin once; but in that He liveth,
He liveth unto God. Likewise reckon ye also yourselves to be dead
indeed unto sin, but alive unto God through Jesus Christ our Lord." Now
he had commenced with proving that we must not continue in sin that
grace may abound, and had said: "How shall we that are dead to sin live
any longer therein?" And to show that we are dead to sin, he added:
"Know ye not, that so many of us as were baptized into Jesus Christ,
were baptized into His death?" And so he concludes this whole passage
just as he began it. For he has brought in the death of Christ in such
a way as to imply that Christ Himself also died to sin. To what sin did
He die if not to the flesh, in which there was not sin, but the
likeness of sin, and which was therefore called by the name of sin? To
those who are baptized into the death of Christ, then,--and this class
includes not adults only, but infants as well,--he says: "Likewise
reckon ye also yourselves to be dead indeed unto sin, but alive unto
God through Jesus Christ our Lord." [1178]
__________________________________________________________________
[1176] Rom. vi. 1
[1177] Rom. v. 20
[1178] Rom. vi. 1-11
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 53.--Christ's Cross and Burial, Resurrection, Ascension, and
Sitting Down at the Right Hand of God, are Images of the Christian
Life.
All the events, then, of Christ's crucifixion, of His burial, of His
resurrection the third day, of His ascension into heaven, of His
sitting down at the right hand of the Father, were so ordered, that the
life which the Christian leads here might be modelled upon them, not
merely in a mystical sense, but in reality. For in reference to His
crucifixion it is said: "They that are Christ's have crucified the
flesh, with the affections and lusts." [1179] And in reference to His
burial: "We are buried with Him by baptism into death." [1180] In
reference to His resurrection: "That, like as Christ was raised up from
the dead by the glory of the Father, even so we also should walk in
newness of life." [1181] And in reference to His ascension into heaven
and sitting down at the right hand of the Father: "If ye then be risen
with Christ, seek those things which are above, where Christ sitteth on
the right hand of God. Set your affection on things above, not on
things on the earth. For ye are dead, and your life is hid with Christ
in God." [1182]
__________________________________________________________________
[1179] Gal. v. 24
[1180] Rom. vi. 4
[1181] Rom. vi. 5
[1182] Col. iii. 1-3
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 54.--Christ's Second Coming Does Not Belong to the Past, But
Will Take Place at the End of the World.
But what we believe as to Christ's action in the future, when He shall
come from heaven to judge the quick and the dead, has no bearing upon
the life which we now lead here; for it forms no part of what He did
upon earth, but is part of what He shall do at the end of the world.
And it is to this that the apostle refers in what immediately follows
the passage quoted above: "When Christ, who is our life, shall appear,
then shall ye also appear with Him in glory." [1183]
__________________________________________________________________
[1183] Col. iii. 4
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 55.--The Expression, "Christ Shall Judge the Quick and the
Dead," May Be Understood in Either of Two Senses.
Now the expression, "to judge the quick and the dead," may be
interpreted in two ways: either we may understand by the "quick" those
who at His advent shall not yet have died, but whom He shall find alive
in the flesh, and by the "dead" those who have departed from the body,
or who shall have departed before His coming; or we may understand the
"quick" to mean the righteous, and the "dead" the unrighteous; for the
righteous shall be judged as well as others. Now the judgment of God is
sometimes taken in a bad sense, as, for example, "They that have done
evil unto the resurrection of judgment;" [1184] sometimes in a good
sense, as, "Save me, O God, by Thy name, and judge me by Thy strength."
[1185] This is easily understood when we consider that it is the
judgment of God which separates the good from the evil, and sets the
good at His right hand, that they may be delivered from evil, and not
destroyed with the wicked; and it is for this reason that the Psalmist
cried, "Judge me, O God," and then added, as if in explanation, "and
distinguish my cause from that of an ungodly nation." [1186]
__________________________________________________________________
[1184] John v. 29 (damnation, A.V.)
[1185] Ps. liv. 1
[1186] Ps. xliii. 1 ("Plead my cause against an ungodly nation," A.V.).
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 56.--The Holy Spirit and the Church. The Church is the Temple
of God.
And now, having spoken of Jesus Christ, the only Son of God, our Lord,
with the brevity suitable to a confession of our faith, we go on to say
that we believe also in the Holy Ghost,--thus completing the Trinity
which constitutes the Godhead. Then we mention the Holy Church. And
thus we are made to understand that the intelligent creation, which
constitutes the free Jerusalem, [1187] ought to be subordinate in the
order of speech to the Creator, the Supreme Trinity: for all that is
said of the man Christ Jesus has reference, of course, to the unity of
the person of the Only-begotten. Therefore the true order of the Creed
demanded that the Church should be made subordinate to the Trinity, as
the house to Him who dwells in it, the temple to God who occupies it,
and the city to its builder. And we are here to understand the whole
Church, not that part of it only which wanders as a stranger on the
earth, praising the name of God from the rising of the sun to the going
down of the same, and singing a new song of deliverance from its old
captivity; but that part also which has always from its creation
remained steadfast to God in heaven, and has never experienced the
misery consequent upon a fall. This part is made up of the holy angels,
who enjoy uninterrupted happiness; and (as it is bound to do) it
renders assistance to the part which is still wandering among
strangers: for these two parts shall be one in the fellowship of
eternity, and now they are one in the bonds of love, the whole having
been ordained for the worship of the one God. Wherefore, neither the
whole Church, nor any part of it, has any desire to be worshipped
instead of God, nor to be God to any one who belongs to the temple of
God--that temple which is built up of the saints who were created by
the uncreated God. And therefore the Holy Spirit, if a creature, could
not be the Creator, but would be a part of the intelligent creation. He
would simply be the highest creature, and therefore would not be
mentioned in the Creed before the Church; for He Himself would belong
to the Church, to that part of it which is in the heavens. And He would
not have a temple, for He Himself would be part of a temple. Now He has
a temple, of which the apostle says: "Know ye not that your body is the
temple of the Holy Ghost, which is in you, which ye have of God?"
[1188] Of which body he says in another place: "Know ye not that your
bodies are the members of Christ?" [1189] How, then, is He not God,
seeing that He has a temple? and how can He be less than Christ, whose
members are His temple? Nor has He one temple, and God another, seeing
that the same apostle says: "Know ye not that ye are the temple of
God?" [1190] and adds, as proof of this, "and that the Spirit of God
dwelleth in you." [1191] God, then, dwells in His temple: not the Holy
Spirit only, but the Father also, and the Son, who says of His own
body, through which He was made Head of the Church upon earth ("that in
all things He might have the pre-eminence):" [1192] "Destroy this
temple, and in three days I will raise it up." [1193] The temple of
God, then, that is, of the Supreme Trinity as a whole, is the Holy
Church, embracing in its full extent both heaven and earth.
__________________________________________________________________
[1187] Gal. iv. 26
[1188] 1 Cor. vi. 19
[1189] 1 Cor. vi. 15
[1190] 1 Cor. iii. 16
[1191] 1 Cor. iii. 16
[1192] Col. i. 18
[1193] John ii. 19
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 57.--The Condition of the Church in Heaven.
But of that part of the Church which is in heaven what can we say,
except that no wicked one is found in it, and that no one has fallen
from it, or shall ever fall from it, since the time that "God spared
not the angels that sinned," as the Apostle Peter writes, "but cast
them down to hell, and delivered them into chains of darkness, to be
reserved unto judgment?" [1194]
__________________________________________________________________
[1194] 2 Pet. ii. 4
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 58.--We Have No Certain Knowledge of the Organization of the
Angelic Society.
Now, what the organization is of that supremely happy society in
heaven: what the differences of rank are, which explain the fact that
while all are called by the general name angels, as we read in the
Epistle to the Hebrews, "but to which of the angels said God at any
time, Sit on my right hand?" [1195] (this form of expression being
evidently designed to embrace all the angels without exception), we yet
find that there are some called archangels; and whether the archangels
are the same as those called hosts, so that the expression, "Praise ye
Him, all His angels: praise ye Him, all His hosts," [1196] is the same
as if it had been said, "Praise ye Him, all His angels: praise ye Him,
all His archangels;" and what are the various significations of those
four names under which the apostle seems to embrace the whole heavenly
company without exception, "whether they be thrones, or dominions, or
principalities, or powers:" [1197] --let those who are able answer
these questions, if they can also prove their answers to be true; but
as for me, I confess my ignorance. I am not even certain upon this
point: whether the sun, and the moon, and all the stars, do not form
part of this same society, though many consider them merely luminous
bodies, without either sensation or intelligence.
__________________________________________________________________
[1195] Heb. i. 13
[1196] Ps. cxlviii. 2, ["host," R.V.].
[1197] Col. i. 16
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 59.--The Bodies Assumed by Angels Raise a Very Difficult, and
Not Very Useful, Subject of Discussion.
Further, who will tell with what sort of bodies it was that the angels
appeared to men, making themselves not only visible, but tangible; and
again, how it is that, not through material bodies, but by spiritual
power, they present visions not to the bodily eyes, but to the
spiritual eyes of the mind, or speak something not into the ear from
without, but from within the soul of the man, they themselves being
stationed there too, as it is written in the prophet, "And the angel
that spake in me said unto me" [1198] (he does not say, "that spake to
me," but "that spake in me"); or appear to men in sleep, and make
communications through dreams, as we read in the Gospel, "Behold, the
angel of the Lord appeared unto him in a dream, saying"? [1199] For
these methods of communication seem to imply that the angels have not
tangible bodies, and make it a very difficult question to solve how the
patriarchs washed their feet, [1200] and how it was that Jacob wrestled
with the angel in a way so unmistakeably material. [1201] To ask
questions like these, and to make such guesses as we can at the
answers, is a useful exercise for the intellect, if the discussion be
kept within proper bounds, and if we avoid the error of supposing
ourselves to know what we do not know. For what is the necessity for
affirming, or denying, or defining with accuracy on these subjects, and
others like them, when we may without blame be entirely ignorant of
them?
__________________________________________________________________
[1198] Zech. i. 9 ("The angel that talked with me," A.V.).
[1199] Matt. i. 20
[1200] Gen. xviii. 4, xix. 2
[1201] Gen. xxxii. 24, 25
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 60.--It is More Necessary to Be Able to Detect the Wiles of
Satan When He Transforms Himself into an Angel of Light.
It is more necessary to use all our powers of discrimination and
judgment when Satan transforms himself into an angel of light, [1202]
lest by his wiles he should lead us astray into hurtful courses. For,
while he only deceives the bodily senses, and does not pervert the mind
from that true and sound judgment which enables a man to lead a life of
faith, there is no danger to religion; or if, feigning himself to be
good, he does or says the things that befit good angels, and we believe
him to be good, the error is not one that is hurtful or dangerous to
Christian faith. But when, through these means, which are alien to his
nature, he goes on to lead us into courses of his own, then great
watchfulness is necessary to detect, and refuse to follow, him. But how
many men are fit to evade all his deadly wiles, unless God restrains
and watches over them? The very difficulty of the matter, however, is
useful in this respect, that it prevents men from trusting in
themselves or in one another, and leads all to place their confidence
in God alone. And certainly no pious man can doubt that this is most
expedient for us.
__________________________________________________________________
[1202] 2 Cor. xi. 14
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 61.--The Church on Earth Has Been Redeemed from Sin by the
Blood of a Mediator.
This part of the Church, then, which is made up of the holy angels and
the hosts of God, shall become known to us in its true nature, when, at
the end of the world, we shall be united with it in the common
possession of everlasting happiness. But the other part, which,
separated from it, wanders as a stranger on the earth, is better known
to us, both because we belong to it, and because it is composed of men,
and we too are men. This section of the Church has been redeemed from
all sin by the blood of a Mediator who had no sin, and its song is: "If
God be for us, who can be against us? He that spared not His own Son,
but delivered Him up for us all." [1203] Now it was not for the angels
that Christ died. Yet what was done for the redemption of man through
His death was in a sense done for the angels, because the enmity which
sin had put between men and the holy angels is removed, and friendship
is restored between them, and by the redemption of man the gaps which
the great apostasy left in the angelic host are filled up.
__________________________________________________________________
[1203] Rom. viii. 31
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 62.--By the Sacrifice of Christ All Things are Restored, and
Peace is Made Between Earth and Heaven.
And, of course, the holy angels, taught by God, in the eternal
contemplation of whose truth their happiness consists, know how great a
number of the human race are to supplement their ranks, and fill up the
full tale of their citizenship. Wherefore the apostle says, that "all
things are gathered together in one in Christ, both which are in heaven
and which are on earth." [1204] The things which are in heaven are
gathered together when what was lost therefrom in the fall of the
angels is restored from among men; and the things which are on earth
are gathered together, when those who are predestined to eternal life
are redeemed from their old corruption. And thus, through that single
sacrifice in which the Mediator was offered up, the one sacrifice of
which the many victims under the law were types, heavenly things are
brought into peace with earthly things, and earthly things with
heavenly. Wherefore, as the same apostle says: "For it pleased the
Father that in Him should all fullness dwell: and, having made peace
through the blood of His cross, by Him to reconcile all things to
Himself: by Him, I say, whether they be things in earth, or things in
heaven." [1205]
__________________________________________________________________
[1204] Eph. i. 10
[1205] Col. i. 19, 20. [ R.V. "summed up."].
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 63.--The Peace of God, Which Reigneth in Heaven, Passeth All
Understanding.
This peace, as Scripture saith, "passeth all understanding," [1206] and
cannot be known by us until we have come into the full possession of
it. For in what sense are heavenly things reconciled, except they be
reconciled to us, viz. by coming into harmony with us? For in heaven
there is unbroken peace, both between all the intelligent creatures
that exist there, and between these and their Creator. And this peace,
as is said, passeth all understanding; but this, of course, means our
understanding, not that of those who always behold the face of their
Father. We now, however great may be our human understanding, know but
in part, and see through a glass darkly. [1207] But when we shall be
equal unto the angels of God [1208] then we shall see face to face, as
they do; and we shall have as great peace towards them as they have
towards us, because we shall love them as much as we are loved by them.
And so their peace shall be known to us: for our own peace shall be
like to theirs, and as great as theirs, nor shall it then pass our
understanding. But the peace of God, the peace which He cherisheth
towards us, shall undoubtedly pass not our understanding only, but
theirs as well. And this must be so: for every rational creature which
is happy derives its happiness from Him; He does not derive His from
it. And in this view it is better to interpret "all" in the passage,
"The peace of God passeth all understanding," as admitting of no
exception even in favor of the understanding of the holy angels: the
only exception that can be made is that of God Himself. For, of course,
His peace does not pass His own understanding.
__________________________________________________________________
[1206] Phil. iv. 7
[1207] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[1208] Luke xx. 36
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 64.--Pardon of Sin Extends Over the Whole Mortal Life of the
Saints, Which, Though Free from Crime, is Not Free from Sin.
But the angels even now are at peace with us when our sins are
pardoned. Hence, in the order of the Creed, after the mention of the
Holy Church is placed the remission of sins. For it is by this that the
Church on earth stands: it is through this that what had been lost, and
was found, is saved from being lost again. For, setting aside the grace
of baptism, which is given as an antidote to original sin, so that what
our birth imposes upon us, our new birth relieves us from (this grace,
however, takes away all the actual sins also that have been committed
in thought, word, and deed): setting aside, then, this great act of
favor, whence commences man's restoration, and in which all our guilt,
both original and actual, is washed away, the rest of our life from the
time that we have the use of reason provides constant occasion for the
remission of sins, however great may be our advance in righteousness.
For the sons of God, as long as they live in this body of death, are in
conflict with death. And although it is truly said of them, "As many as
are led by the Spirit of God, they are the sons of God," [1209] yet
they are led by the Spirit of God, and as the sons of God advance
towards God under this drawback, that they are led also by their own
spirit, weighted as it is by the corruptible body; [1210] and that, as
the sons of men, under the influence of human affections, they fall
back to their old level, and so sin. There is a difference, however.
For although every crime is a sin, every sin is not a crime. And so we
say that the life of holy men, as long as they remain in this mortal
body, may be found without crime; but, as the Apostle John says, "If we
say that we have no sin, we deceive ourselves, and the truth is not in
us." [1211]
__________________________________________________________________
[1209] Rom. viii. 14
[1210] Wisd. ix. 15
[1211] 1 John i. 8
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 65.--God Pardons Sins, But on Condition of Penitence, Certain
Times for Which Have Been Fixed by the Law of the Church.
But even crimes themselves, however great, may be remitted in the Holy
Church; and the mercy of God is never to be despaired of by men who
truly repent, each according to the measure of his sin. And in the act
of repentance, where a crime has been committed of such a nature as to
cut off the sinner from the body of Christ, we are not to take account
so much of the measure of time as of the measure of sorrow; for a
broken and a contrite heart God doth not despise. [1212] But as the
grief of one heart is frequently hid from another, and is not made
known to others by words or other signs, when it is manifest to Him of
whom it is said, "My groaning is not hid from Thee," [1213] those who
govern the Church have rightly appointed times of penitence, that the
Church in which the sins are remitted may be satisfied; and outside the
Church sins are not remitted. For the Church alone has received the
pledge of the Holy Spirit, without which there is no remission of
sins--such, at least, as brings the pardoned to eternal life.
__________________________________________________________________
[1212] Ps. li. 17
[1213] Ps. xxxviii. 9
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 66.--The Pardon of Sin Has Reference Chiefly to the Future
Judgment.
Now the pardon of sin has reference chiefly to the future judgment.
For, as far as this life is concerned, the saying of Scripture holds
good: "A heavy yoke is upon the sons of Adam, from the day that they go
out of their mother's womb, till the day that they return to the mother
of all things." [1214] So that we see even infants, after baptism and
regeneration, suffering from the infliction of divers evils: and thus
we are given to understand, that all that is set forth in the
sacraments of salvation refers rather to the hope of future good, than
to the retaining or attaining of present blessings. For many sins seem
in this world to be overlooked and visited with no punishment, whose
punishment is reserved for the future (for it is not in vain that the
day when Christ shall come as Judge of quick and dead is peculiarly
named the day of judgment); just as, on the other hand, many sins are
punished in this life, which nevertheless are pardoned, and shall bring
down no punishment in the future life. Accordingly, in reference to
certain temporal punishments, which in this life are visited upon
sinners, the apostle, addressing those whose sins are blotted out, and
not reserved for the final judgment, says: "For if we would judge
ourselves, we should not be judged. But when we are judged, we are
chastened of the Lord, that we should not be condemned with the world."
[1215]
__________________________________________________________________
[1214] Ecclus. xl. 1
[1215] 1 Cor. xi. 31, 32
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 67.--Faith Without Works is Dead, and Cannot Save a Man.
It is believed, moreover, by some, that men who do not abandon the name
of Christ, and who have been baptized in the Church by His baptism, and
who have never been cut off from the Church by any schism or heresy,
though they should live in the grossest sin and never either wash it
away in penitence nor redeem it by almsgiving, but persevere in it
persistently to the last day of their lives, shall be saved by fire;
that is, that although they shall suffer a punishment by fire, lasting
for a time proportionate to the magnitude of their crimes and misdeeds,
they shall not be punished with everlasting fire. But those who believe
this, and yet are Catholics, seem to me to be led astray by a kind of
benevolent feeling natural to humanity. For Holy Scripture, when
consulted, gives a very different answer. I have written a book on this
subject, entitled Of Faith and Works, in which, to the best of my
ability, God assisting me, I have shown from Scripture, that the faith
which saves us is that which the Apostle Paul clearly enough describes
when he says: "For in Jesus Christ neither circumcision availeth
anything, nor uncircumcision, but faith which worketh by love." [1216]
But if it worketh evil, and not good, then without doubt, as the
Apostle James says, "it is dead, being alone." [1217] The same apostle
says again, "What doth it profit, my brethren, though a man say he hath
faith, and have not works? Can faith save him?" [1218] And further, if
a wicked man shall be saved by fire on account of his faith alone, and
if this is what the blessed Apostle Paul means when he says, "But he
himself shall be saved, yet so as by fire;" [1219] then faith without
works can save a man, and what his fellow-apostle James says must be
false. And that must be false which Paul himself says in another place:
"Be not deceived: neither fornicators, nor idolaters, nor adulterers,
nor effeminate, nor abusers of themselves with mankind, nor thieves,
nor covetous, nor drunkards, nor revilers, nor extortioners; shall
inherit the kingdom of God." [1220] For if those who persevere in these
wicked courses shall nevertheless be saved on account of their faith in
Christ, how can it be true that they shall not inherit the kingdom of
God?
__________________________________________________________________
[1216] Gal. v. 6
[1217] Jas. ii. 17. [See R.V.]
[1218] Jas. ii. 14
[1219] 1 Cor. iii. 15
[1220] 1 Cor. vi. 9, 10
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 68.--The True Sense of the Passage (I Cor. III. 11-15) About
Those Who are Saved, Yet So as by Fire.
But as these most plain and unmistakeable declarations of the apostles
cannot be false, that obscure saying about those who build upon the
foundation, Christ, not gold, silver, and precious stones, but wood,
hay, and stubble (for it is these who, it is said, shall be saved, yet
so as by fire, the merit of the foundation saving them [1221] ), must
be so interpreted as not to conflict with the plain statements quoted
above. Now wood, hay, and stubble may, without incongruity, be
understood to signify such an attachment to worldly things, however
lawful these may be in themselves, that they cannot be lost without
grief of mind. And though this grief burns, yet if Christ hold the
place of foundation in the heart,--that is, if nothing be preferred to
Him, and if the man, though burning with grief, is yet more willing to
lose the things he loves so much than to lose Christ,--he is saved by
fire. If, however, in time of temptation, he prefer to hold by temporal
and earthly things rather than by Christ, he has not Christ as his
foundation; for he puts earthly things in the first place, and in a
building nothing comes before the foundation. Again, the fire of which
the apostle speaks in this place must be such a fire as both men are
made to pass through, that is, both the man who builds upon the
foundation, gold, silver, precious stones, and the man who builds wood,
hay, stubble. For he immediately adds: "The fire shall try every man's
work, of what sort it is. If any man's work abide which he hath built
thereupon, he shall receive a reward. If any man's work shall be
burned, he shall suffer loss; but he himself shall be saved, yet so as
by fire." [1222] The fire then shall prove, not the work of one of them
only, but of both. Now the trial of adversity is a kind of fire which
is plainly spoken of in another place: "The furnace proveth the
potter's vessels: and the furnace of adversity just men." [1223] And
this fire does in the course of this life act exactly in the way the
apostle says. If it come into contact with two believers, one "caring
for the things that belong to the Lord, how he may please the Lord,"
[1224] that is, building upon Christ the foundation, gold, silver,
precious stones; the other "caring for the things that are of the
world, how he may please his wife," [1225] that is, building upon the
same foundation wood, hay, stubble,--the work of the former is not
burned, because he has not given his love to things whose loss can
cause him grief; but the work of the latter is burned, because things
that are enjoyed with desire cannot be lost without pain. But since, by
our supposition, even the latter prefers to lose these things rather
than to lose Christ, and since he does not desert Christ out of fear of
losing them, though he is grieved when he does lose them, he is saved,
but it is so as by fire; because the grief for what he loved and has
lost burns him. But it does not subvert nor consume him; for he is
protected by his immoveable and incorruptible foundation.
__________________________________________________________________
[1221] 1 Cor. iii. 11-15. [The "fire" in ver. 15 is not the purgatorial
fire in the state between death and resurrection, but, as in ver. 14,
the fire of the day of judgment.--P.S.]
[1222] 1 Cor. iii. 13-15
[1223] Ecclus. xxvii. 5, ii. 5
[1224] 1 Cor. vii. 32
[1225] 1 Cor. vii. 33. [See R.V.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 69.--It is Not Impossible that Some Believers May Pass Through
a Purgatorial Fire in the Future Life.
And it is not impossible that something of the same kind may take place
even after this life. It is a matter that may be inquired into, and
either ascertained or left doubtful, whether some believers shall pass
through a kind of purgatorial fire, and in proportion as they have
loved with more or less devotion the goods that perish, be less or more
quickly delivered from it. This cannot, however, be the case of any of
those of whom it is said, that they "shall not inherit the kingdom of
God," [1226] unless after suitable repentance their sins be forgiven
them. When I say "suitable," I mean that they are not to be unfruitful
in almsgiving; for Holy Scripture lays so much stress on this virtue,
that our Lord tells us beforehand, that He will ascribe no merit to
those on His right hand but that they abound in it, and no defect to
those on His left hand but their want of it, when He shall say to the
former, "Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom," and to
the latter, "Depart from me, ye cursed, into everlasting fire." [1227]
__________________________________________________________________
[1226] 1 Cor. vi. 10
[1227] Matt. xxv. 31-46
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 70.--Almsgiving Will Not Atone for Sin Unless the Life Be
Changed.
We must beware, however, lest any one should suppose that gross sins,
such as are committed by those who shall not inherit the kingdom of
God, may be daily perpetrated, and daily atoned for by almsgiving. The
life must be changed for the better; and almsgiving must be used to
propitiate God for past sins, not to purchase impunity for the
commission of such sins in the future. For He has given no man license
to sin, [1228] although in His mercy He may blot out sins that are
already committed, if we do not neglect to make proper satisfaction.
__________________________________________________________________
[1228] Ecclus. xv. 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 71.--The Daily Prayer of the Believer Makes Satisfaction for
the Trivial Sins that Daily Stain His Life.
Now the daily prayer of the believer makes satisfaction for those daily
sins of a momentary and trivial kind which are necessary incidents of
this life. For he can say, "Our Father which art in heaven," [1229]
seeing that to such a Father he is now born again of water and of the
Spirit. [1230] And this prayer certainly takes away the very small sins
of daily life. It takes away also those which at one time made the life
of the believer very wicked, but which, now that he is changed for the
better by repentance, he has given up, provided that as truly as he
says, "Forgive us our debts" (for there is no want of debts to be
forgiven), so truly does he say, "as we forgive our debtors;" [1231]
that is, provided he does what he says he does: for to forgive a man
who asks for pardon, is really to give alms.
__________________________________________________________________
[1229] Matt. vi. 9
[1230] John iii. 5
[1231] Matt. vi. 12
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 72.--There are Many Kinds of Alms, the Giving of Which Assists
to Procure Pardon for Our Sins.
And on this principle of interpretation, our Lord's saying, "Give alms
of such things as ye have, and, behold, all things are clean unto you,"
[1232] applies to every useful act that a man does in mercy. Not only,
then, the man who gives food to the hungry, drink to the thirsty,
clothing to the naked, hospitality to the stranger, shelter to the
fugitive, who visits the sick and the imprisoned, ransoms the captive,
assists the weak, leads the blind, comforts the sorrowful, heals the
sick, puts the wanderer on the right path, gives advice to the
perplexed, and supplies the wants of the needy,--not this man only, but
the man who pardons the sinner also gives alms; and the man who
corrects with blows, or restrains by any kind of discipline one over
whom he has power, and who at the same time forgives from the heart the
sin by which he was injured, or prays that it may be forgiven, is also
a giver of alms, not only in that he forgives, or prays for forgiveness
for the sin, but also in that he rebukes and corrects the sinner: for
in this, too, he shows mercy. Now much good is bestowed upon unwilling
recipients, when their advantage and not their pleasure is consulted;
and they themselves frequently prove to be their own enemies, while
their true friends are those whom they take for their enemies, and to
whom in their blindness they return evil for good. (A Christian,
indeed, is not permitted to return evil even for evil. [1233] ) And
thus there are many kinds of alms, by giving of which we assist to
procure the pardon of our sins.
__________________________________________________________________
[1232] Luke xi. 41
[1233] Rom. xii. 17; Matt. v. 44
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 73.--The Greatest of All Alms is to Forgive Our Debtors and to
Love Our Enemies.
But none of those is greater than to forgive from the heart a sin that
has been committed against us. For it is a comparatively small thing to
wish well to, or even to do good to, a man who has done no evil to you.
It is a much higher thing, and is the result of the most exalted
goodness, to love your enemy, and always to wish well to, and when you
have the opportunity, to do good to, the man who wishes you ill, and,
when he can, does you harm. This is to obey the command of God: "Love
your enemies, do good to them that hate you, and pray for them which
persecute you." [1234] But seeing that this is a frame of mind only
reached by the perfect sons of God, and that though every believer
ought to strive after it, and by prayer to God and earnest struggling
with himself endeavor to bring his soul up to this standard, yet a
degree of goodness so high can hardly belong to so great a multitude as
we believe are heard when they use this petition, "Forgive us our
debts, as we forgive our debtors;" in view of all this, it cannot be
doubted that the implied undertaking is fulfilled if a man, though he
has not yet attained to loving his enemy, yet, when asked by one who
has sinned against him to forgive him his sin, does forgive him from
his heart. For he certainly desires to be himself forgiven when he
prays, "as we forgive our debtors," that is, Forgive us our debts when
we beg forgiveness, as we forgive our debtors when they beg forgiveness
from us.
__________________________________________________________________
[1234] Matt. v. 44
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 74.--God Does Not Pardon the Sins of Those Who Do Not from the
Heart Forgive Others.
Now, he who asks forgiveness of the man against whom he has sinned,
being moved by his sin to ask forgiveness, cannot be counted an enemy
in such a sense that it should be as difficult to love him now as it
was when he was engaged in active hostility. And the man who does not
from his heart forgive him who repents of his sin, and asks
forgiveness, need not suppose that his own sins are forgiven of God.
For the Truth cannot lie. And what reader or hearer of the Gospel can
have failed to notice, that the same person who said, "I am the Truth,"
[1235] taught us also this form of prayer; and in order to impress this
particular petition deeply upon our minds, said, "For if ye forgive men
their trespasses, your heavenly Father will also forgive you; but if ye
forgive not men their trespasses, neither will your Father forgive your
trespasses"? [1236] The man whom the thunder of this warning does not
awaken is not asleep, but dead; and yet so powerful is that voice, that
it can awaken even the dead.
__________________________________________________________________
[1235] John xiv. 6
[1236] Matt. vi. 14, 15
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 75.--The Wicked and the Unbelieving are Not Made Clean by the
Giving of Alms, Except They Be Born Again.
Assuredly, then, those who live in gross wickedness, and take no care
to reform their lives and manners, and yet amid all their crimes and
vices do not cease to give frequent alms, in vain take comfort to
themselves from the saying of our Lord: "Give alms of such things as ye
have; and, behold, all things are clean unto you." [1237] For they do
not understand how far this saying reaches. But that they may
understand this, let them hear what He says. For we read in the Gospel
as follows: "And as He spake, a certain Pharisee besought Him to dine
with him; and He went in, and sat down to meat. And when the Pharisee
saw it, he marvelled that He had not first washed before dinner. And
the Lord said unto him, Now do ye Pharisees make clean the outside of
the cup and the platter; but your inward part is full of ravening and
wickedness. Ye fools, did not he that made that which is without, make
that which is within also? But rather give alms of such things as ye
have; and, behold, all things are clean unto you." [1238] Are we to
understand this as meaning that to the Pharisees who have not the faith
of Christ all things are clean, if only they give alms in the way these
men count almsgiving, even though they have never believed in Christ,
nor been born again of water and of the Spirit? But the fact is, that
all are unclean who are not made clean by the faith of Christ,
according to the expression, "purifying their hearts by faith;" [1239]
and that the apostle says, "Unto them that are defiled and unbelieving
is nothing pure; but even their mind and conscience is defiled." [1240]
How, then, could all things be clean to the Pharisees, even though they
gave alms, if they were not believers? And how could they be believers
if they were not willing to have faith in Christ, and to be born again
of His grace? And yet what they heard is true: "Give alms of such
things as ye have; and, behold, all things are clean unto you."
__________________________________________________________________
[1237] Luke xi. 41
[1238] Luke xi. 37-41. [See R.V.]
[1239] Acts xv. 9
[1240] Tit. i. 15
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 76.--To Give Alms Aright, We Should Begin with Ourselves, and
Have Pity Upon Our Own Souls.
For the man who wishes to give aims as he ought, should begin with
himself, and give to himself first. For almsgiving is a work of mercy;
and most truly is it said, "To have mercy on thy soul is pleasing to
God." [1241] And for this end are we born again, that we should be
pleasing to God, who is justly displeased with that which we brought
with us when we were born. This is our first alms, which we give to
ourselves when, through the mercy of a pitying God, we find that we are
ourselves wretched, and confess the justice of His judgment by which we
are made wretched, of which the apostle says, "The judgment was by one
to condemnation;" [1242] and praise the greatness of His love, of which
the same preacher of grace says, "God commendeth His love toward us, in
that, while we were yet sinners, Christ died for us:" [1243] and thus
judging truly of our own misery, and loving God with the love which He
has Himself bestowed, we lead a holy and virtuous life. But the
Pharisees, while they gave as alms the tithe of all their fruits, even
the most insignificant, passed over judgment and the love of God, and
so did not commence their alms-giving at home, and extend their pity to
themselves in the first instance. And it is in reference to this order
of love that it is said, "Love thy neighbor as thyself." [1244] When,
then, our Lord had rebuked them because they made themselves clean on
the outside, but within were full of ravening and wickedness, He
advised them, in the exercise of that charity which each man owes to
himself in the first instance, to make clean the inward parts. "But
rather," He says, "give alms of such things as ye have; and, behold,
all things are clean unto you." [1245] Then, to show what it was that
He advised, and what they took no pains to do, and to show that He did
not overlook or forget their almsgiving, "But woe unto you, Pharisees!"
[1246] He says; as if He meant to say: I indeed advise you to give alms
which shall make all things clean unto you; "but woe unto you! for ye
tithe mint, and rue, and all manner of herbs;" as if He meant to say: I
know these alms of yours, and ye need not think that I am now
admonishing you in respect of such things; "and pass over judgment and
the love of God," an alms by which ye might have been made clean from
all inward impurity, so that even the bodies which ye are now washing
would have been clean to you. For this is the import of "all things,"
both inward and outward things, as we read in another place: "Cleanse
first that which is within, that the outside may be clean also." [1247]
But lest He might appear to despise the alms which they were giving out
of the fruits of the earth, He says: "These ought ye to have done,"
referring to judgment and the love of God, "and not to leave the other
undone," referring to the giving of the tithes.
__________________________________________________________________
[1241] Ecclus. xxx. 24
[1242] Rom. v. 16
[1243] Rom. v. 8
[1244] Luke x. 27
[1245] Luke xi. 42
[1246] Luke xi. 42
[1247] Matt. xxiii. 26
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 77.--If We Would Give Alms to Ourselves, We Must Flee Iniquity;
For He Who Loveth Iniquity Hateth His Soul.
Those, then, who think that they can by giving alms, however profuse,
whether in money or in kind, purchase for themselves the privilege of
persisting with impunity in their monstrous crimes and hideous vices,
need not thus deceive themselves. For not only do they commit these
sins, but they love them so much that they would like to go on forever
committing them, if only they could do so with impunity. Now, he who
loveth iniquity hateth his own soul; [1248] and he who hateth his own
soul is not merciful but cruel towards it. For in loving it according
to the world, he hateth it according to God. But if he desired to give
alms to it which should make all things clean unto him, he would hate
it according to the world, and love it according to God. Now no one
gives alms unless he receive what he gives from one who is not in want
of it. Therefore it is said, "His mercy shall meet me." [1249]
__________________________________________________________________
[1248] Ps. xi. 5. ("Him that loveth violence, His (God's) soul hateth."
A.V.)
[1249] Ps. lix. 10
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 78.--What Sins are Trivial and What Heinous is a Matter for
God's Judgment.
Now, what sins are trivial and what heinous is not a matter to be
decided by man's judgment, but by the judgment of God. For it is plain
that the apostles themselves have given an indulgence in the case of
certain sins: take, for example, what the Apostle Paul says to those
who are married: "Defraud ye not one the other, except it be with
consent for a time, that ye may give yourselves to fasting and prayer:
and come together again, that Satan tempt you not for your
incontinency." [1250] Now it is possible that it might not have been
considered a sin to have intercourse with a spouse, not with a view to
the procreation of children, which is the great blessing of marriage,
but for the sake of carnal pleasure, and to save the incontinent from
being led by their weakness into the deadly sin of fornication, or
adultery, or another form of uncleanness which it is shameful even to
name, and into which it is possible that they might be drawn by lust
under the temptation of Satan. It is possible, I say, that this might
not have been considered a sin, had the apostle not added: "But I speak
this by permission, and not of commandment." [1251] Who, then, can deny
that it is a sin, when confessedly it is only by apostolic authority
that permission is granted to those who do it? Another case of the same
kind is where he says: "Dare any of you, having a matter against
another, go to law before the unjust, and not before the saints?"
[1252] And shortly afterwards: "If then ye have judgments of things
pertaining to this life, set them to judge who are least esteemed in
the Church. I speak to your shame. Is it so, that there is not a wise
man among you? no, not one that shall be able to judge between his
brethren? But brother goeth to law with brother, and that before the
unbelievers." [1253] Now it might have been supposed in this case that
it is not a sin to have a quarrel with another, that the only sin is in
wishing to have it adjudicated upon outside the Church, had not the
apostle immediately added: "Now therefore there is utterly a fault
among you, because ye go to law with one another." [1254] And lest any
one should excuse himself by saying that he had a just cause, and was
suffering wrong, and that he only wished the sentence of the judges to
remove his wrong, the apostle immediately anticipates such thoughts and
excuses, and says: "Why do ye not rather take wrong? Why do ye not
rather suffer yourselves to be defrauded?" Thus bringing us back to our
Lord's saying, "If any man will sue thee at the law, and take away thy
coat, let him have thy cloak also;" [1255] and again, "Of him that
taketh away thy goods, ask them not again." [1256] Therefore our Lord
has forbidden His followers to go to law with other men about worldly
affairs. And carrying out this principle, the apostle here declares
that to do so is "altogether a fault." But when, notwithstanding, he
grants his permission to have such cases between brethren decided in
the Church, other brethren adjudicating, and only sternly forbids them
to be carried outside the Church, it is manifest that here again an
indulgence is extended to the infirmities of the weak. It is in view,
then, of these sins, and others of the same sort, and of others again
more trifling still, which consist of offenses in words and thought (as
the Apostle James confesses, "In many things we offend all" [1257] ),
that we need to pray every day and often to the Lord, saying, "Forgive
us our debts," and to add in truth and sincerity, "as we forgive our
debtors."
__________________________________________________________________
[1250] 1 Cor. vii. 5
[1251] 1 Cor. vii. 6. ["Concession," R.V.]
[1252] 1 Cor. vi. 1
[1253] 1 Cor. vi. 4-6
[1254] 1 Cor. vi. 7
[1255] Matt. v. 40
[1256] Luke vi. 30
[1257] Jas. iii. 2. [See R.V.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 79.--Sins Which Appear Very Trifling, are Sometimes in Reality
Very Serious.
Again, there are some sins which would be considered very trifling, if
the Scriptures did not show that they are really very serious. For who
would suppose that the man who says to his brother, "Thou fool," is in
danger of hell-fire, did not He who is the Truth say so? To the wound,
however, He immediately applies the cure, giving a rule for
reconciliation with one's offended brother: "Therefore, if thou bring
thy gift to the altar, and there rememberest that thy brother hath
ought against thee; leave there thy gift before the altar, and go thy
way: first be reconciled to thy brother, and then come and offer thy
gift." [1258] Again, who would suppose that it was so great a sin to
observe days, and months, and times, and years, as those do who are
anxious or unwilling to begin anything on certain days, or in certain
months or years, because the vain doctrines of men lead them to think
such times lucky or unlucky, had we not the means of estimating the
greatness of the evil from the fear expressed by the apostle, who says
to such men, "I am afraid of you, lest I have bestowed upon you labor
in vain"? [1259]
__________________________________________________________________
[1258] Matt. v. 22, 23
[1259] Gal. iv. 10, 11
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 80.--Sins, However Great and Detestable, Seem Trivial When We
are Accustomed to Them.
Add to this, that sins, however great and detestable they may be, are
looked upon as trivial, or as not sins at all, when men get accustomed
to them; and so far does this go, that such sins are not only not
concealed, but are boasted of, and published far and wide; and thus, as
it is written, "The wicked boasteth of his heart's desire, and blesseth
the covetous, whom the Lord abhorreth." [1260] Iniquity of this kind is
in Scripture called a cry. You have an instance in the prophet Isaiah,
in the case of the evil vineyard: "He looked for judgment, but behold
oppression; for righteousness, but behold a cry." [1261] Whence also
the expression in Genesis: "The cry of Sodom and Gomorrah is great,"
[1262] because in these cities crimes were not only not punished, but
were openly committed, as if under the protection of the law. And so in
our own times: many forms of sin, though not just the sameas those of
Sodom and Gomorrah, are now so openly and habitually practised, that
not only dare we not excommunicate a layman, we dare not even degrade a
clergyman, for the commission of them. So that when, a few years ago, I
was expounding the Epistle to the Galatians, in commenting on that very
place where the apostle says, "I am afraid of you, lest I have bestowed
labor upon you in vain," I was compelled to exclaim, "Woe to the sins
of men! for it is only when we are not accustomed to them that we
shrink from them: when once we are accustomed to them, though the blood
of the Son of God was poured out to wash them away, though they are so
great that the kingdom of God is wholly shut against them, constant
familiarity leads to the toleration of them all, and habitual
toleration leads to the practice of many of them. And grant, O Lord,
that we may not come to practise all that we have not the power to
hinder." But I shall see whether the extravagance of grief did not
betray me into rashness of speech.
__________________________________________________________________
[1260] Ps. x. 3
[1261] Isa. v. 7
[1262] Gen. xviii. 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 81.--There are Two Causes of Sin, Ignorance and Weakness; And
We Need Divine Help to Overcome Both.
I shall now say this, which I have often said before in other places of
my works. There are two causes that lead to sin: either we do not yet
know our duty, or we do not perform the duty that we know. The former
is the sin of ignorance, the latter of weakness. Now against these it
is our duty to struggle; but we shall certainly be beaten in the fight,
unless we are helped by God, not only to see our duty, but also, when
we clearly see it, to make the love of righteousness stronger in us
than the love of earthly things, the eager longing after which, or the
fear of losing which, leads us with our eyes open into known sin. In
the latter case we are not only sinners, for we are so even when we err
through ignorance, but we are also transgressors of the law; for we
leave undone what we know we ought to do, and we do what we know we
ought not to do. Wherefore not only ought we to pray for pardon when we
have sinned, saying, "Forgive us our debts, as we forgive our debtors;"
but we ought to pray for guidance, that we may be kept from sinning,
saying, "and lead us not into temptation." And we are to pray to Him of
whom the Psalmist says, "The Lord is my light and my salvation:" [1263]
my light, for He removes my ignorance; my salvation, for He takes away
my infirmity.
__________________________________________________________________
[1263] Ps. xxvii. 1
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 82.--The Mercy of God is Necessary to True Repentance.
Now even penance itself, when by the law of the Church there is
sufficient reason for its being gone through, is frequently evaded
through infirmity; for shame is the fear of losing pleasure when the
good opinion of men gives more pleasure than the righteousness which
leads a man to humble himself in penitence. Wherefore the mercy of God
is necessary not only when a man repents, but even to lead him to
repent. How else explain what the apostle says of certain persons: "if
God peradventure will give them repentance"? [1264] And before Peter
wept bitterly, we are told by the evangelist, "The Lord turned, and
looked upon him." [1265]
__________________________________________________________________
[1264] 2 Tim. ii. 25
[1265] Luke xxii. 61
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 83.--The Man Who Despises the Mercy of God is Guilty of the Sin
Against the Holy Ghost.
Now the man who, not believing that sins are remitted in the Church,
despises this great gift of God's mercy, and persists to the last day
of his life in his obstinacy of heart, is guilty of the unpardonable
sin against the Holy Ghost, in whom Christ forgives sins. [1266] But
this difficult question I have discussed as clearly as I could in a
book devoted exclusively to this one point.
__________________________________________________________________
[1266] Matt. xii. 32
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 84.--The Resurrection of the Body Gives Rise to Numerous
Questions.
Now, as to the resurrection of the body, --not a resurrection such as
some have had, who came back to life for a time and died again, but a
resurrection to eternal life, as the body of Christ Himself rose
again,--I do not see how I can discuss the matter briefly, and at the
same time give a satisfactory answer to all the questions that are
ordinarily raised about it. Yet that the bodies of all men--both those
who have been born and those who shall be born, both those who have
died and those who shall die--shall be raised again, no Christian ought
to have the shadow of a doubt.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 85.--The Case of Abortive Conceptions.
Hence in the first place arises a question about abortive conceptions,
which have indeed been born in the mother's womb, but not so born that
they could be born again. For if we shall decide that these are to rise
again, we cannot object to any conclusion that may be drawn in regard
to those which are fully formed. Now who is there that is not rather
disposed to think that unformed abortions perish, like seeds that have
never fructified? But who will dare to deny, though he may not dare to
affirm, that at the resurrection every defect in the form shall be
supplied, and that thus the perfection which time would have brought
shall not be wanting, any more than the blemishes which time did bring
shall be present: so that the nature shall neither want anything
suitable and in harmony with it that length of days would have added,
nor be debased by the presence of anything of an opposite kind that
length of days has added; but that what is not yet complete shall be
completed, just as what has been injured shall be renewed.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 86.--If They Have Ever Lived, They Must of Course Have Died,
and Therefore Shall Have a Share in the Resurrection of the Dead.
And therefore the following question may be very carefully inquired
into and discussed by learned men, though I do not know whether it is
in man's power to resolve it: At what time the infant begins to live in
the womb: whether life exists in a latent form before it manifests
itself in the motions of the living being. To deny that the young who
are cut out limb by limb from the womb, lest if they were left there
dead the mother should die too, have never been alive, seems too
audacious. Now, from the time that a man begins to live, from that time
it is possible for him to die. And if he die, wheresoever death may
overtake him, I cannot discover on what principle he can be denied an
interest in the resurrection of the dead.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 87.--The Case of Monstrous Births.
We are not justified in affirming even of monstrosities, which are born
and live, however quickly they may die, that they shall not rise again,
nor that they shall rise again in their deformity, and not rather with
an amended and perfected body. God forbid that the double limbed man
who was lately born in the East, of whom an account was brought by most
trustworthy brethren who had seen him,--an account which the presbyter
Jerome, of blessed memory, left in writing; [1267] --God forbid, I say,
that we should think that at the resurrection there shall be one man
with double limbs, and not two distinct men, as would have been the
case had twins been born. And so other births, which, because they have
either a superfluity or a defect, or because they are very much
deformed, are called monstrosities, shall at the resurrection be
restored to the normal shape of man; and so each single soul shall
possess its own body; and no bodies shall cohere together even though
they were born in cohesion, but each separately shall possess all the
members which constitute a complete human body.
__________________________________________________________________
[1267] Jerome, in his Epistle to Vitalis: "Or because in our times a
man was born at Lydda with two heads, four hands, one belly, and two
feet, does it necessarily follow that all men are so born?"
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 88.--The Material of the Body Never Perishes.
Nor does the earthly material out of which men's mortal bodies are
created ever perish; but though it may crumble into dust and ashes, or
be dissolved into vapors and exhalations, though it may be transformed
into the substance of other bodies, or dispersed into the elements,
though it should become food for beasts or men, and be changed into
their flesh, it returns in a moment of time to that human soul which
animated it at the first, and which caused it to become man, and to
live and grow.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 89.--But This Material May Be Differently Arranged in the
Resurrection Body.
And this earthly material, which when the soul leaves it becomes a
corpse, shall not at the resurrection be so restored as that the parts
into which it is separated, and which under various forms and
appearances become parts of other things (though they shall all return
to the same body from which they were separated), must necessarily
return to the same parts of the body in which they were originally
situated. For otherwise, to suppose that the hair recovers all that our
frequent clippings and shavings have taken away from it, and the nails
all that we have so often pared off, presents to the imagination such a
picture of ugliness and deformity, as to make the resurrection of the
body all but incredible. But just as if a statue of some soluble metal
were either melted by fire, or broken into dust, or reduced to a
shapeless mass, and a sculptor wished to restore it from the same
quantity of metal, it would make no difference to the completeness of
the work what part of the statue any given particle of the material was
put into, as long as the restored statue contained all the material of
the original one; so God, the Artificer of marvellous and unspeakable
power, shall with marvellous and unspeakable rapidity restore our body,
using up the whole material of which it originally consisted. Nor will
it affect the completeness of its restoration whether hairs return to
hairs, and nails to nails, or whether the part of these that had
perished be changed into flesh, and called to take its place in another
part of the body, the great Artist taking careful heed that nothing
shall be unbecoming or out of place.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 90.--If There Be Differences and Inequalities Among the Bodies
of Those Who Rise Again, There Shall Be Nothing Offensive or
Disproportionate in Any.
Nor does it necessarily follow that there shall be differences of
stature among those who rise again, because they were of different
statures during life; nor is it certain that the lean shall rise again
in their former leanness, and the fat in their former fatness. But if
it is part of the Creator's design that each should preserve his own
peculiarities of feature, and retain a recognizable likeness to his
former self, while in regard to other bodily advantages all should be
equal, then the material of which each is composed may be so modified
that none of it shall be lost, and that any defect may be supplied by
Him who can create at His will out of nothing. But if in the bodies of
those who rise again there shall be a well-ordered inequality, such as
there is in the voices that make up a full harmony, then the material
of each man's body shall be so dealt with that it shall form a man fit
for the assemblies of the angels, and one who shall bring nothing among
them to jar upon their sensibilities. And assuredly nothing that is
unseemly shall be there; but whatever shall be there shall be graceful
and becoming: for if anything is not seemly, neither shall it be.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 91.--The Bodies of the Saints Shall at The Resurrection Be
Spiritual Bodies.
The bodies of the saints, then, shall rise again free from every
defect, from every blemish, as from all corruption, weight, and
impediment. For their ease of movement shall be as complete as their
happiness. Whence their bodies have been called spiritual, though
undoubtedly they shall be bodies and not spirits. For just as now the
body is called animate, though it is a body, and not a soul [anima], so
then the body shall be called spiritual, though it shall be a body, not
a spirit. [1268] Hence, as far as regards the corruption which now
weighs down the soul, and the vices which urge the flesh to lust
against the spirit, [1269] it shall not then be flesh, but body; for
there are bodies which are called celestial. Wherefore it is said,
"Flesh and blood cannot inherit the kingdom of God;" and, as if in
explanation of this, "neither doth corruption inherit incorruption."
[1270] What the apostle first called "flesh and blood," he afterwards
calls "corruption;" and what he first called "the kingdom of God," he
afterwards calls "incorruption." But as far as regards the substance,
even then it shall be flesh. For even after the resurrection the body
of Christ was called flesh. [1271] The apostle, however, says: "It is
sown a natural body; it is raised a spiritual body;" [1272] because so
perfect shah then be the harmony between flesh and spirit, the spirit
keeping alive the subjugated flesh without the need of any nourishment,
that no part of our nature shall be in discord with another; but as we
shall be free from enemies without, so we shall not have ourselves for
enemies within.
__________________________________________________________________
[1268] 1 Cor. xv. 44. [See R.V.]
[1269] Wisd. ix. 15; Gal. v. 17
[1270] 1 Cor. xv. 50
[1271] Luke xxiv. 39
[1272] 1 Cor. xv. 44
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 92.--The Resurrection of the Lost.
But as for those who, out of the mass of perdition caused by the first
man's sin, are not redeemed through the one Mediator between God and
man, they too shall rise again, each with his own body, but only to be
punished with the devil and his angels. Now, whether they shall rise
again with all their diseases and deformities of body, bringing with
them the diseased and deformed limbs which they possessed here, it
would be labor lost to inquire. For we need not weary ourselves
speculating about their health or their beauty, which are matters
uncertain, when their eternal damnation is a matter of certainty. Nor
need we inquire in what sense their body shall be incorruptible, if it
be susceptible of pain; or in what sense corruptible, if it be free
from the possibility of death. For there is no true life except where
there is happiness in life, and no true incorruption except where
health is unbroken by any pain. When, however, the unhappy are not
permitted to die, then, if I may so speak, death itself dies not; and
where pain without intermission afflicts the soul, and never comes to
an end, corruption itself is not completed. This is called in Holy
Scripture "the second death." [1273]
__________________________________________________________________
[1273] Rev. ii. 2
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 93.--Both the First and the Second Deaths are the Consequence
of Sin. Punishment is Proportioned to Guilt.
And neither the first death, which takes place when the soul is
compelled to leave the body, nor the second death, which takes place
when the soul is not permitted to leave the suffering body, would have
been inflicted on man had no one sinned. And, of course, the mildest
punishment of all will fall upon those who have added no actual sin, to
the original sin they brought with them; and as for the rest who have
added such actual sins, the punishment of each will be the more
tolerable in the next world, according as his iniquity has been less in
this world.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 94.--The Saints Shall Know More Fully in the Next World the
Benefits They Have Received by Grace.
Thus, when reprobate angels and men are left to endure everlasting
punishment, the saints shall know more fully the benefits they have
received by grace. Then, in contemplation of the actual facts, they
shall see more clearly the meaning of the expression in the psalms, "I
will sing of mercy and judgment;" [1274] for it is only of unmerited
mercy that any is redeemed, and only in well-merited judgment that any
is condemned.
__________________________________________________________________
[1274] Ps. ci. 1
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 95.--God's Judgments Shall Then Be Explained.
Then shall be made clear much that is now dark. For example, when of
two infants, whose cases seem in all respects alike, one by the mercy
of God chosen to Himself, and the other is by His justice abandoned
(wherein the one who is chosen may recognize what was of justice due to
himself, had not mercy intervened); why, of these two, the one should
have been chosen rather than the other, is to us an insoluble problem.
And again, why miracles were not wrought in the presence of men who
would have repented at the working of the miracles, while they were
wrought in the presence of others who, it was known, would not repent.
For our Lord says most distinctly: "Woe unto thee, Chorazin! woe unto
thee, Bethsaida! for if the mighty works, which were done in you, had
been done in Tyre and Sidon, they would have repented long ago in
sackcloth and ashes." [1275] And assuredly there was no injustice in
God's not willing that they should be saved, though they could have
been saved had He so willed it. Then shall be seen in the clearest
light of wisdom what with the pious is now a faith, though it is not
yet a matter of certain knowledge, how sure, how unchangeable, and how
effectual is the will of God; how many things He can do which He does
not will to do, though willing nothing which He cannot perform; and how
true is the song of the psalmist, "But our God is in the heavens; He
hath done whatsoever He hath pleased." [1276] And this certainly is not
true, if God has ever willed anything that He has not performed; and,
still worse, if it was the will of man that hindered the Omnipotent
from doing what He pleased. Nothing, therefore, happens but by the will
of the Omnipotent, He either permitting it to be done, or Himself doing
it.
__________________________________________________________________
[1275] Matt. xi. 21
[1276] Ps. cxv. 3
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 96.--The Omnipotent God Does Well Even in the Permission of
Evil.
Nor can we doubt that God does well even in the permission of what is
evil. For He permits it only in the justice of His judgment. And surely
all that is just is good. Although, therefore, evil, in so far as it is
evil, is not a good; yet the fact that evil as well as good exists, is
a good. For if it were not a good that evil should exist, its existence
would not be permitted by the omnipotent Good, who without doubt can as
easily refuse to permit what He does not wish, as bring about what He
does wish. And if we do not believe this, the very first sentence of
our creed is endangered, wherein we profess to believe in God the
Father Almighty. For He is not truly called Almighty if He cannot do
whatsoever He pleases, or if the power of His almighty will is hindered
by the will of any creature whatsoever.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 97.--In What Sense Does the Apostle Say that "God Will Have All
Men to Be Saved," When, as a Matter of Fact, All are Not Saved?
Hence we must inquire in what sense is said of God what the apostle has
mostly truly said: "Who will have all men to be saved." [1277] For, as
a matter of fact, not all, nor even a majority, are saved: so that it
would seem that what God wills is not done, man's will interfering
with, and hindering the will of God. When we ask the reason why all men
are not saved, the ordinary answer is: "Because men themselves are not
willing." This, indeed cannot be said of infants, for it is not in
their power either to will or not to will. But if we could attribute to
their will the childish movements they make at baptism, when they make
all the resistance they can, we should say that even they are not
willing to be saved. Our Lord says plainly, however, in the Gospel,
when upbraiding the impious city: "How often would I have gathered thy
children together, even as a hen gathereth her chickens under her
wings, and ye would not!" [1278] as if the will of God had been
overcome by the will of men, and when the weakest stood in the way with
their want of will, the will of the strongest could not be carried out.
And where is that omnipotence which hath done all that it pleased on
earth and in heaven, if God willed to gather together the children of
Jerusalem, and did not accomplish it? or rather, Jerusalem was not
willing that her children should be gathered together? But even though
she was unwilling, He gathered together as many of her children as He
wished: for He does not will some things and do them, and will others
and do them not; but "He hath done all that He pleased in heaven and in
earth."
__________________________________________________________________
[1277] 1 Tim. ii. 4. [See R.V.]
[1278] Matt. xxiii. 37
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 98.--Predestination to Eternal Life is Wholly of God's Free
Grace.
And, moreover, who will be so foolish and blasphemous as to say that
God cannot change the evil wills of men, whichever, whenever, and
wheresoever He chooses, and direct them to what is good? But when He
does this He does it of mercy; when He does it not, it is of justice
that He does it not for "He hath mercy on whom He will have mercy, and
whom He will He hardeneth." [1279] And when the apostle said this, he
was illustrating the grace of God, in connection with which he had just
spoken of the twins in the womb of Rebecca, "who being not yet born,
neither having done any good or evil that the purpose of God according
to election might stand, not of works, but of Him that calleth, it was
said unto her, The elder shall serve the younger." [1280] And in
reference to this matter he quotes another prophetic testimony: "Jacob
have I loved, but Esau have I hated." [1281] But perceiving how what he
had said might affect those who could not penetrate by their
understanding the depth of this grace: "What shall we say then?" he
says: "Is there unrighteousness with God? God forbid." [1282] For it
seems unjust that, in the absence of any merit or demerit, from good or
evil works, God should love the one and hate the other. Now, if the
apostle had wished us to understand that there were future good works
of the one, and evil works of the other, which of course God foreknew,
he would never have said, "not of works," but, "of future works," and
in that way would have solved the difficulty, or rather there would
then have been no difficulty to solve. As it is, however, after
answering, "God forbid;" that is, God forbid that there should be
unrighteousness with God; he goes on to prove that there is no
unrighteousness in God's doing this, and says: "For He saith to Moses,
I will have mercy on whom I will have mercy, and I will have compassion
on whom I will have compassion." [1283] Now, who but a fool would think
that God was unrighteous, either in inflicting penal justice on those
who had earned it, or in extending mercy to the unworthy? Then he draws
his conclusion: "So then it is not of him that willeth, nor of him that
runneth, but of God that showeth mercy." [1284] Thus both the twins
were born children of wrath, not on account of any works of their own,
but because they were bound in the fetters of that original
condemnation which came through Adam. But He who said, "I will have
mercy on whom I will have mercy," loved Jacob of His undeserved grace,
and hated Esau of His deserved judgment. And as this judgment was due
to both, the former learnt from the case of the latter that the fact of
the same punishment not falling upon himself gave him no room to glory
in any merit of his own, but only in the riches of the divine grace;
because "it is not of him that willeth, nor of him that runneth, but of
God that showeth mercy." And indeed the whole face, and, if I may use
the expression, every lineament of the countenance of Scripture conveys
by a very profound analogy this wholesome warning to every one who
looks carefully into it, that he who glories should glory in the Lord.
[1285]
__________________________________________________________________
[1279] Rom. ix. 18
[1280] Rom. ix. 12
[1281] Rom. ix. 13; Mal. i. 2, 3
[1282] Rom. ix. 14
[1283] Rom. ix. 15; Ex. xxxiii. 19
[1284] Rom. ix. 16. [See R V.]
[1285] Comp. 1 Cor. i. 31
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 99.--As God's Mercy is Free, So His Judgments are Just, and
Cannot Be Gainsaid.
Now after commending the mercy of God, saying, "So it is not of him
that willeth, nor of him that runneth, but of God that showeth mercy,"
that he might commend His justice also (for the man who does not obtain
mercy finds, not iniquity, but justice, there being no iniquity with
God), he immediately adds: "For the scripture saith unto Pharoah, Even
for this same purpose have I raised thee up, that I might show my power
in thee, and that my name might be declared throughout all the earth."
[1286] And then he draws a conclusion that applies to both, that is,
both to His mercy and His justice: "Therefore hath He mercy on whom He
will have mercy, and whom He will He hardeneth." [1287] "He hath mercy"
of His great goodness, "He hardeneth" without any injustice; so that
neither can he that is pardoned glory in any merit of his own, nor he
that is condemned complain of anything but his own demerit. For it is
grace alone that separates the redeemed from the lost, all having been
involved in one common perdition through their common origin. Now if
any one, on hearing this, should say, "Why doth He yet find fault? for
who hath resisted His will?" [1288] as if a man ought not to be blamed
for being bad, because God hath mercy on whom He will have mercy, and
whom He will He hardeneth, God forbid that we should be ashamed to
answer as we see the apostle answered: "Nay, but, O man, who art thou
that repliest against God? Shall the thing formed say to Him that
formed it, Why hast Thou made me thus? Hath not the potter power over
the clay, of the same lump to make one vessel unto honor, and another
unto dishonor?" [1289] Now some foolish people, think that in this
place the apostle had no answer to give; and for want of a reason to
render, rebuked the presumption of his interrogator. But there is great
weight in this saying: "Nay, but, O man, who art thou?" and in such a
matter as this it suggests to a man in a single word the limits of his
capacity, and at the same time does in reality convey an important
reason. For if a man does not understand these matters, who is he that
he should reply against God? And if he does understand them, he finds
no further room for reply. For then he perceives that the whole human
race was condemned in its rebellious head by a divine judgment so just,
that if not a single member of the race had been redeemed, no one could
justly have questioned the justice of God; and that it was right that
those who are redeemed should be redeemed in such a way as to show, by
the greater number who are unredeemed and left in their just
condemnation, what the whole race deserved, and whither the deserved
judgment of God would lead even the redeemed, did not His undeserved
mercy interpose, so that every mouth might be stopped of those who wish
to glory in their own merits, and that he that glorieth might glory in
the Lord. [1290]
__________________________________________________________________
[1286] Rom. ix. 17; Ex. ix. 16
[1287] Rom. ix. 18
[1288] Rom. ix. 19
[1289] Rom. ix. 20, 21
[1290] Rom. iii. 19; 1 Cor. i. 31
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 100.--The Will of God is Never Defeated, Though Much is Done
that is Contrary to His Will.
These are the great works of the Lord, sought out according to all His
pleasure, [1291] and so wisely sought out, that when the intelligent
creation, both angelic and human, sinned, doing not His will but their
own, He used the very will of the creature which was working in
opposition to the Creator's will as an instrument for carrying out His
will, the supremely Good thus turning to good account even what is
evil, to the condemnation of those whom in His justice He has
predestined to punishment, and to the salvation of those whom in His
mercy He has predestined to grace. For, as far as relates to their own
consciousness, these creatures did what God wished not to be done: but
in view of God's omnipotence, they could in no wise effect their
purpose. For in the very fact that they acted in opposition to His
will, His will concerning them was fulfilled. And hence it is that "the
works of the Lord are great, sought out according to all His pleasure,"
because in a way unspeakably strange and wonderful, even what is done
in opposition to His will does not defeat His will. For it would not be
done did He not permit it (and of course His permission is not
unwilling, but willing); nor would a Good Being permit evil to be done
only that in His omnipotence He can turn evil into good.
__________________________________________________________________
[1291] Ps. cxi. 2 (LXX.): "The works of the Lord are great, sought out
of all them that have pleasure therein." (A.V.)
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 101.--The Will of God, Which is Always Good, is Sometimes
Fulfilled Through the Evil Will of Man.
Sometimes, however, a man in the goodness of his will desires something
that God does not desire, even though God's will is also good, nay,
much more fully and more surely good (for His will never can be evil):
for example, if a good son is anxious that his father should live, when
it is God's good will that he should die. Again, it is possible for a
man with evil will to desire what God wills in His goodness: for
example, if a bad son wishes his father to die, when this is also the
will of God. It is plain that the former wishes what God does not wish,
and that the latter wishes what God does wish; and yet the filial love
of the former is more in harmony with the good will of God, though its
desire is different from God's, than the want of filial affection of
the latter, though its desire is the same as God's. So necessary is it,
in determining whether a man's desire is one to be approved or
disapproved, to consider what it is proper for man, and what it is
proper for God, to desire, and what is in each case the real motive of
the will. For God accomplishes some of His purposes, which of course
are all good, through the evil desires of wicked men: for example, it
was through the wicked designs of the Jews, working out the good
purpose of the Father, that Christ was slain and this event was so
truly good, that when the Apostle Peter expressed his unwillingness
that it should take place, he was designated Satan by Him who had come
to be slain. [1292] How good seemed the intentions of the pious
believers who were unwilling that Paul should go up to Jerusalem lest
the evils which Agabus had foretold should there befall him! [1293] And
yet it was God's purpose that he should suffer these evils for
preaching the faith of Christ, and thereby become a witness for Christ.
And this purpose of His, which was good, God did not fulfill through
the good counsels of the Christians, but through the evil counsels of
the Jews; so that those who opposed His purpose were more truly His
servants than those who were the willing instruments of its
accomplishment.
__________________________________________________________________
[1292] Matt. xvi. 21-23
[1293] Acts xxi. 10-12
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 102.--The Will of the Omnipotent God is Never Defeated, and is
Never Evil.
But however strong may be the purposes either of angels or of men,
whether of good or bad, whether these purposes fall in with the will of
God or run counter to it, the will of the Omnipotent is never defeated;
and His will never can be evil; because even when it inflicts evil it
is just, and what is just is certainly not evil. The omnipotent God,
then, whether in mercy He pitieth whom He will, or in judgment
hardeneth whom He will, is never unjust in what He does, never does
anything except of His own free-will, and never wills anything that He
does not perform.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 103.--Interpretation of the Expression in I Tim. II. 4: "Who
Will Have All Men to Be Saved."
Accordingly, when we hear and read in Scripture that He "will have all
men to be saved," [1294] although we know well that all men are not
saved, we are not on that account to restrict the omnipotence of God,
but are rather to understand the Scripture, "Who will have all men to
be saved," as meaning that no man is saved unless God wills his
salvation: not that there is no man whose salvation He does not will,
but that no man is saved apart from His will; and that, therefore, we
should pray Him to will our salvation, because if He will it, it must
necessarily be accomplished. And it was of prayer to God that the
apostle was speaking when he used this expression. And on the same
principle we interpret the expression in the Gospel: "The true light
which lighteth every man that cometh into the world:" [1295] not that
there is no man who is not enlightened, but that no man is enlightened
except by Him. Or, it is said, "Who will have all men to be saved;" not
that there is no man whose salvation He does not will (for how, then,
explain the fact that He was unwilling to work miracles in the presence
of some who, He said, would have repented if He had worked them?), but
that we are to understand by "all men," the human race in all its
varieties of rank and circumstances,--kings, subjects; noble, plebeian,
high, low, learned, and unlearned; the sound in body, the feeble, the
clever, the dull, the foolish, the rich, the poor, and those of
middling circumstances; males, females, infants, boys, youths; young,
middle-aged, and old men; of every tongue, of every fashion, of all
arts, of all professions, with all the innumerable differences of will
and conscience, and whatever else there is that makes a distinction
among men. For which of all these classes is there out of which God
does not will that men should be saved in all nations through His
only-begotten Son, our Lord, and therefore does save them; for the
Omnipotent cannot will in vain, whatsoever He may will? Now the apostle
had enjoined that prayers should be made for all men, and had
especially added, "For kings, and for all that are in authority," who
might be supposed, in the pride and pomp of worldly station, to shrink
from the humility of the Christian faith. Then saying, "For this is
good and acceptable in the sight of God our Saviour," that is, that
prayers should be made for such as these, he immediately adds, as if to
remove any ground of despair, "Who will have all men to be saved, and
to come unto the knowledge of the truth." [1296] God, then, in His
great condescension has judged it good to grant to the prayers of the
humble the salvation of the exalted; and assuredly we have many
examples of this. Our Lord, too, makes use of the same mode of speech
in the Gospel, when He says to the Pharisees: "Ye tithe mint, and rue,
and every herb." [1297] For the Pharisees did not tithe what belonged
to others, nor all the herbs of all the inhabitants of other lands. As,
then, in this place we must understand by "every herb," every kind of
herbs, so in the former passage we may understand by "all men," every
sort of men. And we may interpret it in any other way we please, so
long as we are not compelled to believe that the omnipotent God has
willed anything to be done which was not done: for setting aside all
ambiguities, if "He hath done all that He pleased in heaven and in
earth," [1298] as the psalmist sings of Him, He certainly did not will
to do anything that He hath not done.
__________________________________________________________________
[1294] 1 Tim. ii. 4
[1295] John i. 9
[1296] 1 Tim. ii. 1-4
[1297] Luke xi. 42. ["All manner of herbs." A.V.]
[1298] Ps cxv. 3. ["Our God is in the heavens: He hath done whatsoever
He hath pleased." A.V.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 104.--God, Foreknowing the Sin of the First Man, Ordered His
Own Purposes Accordingly.
Wherefore, God would have been willing to preserve even the first man
in that state of salvation in which he was created, and after he had
begotten sons to remove him at a fit time, without the intervention of
death, to a better place, where he should have been not only free from
sin, but free even from the desire of sinning, if He had foreseen that
man would have the steadfast will to persist in the state of innocence
in which he was created. But as He foresaw that man would make a bad
use of his free-will, that is, would sin, God arranged His own designs
rather with a view to do good to man even in his sinfulness, that thus
the good will of the Omnipotent might not be made void by the evil will
of man, but might be fulfilled in spite of it.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 105.--Man Was So Created as to Be Able to Choose Either Good or
Evil: in the Future Life, the Choice of Evil Will Be Impossible.
Now it was expedient that man should be at first so created, as to have
it in his power both to will what was right and to will what was wrong;
not without reward if he willed the former, and not without punishment
if he willed the latter. But in the future life it shall not be in his
power to will evil; and yet this will constitute no restriction on the
freedom of his will. On the contrary, his will shall be much freer when
it shall be wholly impossible for him to be the slave of sin. We should
never think of blaming the will, or saying that it was no will, or that
it was not to be called free, when we so desire happiness, that not
only do we shrink from misery, but find it utterly impossible to do
otherwise. As, then, the soul even now finds it impossible to desire
unhappiness, so in future it shall be wholly impossible for it to
desire sin. But God's arrangement was not to be broken, according to
which He willed to show how good is a rational being who is able even
to refrain from sin, and yet how much better is one who cannot sin at
all; just as that was an inferior sort of immortality, and yet it was
immortality, when it was possible for man to avoid death, although
there is reserved for the future a more perfect immortality, when it
shall be impossible for man to die.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 106.--The Grace of God Was Necessary to Man's Salvation Before
the Fall as Well as After It.
The former immortality man lost through the exercise of his free-will;
the latter he shall obtain through grace, whereas, if he had not
sinned, he should have obtained it by desert. Even in that case,
however, there could have been no merit without grace; because,
although the mere exercise of man's free-will was sufficient to bring
in sin, his free-will would not have sufficed for his maintenance in
righteousness, unless God had assisted it by imparting a portion of His
unchangeable goodness. Just as it is in man's power to die whenever he
will (for, not to speak of other means, any one can put an end to
himself by simple abstinence from food), but the mere will cannot
preserve life in the absence of food and the other means of life; so
man in paradise was able of his mere will, simply by abandoning
righteousness, to destroy himself; but to have maintained a life of
righteousness would have been too much for his will, unless it had been
sustained by the Creator's power. After the fall, however, a more
abundant exercise of God's mercy was required, because the will itself
had to be freed from the bondage in which it was held by sin and death.
And the will owes its freedom in no degree to itself, but solely to the
grace of God which comes by faith in Jesus Christ; so that the very
will, through which we accept all the other gifts of God which lead us
on to His eternal gift, is itself prepared of the Lord, as the
Scripture says. [1299]
__________________________________________________________________
[1299] Prov xvi. 1. ["The preparation of the heart in man... is from
the Lord." A.V.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 107.--Eternal Life, Though the Reward of Good Works, is Itself
the Gift of God.
Wherefore, even eternal life itself, which is surely the reward of good
works, the apostle calls the gift of God. "For the wages of sin," he
says, "is death; but the gift of God is eternal life through Jesus
Christ our Lord." [1300] Wages (stipendium) is paid as a recompense for
military service; it is not a gift: wherefore he says, "the wages of
sin is death," to show that death was not inflicted undeservedly, but
as the due recompense of sin. But a gift, unless it is wholly unearned,
is not a gift at all. [1301] We are to understand, then, that man's
good deserts are themselves the gift of God, so that when these obtain
the recompense of eternal life, it is simply grace given for grace.
Man, therefore, was thus made upright that, though unable to remain in
his uprightness without divine help, he could of his own mere will
depart from it. And whichever of these courses he had chosen, God's
will would have been done, either by him, or concerning him. Therefore,
as he chose to do his own will rather than God's, the will of God is
fulfilled concerning him; for God, out of one and the same heap of
perdition which constitutes the race of man, makes one vessel to honor,
another to dishonor; to honor in mercy, to dishonor in judgment; [1302]
that no one may glory in man, and consequently not in himself.
__________________________________________________________________
[1300] Rom. vi. 23
[1301] Comp. Rom. xi. 6
[1302] Rom. ix. 21
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 108.--A Mediator Was Necessary to Reconcile Us to God; And
Unless This Mediator Had Been God, He Could Not Have Been Our Redeemer.
For we could not be redeemed, even through the one Mediator between God
and men, the man Christ Jesus, if He were not also God. Now when Adam
was created, he, being a righteous man, had no need of a mediator. But
when sin had placed a wide gulf between God and the human race, it was
expedient that a Mediator, who alone of the human race was born, lived,
and died without sin, should reconcile us to God, and procure even for
our bodies a resurrection to eternal life, in order that the pride of
man might be exposed and cured through the humility of God; that man
might be shown how far he had departed from God, when God became
incarnate to bring him back; that an example might be set to
disobedient man in the life of obedience of the God-Man; that the
fountain of grace might be opened by the Only-begotten taking upon
Himself the form of a servant, a form which had no antecedent merit;
that an earnest of that resurrection of the body which is promised to
the redeemed might be given in the resurrection of the Redeemer; that
the devil might be subdued by the same nature which it was his boast to
have deceived, and yet man not glorified, lest pride should again
spring up; and, in fine, with a view to all the advantages which the
thoughtful can perceive and describe, or perceive without being able to
describe, as flowing from the transcendent mystery of the person of the
Mediator.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 109.--The State of the Soul During the Interval Between Death
and the Resurrection.
During the time, moreover, which intervenes between a man's death and
the final resurrection, the soul dwells in a hidden retreat, where it
enjoys rest or suffers affliction just in proportion to the merit it
has earned by the life which it led on earth.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 110.--The Benefit to the Souls of the Dead from the Sacraments
and Alms of Their Living Friends.
Nor can it be denied that the souls of the dead are benefited by the
piety of their living friends, who offer the sacrifice of the Mediator,
or give alms in the church on their behalf. But these services are of
advantage only to those who during their lives have earned such merit,
that services of this kind can help them. For there is a manner of life
which is neither so good as not to require these services after death,
nor so bad that such services are of no avail after death; there is, on
the other hand, a kind of life so good as not to require them; and
again, one so bad that when life is over they render no help.
Therefore, it is in this life that all the merit or demerit is
acquired, which can either relieve or aggravate a man's sufferings
after this life. No one, then, need hope that after he is dead he shall
obtain merit with God which he has neglected to secure here. And
accordingly it is plain that the services which the church celebrates
for the dead are in no way opposed to the apostle's words: "For we must
all appear before the judgment-seat of Christ; that every one may
receive the things done in his body, according to that he hath done,
whether it be good or bad;" [1303] for the merit which renders such
services as I speak of profitable to a man, is earned while he lives in
the body. It is not to every one that these services are profitable.
And why are they not profitable to all, except because of the different
kinds of lives that men lead in the body? When, then, sacrifices either
of the altar or of alms are offered on behalf of all the baptized dead,
they are thank-offerings for the very good, they are propitiatory
offerings for the not very bad, and in the case of the very bad, even
though they do not assist the dead, they are a species of consolation
to the living. And where they are profitable, their benefit consists
either in obtaining a full remission of sins, or at least in making the
condemnation more tolerable.
__________________________________________________________________
[1303] 2 Cor. v. 10; comp. Rom. xiv. 10
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 111.--After the Resurrection There Shall Be Two Distinct
Kingdoms, One of Eternal Happiness, the Other of Eternal Misery.
After the resurrection, however, when the final, universal judgment has
been completed, there shall be two kingdoms, each with its own distinct
boundaries, the one Christ's, the other the devil's; the one consisting
of the good, the other of the bad,--both, however, consisting of angels
and men. The former shall have no will, the latter no power, to sin,
and neither shall have any power to choose death; but the former shall
live truly and happily in eternal life, the latter shall drag a
miserable existence in eternal death without the power of dying; for
the life and the death shall both be without end. But among the former
there shall be degrees of happiness, one being more pre-eminently happy
than another; and among the latter there shall be degrees of misery,
one being more endurably miserable than another.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 112.--There is No Ground in Scripture for the Opinion of Those
Who Deny the Eternity of Future Punishments.
It is in vain, then, that some, indeed very many, make moan over the
eternal punishment, and perpetual, unintermitted torments of the lost,
and say they do not believe it shall be so; not, indeed, that they
directly oppose themselves to Holy Scripture, but, at the suggestion of
their own feelings, they soften down everything that seems hard, and
give a milder turn to statements which they think are rather designed
to terrify than to be received as literally true. For "Hath God" they
say, forgotten to be gracious? hath He in anger shut up His tender
mercies?" [1304] Now, they read this in one of the holy psalms. But
without doubt we are to understand it as spoken of those who are
elsewhere called "vessels of mercy," [1305] because even they are freed
from misery not on account of any merit of their own, but solely
through the pity of God. Or, if the men we speak of insist that this
passage applies to all mankind, there is no reason why they should
therefore suppose that there will be an end to the punishment of those
of whom it is said, "These shall go away into everlasting punishment;"
for this shall end in the same manner and at the same time as the
happiness of those of whom it is said, "but the righteous unto life
eternal." [1306] But let them suppose, if the thought gives them
pleasure, that the pains of the damned are, at certain intervals, in
some degree assuaged. For even in this case the wrath of God, that is,
their condemnation (for it is this, and not any disturbed feeling in
the mind of God that is called His wrath), abideth upon them; [1307]
that is, His wrath, though it still remains, does not shut up His
tender mercies; though His tender mercies are exhibited, not in putting
an end to their eternal punishment, but in mitigating, or in granting
them a respite from, their torments; for the psalm does not say, "to
put an end to His anger," or, "when His anger is passed by," but "in
His anger." [1308] Now, if this anger stood alone, or if it existed in
the smallest conceivable degree, yet to be lost out of the kingdom of
God, to be an exile from the city of God, to be alienated from the life
of God, to have no share in that great goodness which God hath laid up
for them that fear Him, and hath wrought out for them that trust in
Him, [1309] would be a punishment so great, that, supposing it to be
eternal, no torments that we know of, continued through as many ages as
man's imagination can conceive, could be compared with it.
__________________________________________________________________
[1304] Ps. lxxvii. 9
[1305] Rom. ix. 23
[1306] Matt. xxv. 46
[1307] John iii. 36
[1308] Ps. lxxviii
[1309] Ps. xxxi. 19
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 113.--The Death of the Wicked Shall Be Eternal in the Same
Sense as the Life of the Saints.
This perpetual death of the wicked, then, that is, their alienation
from the life of God, shall abide for ever, and shall be common to them
all, whatever men, prompted by their human affections, may conjecture
as to a variety of punishments, or as to a mitigation or intermission
of their woes; just as the eternal life of the saints shall abide for
ever, and shall be common to them all, whatever grades of rank and
honor there may be among those who shine with an harmonious effulgence.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 114.--Having Dealt with Faith, We Now Come to Speak of Hope.
Everything that Pertains to Hope is Embraced in the Lord's Prayer.
Out of this confession of faith, which is briefly comprehended in the
Creed, and which, carnally understood, is milk for babes, but,
spiritually apprehended and studied, is meat for strong men, springs
the good hope of believers; and this is accompanied by a holy love. But
of these matters, all of which are true objects of faith, those only
pertain to hope which are embraced in the Lord's Prayer. For, "Cursed
is the man that trusteth in man" [1310] is the testimony of holy writ;
and, consequently, this curse attaches also to the man who trusteth in
himself. Therefore, except from God the Lord we ought to ask for
nothing either that we hope to do well, or hope to obtain as a reward
of our good works.
__________________________________________________________________
[1310] Jer. xvii. 5
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 115.--The Seven Petitions of the Lord's Prayer, According to
Matthew.
Accordingly, in the Gospel according to Matthew the Lord's Prayer seems
to embrace seven petitions, three of which ask for eternal blessings,
and the remaining four for temporal; these latter, however, being
necessary antecedents to the attainment of the eternal. For when we
say, "Hallowed be Thy name: Thy kingdom come: Thy will be done in
earth, as it is in heaven" [1311] (which some have interpreted, not
unfairly, in body as well as in spirit), we ask for blessings that are
to be enjoyed for ever; which are indeed begun in this world, and grow
in us as we grow in grace, but in their perfect state, which is to be
looked for in another life, shall be a possession for evermore. But
when we say, "Give us this day our daily bread: and forgive us our
debts, as we forgive our debtors: and lead us not into temptation, but
deliver us from evil," [1312] who does not see that we ask for
blessings that have reference to the wants of this present life? In
that eternal life, where we hope to live for ever, the hallowing of
God's name, and His kingdom, and His will in our spirit and body, shall
be brought to perfection, and shall endure to everlasting. But our
daily bread is so called because there is here constant need for as
much nourishment as the spirit and the flesh demand, whether we
understand the expression spiritually, or carnally, or in both senses.
It is here too that we need the forgiveness that we ask, for it is here
that we commit the sins; here are the temptations which allure or drive
us into sin; here, in a word, is the evil from which we desire
deliverance: but in that other world there shall be none of these
things.
__________________________________________________________________
[1311] Matt. vi. 9, 10
[1312] Matt. vi. 11-13
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 116.--Luke Expresses the Substance of These Seven Petitions
More Briefly in Five.
But the Evangelist Luke in his version of the Lord's prayer embraces
not seven, but five petitions: not, of course, that there is any
discrepancy between the two evangelists, but that Luke indicates by his
very brevity the mode in which the seven petitions of Matthew are to be
understood. For God's name is hallowed in the spirit; and God's kingdom
shall come in the resurrection of the body. Luke, therefore, intending
to show that the third petition is a sort of repetition of the first
two, has chosen to indicate that by omitting the third altogether.
[1313] Then he adds three others: one for daily bread, another for
pardon of sin, another for immunity from temptation. And what Matthew
puts as the last petition, "but deliver us from evil," Luke has
omitted, [1314] to show us that it is embraced in the previous petition
about temptation. Matthew, indeed, himself says, "but deliver," not
"and deliver," as if to show that the petitions are virtually one: do
not this, but this; so that every man is to understand that he is
delivered from evil in the very fact of his not being led into
temptation.
__________________________________________________________________
[1313] [These petitions are retained in the A.V., but omitted in the
R.V., according to the oldest authorities.--P.S.]
[1314] [These petitions are retained in the A.V., but omitted in the
R.V., according to the oldest authorities.--P.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 117.--Love, Which is Greater Than Faith and Hope, is Shed
Abroad in Our Hearts by the Holy Ghost.
And now as to love, which the apostle declares to be greater than the
other two graces, that is, than faith and hope, [1315] the greater the
measure in which it dwells in a man, the better is the man in whom it
dwells. For when there is a question as to whether a man is good, one
does not ask what he believes, or what he hopes, but what he loves. For
the man who loves aright no doubt believes and hopes aright; whereas
the man who has not love believes in vain, even though his beliefs are
true; and hopes in vain, even though the objects of his hope are a real
part of true happiness; unless, indeed, he believes and hopes for this,
that he may obtain by prayer the blessing of love. For, although it is
not possible to hope without love, it may yet happen that a man does
not love that which is necessary to the attainment of his hope; as, for
example, if he hopes for eternal life (and who is there that does not
desire this?) and yet does not love righteousness, without which no one
can attain to eternal life. Now this is the true faith of Christ which
the apostle speaks of, "which worketh by love;" [1316] and if there is
anything that it does not yet embrace in its love, asks that it may
receive, seeks that it may find, and knocks that it may be opened unto
it. [1317] For faith obtains through prayer that which the law
commands. For without the gift of God, that is, without the Holy
Spirit, through whom love is shed abroad in our hearts, [1318] the law
can command, but it cannot assist; and, moreover, it makes a man a
transgressor, for he can no longer excuse himself on the plea of
ignorance. Now carnal lust reigns where there is not the love of God.
__________________________________________________________________
[1315] 1 Cor. xiii. 13
[1316] Gal. v. 6
[1317] Matt. vii. 7
[1318] Rom. v. 5
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 118.--The Four Stages of the Christian's Life, and the Four
Corresponding Stages of the Church's History.
When, sunk in the darkest depths of ignorance, man lives according to
the flesh undisturbed by any struggle of reason or conscience, this is
his first state. Afterwards, when through the law has come the
knowledge of sin, and the Spirit of God has not yet interposed His aid,
man, striving to live according to the law, is thwarted in his efforts
and falls into conscious sin, and so, being overcome of sin, becomes
its slave ("for of whom a man is overcome, of the same is he brought in
bondage" [1319] ); and thus the effect produced by the knowledge of the
commandment is this, that sin worketh in man all manner of
concupiscence, and he is involved in the additional guilt of willful
transgression, and that is fulfilled which is written: "The, law
entered that the offense might abound." [1320] This is man's second
state. But if God has regard to him, and inspires him with faith in
God's help, and the Spirit of God begins to work in him, then the
mightier power of love strives against the power of the flesh; and
although there is still in the man's own nature a power that fights
against him (for his disease is not completely cured), yet he lives the
life of the just by faith, and lives in righteousness so far as he does
not yield to evil lust, but conquers it by the love of holiness. This
is the third state of a man of good hope; and he who by steadfast piety
advances in this course, shall attain at last to peace, that peace
which, after this life is over, shall be perfected in the repose of the
spirit, and finally in the resurrection of the body. Of these four
different stages the first is before the law, the second is under the
law, the third is under grace, and the fourth is in full and perfect
peace. Thus, too, has the history of God's people been ordered
according to His pleasure who disposeth all things in number, and
measure, and weight. [1321] For the church existed at first before the
law; then under the law, which was given by Moses; then under grace,
which was first made manifest in the coming of the Mediator. Not,
indeed, that this grace was absent previously, but, in harmony with the
arrangements of the time, it was veiled and hidden. For none, even of
the just men of old, could find salvation apart from the faith of
Christ; nor unless He had been known to them could their ministry have
been used to convey prophecies concerning Him to us, some more plain,
and some more obscure.
__________________________________________________________________
[1319] 2 Pet. ii. 19
[1320] Rom. v. 20
[1321] Comp. Wisd. xi. 20
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 119.--The Grace of Regeneration Washes Away All Past Sin and
All Original Guilt.
Now in whichever of these four stages (as we may call them) the grace
of regeneration finds any particular man, all his past sins are there
and then pardoned, and the guilt which he contracted in his birth is
removed in his new birth; and so true is it that "the wind bloweth
where it listeth," [1322] that some have never known the second stage,
that of slavery under the law, but have received the divine assistance
as soon as they received the commandment.
__________________________________________________________________
[1322] John iii. 8
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 120.--Death Cannot Injure Those Who Have Received the Grace of
Regeneration.
But before a man can receive the commandment, it is necessary that he
should live according to the flesh. But if once he has received the
grace of regeneration, death shall not injure him, even if he should
forthwith depart from this life; "for to this end Christ both died, and
rose, and revived, that He might be Lord both of the dead and the
living;" [1323] nor shall death retain dominion over him for whom
Christ freely died.
__________________________________________________________________
[1323] Rom. xiv. 9
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 121.--Love is the End of All the Commandments, and God Himself
is Love.
All the commandments of God, then, are embraced in love, of which the
apostle says: "Now the end of the commandment is charity, out of a pure
heart, and of a good conscience, and of faith unfeigned." [1324] Thus
the end of every commandment is charity, that is, every commandment has
love for its aim. But whatever is done either through fear of
punishment or from some other carnal motive, and has not for its
principle that love which the Spirit of God sheds abroad in the heart,
is not done as it ought to be done, however it may appear to men. For
this love embraces both the love of God and the love of our neighbor,
and "on these two commandments hang all the law and the prophets,"
[1325] we may add the Gospel and the apostles. For it is from these
that we hear this voice: The end of the commandment is charity, and God
is love. [1326] Wherefore, all God's commandments, one of which is,
"Thou shalt not commit adultery," [1327] and all those precepts which
are not commandments but special counsels, one of which is, "It is good
for a man not to touch a woman," [1328] are rightly carried out only
when the motive principle of action is the love of God, and the love of
our neighbor in God. And this applies both to the present and the
future life. We love God now by faith, then we shall love Him through
sight. Now we love even our neighbor by faith; for we who are ourselves
mortal know not the hearts of mortal men. But in the future life, the
Lord "both will bring to light the hidden things of darkness, and will
make manifest the counsels of the hearts, and then shall every man have
praise of God;" [1329] for every man shall love and praise in his
neighbor the virtue which, that it may not be hid, the Lord Himself
shall bring to light. Moreover, lust diminishes as love grows, till the
latter grows to such a height that it can grow no higher here. For
"greater love hath no man than this, that a man lay down his life for
his friends." [1330] Who then can tell how great love shall be in the
future world, when there shall be no lust for it to restrain and
conquer? for that will be the perfection of health when there shall be
no struggle with death.
__________________________________________________________________
[1324] 1 Tim. i. 5
[1325] Matt. xxii. 40; comp. Rom. v. 5
[1326] 1 Tim. i. 5; 1 John iv. 16
[1327] Comp. Matt. v. 27 and Rom. xiii. 9
[1328] 1 Cor. vii. 1
[1329] 1 Cor. iv. 5
[1330] John xv. 13
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 122.--Conclusion.
But now there must be an end at last to this volume. And it is for
yourself to judge whether you should call it a hand-book, or should use
it as such. I, however, thinking that your zeal in Christ ought not to
be despised, and believing and hoping all good of you in dependence on
our Redeemer's help, and loving you very much as one of the members of
His body, have, to the best of my ability, written this book for you on
Faith, Hope, and Love. May its value be equal to its length.
__________________________________________________________________
__________________________________________________________________
On the Catechising of the Uninstructed [1331]
In One Book.
Translated by
Rev. S. D. F. Salmond, D.D.,
Professor of Systematic Theology, Free Church College, Aberdeen.
__________________________________________________________________
Introductory Notice.
In the fourteenth chapter of the second book of his Retractations,
Augustin makes the following statement: "There is also a book of ours
on the subject of the Catechising of the Uninstructed, [or, for
Instructing the Unlearned, De Catechizandis Rudibus], that being,
indeed, the express title by which it is designated. In this book,
where I have said, `Neither did the angel, who, in company with other
spirits who were his satellites, forsook in pride the obedience of God,
and became the devil, do any hurt to God, but to himself; for God
knoweth how to dispose of souls that leave Him:' it would be more
appropriate to say, `spirits that leave Him,' inasmuch as the question
dealt with angels. This book commences in these terms: `You have
requested me, brother Deogratias.' "
The composition so described in the passage cited is reviewed by
Augustin in connection with other works which he had in hand about the
year 400 A.D., and may therefore be taken to belong to that date. It
has been conjectured that the person to whom it is addressed may
perhaps be the same with the presbyter Deogratias, to whom, as we read
in the epistle which now ranks as the hundred and second, Augustin
wrote about the year 406, in reply to some questions of the pagans
which were forwarded to him from Carthage.
The Benedictine editors introduce the treatise in the following terms:
"At the request of a deacon of Carthage, Augustin undertakes the task
of teaching the art of catechising; and in the first place, he gives
certain injunctions, to the effect that this kind of duty may be
discharged not only in a settled method and an apt order, but also
without tediousness, and in a spirit of cheerfulness. Thereafter
reducing his injunctions to practical use, he gives an example of what
he means by delivering two set discourses, presenting parallels to each
other, the one being somewhat lengthened and the other very brief, but
both suitable for the instruction of any individual whose desire is to
be a Christian."
[This treatise shows what was thought in the age of Saint Augustin to
be the most needful instruction in religion. The Latin text: De
Cactechizandis Rudibus, is in the sixth vol. of the Benedictine
edition, and in the handy ed. of C. Marriott: S. Augustini Opuscula
quaedam, Oxford and London (Parker & Co.) 4th ed. 1885. An earlier and
closer English Version by Rev. C. L. Cornish, M. A., of Exeter College,
Oxford, appeared in the Oxford "Library of the Fathers" (1847, pp. 187
sqq.,) under the title On Instructing the Unlearned. H. De Romestin
reproduces the Oxford translation in the English version of Marriott's
ed. of five treatises of St. Augustin, Oxford and London, 1885, pp.
1-71.--P.S.]
------------------------
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 1.--How Augustin Writes in Answer to a Favor Asked by a Deacon
of Carthage.
1. You have requested me, brother Deogratias, to send you in writing
something which might be of service to you in the matter of catechising
the uninstructed. For you have informed me that in Carthage, where you
hold the position of a deacon, persons, who have to be taught the
Christian faith from its very rudiments, are frequently brought to you
by reason of your enjoying the reputation of possessing a rich gift in
catechising, due at once to an intimate acquaintance with the faith,
and to an attractive method of discourse; [1332] but that you almost
always find yourself in a difficulty as to the manner in which a
suitable declaration is to be made of the precise doctrine, the belief
of which constitutes us Christians: regarding the point at which our
statement of the same ought to commence, and the limit to which it
should be allowed to proceed: and with respect to the question whether,
when our narration is concluded, we ought to make use of any kind of
exhortation, or simply specify those precepts in the observance of
which the person to whom we are discoursing may know the Christian life
and profession to be maintained. [1333] At the same time, you have made
the confession and complaint that it has often befallen you that in the
course of a lengthened and languid address you have become profitless
and distasteful even to yourself, not to speak of the learner whom you
have been endeavoring to instruct by your utterance, and the other
parties who have been present as hearers; and that you have been
constrained by these straits to put upon me the constraint of that love
which I owe to you, so that I may not feel it a burdensome thing among
all my engagements to write you something on this subject.
2. As for myself then, if, in the exercise of those capacities which
through the bounty of our Lord I am enabled to present, the same Lord
requires me to offer any manner of aid to those whom He has made
brethren to me, I feel constrained not only by that love and service
which is due from me to you on the terms of familiar friendship, but
also by that which I owe universally to my mother the Church, by no
means to refuse the task, but rather to take it up with a prompt and
devoted willingness. For the more extensively I desire to see the
treasure of the Lord [1334] distributed, the more does it become my
duty, if I ascertain that the stewards, who are my fellow-servants,
find any difficulty in laying it out, to do all that lies in my power
to the end that they may be able to accomplish easily and expeditiously
what they sedulously and earnestly aim at.
__________________________________________________________________
[1332] Reading et doctrina fidei et suavitate sermonis, instead of
which, however, et doctrinam...suavitatem, etc. also occurs, =
possessing at once a rich gift in catechising, and an intimate
acquaintance with the faith, and an attractive method of discourse,
[or, sweetness of language].
[1333] Reading retineri as in the mss. Some editions give retinere =
know how to maintain the Christian life and profession.
[1334] Pecuniam Dominicam
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--How It Often Happens that a Discourse Which Gives Pleasure
to the Hearer is Distasteful to the Speaker; And What Explanation is to
Be Offered of that Fact.
3. But as regards the idea thus privately entertained by yourself in
such efforts, I would not have you to be disturbed by the consideration
that you have often appeared to yourself to be delivering a poor and
wearisome discourse. For it may very well be the case that the matter
has not so presented itself to the person whom you were trying to
instruct, but that what you were uttering seemed to you to be unworthy
of the ears of others, simply because it was your own earnest desire
that there should be something better to listen to. Indeed with me,
too, it is almost always the fact that my speech displeases myself. For
I am covetous of something better, the possession of which I frequently
enjoy within me before I commence to body it forth in intelligible
words: [1335] and then when my capacities of expression prove inferior
to my inner apprehensions, I grieve over the inability which my tongue
has betrayed in answering to my heart. For it is my wish that he who
hears me should have the same complete understanding of the subject
which I have myself; and I perceive that I fail to speak in a manner
calculated to effect that, and that this arises mainly from the
circumstance that the intellectual apprehension diffuses itself through
the mind with something like a rapid flash, whereas the utterance is
slow, and occupies time, and is of a vastly different nature, so that,
while this latter is moving on, the intellectual apprehension has
already withdrawn itself within its secret abodes. Yet, in consequence
of its having stamped certain impressions of itself in a marvellous
manner upon the memory, these prints endure with the brief pauses of
the syllables; [1336] and as the outcome of these same impressions we
form intelligible signs, [1337] which get the name of a certain
language, either the Latin, or the Greek, or the Hebrew, or some other.
And these signs may be objects of thought, or they may also be actually
uttered by the voice. On the other hand however, the impressions
themselves are neither Latin, nor Greek, nor Hebrew, nor peculiar to
any other race whatsoever, but are made good in the mind just as looks
are in the body. For anger is designated by one word in Latin, by
another in Greek, and by different terms in other languages, according
to their several diversities. But the look of the angry man is neither
(peculiarly) Latin nor (peculiarly) Greek. Thus it is that when a
person says Iratus sum, [1338] he is not understood by every nation,
but only by the Latins; whereas, if the mood of his mind when it is
kindling to wrath comes forth upon the face and affects the look, all
who have the individual within their view understand that he is angry.
But, again, it is not in our power to bring out those impressions which
the intellectual apprehension stamps upon the memory, and to hold them
forth, as it were, to the perception of the hearers by means of the
sound of the voice, in any manner parallel to the clear and evident
form in which the look appears. For those former are within in the
mind, while this latter is without in the body. Wherefore we have to
surmise how far the sound of our mouth must be from representing that
stroke of the intelligence, seeing that it does not correspond even
with the impression produced upon the memory. Now, it is a common
occurrence with us that, in the ardent desire to effect what is of
profit to our hearer, our aim is to express ourselves to him exactly as
our intellectual apprehension is at the time, when, in the very effort,
we are failing in the ability to speak; and then, because this does not
succeed with us, we are vexed, and we pine in weariness as if we were
applying ourselves to vain labors; and, as the result of this very
weariness, our discourse becomes itself more languid and pointless even
than it was when it first induced such a sense of tediousness.
4. But ofttimes the earnestness of those who are desirous of hearing me
shows me that my utterance is not so frigid as it seems to myself to
be. From the delight, too, which they exhibit, I gather that they
derive some profit from it. And I occupy myself sedulously with the
endeavor not to fail in putting before them a service in which I
perceive them to take in such good part what is put before them. Even,
so, on your side also, the very fact that persons who require to be
instructed in the faith are brought so frequently to you, ought to help
you to understand that your discourse is not displeasing to others as
it is displeasing to yourself; and you ought not to consider yourself
unfruitful, simply because you do not succeed in setting forth in such
a manner as you desire the things which you discern; for, perchance,
you may be just as little able to discern them in the way you wish. For
in this life who sees except as "in an enigma and through a glass"?
[1339] Neither is love itself of might sufficient to rend the darkness
of the flesh, and penetrate into that eternal calm from which even
things which pass away derive the light in which they shine. But
inasmuch as day by day the good are making advances towards the vision
of that day, independent of the rolling sky, [1340] and without the
invasion of the night, "which eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither
hath it entered into the heart of man," [1341] there is no greater
reason why our discourse should become valueless in our own estimate,
when we are engaged in teaching the uninstructed, than this,--namely,
that it is a delight to us to discern in an extraordinary fashion, and
a weariness to speak in an ordinary. And in reality we are listened to
with much greater satisfaction, indeed, when we ourselves also have
pleasure in the same work; for the thread of our address is affected by
the very joy of which we ourselves are sensible, and it proceeds from
us with greater ease and with more acceptance. Consequently, as regards
those matters which are recommended as articles of belief, the task is
not a difficult one to lay down injunctions, with respect to the points
at which the narration should be commenced and ended, or with respect
to the method in which the narration is to be varied, so that at one
time it may be briefer, at another more lengthened, and yet at all
times full and perfect; and, again, with respect to the particular
occasions on which it may be right to use the shorter form, and those
on which it will be proper to employ the longer. But as to the means by
which all is to be done, so that every one may have pleasure in his
work when he catechises (for the better he succeeds in this the more
attractive will he be),--that is what requires the greatest
consideration. And yet we have not far to seek for the precept which
will rule in this sphere. For if, in the matter of carnal means, God
loves a cheerful giver, [1342] how much more so in that of the
spiritual? But our security that this cheerfulness may be with us at
the seasonable hour, is something dependent upon the mercy of Him who
has given us such precepts. Therefore, in accordance with my
understanding of what your own wish is, we shall discuss in the first
place the subject of the method of narration, then that of the duty of
delivering injunction and exhortation, and afterwards that of the
attainment of the said cheerfulness, so far as God may furnish us with
the ideas.
__________________________________________________________________
[1335] Verbis sonantibus,--sounding words.
[1336] Perdurant illa cum syllabarum morulis
[1337] Sonantia signa,--vocal signs.
[1338] I am angry.
[1339] 1 Cor. xiii. 12
[1340] Sine volumine caeli
[1341] 1 Cor. ii. 9
[1342] 2 Cor. ix. 7
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--Of the Full Narration to Be Employed in Catechising.
5. The narration is full when each person is catechised in the first
instance from what is written in the text, "In the beginning God
created the heaven and the earth," [1343] on to the present times of
the Church. This does not imply, however, either that we ought to
repeat by memory the entire Pentateuch, and the entire Books of Judges,
and Kings, and Esdras, [1344] and the entire Gospel and Acts of the
Apostles, if we have learned all these word for word; or that we should
put all the matters which are contained in these volumes into our own
words, and in that manner unfold and expound them as a whole. For
neither does the time admit of that, nor does any necessity demand it.
But what we ought to do is, to give a comprehensive statement of all
things, summarily and generally, so that certain of the more wonderful
facts may be selected which are listened to with superior
gratification, and which have been ranked so remarkably among the exact
turning-points (of the history); [1345] that, instead of exhibiting
them to view only in their wrappings, if we may so speak, and then
instantly snatching them from our sight, we ought to dwell on them for
a certain space, and thus, as it were, unfold them and open them out to
vision, and present them to the minds of the hearers as things to be
examined and admired. But as for all other details, these should be
passed over rapidly, and thus far introduced and woven into the
narrative. The effect of pursuing this plan is, that the particular
facts which we wish to see specially commended to attention obtain
greater prominence in consequence of the others being made to yield to
them; while, at the same time, neither does the learner, whose interest
we are anxious to stimulate by our statement, come to these subjects
with a mind already exhausted, nor is confusion induced upon the memory
of the person whom we ought to be instructing by our teaching.
6. In all things, indeed, not only ought our own eye to be kept fixed
upon the end of the commandment, which is "charity, out of a pure
heart, and a good conscience, and faith unfeigned," [1346] to which we
should make all that we utter refer; but in like manner ought the gaze
of the person whom we are instructing by our utterance to be moved
[1347] toward the same, and guided in that direction. And, in truth,
for no other reason were all those things which we read in the Holy
Scriptures written, previous to the Lord's advent, but for
this,--namely, that His advent might be pressed upon the attention, and
that the Church which was to be, should be intimated beforehand, that
is to say, the people of God throughout all nations; which Church is
His body, wherewith also are united and numbered all the saints who
lived in this world, even before His advent, and who believed then in
His future coming, just as we believe in His past coming. For (to use
an illustration) Jacob, at the time when he was being born, first put
forth from the womb a hand, with which also he held the foot of the
brother who was taking priority of him in the act of birth; and next
indeed the head followed, and thereafter, at last, and as matter of
course, the rest of the members: [1348] while, nevertheless the head in
point of dignity and power has precedence, not only of those members
which followed it then, but also of the very hand which anticipated it
in the process of the birth, and is really the first, although not in
the matter of the time of appearing, at least in the order of nature.
And in an analogous manner, the Lord Jesus Christ, previous to His
appearing in the flesh, and coming forth in a certain manner out of the
womb of His secrecy, before the eyes of men as Man, the Mediator
between God and men, [1349] "who is over all, God blessed for ever,"
[1350] sent before Him, in the person of the holy patriarchs and
prophets, a certain portion of His body, wherewith, as by a hand, He
gave token beforetime of His own approaching birth, and also supplanted
[1351] the people who were prior to Him in their pride, using for that
purpose the bonds of the law, as if they were His five fingers. For
through five epochs of times [1352] there was no cessation in the
foretelling and prophesying of His own destined coming; and in a manner
consonant with this, he through whom the law was given wrote five
books; and proud men, who were carnally minded, and sought to
"establish their own righteousness," [1353] were not filled with
blessing by the open hand of Christ, but were debarred from such good
by the hand compressed and closed; and therefore their feet were tied,
and "they fell, while we are risen, and stand upright." [1354] But
although, as I have said, the Lord Christ did thus send before Him a
certain portion of His body, in the person of those holy men who came
before Him as regards the time of birth, nevertheless He is Himself the
Head of the body, the Church, [1355] and all these have been attached
to that same body of which He is the head, in virtue of their believing
in Him whom they announced prophetically. For they were not sundered
(from that body) in consequence of fulfilling their course before Him,
but rather were they made one with the same by reason of their
obedience. For although the hand may be put forward away before the
head, still it has its connection beneath the head. Wherefore all
things which were written aforetime were written in order that we might
be taught thereby, [1356] and were our figures, and happened in a
figure in the case of these men. Moreover they were written for our
sakes, upon whom the end of the ages has come. [1357]
__________________________________________________________________
[1343] Gen. i. 1
[1344] In the mss. we also find the reading Ezrae = Ezra.
[1345] In ipsis articulis = "among the very articles," or "connecting
links." Reference is made to certain great epochs or articles of time
in sections 6 and 39.
[1346] 1 Tim. i. 5
[1347] Reading movendus, for which monendus = to be admonished, also
occurs in the editions.
[1348] Gen. xxv. 26
[1349] 1 Tim. ii. 5
[1350] Rom. ix. 5
[1351] Reading supplantavit. Some mss. give supplantaret = wherewith
also He might supplant, etc.
[1352] Temporum articulos
[1353] Rom. x. 3
[1354] Ps. xx. 8
[1355] Col. i. 18
[1356] Rom. xv. 4
[1357] 1 Cor. x. 11
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 4.--That the Great Reason for the Advent of Christ Was the
Commendation of Love.
7. Moreover, what greater reason is apparent for the advent of the Lord
than that God might show His love in us, commending it powerfully,
inasmuch as "while we were yet sinners, Christ died for us"? [1358] And
furthermore, this is with the intent that, inasmuch as charity is "the
end of the commandment," [1359] and "the fulfilling of the law," [1360]
we also may love one another and lay down our life for the brethren,
even as He laid down His life for us. [1361] And with regard to God
Himself, its object is that, even if it were an irksome task to love
Him, it may now at least cease to be irksome for us to return His love,
seeing that "He first loved us," [1362] and "spared not His own only
Son, but delivered Him up for us all." [1363] For there is no mightier
invitation to love than to anticipate in loving; and that soul is over
hard which, supposing it unwilling indeed to give love, is unwilling
also to give the return of love. But if, even in the case of criminal
and sordid loves, we see how those who desire to be loved in return
make it their special and absorbing business, by such proofs as are
within their power, to render the strength of the love which they
themselves bear plain and patent; if we also perceive how they affect
to put forward an appearance of justice in what they thus offer, such
as may qualify them in some sort to demand that a response be made in
all fairness to them on the part of those souls which they are laboring
to beguile; if, further, their own passion burns more vehemently when
they observe that the minds which they are eager to possess are also
moved now by the same fire: if thus, I say, it happens at once that the
soul which before was torpid is excited so soon as it feels itself to
be loved, and that the soul which was enkindled already becomes the
more inflamed so soon as it is made cognizant of the return of its own
love, it is evident that no greater reason is to be found why love
should be either originated or enlarged, than what appears in the
occasion when one who as yet loves not at all comes to know himself to
be the object of love, or when one who is already a lover either hopes
that he may yet be loved in turn, or has by this time the evidence of a
response to his affection. And if this holds good even in the case of
base loves, how much more [1364] in (true) friendship? For what else
have we carefully to attend to in this question touching the injuring
of friendship than to this, namely, not to give our friend cause to
suppose either that we do not love him at all, or that we love him less
than he loves us? If, indeed, he is led to entertain this belief, he
will be cooler in that love in which men enjoy the interchange of
intimacies one with another; and if he is not of that weak type of
character to which such an offense to affection will serve as a cause
of freezing off from love altogether, he yet confines himself to that
kind of affection in which he loves, not with the view of enjoyment to
himself, but with the idea of studying the good of others. But again it
is worth our while to notice how,--although superiors also have the
wish to be loved by their inferiors, and are gratified with the zealous
attention [1365] paid to them by such, and themselves cherish greater
affection towards these inferiors the more they become cognizant of
that,--with what might of love, nevertheless, the inferior kindles so
soon as he learns that he is beloved by his superior. For there have we
love in its more grateful aspect, where it does not consume itself
[1366] in the drought of want, but flows forth in the plenteousness of
beneficence. For the former type of love is of misery, the latter of
mercy. [1367] And furthermore, if the inferior was despairing even of
the possibility of his being loved by his superior, he will now be
inexpressibly moved to love if the superior has of his own will
condescended to show how much he loves this person who could by no
means be bold enough to promise himself so great a good. But what is
there superior to God in the character of Judge? and what more
desperate than man in the character of sinner?--than man, I ask, who
had given himself all the more unreservedly up to the wardship and
domination of proud powers which are unable to make him blessed, as he
had come more absolutely to despair of the possibility of his being an
object of interest to that power which wills not to be exalted in
wickedness, but is exalted in goodness.
8. If, therefore, it was mainly for this purpose that Christ came, to
wit, that man might learn how much God loves him; and that he might
learn this, to the intent that he might be kindled to the love of Him
by whom he was first loved, and might also love his neighbor at the
command and showing of Him who became our neighbor, in that He loved
man when, instead of being a neighbor to Him, he was sojourning far
apart: if, again, all divine Scripture, which was written aforetime,
was written with the view of presignifying the Lord's advent; and if
whatever has been committed to writing in times subsequent to these,
and established by divine authority, is a record of Christ, and
admonishes us of love, it is manifest that on those two commandments of
love to God and love to our neighbor [1368] hang not only all the law
and the prophets, which at the time when the Lord spoke to that effect
were as yet the only Holy Scripture, but also all those books of the
divine literature which have been written [1369] at a later period for
our health, and consigned to remembrance. Wherefore, in the Old
Testament there is a veiling of the New, and in the New Testament there
is a revealing of the Old. According to that veiling, carnal men,
understanding things in a carnal fashion, have been under the dominion,
both then and now, of a penal fear. According to this revealing, on the
other hand, spiritual men,--among whom we reckon at once those then who
knocked in piety and found even hidden things opened to them, and
others now who seek in no spirit of pride, lest even things uncovered
should be closed to them,--understanding in a spiritual fashion, have
been made free through the love wherewith they have been gifted.
Consequently, inasmuch as there is nothing more adverse to love than
envy, and as pride is the mother of envy, the same Lord Jesus Christ,
God-man, is both a manifestation of divine love towards us, and an
example of human humility with us, to the end that our great swelling
might be cured by a greater counteracting remedy. For here is great
misery, proud man! But there is greater mercy, a humble God! Take this
love, therefore, as the end that is set before you, to which you are to
refer all that you say, and, whatever you narrate, narrate it in such a
manner that he to whom you are discoursing on hearing may believe, on
believing may hope, on hoping may love.
__________________________________________________________________
[1358] Rom. v. 8, 10
[1359] 1 Tim. i. 5
[1360] Rom. xiii. 10
[1361] 1 John iii. 16
[1362] 1 John iv. 10, 19
[1363] Rom. viii. 32
[1364] Reading quanto plus, for which some mss. give plurius, while in
a large number we find purius = with how much greater purity should it
hold good, etc.
[1365] Reading studioso...obsequio, for which studiose, etc., also
occurs in the editions = are earnestly gratified with the attention,
etc.
[1366] AEstuat= burn, heave.
[1367] Ex miseria...ex misericordia
[1368] Matt. xxii. 40
[1369] Reading conscripta, for which some mss. have consecuta = have
followed, and many give consecrata, dedicated.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 5.--That the Person Who Comes for Catechetical Instruction is
to Be Examined with Respect to His Views, on Desiring to Become a
Christian.
9. Moreover, it is on the gound of that very severity of God, [1370] by
which the hearts of mortals are agitated with a most wholesome terror,
that love is to be built up; so that, rejoicing that he is loved by Him
whom he fears, man may have boldness to love Him in return, and yet at
the same time be afraid to displease His love toward himself, even
should he be able to do so with impunity. For certainly it very rarely
happens, nay, I should rather say, never, that any one approaches us
with the wish to become a Christian who has not been smitten with some
sort of fear of God. For if it is in the expectation of some advantage
from men whom he deems himself unlikely to please in any other way, or
with the idea of escaping any disadvantage at the hands of men of whose
displeasure or hostility he is seriously afraid, that a man wishes to
become a Christian, then his wish to become one is not so earnest as
his desire to feign one. [1371] For faith is not a matter of the body
which does obeisance, [1372] but of the mind which believes. But
unmistakeably it is often the case that the mercy of God comes to be
present through the ministry of the catechiser, so that, affected by
the discourse, the man now wishes to become in reality that which he
had made up his mind only to feign. And so soon as he begins to have
this manner of desire, we may judge him then to have made a genuine
approach to us. It is true, indeed, that the precise time when a man,
whom we perceive to be present with us already in the body, comes to us
in reality with his mind, [1373] is a thing hidden from us. But,
notwithstanding that, we ought to deal with him in such a manner that
this wish may be made to arise within him, even should it not be there
at present. For no such labor is lost, inasmuch as, if there is any
wish at all, it is assuredly strengthened by such action on our part,
although we may be ignorant of the time or the hour at which it began.
It is useful certainly, if it can be done, to get from those who know
the man some idea beforehand of the state of mind in which he is, or of
the causes which have induced him to come with the view of embracing
religion. But if there is no other person available from whom we may
gather such information, then, indeed, the man himself is to be
interrogated, so that from what he says in reply we may draw the
beginning of our discourse. Now if he has come with a false heart,
desirous only of human advantages or thinking to escape disadvantages,
he will certainly speak what is untrue. Nevertheless, the very untruth
which he utters should be made the point from which we start. This
should not be done, however, with the (open) intention of confuting his
falsehood, as if that were a settled matter with you; but, taking it
for granted that he has professed to have come with a purpose which is
really worthy of approbation (whether that profession be true or
false), it should rather be our aim to commend and praise such a
purpose as that with which, in his reply, he has declared himself to
have come; so that we may make him feel it a pleasure to be the kind of
man actually that he wishes to seem to be. On the other hand, supposing
him to have given a declaration of his views other than what ought to
be before the mind of one who is to be instructed in the Christian
faith, then by reproving him with more than usual kindness and
gentleness, as a person uninstructed and ignorant, by pointing out and
commending, concisely and in a grave spirit the end of Christian
doctrine in its genuine reality, and by doing all this in such a manner
as neither to anticipate the times of a narration, which should be
given subsequently, nor to venture to impose that kind of statement
upon a mind not previously set for it, you may bring him to desire that
which, either in mistake or in dissimulation, he has not been desiring
up to this stage.
__________________________________________________________________
[1370] De ipsa etiam severitate Dei...caritas aedificanda est
[1371] Non fieri vult potius quam fingere
[1372] Or = "signifying assent by its motions," adopting the reading of
the best mss., viz. salutantis corporis. Some editions give salvandi,
while certain mss. have salutis, and others saltantis.
[1373] Reading quando veniat animo, for which quo veniat animo also
occurs = the mind in which a man comes...is a matter hidden from us.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 6.--Of the Way to Commence the Catechetical Instruction, and of
the Narration of Facts from the History of the World's Creation on to
the Present Times of the Church.
10. But if it happens that his answer is to the effect that he has met
with some divine warning, or with some divine terror, prompting him to
become a Christian, this opens up the way most satisfactorily for a
commencement to our discourse, by suggesting the greatness of God's
interest in us. His thoughts, however, ought certainly to be turned
away from this line of things, whether miracles or dreams, and directed
to the more solid path and the surer oracles of the Scriptures; so that
he may also come to understand how mercifully that warning was
administered to him in advance, [1374] previous to his giving himself
to the Holy Scriptures. And assuredly it ought to be pointed out to
him, that the Lord Himself would neither thus have admonished him and
urged him on to become a Christian, and to be incorporated into the
Church, nor have taught him by such signs or revelations, had it not
been His will that, for his greater safety and security, he should
enter upon a pathway already prepared in the Holy Scriptures, in which
he should not seek after visible miracles, but learn the habit of
hoping for things invisible, and in which also he should receive
monitions not in sleep but in wakefulness. At this point the narration
ought now to be commenced, which should start with the fact that God
made all things very good, [1375] and which should be continued, as we
have said, on to the present times of the Church. This should be done
in such a manner as to give, for each of the affairs and events which
we relate, causes and reasons by which we may refer them severally to
that end of love from which neither the eye of the man who is occupied
in doing anything, nor that of the man who is engaged in speaking,
ought to be turned away. For if, even in handling the fables of the
poets, which are but fictitious creations and things devised for the
pleasure [1376] of minds whose food is found in trifles, those
grammarians who have the reputation and the name of being good do
nevertheless endeavor to bring them to bear upon some kind of (assumed)
use, although that use itself may be only something vain and grossly
bent upon the coarse nutriment of this world: [1377] how much more
careful does it become us to be, not to let those genuine verities
which we narrate, in consequence of any want of a well-considered
account of their causes, be accepted either with a gratification which
issues in no practical good, or, still less, with a cupidity which may
prove hurtful! At the same time, we are not to set forth these causes
in such a manner as to leave the proper course of our narration, and
let our heart and our tongue indulge in digressions into the knotty
questions of more intricate discussion. But the simple truth of the
explanation which we adduce [1378] ought to be like the gold which
binds together a row of gems, and yet does not interfere with the
choice symmetry of the ornament by any undue intrusion of itself.
[1379]
__________________________________________________________________
[1374] Praerogata sit
[1375] Gen. i. 31
[1376] Reading ad voluptatem. But many mss. give ad voluntatem =
according to the inclination, etc.
[1377] Avidam saginae soecularis
[1378] Reading veritas adhibitoe rationis, for which we also find
adhibita rationis = the applied truth, etc.; and adhibita rationi = the
truth applied to our explanation.
[1379] Non tamen ornamenti seriem ulla immoderatione perturbans
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 7.--Of the Exposition of the Resurrection, the Judgment, and
Other Subjects, Which Should Follow This Narration.
11. On the completion of this narration, the hope of the resurrection
should be set forth, and, so far as the capacity and strength of the
hearer will bear it, and so far also as the measure of time at our
disposal will allow, we ought to handle our arguments against the vain
scoffings of unbelievers on the subject of the resurrection of the
body, as well as on that of the future judgment, with its goodness in
relation to the good, its severity in relation to the evil, its truth
in relation to all. And after the penalties of the impious have thus
been declared with detestation and horror, then the kingdom of the
righteous and faithful, and that supernal city and its joy, should form
the next themes for our discourse. At this point, moreover, we ought to
equip and animate the weakness of man in withstanding temptations and
offenses, whether these emerge without or rise within the church
itself; without, as in opposition to Gentiles, or Jews, or heretics;
within, on the other hand, as in opposition to the chaff of the Lord's
threshing-floor. It is not meant, however, that we are to dispute
against each several type of perverse men, and that all their wrong
opinions are to be refuted by set arrays of argumentations: but, in a
manner suitable to a limited allowance of time, we ought to show how
all this was foretold, and to point out of what service temptations are
in the training of the faithful, and what relief [1380] there is in the
example of the patience of God, who has resolved to permit them even to
the end. But, again, while he is being furnished against these
(adversaries), whose perverse multitudes fill the churches so far as
bodily presence is concerned, the precepts of a Christian and honorable
manner of life should also be briefly and befittingly detailed at the
same time, to the intent that he may neither allow himself to be easily
led astray in this way, by any who are drunkards, covetous, fraudulent,
gamesters, adulterers, fornicators, lovers of public spectacles,
wearers of unholy charms, sorcerers, astrologers, or diviners
practising any sort of vain and wicked arts, and all other parties of a
similar character; nor to let himself fancy that any such course may be
followed with impunity on his part, simply because he sees many who are
called Christians loving these things, and engaging themselves with
them, and defending them, and recommending them, and actually
persuading others to their use. For as to the end which is appointed
for those who persist in such a mode of life, and as to the method in
which they are to be borne with in the church itself, out of which they
are destined to be separated in the end,--these are subjects in which
the learner ought to be instructed by means of the testimonies of the
divine books. He should also, however, be informed beforehand that he
will find in the church many good Christians, most genuine citizens of
the heavenly Jerusalem, if he sets about being such himself. And,
finally, he must be sedulously warned against letting his hope rest on
man. For it is not a matter that can be easily judged by man, what man
is righteous. And even were this a matter which could be easily done,
still the object with which the examples of righteous men are set
before us is not that we may be justified by them, but that, as we
imitate them, we may understand how we ourselves also are justified by
their Justifier. For the issue of this will be something which must
merit the highest approval,--namely this, that when the person who is
hearing us, or rather, who is hearing God by us, has begun to make some
progress in moral qualities and in knowledge, and to enter upon the way
of Christ with ardor, he will not be so bold as to ascribe the change
either to us or to himself; but he will love both himself and us, and
whatever other persons he loves as friends, in Him, and for His sake
who loved him when he was an enemy, in order that He might justify him
and make him a friend. And now that we have advanced thus far, I do not
think that you need any preceptor to tell you how you should discuss
matters briefly, when either your own time or that of those who are
hearing you is occupied; and how, on the other hand, you should
discourse at greater length when there is more time at your command.
For the very necessity of the case recommends this, apart from the
counsel of any adviser.
__________________________________________________________________
[1380] Medicina
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 8.--Of the Method to Be Pursued in Catechising Those Who Have
Had a Liberal Education.
12. But there is another case which evidently must not be overlooked. I
mean the case of one coming to you to receive catchetical instruction
who has cultivated the field of liberal studies, who has already made
up his mind to be a Christian, and who has betaken himself to you for
the express purpose of becoming one. It can scarcely fail to be the
fact that a person of this character has already acquired a
considerable knowledge of our Scriptures and literature; and, furnished
with this, he may have come now simply with the view of being made a
partaker in the sacraments. For it is customary with men of this class
to inquire carefully into all things, not at the very time when they
are made Christians, but previous to that, and thus early also to
communicate and reason, with any whom they can reach, on the subject of
the feelings of their own minds. Consequently a brief method of
procedure should be adopted with these, so as not to inculcate on them,
in an odious fashion [1381] things which they know already, but to pass
over these with a light and modest touch. Thus we should say how we
believe that they are already familiar with this and the other subject,
and that we therefore simply reckon up in a cursory manner all those
facts which require to be formally urged upon the attention of the
uninstructed and unlearned. And we should endeavor so to proceed, that,
supposing this man of culture to have been previously acquainted with
any one of our themes, he may not hear it now as from a teacher; and
that, in the event of his being still ignorant of any of them, he may
yet learn the same while we are going over the things with which we
understand him to be already familiar. Moreover, it is certainly not
without advantage to interrogate the man himself as to the means by
which he was induced to desire to be a Christian; so that, if you
discover him to have been moved to that decision by books, whether they
be the canonical writings or the compositions of literary men worth the
studying, [1382] you may say something about these at the outset,
expressing your approbation of them in a manner which may suit the
distinct merits which they severally possess, in respect of canonical
authority and of skillfully applied diligence on the part of these
expounders; [1383] and, in the case of the canonical Scriptures,
commending above all the most salutary modesty (of language) displayed
alongside their wonderful loftiness (of subject); while, in those other
productions you notice, in accordance with the characteristic faculty
of each several writer, a style of a more sonorous and, as it were more
rounded eloquence adapted to minds that are prouder, and, by reason
thereof weaker. We should certainly also elicit from him some account
of himself, so that he may give us to understand what writer he chiefly
perused, and with what books he was more familiarly conversant, as
these were the means of moving him to wish to be associated with the
church. And when he has given us this information, then if the said
books are known to us, or if we have at least ecclesiastical report as
our warrant for taking them to have been written by some catholic man
of note, we should joyfully express our approbation. But if, on the
other hand, he has fallen upon the productions of some heretic and in
ignorance, it may be, has retained in his mind anything which [1384]
the true faith condemns, and yet supposes it to be catholic doctrine,
then we must set ourselves sedulously to teach him, bringing before him
(in its rightful superiority) the authority of the Church universal,
and of other most learned men reputed both for their disputations and
for their writings in (the cause of) its truth. [1385] At the same
time, it is to be admitted that even those who have departed this life
as genuine catholics, and have left to posterity some Christian
writings, in certain passages of their small works, either in
consequence of their failing to be understood, or (as the way is with
human infirmity) because they lack ability to pierce into the deeper
mysteries with the eye of the mind, and in (pursuing) the semblance of
what is true, wander from the truth itself, have proved an occasion to
the presumptuous and audacious for constructing and generating some
heresy. This, however, is not to be wondered at, when, even in the
instance of the canonical writings themselves, where all things have
been expressed in the soundest manner, we see how it has happened,--not
indeed through merely taking certain passages in a sense different from
that which the writer had in view or which is consistent with the truth
itself, (for if this were all, who would not gladly pardon human
infirmity, when it exhibits a readiness to accept correction?), but by
persistently defending, with the bitterest vehemence and in impudent
arrogance, opinions which they have taken up in perversity and
error,--many have given birth to many pernicious dogmas at the cost of
rending the unity of the (Christian) communion. All these subjects we
should discuss in modest conference with the individual who makes his
approach to the society of the Christian people, not in the character
of an uneducated man, [1386] as they say, but in that of one who has
passed through a finished culture and training in the books of the
learned. And in enjoining him to guard against the errors of
presumption, we should assume only so much authority as that humility
of his, which induced him to come to us, is now felt to admit of. As to
other things, moreover, in accordance with the rules of saving
doctrine, which require to be narrated or discussed, whether they be
matters relating to the faith, or questions bearing on the moral life,
or others dealing with temptations, all these should be gone through in
the manner which I have indicated, and ought therein to be referred to
the more excellent way (already noticed). [1387]
__________________________________________________________________
[1381] Reading odiose, for which several mss. give otiose = idly.
[1382] Utilium tractatorum
[1383] Reading exponentium. Various codices give ad exponendum = in
expounding.
[1384] Reading quod, with Marriott. But if we accept quod with the
Benedictine editors, the sense will = and in ignorance it may be that
the true faith condemns them, has retained them in his mind.
[1385] Aliorumque doctissimorum hominum et disputationibus et
scriptionibus in ejus veritate florentium. It may also be = bringing
before him the authority of the Church universal, as well as both the
disputations and the writings of other most learned men well reputed in
(the cause of) its truth.
[1386] Idiota
[1387] 1 Cor. xii. 31. See also above, S: 9.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 9.--Of the Method in Which Grammarians and Professional
Speakers are to Be Dealt with.
13. There are also some who come from the commonest schools of the
grammarians and professional speakers, whom you may not venture to
reckon either among the uneducated or among those very learned classes
whose minds have been exercised in questions of real magnitude. When
such persons, therefore, who appear to be superior to the rest of
mankind, so far as the art of speaking is concerned, approach you with
the view of becoming Christians, it will be your duty in your
communications with them, in a higher degree than in your dealings with
those other illiterate hearers, to make it plain that they are to be
diligently admonished to clothe themselves with Christian humility, and
learn not to despise individuals whom they may discover keeping
themselves free from vices of conduct more carefully than from faults
of language; and also that they ought not to presume so much as to
compare with a pure heart the practised tongue which they were
accustomed even to put in preference. But above all, such persons
should be taught to listen to the divine Scriptures, so that they may
neither deem solid eloquence to be mean, merely because it is not
inflated, nor suppose that the words or deeds of men, of which we read
the accounts in those books, involved and covered as they are in carnal
wrappings, [1388] are not to be drawn forth and unfolded with a view to
an (adequate) understanding of them, but are to be taken merely
according to the sound of the letter. And as to this same matter of the
utility of the hidden meaning, the existence of which is the reason why
they are called also mysteries, the power wielded by these intricacies
of enigmatical utterances in the way of sharpening our love for the
truth, and shaking off the torpor of weariness, is a thing which the
persons in question must have made good to them by actual experience,
when some subject which failed to move them when it was placed baldly
before them, has its significance elicited by the detailed working out
of an allegorical sense. For it is in the highest degree useful to such
men to come to know how ideas are to be preferred to words, just as the
soul is preferred to the body. And from this, too, it follows that they
ought to have the desire to listen to discourses remarkable for their
truth, rather than to those which are notable for their eloquence; just
as they ought to be anxious to have friends distinguished for their
wisdom, rather than those whose chief merit is their beauty. They
should also understand that there is no voice for the ears of God save
the affection of the soul. For thus they will not act the mocker if
they happen to observe any of the prelates and ministers of the Church
either calling upon God in language marked by barbarisms and solecisms,
or failing in understanding correctly the very words which they are
pronouncing, and making confused pauses. [1389] It is not meant, of
course, that such faults are not to be corrected, so that the people
may say "Amen" to something which they plainly understand; but what is
intended is, that such things should be piously borne with by those who
have come to understand how, as in the forum it is in the sound, so in
the church it is in the desire that the grace of speech resides. [1390]
Therefore that of the forum may sometimes be called good speech, but
never gracious speech. [1391] Moreover, with respect to the sacrament
which they are about to receive, it is enough for the more intelligent
simply to hear what the thing signifies. But with those of slower
intellect, it will be necessary to adopt a somewhat more detailed
explanation, together with the use of similitudes, to prevent them from
despising what they see.
__________________________________________________________________
[1388] Carnalibus integumentis involuta atque operta
[1389] Or = confusing the sense by false pauses: perturbateque
distinguere.
[1390] Ut sono in foro, sic voto in ecclesia benedici
[1391] Bona dictio, nunquam tamen benedictio
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 10.--Of the Attainment of Cheerfulness in the Duty of
Catechising, and of Various Causes Producing Weariness in the
Catechumen.
14. At this point you perhaps desiderate some example of the kind of
discourse intended, so that I may show you by an actual instance how
the things which I have recommended are to be done. This indeed I shall
do, so far as by God's help I shall be able. But before proceeding to
that, it is my duty, in consistency with what I have promised, to speak
of the acquisition of the cheerfulness (to which I have alluded). For
as regards the matter of the rules in accordance with which your
discourse should be set forth, in the case of the catechetical
instruction of a person who comes with the express view of being made a
Christian, I have already made good, as far as has appeared sufficient,
the promise which I made. And surely I am under no obligation at the
same time to do myself in this volume that which I enjoin as the right
thing to be done. Consequently, if I do that, it will have the value of
an overplus. But how can the overplus be super-added by me before I
have filled up the measure of what is due? Besides, one thing which I
have heard you make the subject of your complaint above all others, is
the fact that your discourse seemed to yourself to be poor and
spiritless when you were instructing any one in the Christian name. Now
this, I know, results not so much from want of matter to say, with
which I am well aware you are sufficiently provided and furnished, or
from poverty of speech itself, as rather from weariness of mind. And
that may spring either from the cause of which I have already spoken,
namely, the fact that our intelligence is better pleased and more
thoroughly arrested by that which we perceive in silence in the mind,
and that we have no inclination to have our attention called off from
it to a noise of words coming far short of representing it; or from the
circumstance that even when discourse is pleasant, we have more delight
in hearing or reading things which have been expressed in a superior
manner, and which are set forth without any care or anxiety on our
part, than in putting together, with a view to the comprehension of
others, words suddenly conceived, and leaving it an uncertain issue, on
the one hand, whether such terms occur to us as adequately represent
the sense, and on the other, whether they be accepted in such a manner
as to profit; or yet again, from the consideration that, in consequence
of their being now thoroughly familiar to ourselves, and no longer
necessary to our own advancement, it becomes irksome to us to be
recurring very frequently to those matters which are urged upon the
uninstructed, and our mind, as being by this time pretty well matured,
moves with no manner of pleasure in the circle of subjects so
well-worn, and, as it were, so childish. A sense of weariness is also
induced upon the speaker when he has a hearer who remains unmoved,
either in that he is actually not stirred by any feeling, or in that he
does not indicate by any motion of the body that he understands or that
he is pleased with what is said. [1392] Not that it is a becoming
disposition in us to be greedy of the praises of men, but that the
things which we minister are of God; and the more we love those to whom
we discourse, the more desirous are we that they should be pleased with
the matters which are held forth for their salvation: so that if we do
not succeed in this, we are pained, and we are weakened, and become
broken-spirited in the midst of our course, as if we were wasting our
efforts to no purpose. Sometimes, too, when we are drawn off from some
matter which we are desirous to go on with, and the transaction of
which was a pleasure to us, or appeared to be more than usually
needful, and when we are compelled, either by the command of a person
whom we are unwilling to offend, or by the importunity of some parties
that we find it impossible to get rid of, to instruct any one
catechetically, in such circumstances we approach a duty for which
great calmness is indispensable with minds already perturbed, and
grieving at once that we are not permitted to keep that order which we
desire to observe in our actions, and that we cannot possibly be
competent for all things; and thus out of very heaviness our discourse
as it advances is less of an attraction, because, starting from the
arid soil of dejection, it goes on less flowingly. Sometimes, too,
sadness has taken possession of our heart in consequence of some
offense or other, and at that very time we are addressed thus: "Come,
speak with this person; he desires to become a Christian." For they who
thus address us do it in ignorance of the hidden trouble which is
consuming us within. So it happens that, if they are not the persons to
whom it befits us to open up our feelings, we undertake with no sense
of pleasure what they desire; and then, certainly, the discourse will
be languid and unenjoyable which is transmitted through the agitated
and fuming channel of a heart in that condition. Consequently, seeing
there are so many causes serving to cloud the calm serenity of our
minds, in accordance with God's will we must seek remedies for them,
such as may bring us relief from these feelings of heaviness, and help
us to rejoice in fervor of spirit, and to be jocund in the tranquility
of a good work. "For God loveth a cheerful giver." [1393]
15. Now if the cause of our sadness lies in the circumstance that our
hearer does not apprehend what we mean, so that we have to come down in
a certain fashion from the elevation of our own conceptions, and are
under the necessity of dwelling long in the tedious processes of
syllables which come far beneath the standard of our ideas, and have
anxiously to consider how that which we ourselves take in with a most
rapid draught of mental apprehension is to be given forth by the mouth
of flesh in the long and perplexed intricacies of its method of
enunciation; and if the great dissimilarity thus felt (between our
utterance and our thought) makes it distasteful to us to speak, and a
pleasure to us to keep silence, then let us ponder what has been set
before us by Him who has "showed us an example that we should follow
His steps." [1394] For however much our articulate speech may differ
from the vivacity of our intelligence, much greater is the difference
of the flesh of mortality from the equality of God. And, neverless,
"although He was in the same form, He emptied Himself, taking the form
of a servant,"--and so on down to the words "the death of the cross."
[1395] What is the explanation of this but that He made Himself "weak
to the weak, in order that He might gain the weak?" [1396] Listen to
His follower as he expresses himself also in another place to this
effect: "For whether we be beside ourselves, it is to God; or whether
we be sober, it is for your cause. For the love of Christ constraineth
us, because we thus judge that He died for all." [1397] And how,
indeed, should one be ready to be spent for their souls, [1398] if he
should find it irksome to him to bend himself to their ears? For this
reason, therefore, He became a little child in the midst of us, (and)
like a nurse cherishing her children. [1399] For is it a pleasure to
lisp shortened and broken words, unless love invites us? And yet men
desire to have infants to whom they have to do that kind of service;
and it is a sweeter thing to a mother to put small morsels of
masticated food into her little son's mouth, than to eat up and devour
larger pieces herself. In like manner, accordingly, let not the thought
of the hen [1400] recede from your heart, who covers her tender brood
with her drooping feathers, and with broken voice calls her chirping
young ones to her, while they that turn away from her fostering wings
in their pride become a prey to birds. For if intelligence brings
delights in its purest recesses, it should also be a delight to us to
have an intelligent understanding of the manner in which charity, the
more complaisantly it descends to the lowest objects, finds its way
back, with all the greater vigor to those that are most secret, along
the course of a good conscience which witnesses that it has sought
nothing from those to whom it has descended except their everlasting
salvation.
__________________________________________________________________
[1392] The sentence, "either in that he is actually not stirred...by
what is said," is omitted in many mss.
[1393] 2 Cor. ix. 7
[1394] 1 Pet. ii. 21
[1395] Phil. ii. 17. The form in which the quotation is given above,
with the omission of the intermediate clauses, is due probably to the
copyist, and not to Augustin himself. The words left out are given thus
in the Serm. XLVII on Ezekiel xxxiv.: "Being made in the likeness of
men, and being found in the fashion of a man: He humbled Himself, being
made obedient unto death, even the death of the cross." [See R.V.]
[1396] Cf. 1 Cor. ix. 22
[1397] 2 Cor. v. 13, 14
[1398] Cf. 2 Cor. xii. 15
[1399] Cf. 1 Thess. ii. 7
[1400] Illius gallinoe,--in reference to Matt. xxiii. 37
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 11.--Of the Remedy for the Second Source of Weariness.
16. If, however, it is rather our desire to read or hear such things as
are already prepared for our use and expressed in a superior style, and
if the consequence is that we feel it irksome to put together, at the
time and with an uncertain issue, the terms of discourse on our own
side, then, provided only that our mind does not wander off from the
truth of the facts themselves, it is an easy matter for the hearer, if
he is offended by anything in our language, to come to see in that very
circumstance how little value should be set, supposing the subject
itself to be rightly understood, upon the mere fact that there may have
been some imperfection or some inaccuracy in the literal expressions,
which were employed indeed simply with the view of securing a correct
apprehension of the subject-matter. But if the bent of human infirmity
has wandered off from the truth of the facts themselves,--although in
the catechetical instruction of the unlearned, where we have to keep by
the most beaten track, that cannot occur very readily,--still, lest
haply it should turn out that our hearer finds cause of offence even in
this direction, we ought not to deem this to have come upon us in any
other way than as the issue of God's own wish to put us to the test
with respect to our readiness to receive correction in calmness of
mind, so as not to rush headlong, in the course of a still greater
error, into the defense of our error. But if, again, no one has told us
of it, and if the thing has altogether escaped our own notice, as well
as the observation of our hearers, then there is nothing to grieve
over, provided only the same thing does not occur a second time. For
the most part, however, when we recall what we have said, we ourselves
discover something to find fault with, and are ignorant of the manner
in which it was received when it was uttered; and so when charity is
fervent within us, we are the more vexed if the thing, while really
false, has been received with unquestioning acceptance. This being the
case, then, whenever an opportunity occurs, as we have been finding
fault with ourselves in silence, we ought in like manner to see to it
that those persons be also set right on the subject in a considerate
method, who have fallen into some sort of error, not by the words of
God, but plainly by those used by us. If, on the other hand, there are
any who, blinded by insensate spite, rejoice that we have committed a
mistake, whisperers as they are, and slanderers, and "hateful to God,"
[1401] such characters should afford us matter for the exercise of
patience with pity, inasmuch as also the "patience of God leadeth them
to repentance." [1402] For what is more detestable, and what more
likely to "treasure up wrath in the day of wrath and revelation of the
righteous judgment of God," [1403] than to rejoice, after the evil
likeness and pattern of the devil, in the evil of another? At times,
too, even when all is correctly and truly spoken, either something
which has not been understood, or something which, as being opposed to
the idea and wont of an old error, seems harsh in its very novelty,
offends and disturbs the hearer. But if this becomes apparent, and if
the person shows himself capable of being set right, he should be set
right without any delay by the use of abundance of authorities and
reasons. On the other hand, if the offense is tacit and hidden, the
medicine of God is the effective remedy for it. And if, again, the
person starts back and declines to be cured, we should comfort
ourselves with that example of our Lord, who, when men were offended at
His word, and shrank from it as a hard saying, addressed Himself at the
same time to those who had remained, in these terms, "Will ye also go
away?" [1404] For it ought to be retained as a thoroughly "fixed and
immovable" position in our heart, that Jerusalem which is in captivity
is set free from the Babylon of this world when the times have run
their course, and that none belonging to her shall perish: for whoever
may perish was not of her. "For the foundation of God standeth sure,
having this seal, The Lord knoweth them that are His; and, let every
one that nameth the name of Christ depart from iniquity." [1405] If we
ponder these things, and call upon the Lord to come into our heart, we
shall be less apprehensive of the uncertain issues of our discourse,
consequent on the uncertain feelings of our hearers; and the very
endurance of vexations in the cause of a work of mercy will also be
something pleasant to us, if we seek not our own glory in the same. For
then is a work truly good, when the aim of the doer gets its impetus
from charity, [1406] and, as if returning to its own place, rests again
in charity. Moreover, the reading which delights us, or any listening
to an eloquence superior to our own, the effect of which is to make us
inclined to set a greater value upon it than upon the discourse which
we ourselves have to deliver, and so to lead us to speak with a
reluctant or tedious utterance, will come upon us in a happier spirit,
and will be found to be more enjoyable after labor. Then, too, with a
stronger confidence shall we pray to God to speak to us as we wish, if
we cheerfully submit to let Him speak by us as we are able. Thus is it
brought about that all things come together for good to them that love
God. [1407]
__________________________________________________________________
[1401] Cf. Rom. i. 30
[1402] Rom. ii. 4. [See R.V.]
[1403] Rom. ii. 5
[1404] John vi. 67
[1405] 2 Tim. ii. 19
[1406] A caritate jaculatur
[1407] Concurrant in bonum Rom. viii. 28
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 12.--Of the Remedy for the Third Source of Weariness.
17. Once more, however, we often feel it very wearisome to go over
repeatedly matters which are thoroughly familiar, and adapted (rather)
to children. If this is the case with us, then we should endeavor to
meet them with a brother's, a father's, and a mother's love; and, if we
are once united with them thus in heart, to us no less than to them
will these things seem new. For so great is the power of a sympathetic
disposition of mind, that, as they are affected while we are speaking,
and we are affected while they are learning, we have our dwelling in
each other; and thus, at one and the same time, they as it were in us
speak what they hear, and we in them learn after a certain fashion what
we teach. Is it not a common occurrence with us, that when we show to
persons, who have never seen them, certain spacious and beautiful
tracts, either in cities or in fields, which we have been in the habit
of passing by without any sense of pleasure, simply because we have
become so accustomed to the sight of them, we find our own enjoyment
renewed in their enjoyment of the novelty of the scene? And this is so
much the more our experience in proportion to the intimacy of our
friendship with them; because, just as we are in them in virtue of the
bond of love, in the same degree do things become new to us which
previously were old. But if we ourselves have made any considerable
progress in the contemplative study of things, it is not our wish that
those whom we love should simply be gratified and astonished as they
gaze upon the works of men's hands; but it becomes our wish to lift
them to (the contemplation of) the very skill [1408] or wisdom of their
author, and from this to (see them) rise to the admiration and praise
of the all-creating God, with whom [1409] is the most fruitful end of
love. How much more, then, ought we to be delighted when men come to us
with the purpose already formed of obtaining the knowledge of God
Himself, with a view to (the knowledge of) whom all things should be
learned which are to be learned! And how ought we to feel ourselves
renewed in their newness (of experience), so that if our ordinary
preaching is somewhat frigid, it may rise to fresh warmth under (the
stimulus of) their extraordinary hearing! There is also this additional
consideration to help us in the attainment of gladness, namely, that we
ponder and bear in mind out of what death of error the man is passing
over into the life of faith. And if we walk through streets which are
most familiar to us, with a beneficent cheerfulness, when we happen to
be pointing out the way to some individual who had been in distress in
consequence of missing his direction, how much more should be the
alacrity of spirit, and how much greater the joy with which, in the
matter of saving doctrine, we ought to traverse again and again even
those tracks which, so far as we are ourselves concerned, there is no
need to open up any more; seeing that we are leading a miserable soul,
and one worn out with the devious courses of this world, through the
paths of peace, at the command of Him who made that peace [1410] good
to us!
__________________________________________________________________
[1408] Some editions read arcem = stronghold, instead of artem.
[1409] Or = wherein: ubi.
[1410] Instead of eam, the reading ea = those things, also occurs.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 13.--Of the Remedy for the Fourth Source of Weariness.
18. But in good truth it is a serious demand to make upon us, to
continue discoursing on to the set limit when we fail to see our hearer
in any degree moved; whether it be that, under the restraints of the
awe of religion, he has not the boldness to signify his approval by
voice or by any movement of his body, or that he is kept back by the
modesty proper to man, [1411] or that he does not understand our
sayings, or that he counts them of no value. Since, then, this must be
a matter of uncertainty to us, as we cannot discern his mind, it
becomes our duty in our discourse to make trial of all things which may
be of any avail in stirring him up and drawing him forth as it were
from his place of concealment. For that sort of fear which is
excessive, and which obstructs the declaration of his judgment, ought
to be dispelled by the force of kindly exhortation; and by bringing
before him the consideration of our brotherly affinity, we should
temper his reverence for us; and by questioning him, we should
ascertain whether he understands what is addressed to him; and we
should impart to him a sense of confidence, so that he may give free
expression to any objection which suggests itself to him. We should at
the same time ask him whether he has already listened to such themes on
some previous occasion, and whether perchance they fail to move him now
in consequence of their being to him like things well known and
commonplace. And we ought to shape our course in accordance with his
answer, so as either to speak in a simpler style and with greater
detail of explanation, or to refute some antagonistic opinion, or,
instead of attempting any more diffuse exposition of the subjects which
are known to him, to give a brief summary of these, and to select some
of those matters which are handled in a mystical manner in the holy
books, and especially in the historical narrative, the unfolding and
setting forth of which may make our addresses more attractive. But if
the man is of a very sluggish disposition, and if he is senseless, and
without anything in common with all such sources of pleasure, then we
must simply bear with him in a compassionate spirit; and, after briefly
going over other points, we ought to impress upon him, in a manner
calculated to inspire him with awe, the truths which are most
indispensable on the subject of the unity of the Catholic Church,
[1412] on that of temptation, on that of a Christian conversation in
view of the future judgment; and we ought rather to address ourselves
to God for him than address much to him concerning God.
19. It is likewise a frequent occurrence that one who at first listened
to us with all readiness, becomes exhausted either by the effort of
hearing or by standing, and now no longer commends what is said, but
gapes and yawns, and even unwillingly exhibits a disposition to depart.
When we observe that, it becomes our duty to refresh his mind by saying
something seasoned with an honest cheerfulness and adapted to the
matter which is being discussed, or something of a very wonderful and
amazing order, or even, it may be, something of a painful and mournful
nature. Whatever we thus say may be all the better if it affects
himself more immediately, so that the quick sense of self-concern may
keep his attention on the alert. At the same time, however, it should
not be of the kind to offend his spirit of reverence by any harshness
attaching to it; but it should be of a nature fitted rather to
conciliate him by the friendliness which it breathes. Or else, we
should relieve him by accommodating him with a seat, although
unquestionably matters will be better ordered if from the outset,
whenever that can be done with propriety, he sits and listens. And
indeed in certain of the churches beyond the sea, with a far more
considerate regard to the fitness of things, not only do the prelates
sit when they address the people, but they also themselves put down
seats for the people, lest any person of enfeebled strength should
become exhausted by standing, and thus have his mind diverted from the
most wholesome purport (of the discourse), or even be under the
necessity of departing. And yet it is one thing if it be simply some
one out of a great multitude who withdraws in order to recruit his
strength, he being also already under the obligations which result from
participation in the sacraments; and it is quite another thing if the
person withdrawing is one (inasmuch as it is usually the case in these
circumstances that the man is unavoidably urged to that course by the
fear that he should even fall, overcome by internal weakness) who has
to be initiated in the first sacraments; for a person in this position
is at once restrained by the sense of shame from stating the reason of
his going, and not permitted to stand through the force of his
weakness. This I speak from experience. For this was the case with a
certain individual, a man from the country, when I was instructing him
catechetically: and from his instance I have learned that this kind of
thing is carefully to be guarded against. For who can endure our
arrogance when we fail to make men who are our brethren, [1413] or even
those who are not yet in that relation to us (for our solicitude then
should be all the greater to get them to become our brethren), to be
seated in our presence, seeing that even a woman sat as she listened to
our Lord Himself, in whose service the angels stand alert? [1414] Of
course if the address is to be but short, or if the place is not well
adapted for sitting, they should listen standing. But that should be
the case only when there are many hearers, and when they are not to be
formally admitted [1415] at the time. For when the audience consists
only of one or two, or a few, who have come with the express purpose of
being made Christians, there is a risk in speaking to them standing.
Nevertheless, supposing that we have once begun in that manner, we
ought at least, whenever we observe signs of weariness on the part of
the hearer, to offer him the liberty of being seated; nay more, we
should urge him by all means to sit down, and we ought to drop some
remark calculated at once to refresh him and to banish from his mind
any anxiety which may have chanced to break in upon him and draw off
his attention. For inasmuch as the reasons why he remains silent and
declines to listen cannot be certainly known to us, now that he is
seated we may speak to some extent against the incidence of thoughts
about worldly affairs, delivering ourselves either in the cheerful
spirit to which I have already adverted, or in a serious vein; so that,
if these are the particular anxieties which have occupied his mind,
they may be made to give way as if indicted by name: while, on the
other hand, supposing them not to be the special causes (of the loss of
interest), and supposing him to be simply worn out with listening, his
attention will be relieved of the pressure of weariness when we address
to him some unexpected and extraordinary strain of remark on these
subjects, in the mode of which I have spoken, as if they were the
particular anxieties,--for indeed we are simply ignorant (of the true
causes). But let the remark thus made be short, especially considering
that it is thrown in out of order, lest the very medicine even increase
the malady of weariness which we desire to relieve; and, at the same
time, we should go on rapidly with what remains, and promise and
present the prospect of a conclusion nearer than was looked for.
__________________________________________________________________
[1411] Or = by the reverence which he feels for the man: humana
verecundia.
[1412] The text gives simply Catholicae. One ms. has Catholicae fidei =
the Catholic faith. But it is most natural to supply Ecclesiae.
[1413] Instead of viros fratres, some mss. read veros fratres = our
genuine brethren.
[1414] Luke x. 39
[1415] Initiandi = initiated.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 14.--Of the Remedy Against the Fifth and Sixth Sources of
Weariness.
20. If, again, your spirit has been broken by the necessity of giving
up some other employment, on which, as the more requisite, you were now
bent; and if the sadness caused by that constraint makes you catechise
in no pleasant mood, you ought to ponder the fact that, excepting that
we know it to be our duty, in all our dealings with men, to act in a
merciful manner, and in the exercise of the sincerest charity,--with
this one exception, I say, it is quite uncertain to us what is the more
profitable thing for us to do, and what the more opportune thing for us
either to pass by for a time or altogether to omit. For inasmuch as we
know not how the merits of men, on whose behalf we are acting, stand
with God, the question as to what is expedient for them at a certain
time is something which, instead of being able to comprehend, we can
rather only surmise, without the aid of any (clear) inferences, or (at
best) with the slenderest and the most uncertain. Therefore we ought
certainly to dispose the matters with which we have to deal according
to our intelligence; and then, if we prove able to carry them out in
the manner upon which we have resolved, we should rejoice, not indeed
that it was our will, but that it was God's will, that they should thus
be accomplished. But if anything unavoidable happens, by which the
disposition thus proposed by us is interfered with, we should bend
ourselves to it readily, lest we be broken; so that the very
disposition of affairs which God has preferred to ours may also be made
our own. For it is more in accordance with propriety that we should
follow His will than that He should follow ours. Besides, as regards
this order in the doing of things, which we wish to keep in accordance
with our own judgment, surely that course is to be approved of in which
objects that are superior have the precedence. Why then are we
aggrieved that the precedence over men should be held by the Lord God
in His vast superiority to us men, so that in the said love which we
entertain for our own order, we should thus (exhibit the disposition
to) despise order? For "no one orders for the better" what he has to
do, except the man who is rather ready to leave undone what he is
prohibited from doing by the divine power, than desirous of doing that
which he meditates in his own human cogitations. For "there are many
devices in a man's heart; nevertheless, the counsel of the Lord stands
for ever." [1416]
21. But if our mind is agitated by some cause of offense, so as not to
be capable of delivering a discourse of a calm and enjoyable strain,
our charity towards those for whom Christ died, desiring to redeem them
by the price of His own blood from the death of the errors of this
world, ought to be so great, that the very circumstance of intelligence
being brought us in our sadness, regarding the advent of some person
who longs to become a Christian, ought to be enough to cheer us and
dissipate that heaviness of spirit, just as the delights of gain are
wont to soften the pain of losses. For we are not (fairly) oppressed by
the offense of any individual, unless it be that of the man whom we
either perceive or believe to be perishing himself, or to be the
occasion of the undoing of some weak one. Accordingly, one who comes to
us with the view of being formally admitted, in that we cherish the
hope of his ability to go forward, should wipe away the sorrow caused
by one who fails us. For even if the dread that our proselyte may
become the child of hell [1417] comes into our thoughts, as, there are
many such before our eyes, from whom those offenses arise by which we
are distressed, this ought to operate, not in the way of keeping us
back, but rather in the way of stimulating us and spurring us on. And
in the same measure we ought to admonish him whom we are instructing to
be on his guard against imitating those who are Christians only in name
and not in very truth, and to take care not to suffer himself to be so
moved by their numbers as either to be desirous of following them, or
to be reluctant to follow Christ on their account, and either to be
unwilling to be in the Church of God, where they are, or to wish to be
there in such a character as they bear. And somehow or other, in
admonitions of this sort, that address is the more glowing to which a
present sense of grief supplies the fuel; so that instead of being
duller, we utter with greater fire and vehemence under such feelings
things which, in times of greater ease, we would give forth in a colder
and less energetic manner. And this should make us rejoice that an
opportunity is afforded us under which the emotions of our mind pass
not away without yielding some fruit.
22. If, however, grief has taken possession of us on account of
something in which we ourselves have erred or sinned, we should bear in
mind not only that a "broken spirit is a sacrifice to God," [1418] but
also the saying, "Like as water quencheth fire, so alms sin;" [1419]
and again, "I will have mercy," saith He, "rather than sacrifice."
[1420] Therefore, as in the event of our being in peril from fire we
would certainly run to the water in order to get the fire extinguished,
and we would be grateful if any person were to offer it in the
immediate vicinity; so, if some flame of sin has risen from our own
stack, [1421] and if we are troubled on that account, when an
opportunity has been given for a most merciful work, we should rejoice
in it, as if a fountain were offered us in order that by it the
conflagration which had burst forth might be extinguished. Unless haply
we are foolish enough to think that we ought to be readier in running
with bread, wherewith we may fill the belly of a hungry man, than with
the word of God, wherewith we may instruct the mind of the man who
feeds on it. [1422] There is this also to consider, namely, that if it
would only be of advantage to us to do this thing, and entail no
disadvantage to leave it undone, we might despise a remedy offered in
an unhappy fashion in the time of peril with a view to the safety, not
now of a neighbor, but of ourselves. But when from the mouth of the
Lord this so threatening sentence is heard, "Thou wicked and slothful
servant, thou oughtest to give my money to the exchangers," [1423] what
madness, I pray thee, is it thus, seeing that our sin pains us, to be
minded to sin again, by refusing to give the Lord's money to one who
desires it and asks it! When these and such like considerations and
reflections have succeeded in dispelling the darkness of weary
feelings, the bent of mind is rendered apt for the duty of catechising,
so that that is received in a pleasant manner which breaks forth
vigorously and cheerfully from the rich vein of charity. For these
things indeed which are uttered here are spoken, not so much by me to
you, as rather to us all by that very "love which is shed abroad in our
hearts by the Holy Spirit that is given to us." [1424]
__________________________________________________________________
[1416] Prov. xix. 21
[1417] Matt. xxiii. 15
[1418] Ps. li. 17
[1419] Ecclus. iii. 30
[1420] Hos. vi. 6
[1421] Faeno= hay.
[1422] Reading istud edentis; for which some editions give studentis =
of one who studies it.
[1423] Matt. xxv. 26, 27
[1424] Rom. v. 5
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 15.--Of the Method in Which Our Address Should Be Adapted to
Different Classes of Hearers.
23. But now, perhaps, you also demand of me as a debt that which,
previous to the promise which I made, I was under no obligation to
give, namely, that I should not count it burdensome to unfold some sort
of example of the discourse intended, and to set it before you for your
study, just as if I were myself engaged in catechising some individual.
Before I do that, however, I wish you to keep in mind the fact that the
mental effort is of one kind in the case of a person who dictates, with
a future reader in his view, and that it is of quite another kind in
the case of a person who speaks with a present hearer to whom to direct
his attention. And further, it is to be remembered that, in this latter
instance in particular, the effort is of one kind when one is
admonishing in private, and when there is no other person at hand to
pronounce judgment on us; whereas it is of a different order when one
is conveying any instruction in public, and when there stands around
him an audience of persons holding dissimilar opinions; and again, that
in this exercise of teaching, the effort will be of one sort when only
a single individual is being instructed, while all the rest listen,
like persons judging or attesting things well known to them, and that
it will be different when all those who are present wait for what we
have to deliver to them; and once more, that, in this same instance,
the effort will be one thing when all are seated, as it were, in
private conference with a view to engaging in some discussion, and that
it will be quite another thing when the people sit silent and intent on
giving their attention to some single speaker who is to address them
from a higher position. It will likewise make a considerable
difference, even when we are discoursing in that style, whether there
are few present or many, whether they are learned or unlearned, or made
up of both classes combined; whether they are city-bred or rustics, or
both the one and the other together; or whether, again, they are a
people composed of all orders of men in due proportion. For it is
impossible but that they will affect in different ways the person who
has to speak to them and discourse with them, and that the address
which is delivered will both bear certain features, as it were,
expressive of the feelings of the mind from which it proceeds, and also
influence the hearers in different ways, in accordance with that same
difference (in the speaker's disposition), while at the same time the
hearers themselves will influence one another in different ways by the
simple force of their presence with each other. But as we are dealing
at present with the matter of the instruction of the unlearned, I am a
witness to you, as regards my own experience, that I find myself
variously moved, according as I see before me, for the purposes of
catechetical instruction, a highly educated man, a dull fellow, a
citizen, a foreigner, a rich man, a poor man, a private individual, a
man of honors, a person occupying some position of authority, an
individual of this or the other nation, of this or the other age or
sex, one proceeding from this or the other sect, from this or the other
common error,--and ever in accordance with the difference of my
feelings does my discourse itself at once set out, go on, and reach its
end. And inasmuch as, although the same charity is due to all, yet the
same medicine is not to be administered to all, in like manner charity
itself travails with some, is made weak together with others; is at
pains to edify some, tremblingly apprehends being an offense to others;
bends to some, lifts itself erect to others; is gentle to some, severe
to others; to none an enemy, to all a mother. And when one, who has not
gone through the kind of experience to which I refer in the same spirit
of charity, sees us attaining, in virtue of some gift which has been
conferred upon us, and which carries the power of pleasing, a certain
repute of an eulogistic nature in the mouth of the multitude, he counts
us happy on that account. But may God, into whose cognizance the
"groaning of them that are bound enters," [1425] look upon our
humility, and our labor, and forgive us all our sins. [1426] Wherefore,
if anything in us has so far pleased you as to make you desirous of
hearing from us some remarks on the subject of the form of discourse
which you ought to follow, [1427] you should acquire a more thorough
understanding of the matter by contemplating us, and listening to us
when we are actually engaged with these topics, than by a perusal when
we are only dictating them.
__________________________________________________________________
[1425] Ps. lxxix. 11
[1426] Cf. Ps. xxv. 18
[1427] Ut aliquam observationem sermonis tui a nobis audire quaereres
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 16.--A Specimen of a Catechetical Address; And First, the Case
of a Catechumen with Worthy Views.
24. Nevertheless, however that may be, let us here suppose that some
one has come to us who desires to be made a Christian, and who belongs
indeed to the order of private persons, [1428] and yet not to the class
of rustics, but to that of the city-bred, such as those whom you cannot
fail to come across in numbers in Carthage. Let us also suppose that,
on being asked whether the inducement leading him to desire to be a
Christian is any advantage looked for in the present life, or the rest
which is hoped for after this life, he has answered that his inducement
has been the rest that is yet to come. Then perchance such a person
might be instructed by us in some such strain of address as the
following: "Thanks be to God, my brother; cordially do I wish you joy,
and I am glad on your account that, amid all the storms of this world,
which are at once so great and so dangerous, you have bethought
yourself of some true and certain security. For even in this life men
go in quest of rest and security at the cost of heavy labors, but they
fail to find such in consequence of their wicked lusts. For their
thought is to find rest in things which are unquiet, and which endure
not. And these objects, inasmuch as they are withdrawn from them and
pass away in the course of time, agitate them by fears and griefs, and
suffer them not to enjoy tranquillity. For if it be that a man seeks to
find his rest in wealth, he is rendered proud rather than at ease. Do
we not see how many have lost their riches on a sudden,--how many, too,
have been undone by reason of them, either as they have been coveting
to possess them, or as they have been borne down and despoiled of them
by others more covetous than themselves? And even should they remain
with the man all his life long, and never leave their lover, yet would
he himself (have to) leave them at his death. For of what measure is
the life of man, even if he lives to old age? Or when men desire for
themselves old age, what else do they really desire but long infirmity?
So, too, with the honors of this world,--what are they but empty pride
and vanity, and peril of ruin? For holy Scripture speaks in this wise:
`All flesh is grass, and the glory of man is as the flower of grass.
The grass withereth, the flower thereof falleth away; but the word of
the Lord endureth for ever.' [1429] Consequently, if any man longs for
true rest and true felicity, he ought to lift his hope off things which
are mortal and transitory, and fix it on the word of the Lord; so that,
cleaving to that which endures for ever, he may himself together with
it endure for ever.
25. "There are also other men who neither crave to be rich nor go about
seeking the vain pomps of honors, but who nevertheless are minded to
find their pleasure and rest in dainty meats, and in fornications, and
in those theatres and spectacles which are at their disposal in great
cities for nothing. But it fares with these, too, in the same way; or
they waste their small means in luxury, and subsequently, under
pressure of want, break out into thefts and burglaries, and at times
even into highway robberies, and so they are suddenly filled with fears
both numerous and great; and men who a little before were singing in
the house of revelry, are now dreaming of the sorrows of the prison.
Moreover, in their eager devotion to the public spectacles, they come
to resemble demons, as they incite men by their cries to wound each
other, and instigate those who have done them no hurt to engage in
furious contests with each other, while they seek to please an insane
people. And if they perceive any such to be peaceably disposed, they
straightway hate them and persecute them, and raise an outcry, asking
that they should be beaten with clubs, as if they had been in collusion
to cheat them; and this iniquity they force even the judge, who is the
(appointed) avenger of iniquities, to perpetrate. On the other hand, if
they observe such men exerting themselves in horrid hostilities against
each other, whether they be those who are called sintoe, [1430] or
theatrical actors and players, [1431] or charioteers, or
hunters,--those wretched men whom they engage in conflicts and
struggles, not only men with men, but even men with beasts,--then the
fiercer the fury with which they perceive these unhappy creatures rage
against each other, the better they like them, and the greater the
enjoyment they have in them; and they favor them when thus excited,
[1432] and by so favoring them they excite them all the more, the
spectators themselves striving more madly with each other, as they
espouse the cause of different combatants, than is the case even with
those very men whose madness they madly provoke, while at the same time
they also long to be spectators of the same in their mad frenzy. [1433]
How then can that mind keep the soundness of peace which feeds on
strifes and contentions? For just as is the food which is received,
such is the health which results. In fine, although mad pleasures are
no pleasures, nevertheless let these things be taken as they are, and
it still remains the case that, whatever their nature may be, and
whatever the measure of enjoyment yielded by the boasts of riches, and
the inflation of honors, and the spendthrift pleasures of the taverns,
and the contests of the theatres, and the impurity of fornications, and
the pruriency of the baths, they are all things of which one little
fever deprives us, while, even from those who still survive, it takes
away the whole false happiness of their life. Then there remains only a
void and wounded conscience, destined to apprehend that God as a Judge
whom it refused to have as a Father, and destined also to find a severe
Lord in Him whom it scorned to seek and love as a tender Father. But
thou, inasmuch as thou seekest that true rest which is promised to
Christians after this life, wilt taste the same sweet and pleasant rest
even here among the bitterest troubles of this life, if thou continuest
to love the commandments of Him who hath promised the same. For quickly
wilt thou feel that the fruits of righteousness are sweeter than those
of unrighteousness, and that a man finds a more genuine and pleasurable
joy in the possession of a good conscience in the midst of troubles
than in that of an evil conscience in the midst of delights. For thou
hast not come to be united to the Church of God with the idea of
seeking from it any temporal advantage.
__________________________________________________________________
[1428] Idiotarum
[1429] Isa. xl. 6, 8; 1 Pet. i. 24, 25
[1430] Reading sive sintoe qui appellantur, for which there occur such
varieties of reading as these: sint athletae qui appellantur = those
who are called athletes; or sint aequi appellantur; or simply sint qui
appellantur = whatever name they bear, whether actors, etc. The term
sintae, borrowed from the Greek Sintai = devourers, spoilers, may have
been a word in common use among the Africans, as the Benedictine
editors suggest, for designating some sort of coarse characters.
[1431] Thymelici, strictly = the musicians belonging to the thymele, or
orchestra.
[1432] Reading incitatis favent, for which some mss. give incitati =
excited themselves, they favor them; and others have incitantes =
exciting them, they favor them.
[1433] Compare a passage in the Confessions, vi. 13.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 17.--The Specimen of Catechetical Discourse Continued, in
Reference Specially to the Reproval of False Aims on the Catechumen's
Part.
26. "For there are some whose reason for desiring to become Christians
is either that they may gain the favor of men from whom they look for
temporal advantages, or that they are reluctant to offend those whom
they fear. But these are reprobate; and although the church bears them
for a time, as the threshing-floor bears the chaff until the period of
winnowing, yet if they fail to amend and begin to be Christians in
sincerity in view of the everlasting rest which is to come, they will
be separated from it in the end. And let not such flatter themselves,
because it is possible for them to be in the threshing-floor along with
the grain of God. For they will not be together with that in the barn,
but are destined for the fire, which is their due. There are also
others of better hope indeed, but nevertheless in no inferior danger. I
mean those who now fear God, and mock not the Christian name, neither
enter the church of God with an assumed heart, but still look for their
felicity in this life, expecting to have more felicity in earthly
things than those enjoy who refuse to worship God. And the consequence
of this false anticipation is, that when they see some wicked and
impious men strongly established and excelling in this worldly
prosperity, while they themselves either possess it in a smaller degree
or miss it altogether, they are troubled with the thought that they are
serving God without reason, and so they readily fall away from the
faith.
27. "But as to the man who has in view that everlasting blessedness and
perpetual rest which is promised as the lot destined for the saints
after this life, and who desires to become a Christian, in order that
he may not pass into eternal fire with the devil, but enter into the
eternal kingdom together with Christ, [1434] such an one is truly a
Christian; (and he will be) on his guard in every temptation, so that
he may neither be corrupted by prosperity nor be utterly broken in
spirit by adversity, but remain at once modest and temperate when the
good things of earth abound with him, and brave and patient when
tribulations overtake him. A person of this character will also advance
in attainments until he comes to that disposition of mind which will
make him love God more than he fears hell; so that even were God to say
to him, `Avail yourself of carnal pleasures for ever, and sin as much
as you are able, and you shall neither die nor be sent into hell, but
you will only not be with me, he would be terribly dismayed, and would
altogether abstain from sinning, not now (simply) with the purpose of
not falling into that of which he was wont to be afraid, but with the
wish not to offend Him whom he so greatly loves: in whom alone also
there is the rest which eye hath not seen, neither hath ear heard,
neither hath it entered into the heart of man (to conceive),--the rest
which God hath prepared for them that love Him. [1435]
28. "Now, on the subject of this rest Scripture is significant, and
refrains not to speak, when it tells us how at the beginning of the
world, and at the time when God made heaven and earth and all things
which are in them, He worked during six days, and rested on the seventh
day. [1436] For it was in the power of the Almighty to make all things
even in one moment of time. For He had not labored in the view that He
might enjoy (a needful) rest, since indeed "He spake, and they were
made; He commanded, and they were created;" [1437] but that He might
signify how, after six ages of this world, in a seventh age, as on the
seventh day, He will rest in His saints; inasmuch as these same saints
shall rest also in Him after all the good works in which they have
served Him,--which He Himself, indeed, works in them, who calls them,
and instructs them, and puts away the offenses that are past, and
justifies the man who previously was ungodly. For as, when by His gift
they work that which is good, He is Himself rightly said to work (that
in them), so, when they rest in Him, He is rightly said to rest
Himself. For, as regards Himself, He seeks no cessation, because He
feels no labor. Moreover He made all things by His Word; and His Word
is Christ Himself, in whom the angels and all those purest spirits of
heaven rest in holy silence. Man, however in that he fell by sin, has
lost the rest which he possessed in His divinity, and receives it again
(now) in His humanity; and for this purpose He became man, and was born
of a woman, at the seasonable time at which He Himself knew it behoved
it so to be fulfilled. And from the flesh assuredly He could not
sustain any contamination, being Himself rather destined to purify the
flesh. Of His future coming the ancient saints, in the revelation of
the Spirit, had knowledge, and prophesied. And thus were they saved by
believing that He was to come, even as we are saved by believing that
He has come. Hence ought we to love God who has so loved us as to have
sent His only Son, in order that He might endue Himself with the
lowliness [1438] of our mortality, and die both at the hands of sinners
and on behalf of sinners. For even in times of old, and in the opening
ages, the depth of this mystery ceases not to be prefigured and
prophetically announced.
__________________________________________________________________
[1434] Cf. Matt. xxv. 34, 41
[1435] 1 Cor. ii. 9
[1436] Gen. ii. 1-3
[1437] Ps. cxlviii. 5
[1438] Humanitate, = humanity, also occurs instead of humilitate.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 18.--Of What is to Be Believed on the Subject of the Creation
of Man and Other Objects.
29. "Whereas, then, the omnipotent God, who is also good and just and
merciful, who made all things,--whether they be great or small, whether
they be highest or lowest, whether they be things which are seen, such
as are the heavens and the earth and the sea, and in the heavens, in
particular, the sun and the moon and other luminaries, and in the earth
and the sea, again, trees and shrubs and animals each after their kind,
and all bodies celestial or terrestrial alike, or whether they be
things which are not seen, such as are those spirits whereby bodies are
animated and endowed with life,--made also man after His own image, in
order that, as He Himself, in virtue of His omnipotence, presides over
universal creation, so man, in virtue of that intelligence of his by
which he comes to know even his Creator and worships Him, might preside
over all the living creatures of earth: Whereas, too, he made the woman
to be an helpmeet for him: not for carnal concupiscence,--since,
indeed, they had not corruptible bodies at that period, before the
punishment of sin invaded them in the form of mortality,--but for this
purpose, that the man might at once have glory of the woman in so far
as he went before her to God, and present in himself an example to her
for imitation in holiness and piety, even as he himself was to be the
glory of God in so far as he followed his wisdom:
30. "Therefore did he place them in a certain locality of perpetual
blessedness, which the Scripture designates Paradise: and he gave them
a commandment, on condition of not violating which they were to
continue for ever in that blessedness of immortality; while, on the
other hand, if they transgressed it, they were to sustain the penalties
of mortality. Now God knew beforehand that they would trangress it.
Nevertheless, in that He is the author and maker of everything good, He
chose rather to make them, as He also made the beasts, in order that He
might replenish the earth with the good things proper to earth. And
certainly man, even sinful man, is better than a beast. And the
commandment, which they were not to keep, He yet preferred to give
them, in order that they might be without excuse when He should begin
to vindicate Himself against them. For whatever man may have done, he
finds God worthy to be praised in all His doings: if he shall have
acted rightly, he finds Him worthy to be praised for the righteousness
of His rewards: if he shall have sinned, he finds Him worthy to be
praised for the righteousness of His punishments: if he shall have
confessed his sins and returned to an upright life, he finds Him worthy
to be praised for the mercy of His pardoning favors. Why, then, should
God not make man, although He foreknew that he would sin, when He might
crown him if he stood, and set him right if he fell, and help him if he
rose, Himself being always and everywhere glorious in goodness,
righteousness, and clemency? Above all, why should He not do so, since
He also foreknew this, namely, that from the race of that mortality
there would spring saints, who should not seek their own, but give
glory to their Creator; and who, obtaining deliverance from every
corruption by worshipping Him, should be counted worthy to live for
ever, and to live in blessedness with the holy angels? For He who gave
freedom of will to men, in order that they might worship God not of
slavish necessity but with ingenuous inclination, gave it also to the
angels; and hence neither did the angel, who, in company with other
spirits who were his satellites, forsook in pride the obedience of God
and became the devil, do any hurt to God, but to himself. For God
knoweth how to dispose of souls [1439] that leave Him, and out of their
righteous misery to furnish the inferior sections of His creatures with
the most appropriate and befitting laws of His wonderful dispensation.
Consequently, neither did the devil in any manner harm God, whether in
falling himself, or in seducing man to death; nor did man himself in
any degree impair the truth, or power, or blessedness [1440] of His
Maker, in that, when his partner was seduced by the devil, he of his
own deliberate inclination consented unto her in the doing of that
which God had forbidden. For by the most righteous laws of God all were
condemned, God Himself being glorious in the equity of retribution,
while they were shamed through the degradation of punishment: to the
end that man, when he turned away from his Creator, should be overcome
by the devil and made his subject, and that the devil might be set
before man as an enemy to be conquered, when he turned again to his
Creator; so that whosoever should consent unto the devil even to the
end, might go with him into eternal punishments; whereas those who
should humble themselves to God, and by His grace overcome the devil,
might be counted worthy of eternal rewards.
__________________________________________________________________
[1439] Rather "spirits." See the correction made in the Retractations,
ii. 14, as given above in the Introductory Notice.
[1440] The beatitatem is omitted by several mss.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 19.--Of the Co-Existence of Good and Evil in the Church, and
Their Final Separation.
31. "Neither ought we to be moved by the consideration that many
consent unto the devil, and few follow God; for the grain, too, in
comparison with the chaff, has greatly the defect in number. But even
as the husbandman knows what to do with the mighty heap of chaff, so
the multitude of sinners is nothing to God, who knows what to do with
them, so as not to let the administration of His kingdom be disordered
and dishonored in any part. Nor is the devil to be supposed to have
proved victorious for the mere reason of his drawing away with him more
than the few by whom he may be overcome. In this way there are two
communities--one of the ungodly, and another of the holy--which are
carried down from the beginning of the human race even to the end of
the world, which are at present commingled in respect of bodies, but
separated in respect of wills, and which, moreover, are destined to be
separated also in respect of bodily presence in the day of judgment.
For all men who love pride and temporal power with vain elation and
pomp of arrogance, and all spirits who set their affections on such
things and seek their own glory in the subjection of men, are bound
fast together in one association; nay, even although they frequently
fight against each other on account of these things, they are
nevertheless precipitated by the like weight of lust into the same
abyss, and are united with each other by similarity of manners and
merits. And, again, all men and all spirits who humbly seek the glory
of God and not their own, and who follow Him in piety, belong to one
fellowship. And, notwithstanding this, God is most merciful and patient
with ungodly men, and offers them a place for penitence and amendment.
32. "For with respect also to the fact that He destroyed all men in the
flood, with the exception of one righteous man together with his house,
whom He willed to be saved in the ark, He knew indeed that they would
not amend themselves; yet, nevertheless, as the building of the ark
went on for the space of a hundred years, the wrath of God which was to
come upon them was certainly preached to them: [1441] and if they only
would have turned to God, He would have spared them, as at a later
period He spared the city of Nineveh when it repented, after He had
announced to it, by means of a prophet, the destruction that was about
to overtake it. [1442] Thus, moreover, God acts, granting a space for
repentance even to those who He knows will persist in wickedness, in
order that He may exercise and instruct our patience by His own
example; whereby also we may know how greatly it befits us to bear with
the evil in long-suffering, when we know not what manner of men they
will prove hereafter, seeing that He, whose cognizance nothing that is
yet to be escapes, spares them and suffers them to live. Under the
sacramental sign of the flood, however, in which the righteous were
rescued by the wood, there was also a fore-announcement of the Church
which was to be, which Christ, its King and God, has raised on high; by
the mystery of His cross, in safety from the submersion of this world.
Moreover, God was not ignorant of the fact that, even of those who had
been saved in the ark, there would be born wicked men, who would cover
the face of the earth a second time with iniquities. But, nevertheless,
He both gave them a pattern of the future judgment, and fore-announced
the deliverance of the holy by the mystery of the wood. For even after
these things wickedness did not cease to sprout forth again through
pride, and lusts, and illicit impieties, when men, forsaking their
Creator, not only fell to the (standard of the) creature which God
made, so as to worship instead of God that which God made, but even
bowed their souls to the works of the hands of men and to the
contrivances of craftsmen, wherein a more shameful triumph was to be
won over them by the devil, and by those evil spirits who rejoice in
finding themselves adored and reverenced in such false devices, while
they feed [1443] their own errors with the errors of men.
33. "But in truth there were not wanting in those times righteous men
also of the kind to seek God piously and to overcome the pride of the
devil, citizens of that holy community, who were made whole by the
humiliation of Christ, which was then only destined to enter, but was
revealed to them by the Spirit. From among these, Abraham, a pious and
faithful servant of God, was chosen, in order that to him might be
shown the sacrament of the Son of God, so that thus, in virtue of the
imitation of his faith, all the faithful of all nations might be called
his children in the future. Of him was born a people, by whom the one
true God who made heaven and earth should be worshipped when all other
nations did service to idols and evil spirits. In that people, plainly,
the future Church was much more evidently prefigured. For in it there
was a carnal multitude that worshipped God with a view to visible
benefits. But in it there were also a few who thought of the future
rest, and looked longingly for the heavenly fatherland, to whom through
prophecy was revealed the coming humiliation of God in the person of
our King and Lord Jesus Christ, in order that they might be made whole
of all pride and arrogance through that faith. And with respect to
these saints who in point of time had precedence of the birth of the
Lord, not only their speech, but also their life, and their marriages,
and their children, and their doings, constituted a prophecy of this
time, at which the Church is being gathered together out of all nations
through faith in the passion of Christ. By the instrumentality of those
holy patriarchs and prophets this carnal people of Israel, who at a
later period were also called Jews, had ministered unto them at once
those visible benefits which they eagerly desired of the Lord in a
carnal manner, and those chastisements, in the form of bodily
punishments, which were intended to terrify them for the time, as was
befitting for their obstinacy. And in all these, nevertheless, there
were also spiritual mysteries signified, such as were meant to bear
upon Christ and the Church; of which Church those saints also were
members, although they existed in this life previous to the birth of
Christ, the Lord, according to the flesh. For this same Christ, the
only-begotten Son of God, the Word of the Father, equal and co-eternal
with the Father, by whom all things were made, was Himself also made
man for our sakes, in order that of the whole Church, as of His whole
body, He might be the Head. But just as when the whole man is in the
process of being born, although he may put the hand forth first in the
act of birth, yet is that hand joined and compacted together with the
whole body under the head, even as also among these same patriarchs
some were born [1444] with the hand put forth first as a sign of this
very thing: so all the saints who lived upon the earth previous to the
birth of our Lord Jesus Christ, although they were born antecedently,
were nevertheless united under the Head with that universal body of
which He is the Head.
__________________________________________________________________
[1441] Gen. vi. 7
[1442] Jonah iii
[1443] Instead of pascunt the reading miscent, = mix, is also found.
[1444] Gen. xxv. 26, xxxviii. 27-30
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 20.--Of Israel's Bondage in Egypt, Their Deliverance, and Their
Passage Through the Red Sea.
34. "That people, then, having been brought down into Egypt, were in
bondage to the harshest of kings; and, taught by the most oppressive
labors, they sought their deliverer in God; and there was sent to them
one belonging to the people themselves, Moses, the holy servant of God,
who, in the might of God, terrified the impious nation of the Egyptians
in those days by great miracles, and led forth the people of God out of
that land through the Red Sea, where the water parted and opened up a
way for them as they crossed it, whereas, when the Egyptians pressed on
in pursuit, the waves returned to their channel and overwhelmed them,
so that they perished. Thus, then, just as the earth through the agency
of the flood was cleansed by the waters from the wickedness of the
sinners, who in those times were destroyed in their inundation, while
the righteous escaped by means of the wood; so the people of God, when
they went forth from Egypt, found a way through the waters by which
their enemies were devoured. Nor was the sacrament of the wood wanting
there. For Moses smote with his rod, in order that that miracle might
be effected. Both these are signs of holy baptism, by which the
faithful pass into the new life, while their sins are done away with
like enemies, and perish. But more clearly was the passion of Christ
prefigured in the case of that people, when they were commanded to slay
and eat the lamb, and to mark their door-posts with its blood, and to
celebrate this rite every year, and to designate it the Lord's
passover. For surely prophecy speaks with the utmost plainness of the
Lord Jesus Christ, when it says that "He was led as a lamb to the
slaughter." [1445] And with the sign of His passion and cross, thou art
this day to be marked on thy forehead, as on the door-post, and all
Christians are marked with the same.
35. "Thereafter this people was conducted through the wilderness for
forty years. They also received the law written by the finger of God,
under which name the Holy Spirit is signified, as it is declared with
the utmost plainness in the Gospel. For God is not defined [1446] by
the form of a body, neither are members and fingers to be thought of as
existent in Him in the way in which we see them in ourselves. But,
inasmuch as it is through the Holy Spirit that God's gifts are divided
to His saints, in order that, although they vary in their capacities,
they may nevertheless not lapse from the concord of charity, and
inasmuch as it is especially in the fingers that there appears a
certain kind of division, while nevertheless there is no separation
from unity, this may be the explanation of the phrase. But whether this
may be the case, or whatever other reason may be assigned for the Holy
Spirit being called the finger of God, we ought not at any rate to
think of the form of a human body when we hear this expression used.
The people in question, then, received the law written by the finger of
God, and that in good sooth on tables of stone, to signify the hardness
of their heart in that they were not to fulfill the law. For, as they
eagerly sought from the Lord gifts meant for the uses of the body, they
were held by carnal fear rather than by spiritual charity. But nothing
fulfills the law save charity. Consequently, they were burdened with
many visible sacraments, to the intent that they should feel the
pressure of the yoke of bondage in the observances of meats, and in the
sacrifices of animals, and in other rites innumerable; which things, at
the same time, were signs of spiritual matters relating to the Lord
Jesus Christ and to the Church; which, furthermore, at that time were
both understood by a few holy men to the effect of yielding the fruit
of salvation, and observed by them in accordance with the fitness of
the time, while by the multitude of carnal men they were observed only
and not understood.
36. "In this manner, then, through many varied signs of things to come,
which it would be tedious to enumerate in complete detail, and which we
now see in their fulfillment in the Church, that people were brought to
the land of promise, in which they were to reign in a temporal and
carnal way in accordance with their own longings: which earthly
kingdom, nevertheless, sustained the image of a spiritual kingdom.
There Jerusalem was founded, that most celebrated city of God, which,
while in bondage, served as a sign of the free city, which is called
the heavenly Jerusalem [1447] which latter term is a Hebrew word, and
signifies by interpretation the `vision of peace.' The citizens thereof
are all sanctified men, who have been, who are, and who are yet to be;
and all sanctified spirits, even as many as are obedient to God with
pious devotion in the exalted regions of heaven, and imitate not the
impious pride of the devil and his angels. The King of this city is the
Lord Jesus Christ, the Word of God, by whom the highest angels are
governed, and at the same time the Word that took unto Himself human
nature, [1448] in order that by Him men also might be governed, who, in
His fellowship, shall reign all together in eternal peace. In the
service of prefiguring this King in that earthly kingdom of the people
of Israel, King David stood forth pre-eminent, [1449] of whose seed
according to the flesh that truest King was to come, to wit, our Lord
Jesus Christ, `who is over all, God blessed for ever.' [1450] In that
land of promise many things were done, which held good as figures of
the Christ who was to come, and of the Church, with which you will have
it in your power to acquaint yourself by degrees in the Holy Books.
__________________________________________________________________
[1445] Isa. liii. 7
[1446] Or = circumscribed, definitus.
[1447] Cf. Gal. iv. 26
[1448] Hominem.
[1449] 1 Kings xi. 13
[1450] Rom. ix. 5
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 21.--Of the Babylonish Captivity, and the Things Signified
Thereby.
37. "Howbeit, after the lapse of some generations, another type was
presented, which bears very emphatically on the matter in hand. For
that city [1451] was brought into captivity, and a large section of the
people were carried off into Babylonia. Now, as Jerusalem signifies the
city and fellowship of the saints, so Babylonia signifies the city and
fellowship of the wicked, seeing that by interpretation it denotes
confusion. On the subject of these two cities, which have been running
their courses, mingling the one with the other, through all the changes
of time from the beginning of the human race, and which shall so move
on together until the end of the world, when they are destined to be
separated at the last judgment, we have spoken already a little ago.
[1452] That captivity, then, of the city of Jerusalem, and the people
thus carried into Babylonia in bondage, were ordained so to proceed by
the Lord, by the voice of Jeremiah, a prophet of that time. [1453] And
there appeared kings [1454] of Babylon, under whom they were in
slavery, who on occasion of the captivity of this people were so
wrought upon by certain miracles that they came to know the one true
God who founded universal creation, and worshipped Him, and commanded
that He should be worshipped. Moreover the people were ordered both to
pray for those by whom they were detained in captivity, and in their
peace to hope for peace, to the effect that they should beget children,
and build houses, and plant gardens and vineyards. [1455] But at the
end of seventy years, release from their captivity was promised to
them. [1456] All this, furthermore, signified in a figure that the
Church of Christ in all His saints, who are citizens of the heavenly
Jerusalem, would have to do service under the kings of this world. For
the doctrine of the apostles speaks also in this wise, that `every soul
should be subject to the higher powers,' and that there `should be
rendered all things to all men, tribute to whom tribute (is due),
custom to whom custom,' [1457] and all other things in like manner
which, without detriment to the worship of our God, we render to the
rulers in the constitution of human society: for the Lord Himself also,
in order to set before us an example of this sound doctrine, did not
deem it unworthy of Him to pay tribute [1458] on account of that human
individuality [1459] wherewith He was invested. Again, Christian
servants and good believers are also commanded to serve their temporal
masters in equanimity and faithfulness; [1460] whom they will hereafter
judge, if even on to the end they find them wicked, or with whom they
will hereafter reign in equality, if they too shall have been converted
to the true God. Still all are enjoined to be subject to the powers
that are of man and of earth, even until, at the end of the
predetermined time which the seventy years signify, the Church shall be
delivered from the confusion of this world, like as Jerusalem was to be
set free from the captivity in Babylonia. By occasion of that
captivity, however, the kings of earth too have themselves been led to
forsake the idols on account of which they were wont to persecute the
Christians, and have come to know, and now worship, the one true God
and Christ the Lord; and it is on their behalf that the Apostle Paul
enjoins prayer to be made, even although they should persecute the
Church. For he speaks in these terms: `I entreat, therefore, that first
of all supplications, adorations, [1461] intercessions, and givings of
thanks be made for kings, for all men, and all that are in authority,
that we may lead a quiet and peaceable life, with all godliness and
charity.' [1462] Accordingly peace has been given to the Church by
these same persons, although it be but of a temporal sort,--a temporal
quiet for the work of building houses after a spiritual fashion, and
planting gardens and vineyards. For witness your own case, too,--at
this very time we are engaged, by means of this discourse, in building
you up and planting you. And the like process is going on throughout
the whole circle of lands, in virtue of the peace allowed by Christian
kings, even as the same apostle thus expresses himself: `Ye are God's
husbandry; ye are God's building.' [1463]
38. "And, indeed, after the lapse of the seventy years of which
Jeremiah had mystically prophesied, to the intent of prefiguring the
end of times, with a view still to the perfecting of that same figure,
no settled peace and liberty were conceded again to the Jews. Thus it
was that they were conquered subsequently by the Romans and made
tributary. From that period, in truth, at which they received the land
of promise and began to have kings, in order to preclude the
supposition that the promise of the Christ who was to be their
Liberator had met its complete fulfillment in the person of any one of
their kings, Christ was prophesied of with greater clearness in a
number of prophecies; not only by David himself in the book of Psalms,
but also by the rest of the great and holy prophets, even on to the
time of their conveyance into captivity in Babylonia; and in that same
captivity there were also prophets whose mission was to prophesy of the
coming of the Lord Jesus Christ as the Liberator of all. And after the
restoration of the temple, when the seventy years had passed, the Jews
sustained grievous oppressions and sufferings at the hands of the kings
of the Gentiles, fitted to make them understand that the Liberator was
not yet come, whom they failed to apprehend as one who was to effect
for them a spiritual deliverance, and whom they fondly longed for on
account of a carnal liberation.
__________________________________________________________________
[1451] Or = community, civitas.
[1452] See Chapter xix.
[1453] Jer. xxv. 18, xxix. 1
[1454] Dan. ii. 47, iii. 29, vi. 26; 1 Esdr. ii. 7; Bel. 41
[1455] Jer. xxix. 4-7
[1456] Jer. xxv. 12
[1457] Rom. xiii. 1, 7
[1458] Matt. xvii. 27
[1459] Pro capite hominis, literally = "on" account of that head of
man, etc.
[1460] Eph. vi. 5
[1461] Instead of orationes; the better authenticated reading is
adorationes.
[1462] 1 Tim. ii. 1, 2
[1463] 1 Cor. iii. 9; cf. Jer. xxv. 12, xxix. 10
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 22.--Of the Six Ages of the World.
39. "Five ages of the world, accordingly, having been now completed
(there has entered the sixth). Of these ages the first is from the
beginning of the human race, that is, from Adam, who was the first man
that was made, down to Noah, who constructed the ark at the time of the
flood. [1464] Then the second extends from that period on to Abraham,
who was called [1465] the father indeed of all nations [1466] which
should follow the example of his faith, but who at the same time in the
way of natural descent from his own flesh was the father of the
destined people of the Jews; which people, previous to the entrance of
the Gentiles into the Christian faith, was the one people among all the
nations of all lands that worshipped the one true God: from which
people also Christ the Saviour was decreed to come according to the
flesh. For these turning-points [1467] of those two ages occupy an
eminent place in the ancient books. On the other hand, those of the
other three ages are also declared in the Gospel, [1468] where the
descent of the Lord Jesus Christ according to the flesh is likewise
mentioned. For the third age extends from Abraham on to David the king;
the fourth from David on to that captivity whereby the people of God
passed over into Babylonia; and the fifth from that transmigration down
to the advent of our Lord Jesus Christ. With His coming the sixth age
has entered on its process; so that now the spiritual grace, which in
previous times was known to a few patriarchs and prophets, may be made
manifest to all nations; to the intent that no man should worship God
but freely, [1469] fondly desiring of Him not the visible rewards of
His services and the happiness of this present life, but that eternal
life alone in which he is to enjoy God Himself: in order that in this
sixth age the mind of man may be renewed after the image of God, even
as on the sixth day man was made after the image of God. [1470] For
then, too, is the law fulfilled, when all that it has commanded is
done, not in the strong desire for things temporal, but in the love of
Him who has given the commandment. Who is there, moreover, who should
not be earnestly disposed to give the return of love to a God of
supreme righteousness and also of supreme mercy, who has first loved
men of the greatest unrighteousness and the loftiest pride, and that,
too, so deeply as to have sent in their behalf His only Son, by whom He
made all things, and who being made man, not by any change of Himself,
but by the assumption of human nature, was designed thus to become
capable not only of living with them, but also of dying at once for
them and by their hands?
40. "Thus, then, showing forth the New Testament of our everlasting
inheritance, wherein man was to be renewed by the grace of God and lead
a new life, that is, a spiritual life; and with the view of exhibiting
the first one as an old dispensation, wherein a carnal people acting
out the old man (with the exception of a few patriarchs and prophets,
who had understanding, and some hidden saints), and leading a carnal
life, desiderated carnal rewards at the hands of the Lord God, and
received in that fashion but the figures of spiritual blessings;--with
this intent, I say, the Lord Christ, when made man, despised all
earthly good things, in order that He might show us how these things
ought to be despised; and He endured all earthly ills which He was
inculcating as things needful to be endured; so that neither might our
happiness be sought for in the former class, nor our unhappiness be
apprehended in the latter. For being born of a mother who, although she
conceived without being touched by man and always remained thus
untouched, in virginity conceiving, in virginity bringing forth, in
virginity dying, had nevertheless been espoused to a handicraftsman, He
extinguished all the inflated pride of carnal nobility. Moreover, being
born in the city of Bethlehem, which among all the cities of Judaea was
so insignificant that even in our own day it is designated a village,
He willed not that any one should glory in the exalted position of any
city of earth. He, too, whose are all things and by whom all things
were created, was made poor, in order that no one, while believing in
Him, might venture to boast himself in earthly riches. He refused to be
made by men a king, because He displayed the pathway of humility to
those unhappy ones whom pride had separated from Him; [1471] and yet
universal creation attests the fact of His everlasting kingdom. An
hungered was He who feeds all men; athirst was He by whom is created
whatsoever is drunk, and who in a spiritual manner is the bread of the
hungry and the fountain of the thirsty; in journeying on earth, wearied
was He who has made Himself the way for us into heaven; as like one
dumb and deaf in the presence of His revilers was He by whom the dumb
spoke and the deaf heard; bound was He who freed us from the bonds of
infirmities; scourged was He who expelled from the bodies of man the
scourges of all distresses; crucified was He who put an end to our
crucial pains; [1472] dead did He become who raised the dead. But He
also rose again, no more to die, so that no one should from Him learn
so to contemn death as if he were never to live again.
__________________________________________________________________
[1464] Gen. vi. 22
[1465] Instead of dictus est the mss. give also electus est = was
chosen to be.
[1466] Gen. xvii. 4
[1467] articuli = articles.
[1468] Matt. i. 17
[1469] Gratis.
[1470] Gen. i. 27
[1471] Reading ab eo; for which some editions give ab ea = from that
humility.
[1472] There is a play in the words here: crucifixus est qui cruciatus
nostros finivit.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 23.--Of the Mission of the Holy Ghost Fifty Days After Christ's
Resurrection.
41. "Thereafter, having confirmed the disciples, and having sojourned
with them forty days, He ascended up into heaven, as these same persons
were beholding Him. And on the completion of fifty days from His
resurrection He sent to them the Holy Spirit (for so He had promised),
by whose agency they were to have love shed abroad in their hearts,
[1473] to the end that they might be able to fulfill the law, not only
without the sense of its being burdensome, but even with a joyful mind.
This law was given to the Jews in the ten commandments, which they call
the Decalogue. And these commandments, again, are reduced to two,
namely that we should love God with all our heart, with all our soul,
with all our mind; and that we should love our neighbor as ourselves.
[1474] For that on these two precepts hang all the law and the
prophets, the Lord Himself has at once declared in the Gospel and shown
in His own example. For thus it was likewise in the instance of the
people of Israel, that from the day on which they first celebrated the
passover in a form, [1475] slaying and eating the sheep, with whose
blood their door-posts were marked for the securing of their safety,
[1476] --from this day, I repeat, the fiftieth day in succession was
completed, and then they received the law written by the finger of God,
[1477] under which phrase we have already stated that the Holy Spirit
is signified. [1478] And in the same manner, after the passion and
resurrection of the Lord, who is the true passover, the Holy Ghost was
sent personally to the disciples on the fiftieth day: not now, however,
by tables of stone significant of the hardness of their hearts; but,
when they were gathered together in one place at Jerusalem itself,
suddenly there came a sound from heaven, as if a violent blast were
being borne onwards, and there appeared to them tongues cloven like
fire, and they began to speak with tongues, in such a manner that all
those who had come to them recognized each his own language [1479] (for
in that city the Jews were in the habit of assembling from every
country wheresoever they had been scattered abroad, and had learned the
diverse tongues of diverse nations); and thereafter, preaching Christ
with all boldness, they wrought many signs in His name,--so much so,
that as Peter was passing by, his shadow touched a certain dead person,
and the man rose in life again. [1480]
42. "But when the Jews perceived so great signs to be wrought in the
name of Him, whom, partly through ill-will and partly in ignorance,
they crucified, some of them were provoked to persecute the apostles,
who were His preachers; while others, on the contrary, marvelling the
more at this very circumstance, that so great miracles were being
performed in the name of Him whom they had derided as one overborne and
conquered by themselves, repented, and were converted, so that
thousands of Jews believed on Him. For these parties were not bent now
on craving at the hand of God temporal benefits and an earthly kingdom,
neither did they look any more for Christ, the promised king, in a
carnal spirit; but they continued in immortal fashion to apprehend and
love Him, who in mortal fashion endured on their behalf at their own
hands sufferings so heavy, and imparted to them the gift of forgiveness
for all their sins, even down to the iniquity of His own blood, and by
the example of His own resurrection unfolded immortality as the object
which they should hope for and long for at His hands. Accordingly, now
mortifying the earthly cravings of the old man, and inflamed with the
new experience of the spiritual life, as the Lord had enjoined in the
Gospel, they sold all that they had, and laid the price of their
possessions at the feet of the apostles, in order that these might
distribute to every man according as each had need; and living in
Christian love harmoniously with each other, they did not affirm
anything to be their own, but they had all things in common, and were
one in soul and heart toward God. [1481] Afterwards these same persons
also themselves suffered persecution in their flesh at the hands of the
Jews, their carnal fellow-countrymen, and were dispersed abroad, to the
end that, in consequence of their dispersion, Christ should be preached
more extensively, and that they themselves at the same time should be
followers of the patience of their Lord. For He who in meekness had
endured them, [1482] enjoined them in meekness to endure for His sake.
43. "Among those same persecutors of the saints the Apostle Paul had
once also ranked; and he raged with eminent violence against the
Christians. But, subsequently, he became a believer and an apostle, and
was sent to preach the gospel to the Gentiles, suffering (in that
ministry) things more grievous on behalf of the name of Christ than
were those which he had done against the name of Christ. Moreover, in
establishing churches throughout all the nations where he was sowing
the seed of the gospel, he was wont to give earnest injunction that, as
these converts (coming as they did from the worship of idols and
without experience in the worship of the one God) could not readily
serve God in the way of selling and distributing their possessions,
they should make offerings for the poor brethren among the saints who
were in the churches of Judea which had believed in Christ. In this
manner the doctrine of the apostle constituted some to be, as it were,
soldiers, and others to be, as it were, provincial tributaries, while
it set Christ in the centre of them like the corner-stone (in
accordance with what had been announced beforetime by the prophet),
[1483] in whom both parties, like walls advancing from different sides,
that is to say, from Jews and from Gentiles, might be joined together
in the affection of kinship. But at a later period heavier and more
frequent persecutions arose from the unbelieving Gentiles against the
Church of Christ, and day by day was fulfilled that prophetic word
which the Lord spake when He said, `Behold, I send you as sheep in the
midst of wolves.' [1484]
__________________________________________________________________
[1473] Cf. Rom. v. 5
[1474] Matt. xxii. 37-40
[1475] In imagine.
[1476] Ex. xii
[1477] Ex. xxxiv. 28
[1478] Luke xi. 20
[1479] Acts ii
[1480] The reference evidently is to Acts v. 15, where, however, it is
only the people's intention that is noticed, and that only in the
instance of the sick, and not of any individual actually dead.
[1481] Acts ii. 44, iv. 34
[1482] Adopting the Benedictine version, qui eos mansuetus passus
fuerat, and taking it as a parallel to Acts xiii. 18, Heb. xii. 3.
There is, however, great variety of reading here. Thus we find qui ante
eos, etc. = who had suffered in meekness before them: qui pro eis, etc.
= who had suffered in their stead: qui propter eos, etc. = who had
suffered on their account: and qui per eos, etc. = who had suffered
through them, etc. But the reading in the text appears best
authenticated.
[1483] Ps. cxviii. 22; Isa. xxviii. 16
[1484] Matt. x. 16
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 24.--Of the Church in Its Likeness to a Vine Sprouting and
Suffering Pruning.
44. "But that vine, which was spreading forth its fruitful shoots
throughout the circle of lands, according as had been prophesied with
regard to it, and as had been foretold by the Lord Himself, sprouted
all the more luxuriantly in proportion as it was watered with richer
streams of the blood of martyrs. And as these died in behalf of the
truth of the faith in countless numbers throughout all lands, even the
persecuting kingdoms themselves desisted, and were converted to the
knowledge and worship of Christ, with the neck of their pride broken.
Moreover it behoved that this same vine should be pruned in accordance
with the Lord's repeated predictions, [1485] and that the unfruitful
twigs should be cut out of it, by which heresies and schisms were
occasioned in various localities, under the name of Christ, on the part
of men who sought not His glory but their own; whose oppositions,
however, also served more and more to discipline the Church, and to
test and illustrate both its doctrine and its patience.
45. "All these things, then, we now perceive to be realized precisely
as we read of them in predictions uttered so long before the event. And
as the first Christians, inasmuch as they did not see these things
literally made good in their own day, were moved by miracles to believe
them; so as regards ourselves, inasmuch as all these things have now
been brought to pass exactly as we read of them in those books which
were written a long time previous to the fulfillment of the things in
question, wherein they were all announced as matters yet future, even
as they are now seen to be actually present, we are built up unto
faith, so that, enduring and persevering in the Lord, we believe
without any hesitation in the destined accomplishment even of those
things which still remain to be realized. For, indeed, in the same
Scriptures, tribulations yet to come are still read of, as well as the
final day of judgment itself, when all the citizens of these two states
shall receive their bodies again, and rise and give account of their
life before the judgment-seat of Christ. For He will come in the glory
of His power, who of old condescended to come in the lowliness of
humanity; and He will separate all the godly from the ungodly,--not
only from those who have utterly refused to believe in Him at all, but
also from those who have believed in Him to no purpose and without
fruit. To the one class He will give an eternal kingdom together with
Himself, while to the other He will award eternal punishment together
with the devil. But as no joy yielded by things temporal can be found
in any measure comparable to the joy of life eternal which the saints
are destined to attain, so no torment of temporal punishments can be
compared to the everlasting torments of the unrighteous.
__________________________________________________________________
[1485] John xv. 2
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 25.--Of Constancy in the Faith of the Resurrection.
46. "Therefore, brother, confirm yourself in the name and help of Him
in whom you believe, so as to withstand the tongues of those who mock
at our faith, in whose case the devil speaks seductive words, bent
above all on making a mockery of the faith in a resurrection. But,
judging from your own history, [1486] believe that, seeing you have
been, you will also be hereafter, even as you perceive yourself now to
be, although previously you were not. For where was this great
structure of your body, and where this formation and compacted
connection of members a few years ago, before you were born, or even
before you were conceived in your mother's womb? Where, I repeat, was
then this structure and this stature of your body? Did it not come
forth to light from the hidden secrets of this creation, under the
invisible formative operations of the Lord God, and did it not rise to
its present magnitude and fashion by those fixed measures of increase
which come with the successive periods of life? [1487] Is it then in
any way a difficult thing for God, who also in a moment brings together
out of secrecy the masses of the clouds and veils the heavens in an
instant of time, to make this quantity of your body again what it was,
seeing that He was able to make it what formerly it was not? [1488]
Consequently, believe with a manful and unshaken spirit that all those
things which seem to be withdrawn from the eyes of men as if to perish,
are safe and exempt from loss in relation to the omnipotence of God,
who will restore them, without any delay or difficulty, when He is so
minded,--those of them at least, I should say, that are judged by His
justice to merit restoration; in order that men may give account of
their deeds in their very bodies in which they have done them; and that
in these they may be deemed worthy to receive either the exchange of
heavenly incorruption in accordance with the deserts of their piety, or
the corruptible condition of body [1489] in accordance with the deserts
of their wickedness,--and that, too, not a condition such as may be
done away with by death, but such as shall furnish material for
everlasting pains.
47. "Flee, therefore, by steadfast faith and good manners,--flee,
brother, those torments in which neither the torturers fail, nor do the
tortured die; to whom it is death without end, to be unable to die in
their pains. And be kindled with love and longing for the everlasting
life of the saints, in which neither will action be toilsome nor will
rest be indolent; in which the praise of God will be without
irksomeness and without defect; wherein there will be no weariness in
the mind, no exhaustion in the body; wherein, too, there shall be no
want, whether on your own part, so that you should crave for relief, or
on your neighbor's part, so that you should be in haste to carry relief
to him. God will be the whole enjoyment and satisfaction [1490] of that
holy city, which lives in Him and of Him, in wisdom and beatitude. For
as we hope and look for what has been promised by Him, we shall be made
equal to the angels of God, [1491] and together with them we shall
enjoy that Trinity now by sight, wherein at present we walk by faith.
[1492] For we believe that which we see not, in order that through
these very deserts of faith we may be counted worthy also to see that
which we believe, and to abide in it; to the intent that these
mysteries of the equality of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit,
and the unity of this same Trinity, and the manner in which these three
subsistences are one God, need no more be uttered by us in words of
faith and sounding syllables, but may be drunk in in purest and most
burning contemplation in that silence.
48. "These things hold fixed in your heart, and call upon the God in
whom you believe, to defend you against the temptations of the devil;
and be careful, lest that adversary come stealthily upon you from a
strange quarter, who, as a most malevolent solace for his own
damnation, seeks others whose companionship he may obtain in that
damnation. For he is bold enough not only to tempt Christian people
through the instrumentality of those who hate the Christian name, or
are pained to see the world taken possession of by that name, and still
fondly desire to do service to idols and to the curious rites of evil
spirits, but at times he also attempts the same through the agency of
such men as we have mentioned a little ago, to wit, persons severed
from the unity of the Church, like the twigs which are lopped off when
the vine is pruned, who are called heretics or schismatics. Howbeit
sometimes also he makes the same effort by means of the Jews, seeking
to tempt and seduce believers by their instrumentality. Nevertheless,
what ought above all things to be guarded against is, that no
individual may suffer himself to be tempted and deceived by men who are
within the Catholic Church itself, and who are borne by it like the
chaff that is sustained against the time of its winnowing. For in being
patient toward such persons, God has this end in view, namely, to
exercise and confirm the faith and prudence of His elect by means of
the perverseness of these others while at the same time He also takes
account of the fact that many of their number make an advance, and are
converted to the doing of the good pleasure of God with a great
impetus, when led to take pity upon their own souls. [1493] For not all
treasure up for themselves, through the patience of God, wrath in the
day of the wrath of His just judgment; [1494] but many are brought by
the same patience of the Almighty to the most wholesome pain of
repentance. [1495] And until that is effected, they are made the means
of exercising not only the forbearance, but also the compassion of
those who are already holding by the right way. Accordingly, you will
have to witness many drunkards, covetous men, deceivers gamesters,
adulterers, fornicators, men who bind upon their persons sacrilegious
charms and others given up to sorcerers and astrologers, [1496] and
diviners practised in all kinds of impious arts. You will also have to
observe how those very crowds which fill the theatres on the festal
days of the pagans also fill the churches on the festal days of the
Christians. And when you see these things you will be tempted to
imitate them. Nay, why should I use the expression, you will see, in
reference to what you assuredly are acquainted with even already? For
you are not ignorant of the fact that many who are called Christians
engage in all these evil things which I have briefly mentioned. Neither
are you ignorant that at times, perchance, men whom you know to bear
the name of Christians are guilty of even more grievous offenses than
these. But if you have come with the notion that you may do such things
as in a secured position, you are greatly in error; neither will the
name of Christ be of any avail to you when He begins to judge in utmost
strictness, who also of old condescended in utmost mercy to come to
man's relief. For He Himself has foretold these things, and speaks to
this effect in the Gospel: `Not every one that saith unto me, Lord,
Lord, shall enter into the kingdom of heaven; but he that doeth the
will of my Father. Many shall say unto me in that day, Lord, Lord, in
thy name we have eaten and drunken.' [1497] For all, therefore, who
persevere in such works the end is damnation. Consequently, when you
see many not only doing these things but also defending and
recommending them, keep yourself firmly by the law of God, and follow
not its willful transgressors. For it is not according to their mind,
but according to His [1498] truth that you will be judged.
49. "Associate with the good, whom you perceive to be at one with you
in loving your King. For there are many such for you to discover, if
you also begin to cultivate that character yourself. For if in the
public spectacles you wished to be in congenial company, and to attach
yourself closely [1499] to men who are united with you in a liking for
some charioteer, or some hunter, or some player or other, how much more
ought you to find pleasure in associating with those who are at one
with you in loving that God, with regard to whom no one that loves Him
shall ever have cause for the blush of shame, inasmuch as not only is
He Himself incapable of being overcome, but He will also render those
unconquerable who are affectionately disposed toward Him. At the same
time, not even on those same good men, who either anticipate you or
accompany you on the way to God, ought you to set your hope, seeing
that no more ought you to place it on yourself, however great may be
the progress you have made, but on Him who justifies both them and you,
and thus makes you what you are. For you are secure in God, because He
changes not; but in man no one prudently counts himself secure. But if
we ought to love those who are not righteous as yet, with the view that
they may be so, how much more warmly ought those to be loved who
already are righteous? At the same time, it is one thing to love man,
and another thing to set one's hope in man; and the difference is so
great, that God enjoins the one and forbids the other. Moreover, if you
have to sustain either any insults or any sufferings in the cause of
the name of Christ, and neither fall away from the faith nor decline
from the good way, [1500] you are certain to receive the greater
reward; whereas those who give way to the devil in such circumstances,
lose even the less reward. But be humble toward God, in order that He
may not permit you to be tempted beyond your strength."
__________________________________________________________________
[1486] Sed ex te ipso crede. It may also = but, on your side, do you
believe.
[1487] Certisque aetatum incrementis, etc.
[1488] Reading sicut non erat; for which, however, cum non erat also
occurs = seeing He was able to make it when it was not.
[1489] Corruptibilem corporis conditionem. But corruptibilis also
occurs = the condition of a corruptible body.
[1490] Satietas. Some editions, however, give societas = the society.
[1491] Luke xx. 36
[1492] 2 Cor. v. 7
[1493] Ad placendum Deo miserati animas suas, etc. Instead of miserati
the reading miseranti also occurs = "to" the doing of the good pleasure
of the God who takes pity on their souls. The Benedictine editors
suggest that the whole clause is in reference to Ecclesiasticus xxx.
24, (23), which in the Latin runs thus: miserere animae tuae placens
Deo.
[1494] Rom. ii. 5
[1495] Cf. Rom. ii. 4
[1496] Mathematicis
[1497] Matt. vii. 21, 22
[1498] Or = its (i.e. the law's) truth.
[1499] Adopting nam si in spectaculis cum illis esse cupiebas et eis
inhaerere. Another, but less weightily supported reading, is, nam si in
spectaculis et vanitatibus insanorum certaminum illis cupiebas
inhaerere = for if in the public spectacles and vanities of mad
struggles you wish to attach yourself closely to men, etc.
[1500] Bona via. Another and well authenticated rendering is, bona vita
= the good life.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 26.--Of the Formal Admission of the Catechumen, and of the
Signs Therein Made Use of.
50. At the conclusion of this address the person is to be asked whether
he believes these things and earnestly desires to observe them. And on
his replying to that effect then certainly he is to be solemnly signed
and dealt with in accordance with the custom of the Church. On the
subject of the sacrament, indeed, [1501] which he receives, it is first
to be well impressed upon his notice that the signs of divine things
are, it is true, things visible, but that the invisible things
themselves are also honored in them, and that that species, [1502]
which is then sanctified by the blessing, is therefore not to be
regarded merely in the way in which it is regarded in any common use.
And thereafter he ought to be told what is also signified by the form
of words to which he has listened, and what in him is seasoned [1503]
by that (spiritual grace) of which this material substance presents the
emblem. Next we should take occasion by that ceremony to admonish him
that, if he hears anything even in the Scriptures which may carry a
carnal sound, he should, even although he fails to understand it,
nevertheless believe that something spiritual is signified thereby,
which bears upon holiness of character and the future life. Moreover,
in this way he learns briefly that, whatever he may hear in the
canonical books of such a kind as to make him unable to refer it to the
love of eternity, and of truth, and of sanctity, and to the love of our
neighbor, he should believe that to have been spoken or done with a
figurative significance; and that, consequently, he should endeavor to
understand it in such a manner as to refer it to that twofold (duty of)
love. He should be further admonished, however, not to take the term
neighbor in a carnal sense, but to understand under it every one who
may ever be with him in that holy city, whether there already or not
yet apparent. And (he should finally be counselled) not to despair of
the amendment of any man whom he perceives to be living under the
patience of God for no other reason, as the apostle [1504] says, than
that he may be brought to repentance.
51. If this discourse, in which I have supposed myself to have been
teaching some uninstructed person in my presence, appears to you to be
too long, you are at liberty to expound these matters with greater
brevity. I do not think, however, that it ought to be longer than this.
At the same time, much depends on what the case itself, as it goes on,
may render advisable, and what the audience actually present shows
itself not only to bear, but also to desire. When, however, rapid
despatch is required, notice with what facility the whole matter admits
of being explained. Suppose once more that some one comes before us who
desires to be a Christian; and accordingly, suppose further that he has
been interrogated, and that he has returned the answer which we have
taken the former catechumen to have given; for, even should he decline
to make this reply, it must at least be said that he ought to have
given it;--then all that remains to be said to him should be put
together in the following manner:--
52. Of a truth, brother, that is great and true blessedness which is
promised to the saints in a future world. All visible things, on the
other hand, pass away, and all the pomp, and pleasure, and solicitude
[1505] of this world will perish, and (even now) they drag those who
love them along with them onward to destruction. The merciful God,
willing to deliver men from this destruction, that is to say, from
everlasting pains, if they should not prove enemies to themselves, and
if they should not withstand the mercy of their Creator, sent His
only-begotten Son, that is to say, His Word, equal with Himself, by
whom He made all things. And He, while abiding indeed in His divinity,
and neither receding from the Father nor being changed in anything, did
at the same time, by taking on Himself human nature, [1506] and
appearing to men in mortal flesh, come unto men; in order that, just as
death entered among the human race by one man, to wit, the first that
was made, that is to say, Adam, because he consented unto his wife when
she was seduced by the devil to the effect that they (both)
transgressed the commandment of God; even so by one man, Jesus Christ,
who is also God, the Son of God, all those who believe in Him might
have all their past sins done away with, and enter into eternal life.
__________________________________________________________________
[1501] It has been supposed by the Benedictine editors that sane may be
a misreading for salis. Whether that be or be not the case, the
sacramentum intended here appears to be the sacramentum salis, in
reference to which Neander (Church History iii. p. 458, Bohn's
Translation) states that "in the North African Church the bishop gave
to those whom he received as competentes, while signing the cross over
them as a symbol of consecration, a portion of salt over which a
blessing had been pronounced. This was to signify the divine word
imparted to the candidates as the true salt for human nature." There is
an allusion to the same in the Confessions (i. 11), where Augustin
says, "Even from my mother's womb who greatly hoped in thee, I was
signed with the sign of His cross, and seasoned with His salt."
[1502] Speciem = kind, in reference to the outward and sensible sign of
the salt.
[1503] Adopting condiat, which unquestionably is the reading most
accordant with the figure of the sacramental salt here dealt with. Some
editions give condatur = what is hidden in it, i.e. in the said form of
words.
[1504] Rom. ii . 4
[1505] Curiositas
[1506] Hominem
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 27.--Of the Prophecies of the Old Testament in Their Visible
Fulfillment in the Church.
53. "For all those things, which at present you witness in the Church
of God, and which you see to be taking place under the name of Christ
throughout the whole world, were predicted long ages ago. And even as
we read of them, so also we now see them. And by means of these things
we are built up unto faith. Once of old there occurred a flood over the
whole earth, the object of which was that sinners might be destroyed.
And, nevertheless, those who escaped in the ark exhibited a sacramental
sign of the Church that was to be, which at present is floating on the
waves of the world, and is delivered from submersion by the wood of the
cross of Christ. It was predicted to Abraham, a faithful servant of
God, a single man, that of Him it was determined that a people should
be born who should worship one God in the midst of all other nations
which worshipped idols; and all things which were prophesied of as
destined to happen to that people have come to pass exactly as they
were foretold. Among that people Christ, the King of all saints and
their God, was also prophesied of as destined to come of the seed of
that same Abraham according to the flesh, which (flesh) He took unto
Himself, in order that all those also who became followers of His faith
might be sons of Abraham; and thus it has come to pass: Christ was born
of the Virgin Mary, who belonged to that race. It was foretold by the
prophets that He would suffer on the cross at the hands of that same
people of the Jews, of whose lineage, according to the flesh, He came;
and thus it has come to pass. It was foretold that He would rise again:
He has risen again; and, in accordance with these same predictions of
the prophets, He has ascended into heaven and has sent the Holy Spirit
to His disciples. It was foretold not only by the prophets, but also by
the Lord Jesus Christ Himself, that His Church would exist throughout
the whole world, extended by the martyrdoms and sufferings of the
saints; and this was foretold at a time when as yet His name was at
once undeclared to the Gentiles, and made a subject of derision where
it was known; and, nevertheless, in the power of His miracles, whether
those which He wrought by His own hand or those which he effected by
means of His servants, as these things are being reported and believed,
we already see the fulfillment of that which was predicted, and behold
the very kings of the earth, who formerly were wont to persecute the
Christians, even now brought into subjection to the name of Christ. It
was also foretold that schisms and heresies would arise from His
Church, and that under His name they would seek their own glory instead
of Christ's, in such places as they might be able to command; and these
predictions have been realized.
54. "Will those things, then, which yet remain fail to come to pass? It
is manifest that, just as the former class of things which were
foretold have come to pass, so will these latter also come to pass. I
refer to all the tribulations of the righteous, which yet wait for
fulfillment, and to the day of judgment, which will separate all the
wicked from the righteous in the resurrection of the dead;--and not
only will it thus separate those wicked men who are outside the Church,
but also it will set apart for the fire, which is due to such, the
chaff of the Church itself, which must be borne with in utmost patience
on to the last winnowing. Moreover, they who deride the (doctrine of a)
resurrection, because they think that this flesh, inasmuch as it
becomes corrupt, cannot rise again, will certainly rise in the same
unto punishment, and God will make it plain to such, that He who was
able to form these bodies when as yet they were not, is able in a
moment to restore them as they were. But all the faithful who are
destined to reign with Christ shall rise with the same body in such
wise that they may also be counted worthy to be changed into angelic
incorruption; so that they may be made equal unto the angels of God,
even as the Lord Himself has promised; [1507] and that they may praise
Him without any failure and without any weariness, ever living in Him
and of Him, with such joy and blessedness as can be neither expressed
nor conceived by man.
55. "Believe these things, therefore, and be on your guard against
temptations (for the devil seeks for others who may be brought to
perish along with himself); so that not only may that adversary fail to
seduce you by the help of those who are without the Church, whether
they be pagans, or Jews, or heretics; but you yourself also may decline
to follow the example of those within the Catholic Church itself whom
you see leading an evil life, either indulging in excess in the
pleasures of the belly and the throat, or unchaste, or given up to the
vain and unlawful observances of curious superstitions, whether they be
addicted to (the inanities of) public spectacles, or charms, or
divinations of devils, [1508] or be living in the pomp and inflated
arrogance of covetousness and pride, or be pursuing any sort of life
which the law condemns and punishes. But rather connect yourself with
the good, whom you will easily find out, if you yourself were once
become of that character; so that you may unite with each other in
worshipping and loving God for His own sake; [1509] for He himself will
be our complete reward to the intent that we may enjoy His goodness and
beauty [1510] in that life. He is to be loved, however, not in the way
in which any object that is seen with the eyes is loved, but as wisdom
is loved, and truth, and holiness, and righteousness, and charity,
[1511] and whatever else may be mentioned as of kindred nature; and
further, with a love conformable to these things not as they are in
men, but as they are in the very fountain of incorruptible and
unchangeable wisdom. Whomsoever, therefore, you may observe to be
loving these things, attach yourself to them, so that through Christ,
who became man in order that He might be the Mediator between God and
men, you may be reconciled to God. But as regards the perverse, even if
they find their way within the walls of the Church, think not that they
will find their way into the kingdom of heaven; for in their own time
they will be set apart, if they have not altered to the better.
Consequently, follow the example of good men, bear with the wicked,
love all; forasmuch as you know not what he will be to-morrow who
to-day is evil. Howbeit, love not the unrighteousness of such; but love
the persons themselves with the express intent that they may apprehend
righteousness; for not only is the love of God enjoined upon us, but
also the love of our neighbor, on which two commandments hang all the
law and the prophets. [1512] And this is fulfilled by no one save the
man who has received the (other) gift, [1513] the Holy Spirit, who is
indeed equal with the Father and with the Son; for this same Trinity is
God; and on this God every hope ought to be placed. On man our hope
ought not to be placed, of whatsoever character he may be. For He, by
whom we are justified, is one thing; and they, together with whom we
are justified, are another. Moreover, it is not only by lusts that the
devil tempts, but also by the terrors of insults, and pains, and death
itself. But whatever a man shall have suffered on behalf of the name of
Christ, and for the sake of the hope of eternal life, and shall have
endured in constancy, (in accordance therewith) the greater reward
shall be given him; whereas, if he shall give way to the devil, he
shall be damned along with him. But works of mercy, conjoined with
pious humility, meet with this acknowledgment from God, to wit, that He
will not suffer His servants to be tempted more than they are able to
bear." [1514]
__________________________________________________________________
[1507] Luke xx. 36
[1508] Remediorum aut divinationum diabolicarum. Some editions insert
sacrilegorum after remediorum = sacrilegious charms or divinations of
devils.
[1509] Gratis.
[1510] Cf. Zech. ix. 17
[1511] Many mss. omit the words: and holiness, and righteousness, and
charity.
[1512] Matt. xxii. 37, 39
[1513] One edition reads Dominum, the Lord, the Holy Spirit, etc.,
instead of donum.
[1514] 1 Cor. x. 13
__________________________________________________________________
[1331] [The Oxford Library and H. de Romestin translate the title: On
Instructing the Unlearned.--P.S.]
__________________________________________________________________
A Treatise on Faith and the Creed.
[De Fide Et Symbolo.]
in One Book.
Translated by
Rev. S. D. F. Salmond, D.D.,
Professor of Systematic Theology, Free Church College, Aberdeen.
[A discourse delivered before a council of the whole North African
Episcopate assembled at Hippo-Regius.]
__________________________________________________________________
Introductory Notice.
The occasion and date of the composition of this treatise are indicated
in a statement which Augustin makes in the seventeenth chapter of the
First Book of his Retractations.
From this we learn that, in its original form, it was a discourse which
Augustin, when only a presbyter, was requested to deliver in public by
the bishops assembled at the Council of Hippo-Regius, and that it was
subsequently issued as a book at the desire of friends. The general
assembly of the North African Church, which was thus convened at what
is now Bona, in the modern territory of Algiers, took place in the year
393 A.D., and was otherwise one of some historical importance, on
account of the determined protest which it emitted against the position
elsewhere allowed to Patriarchs in the Church, and against the
admittance of any more authoritative or magisterial title to the
highest ecclesiastical official than that of simply "Bishop of the
first Church" (primae sedis episcopus).
The work constitutes an exposition of the several clauses of the
so-called Apostles' Creed. The questions concerning the mutual
relations of the three Persons in the Godhead are handled with greatest
fullness; in connection with which, especially in the use made of the
analogies of Being, Knowledge, and Love, and in the cautions thrown in
against certain applications of these and other illustrations taken
from things of human experience, we come across sentiments which are
also repeated in the City of God, the books on the Trinity, and others
of his doctrinal writings.
The passage referred to in the Retractations is as follows: About the
same period, in presence of the bishops, who gave me orders to that
effect, and who were holding a plenary Council of the whole of Africa
at Hippo-Regius, I delivered, as presbyter, a discussion on the subject
of Faith and the Creed. This disputation, at the very pressing request
of some of those who were on terms of more than usual intimacy and
affection with us, I threw into the form of a book, in which the themes
themselves are made the subjects of discourse, although not in a method
involving the adoption of the particular connection of words which is
given to the competentes [1515] to be committed to memory. In this
book, when discussing the question of the resurrection of the flesh, I
say: [1516] `Rise again the body will, according to the Christian
faith, which is incapable of deceiving. And if this appears incredible
to any one, [it is because] he looks simply to what the flesh is at
present, while he fails to consider of what nature it shall be
hereafter. For at that time of angelic change it will no more be flesh
and blood, but only body;' and so on, through the other statements
which I have made there on the subject of the change of bodies
terrestrial into bodies celestial, as the apostle, when he spake from
the same point, said, `Flesh and blood shall not inherit the kingdom of
God.' [1517] But if any one takes these declarations in a sense leading
him to suppose that the earthly body, such as we now have it, is
changed in the resurrection into a celestial body, in any such wise as
that neither these members nor the substance of the flesh will subsist
any more, undoubtedly he must be set right, by being put in mind of the
body of the Lord, who subsequently to His resurrection appeared in the
same members, as One who was not only to be seen with the eyes, but
also handled with the hands; and made His possession of the flesh
likewise surer by the discourse which He spake, saying, `Handle me, and
see; for a spirit hath not flesh and bones, as ye see me have.' [1518]
Hence it is certain that the apostle did not deny that the substance of
the flesh will exist in the kingdom of God, but that under the name of
`flesh and blood' he designated either men who live after the flesh, or
the express corruption of the flesh, which assuredly at that period
shall subsist no more. For after he had said, `Flesh and blood shall
not inherit the kingdom of God,' what he proceeds to say next,--namely,
`neither shall corruption inherit incorruption,'--is rightly taken to
have been added by way of explaining his previous statement. And on
this subject, which is one on which it is difficult to convince
unbelievers, any one who reads my last book, On the City of God, will
find that I have discoursed with the utmost carefulness of which I am
capable. [1519] The performance in question commences thus: `Since it
is written,' etc."
[Additional Note by the American Editor.]
[Another English edition of this treatise De Fide et Symbolo was
prepared by the Rev. Charles a. Heurtley, D.D., Margaret Professor of
Divinity and Canon of Christ Church, Oxford, and published by Parker &
Co., Oxford and London, 1886.
The following text of the Apostles' Creed may be collected from this
book of St. Augustin, and was current in North Africa towards the close
of the fourth century:
1. I Believe in God the Father Almighty. Chs. 2 and 3.
2. (And) In Jesus Christ, the Son of God, the Only-Begotten of the
Father, or, His Only Son, Our Lord. Ch. 3.
3. Who Was Born Through the Holy Spirit of the Virgin Mary. Ch. 4 (S:
8.)
4. Who Under Pontius Pilate Was Crucified and Buried. Ch. 5 (S: 11.)
5. On the Third Day He Rose Again from the Dead. Ch. 5 (S: 12.)
6. He Ascended into Heaven. Ch. 6 (S: 13.)
7. He Sitteth at the Right Hand of the Father. Ch. 7 (S: 14.)
8. From Thence He Will Come and Judge the Living and the Dead. Ch. 8
(S: 15.)
9. (and I Believe) in the Holy Spirit. Ch. 9 (S: 16-19.)
10. I Believe the Holy Church (Catholic). Ch. 10 (S: 21.)
11. The Forgiveness of Sin. Ch. 10 (S: 23.)
12. The Resurrection of the Body. Ch. 10 (S: 23, 24.)
13. The Life Everlasting. Ch. 10 (S: 24.)]
__________________________________________________________________
[1515] i.e.the third order of catechumens, embracing those thoroughly
prepared for baptism.
[1516] Chap. x. S: 24.
[1517] 1 Cor. xv. 50
[1518] Luke xxiv. 39
[1519] City of God, Bk. xxii. Ch. 21.
__________________________________________________________________
A Treatise on Faith and the Creed.
Chapter 1.--Of the Origin and Object of the Composition.
1. Inasmuch as it is a position, written and established on the most
solid foundation of apostolic teaching, "that the just lives of faith;"
[1520] and inasmuch also as this faith demands of us the duty at once
of heart and tongue,--for an apostle says, "With the heart man
believeth unto righteousness, and with the mouth confession is made
unto salvation," [1521] --it becomes us to be mindful both of
righteousness and of salvation. For, destined as we are to reign
hereafter in everlasting righteousness, we certainly cannot secure our
salvation from the present evil world, unless at the same time, while
laboring for the salvation of our neighbors, we likewise with the mouth
make our own profession of the faith which we carry in our heart. And
it must be our aim, by pious and careful watchfulness, to provide
against the possibility of the said faith sustaining any injury in us,
on any side, through the fraudulent artifices [or, cunning fraud] of
the heretics.
We have, however, the catholic faith in the Creed, known to the
faithful and committed to memory, contained in a form of expression as
concise as has been rendered admissible by the circumstances of the
case; the purpose of which [compilation] was, that individuals who are
but beginners and sucklings among those who have been born again in
Christ, and who have not yet been strengthened by most diligent and
spiritual handling and understanding of the divine Scriptures, should
be furnished with a summary, expressed in few words, of those matters
of necessary belief which were subsequently to be explained to them in
many words, as they made progress and rose to [the height of] divine
doctrine, on the assured and steadfast basis of humility and charity.
It is underneath these few words, therefore, which are thus set in
order in the Creed, that most heretics have endeavored to conceal their
poisons; whom divine mercy has withstood, and still withstands, by the
instrumentality of spiritual men, who have been counted worthy not only
to accept and believe the catholic faith as expounded in those terms,
but also thoroughly to understand and apprehend it by the enlightenment
imparted by the Lord. For it is written, "Unless ye believe, ye shall
not understand." [1522] But the handling of the faith is of service for
the protection of the Creed; not, however, to the intent that this
should itself be given instead of the Creed, to be committed to memory
and repeated by those who are receiving the grace of God, but that it
may guard the matters which are retained in the Creed against the
insidious assaults of the heretics, by means of catholic authority and
a more entrenched defence.
__________________________________________________________________
[1520] Hab. ii. 4; Rom. i. 17; Gal. iii. 11; Heb. x. 38
[1521] Rom. x. 10
[1522] Isa. vii. 9, according to the rendering of the Septuagint.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 2.--Of God and His Exclusive Eternity.
2. For certain parties have attempted to gain acceptance for the
opinion that God the Father is not Almighty: not that they have been
bold enough expressly to affirm this, but in their traditions they are
convicted of entertaining and crediting such a notion. For when they
affirm that there is a nature [1523] which God Almighty did not create,
but of which at the same time He fashioned this world, which they admit
to have been disposed in beauty, [1524] they thereby deny that God is
almighty, to the effect of not believing that He could have created the
world without employing, for the purpose of its construction, another
nature, which had been in existence previously, and which He Himself
had not made. Thus, forsooth, [they reason] from their carnal
familiarity with the sight of craftsmen and house-builders, and
artisans of all descriptions, who have no power to make good the effect
of their own art unless they get the help of materials already
prepared. And so these parties in like manner understand the Maker of
the world not to be almighty, if [1525] thus He could not fashion the
said world without the help of some other nature, not framed by
Himself, which He had to use as His materials. Or if indeed they do
allow God, the Maker of the world, to be almighty, it becomes matter of
course that they must also acknowledge that He made out of nothing the
things which He did make. For, granting that He is almighty, there
cannot exist anything of which He should not be the Creator. For
although He made something out of something, as man out of clay, [1526]
nevertheless He certainly did not make any object out of aught which He
Himself had not made; for the earth from which the clay comes He had
made out of nothing. And even if He had made out of some material the
heavens and the earth themselves, that is to say, the universe and all
things which are in it, according as it is written, "Thou who didst
make the world out of matter unseen," [1527] or also "without form," as
some copies give it; yet we are under no manner of necessity to believe
that this very material of which the universe was made, although it
might be "without form," although it might be "unseen," whatever might
be the mode of its subsistence, could possibly have subsisted of
itself, as if it were co-eternal and co-eval with God. But whatsoever
that mode was which it possessed to the effect of subsisting in some
manner, whatever that manner might be, and of being capable of taking
on the forms of distinct things, this it did not possess except by the
hand of Almighty God, by whose goodness it is that everything
exists,--not only every object which is already formed, but also every
object which is formable. This, moreover, is the difference between the
formed and the formable, that the formed has already taken on form,
while the formable is capable of taking the same. But the same Being
who imparts form to objects, also imparts the capability of being
formed. For of Him and in Him is the fairest figure [1528] of all
things, unchangeable; and therefore He Himself is One, who communicates
to everything its possibilities, not only that it be beautiful
actually, but also that it be capable of being beautiful. For which
reason we do most right to believe that God made all things of nothing.
For, even although the world was made of some sort of material, this
self-same material itself was made of nothing; so that, in accordance
with the most orderly gift of God, there was to enter first the
capacity of taking forms, and then that all things should be formed
which have been formed. This, however, we have said, in order that no
one might suppose that the utterances of the divine Scriptures are
contrary the one to the other, in so far as it is written at once that
God made all things of nothing, and that the world was made of matter
without form.
3. As we believe, therefore, in God the Father Almighty, we ought to
uphold the opinion that there is no creature which has not been created
by the Almighty. And since He created all things by the Word, [1529]
which Word is also designated the Truth, and the Power, and the Wisdom
of God, [1530] --as also under many other appellations the Lord Jesus
Christ, who [1531] is commended to our faith, is presented likewise to
our mental apprehensions, to wit, our Deliverer and Ruler, [1532] the
Son of God; for that Word, by whose means all things were founded,
could not have been begotten by any other than by Him who founded all
things by His instrumentality;--
__________________________________________________________________
[1523] Naturam
[1524] Reading pulchre ordinatum. Some editions give pulchre ornatum =
beautifully adorned.
[1525] Si mundum fabricare non posset. For si some mss. give qui =
inasmuch as He could not, etc.
[1526] De limo = of mud.
[1527] Wisd. xi. 17
[1528] Speciosissima species = the seemliest semblance.
[1529] John i. 3
[1530] John xiv. 6; 1 Cor. i. 24
[1531] For qui several mss. give quibus here = "under" many other
appellations is the Lord Jesus Christ introduced to our mental
apprehensions, by which He is commended to our faith.
[1532] For Rector we also find Creator = Creator.
__________________________________________________________________
Chapter 3.--Of the Son of God, and His Peculiar Designation as the
Word.
--Since this is the case, I repeat, we believe also in Jesus Christ,
the Son of God the Only-Begotten of the Father, that is to say, His
Only Son, our Lord. This Word however, we ought not to apprehend merely
in the sense in which we think of our own words, which are given forth
by the voice and the mouth, and strike the air and pass on, and subsist
no longer than th